Skip to main content

Full text of "The life and correspondence of William Connor Magee, Archbishop of York, Bishop of Peterborough"

See other formats


PRINCETON,  N.  J. 


Skelf- 


BX  5199    .M33  M32  1896  v. 2 
Macdonnell,  John  Cotter,  d. 
1902. 

The  life  and  correspondence 

^  j^Wi  1 11  am^i  C Q uaqj:  Maae^^  -  - . 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 
in  2015 


https://archive.org/cletails/lifecorresponden02macd 


THE  LIFE  OF  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


First  Edition,  October  i8<f6 
Reprinted,  October  i8q6 
Reprinted,  November  i8g6 


THE  LIFE  AND  CORRESPONDENCE 

OF 

WILLIAM  CONNOR  MAGEE 

ARCHBISHOP  OF  YORK 

BISHOP  OF  PETERBOROITGH 


BY 

/ 

JOHN  COTTER  MACDONNELL  D.D. 

CANON  RESIDENTIARY  OF  PETERBOROUGH 
SOMETIME  DEAN  OF  CASIIEL 


IN  TWO  VOLUxMES 
Vol.  II 


LONDON 

ISBISTER  AND  COMPANY  Limited 
15  &  16  TAVISTOCK  STREET  COVENT  GARDEN 
1  890 


rriiacd  by  Ballantvne,  Hanson 
Loiidon  &^  Edinburgh 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER  XII 

CHURCH  PATRONAGE:  PUBLIC  WORSHIP  REGULATION  ACT 

Committee  on  Church  Patronage — P.W.R.  Debate — Tyndall  on  Atoms — Competitive  Ex- 
aminations— Church  Extension — Rubrical  Revision — Speech  on  Patronage  Bill — 
Paper  read  before  the  Metaphysical  Society — Visit  to  Rome — Letter  on  Ecclesiastical 
Prosecutions  p.  1 


CHAPTER  XIII 

THE  TEMPERANCE  QUESTION:  ECCLESIASTICAL 
PROSECUTIONS 

Permissive  Bill,  Free  or  Sober" — Letter  on  Suicide — Correspondence  with  Mr.  Talbot 
and  Mr.  Shaw  Stewart— Theological  Colleges — Mr.  Tooth — Burials  Bill— Eastward 
Position  p.  43 


CHAPTER  XIV 

CONFESSION:  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD 

Society  of  the  Holy  Cross — Letter  on  Confession — Tyndall's  Address— On  Wearing  a 
Cope — Mr.  Bright  on  the  Burials  Bill — Metaphysical  Society — Letter  to  Lord 
Nelson — Vincentian  Rule  of  Faith  p.  73 


CHAPTER  XV 

NAVVIES'  MISSION:  DAY  OF  HUMILIATION:  BURIALS  ACT 

Christian  Evidence  Society — Artists'  Benevolent  Fund — Anti-Vivisection  Bill — Letter  to 
Canon  Argles — Harvest  Thanksgivings — Consecration  of  Edinburgh  Cathedral — Life 
of  Bishop  Wilberforce — Archdeacon  Denison  and  the  S.P.G. — Burials  Bill  Debate — 
Irish  Land  Bill  Debate  p.  110 


vi 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER  XVI 

LEICESTER  CHURCH  CONGRESS:  CHURCH  REFORM 

Conseci'dtion  of  Graveyards — Mr.  Dale's  Imprisonment — Religious  Tone  at  Oxford— 
Letters  on  Church  Patronage — Reform  of  Convocation — Royal  Commission — Ritualists 
and  Church  of  Rome — Queen  Anne's  Bounty  Bill — Death  of  Dean  Stanley— Diocesan 
Difficulties — Future  of  the  Church — Marriage  Laws — D.  W.  S.  Bill — Archbishop 
Tail's  Funeral — Bishop  Wilber force's  Life  p.  142 

CHAPTER  XVH 

VISIT  TO  SPAIN:  ILLNESS:  SPEECH  ON  DISESTABLISHMENT 

Prayers  for  the  Dead — Cathedral  Statutes  Bill — Publication  of  Sermons — Ordination 
Examinations — Suffragan  Bishop — Confirmation  Arrangements — Evening  Com- 
munion— Diocesan  Conference — Letters  from  Bishop  of  Manchester  and  Mr.  Gladstone 
— Temperance  Questions  p.  185 

CHAPTER  XVIII 

CHURCH  PATRONAGE  BILL:  MANCHESTER  CHURCH  CONGRESS 

House  uf  Laymen — Parish  Churches  Bill — Parliamentary  Work — Letter  from  John 
Bright — Letter  on  the  Atonement — Imprisonment  for  Contumacy — Sermon  at  White- 
hall—  Unauthorised  Publication  of  Sermons — Mr.  Gladstone's  Logic     .       .  p.  219 

CHAPTER  XIX 

HUXLEY  AND  AGNOSTICISM:  BETTING  AND  GAMBLING: 
SOCIALISM 

Ordination  Examinations — Diocesan  Appointments — Diocesan  Conference — Huxley  on 
"Natural  Rights" — Letter  on  Bishop  of  Meath's  Sermon — "Lux  Mundi" — 
Infants'  Insurance  Bill — Visit  to  Carrigart — Marriage  of  Divorced  Persons — General 


Booth's  Scheme  p.  258 

CHAPTER  XX 

APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK:  CLERGY  DISCIPLINE  BILL:  DEATH 

Address  from  Nonconformists — Ornaments  Rubric — Enthronement  in  York  Minster — 
Reception  at  Hull — Convocation — Illness  and  Death  in  Loudon    .       .       .p.  295 


INDEX  p.  317 


CHAPTER  XII 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE;  P.W.R.  ACT 

It  will  be  seen  from  the  following  letters  that  the  Bishop  had 
determined  to  make  an  effort  to  get  something  done  by  Parliament 
to  remove  the  abuses  of  ecclesiastical  patronage.  This  subject  was 
connected  with  his  name  to  the  end  of  his  days,  though  his  efforts 
never  succeeded  so  far  as  to  carry  any  Bill  through  hoth  Houses. 

On  April  21,  1874,  he  brought  forward  his  motion  for  a  Select 
Committee  in  the  House  of  Lords,  and  made  an  elaborate  and 
powerful  speech  upon  the  subject. 

The  key-note  of  this,  and  of  all  his  subsequent  efforts  to  reform 
the  law  of  patronage,  will  be  found  in  the  following  sentence  from 
this  speech: 

In  a  word,  the  aim  of  legislation  should  be  to  give  practical  effect  to 
the  principle  that  in  the  matter  of  patronage,  property  is  the  incident 
of  a  trust,  and  not  trust  the  incident  of  a  property. 

["Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  151.] 

Lord  Cairns  rose  immediately  at  the  close  of  the  Bishop's  speech 
and  assented  on  the  part  of  the  Ministry  to  the  appointment  of  a 
Select  Committee,  and  thus  prevented  further  debate. 

Before  this  Committee  was  appointed  the  Archbishop  of  Canter- 
bury brought  in  his  Bill  for  the  regulation  of  public  worship, 
constantly  referred  to  in  the  Bishop's  letters  as  P.^V.R. 

I  quote  the  following  paragi'aph  from  the  Bishop's  speech  on  the 
second  reading  of  the  Bill : 

We  are  told  that  we  should  govern  the  Church  by  fatherliness.  Now 
I  must  be  allowed  to  say  there  is  something  very  one-sided  in  this  cry 
for  fathei'liness  from  the  bishops  when  they  meet  with  no  filialness,  and 
I  should  like  to  have  some  reciprocity.  When  a  monition  is  to  be 
flung  back  in  my  face,  and  I  am  to  be  told  that  I  am  "  neither  a  gen- 

VOL.  u  A 


2 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


tleman  nor  a  divine/'  and  that  "  my  conversion  is  to  be  praj-ed  for/'  I 
must  say  that  I  should  hke  to  see  a  little  filialness  on  the  part  of  those 
who  are  demandin<?  this  fatherliness.  I  honestly  desire,  as  far  as  I  can, 
to  be  fatherly  towards  these  men,  but  when  I  hear  this  advice  given  to 
us  I  am  reminded  of  the  solitary  instance  in  which  a  ruler  attempted 
to  govern  in  this  fatherly  fashion,  and  that  his  name  was  Eli,  while  his 
sons  were  Hophni  and  Phineas. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxell. 

"Peterborough,  March  12,  1874 
"I  returned  from  town  yesterday,  after  attending  the  service. 
I  saw  all  the  new  Ministry,  most  of  whom  I  know,  and  had  a  very 
instructive  talk  with  one  of  them — Lord  Carnarvon — respecting 
Church  matters  in  general,  and  the  coming  Episcopal  Bill  in  par- 
ticular. 

"  He  was  evidently  alarmed  by  the  leader  in  the  Times  of  Tues- 
day. Probably  you  have  seen  it.  It  is  a  deliberate  letting  of  our 
cat  out  of  the  bag  of  secrecy  ;  and  must  have  been  done  by  the 
Archbishop  himself.  This  is  burning  our  boats  with  a  vengeance  ; 
and  that,  too,  without  consultation  with  any  one  of  us. 

"  Carnarvon  hit  at  once  the  weak  point  of  the  measure,  \'iz.,  the 
question  whether  power  is  to  be  granted  to  Bishop  and  Council  of 
restraining  things  indifferent,  or  things  illegal.  The  former,  he 
clearly  was  of  opinion,  would  never  be  granted.  The  latter,  he 
thought,  might.  I  told  him  that  I  and  most  of  the  bishops  were 
for  the  latter  only ;  and  further  expounded  the  measure  to  him. 
He  seemed  relieved.  But  he  and  (I  suspect)  the  Ministry,  are 
terribly  afraid  of  Church  questions,  and  wish,  evidently,  to  let  them 
alone,  and  be  let  alone  about  them  for  as  long  as  possible. 

"  The  latter  is  impossible.  But  the  wish  for  the  former  will 
make  the  passing  of  reform  difficult.  For  Governments  have  a  way 
of  quietly  strangling  Bills  they  don't  like  without  seeming  to  do 
so.  The  Church  will  never  weigh  with  an  English  politician  like 
Disraeli,  against  the  interests  of  his  party. 

"  The  Archbishop's  illness  just  now  is  really  disastrous.  Alto- 
gether I  do  not  like  the  state  of  things  just  now.  We  are  adrift, 
without  a  pilot,  and  within  hearing  of  the  breakers. 

"I  see  in  to-day's  Standard  an  astounding  announcement,  from 
the  Record,  '  on  good  authority,'  that  the  Archbishop  is  going 
to  resign  after  Easter  !  I  trust  and  pray  it  is  merely  a  canard 
of  the  Record's  that  has  scared  me,  and  the  good  Archbishop 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


3 


may  be  as  little  thinking  of  resignation  as  Disraeli  is  at  this 
moment. 

"  Meanwhile,  events  march  :  the  Times'  leader  settles  the  ques- 
tion of  an  allocution,  that  is  the  Primate's  allocution  ;  and  it  is 
evident  he  means  to  sign  no  other,  or  he  would  not  have  issued  it. 
I  regret  his  decision,  and  I  differ  from  him  on  the  main  point  of 
the  Bill  *  as  he  would  have  it.  But  I  feel  we  must  all  stand  by  our 
chief,  though,  I  must  say,  he  makes  it  rather  ha,rd  for  us  sometimes 
to  do  so,  by  his  impulsive  dashes  into  print." 

"Peterborough,  March  14,  1874. 

"  Ingram  f  has,  by  this  time,  received  a  letter  from  me,  giving 
him  full  information  on  the  matters  referred  to  in  his  letter,  except- 
ing that  of  his  collation  (to  St.  Matthew's,  Leicester). 

"  This  I  cannot  do  on  Sunday,  12th.  But  I  might  do  it  after 
one  of  the  Leicester  Confirmations  in  that  week. 

"  God  knows,  and  He  only,  how  I  hate  patronage.  It  is  the 
most  anxious,  thankless,  and  disappointing  duty  that  any  man  can 
be  called  on  to  perform. 

"  He  is  certain  to  disappoint  nineteen  out  of  twenty  eligible  men, 
and  then  it  is  twenty  to  one  that  the  twentieth  disappoints  him ! 

*'  I  had  a  very  pleasant  letter  from  A.  C.  Cantuar  yesterday  ;  in 
good  spirits,  and  with  no  touch  of  resignation  about  it, 

"  You  will  find  me  or  hear  of  me  at  Athenasum  on  Thursday 
next." 

"  Athenaeum  Cldb,  March  24,  1874. 

"I  have  just  run  up  here  for  one  night  to  aiTange  with  the  Duke 
of  Richmond  and  Lord  Cairns  about  my  motion  for  a  Select  Com- 
mittee on  Patronage.  I  found  their  lordships  in  a  most  unex- 
pectedly amiable  mood,  quite  willing  to  assent  to  the  Committee, 
only  just  a  little  nervous  as  to  the  '  extent'  of  my  motion.  Lord 
Cairns,  especially,  was  cautious  and  conservative,  and  when  I  men- 
tioned it  to  him  a  fortnight  ago  almost  hostile. 

"I  took  the  liberty  of  first  placing  my  motion  on  the  notice 
book,  and  then  writing  to  the  Duke  of  Richmond  to  consult  him 
most  deferentially  as  to  details  of  time,  occasion,  numbers  of  Com- 
mittee, etc.  I  find  this  has  answered  very  well ;  and  whether  the 
Lords  like  it  or  not,  the  Committee  is  now  certain.    I  find,  too, 

*  Public  Worship  Regulation  Bill. 
+  Present  Dean  of  Peterborough. 


4 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XII 


that  I  have  more  power  than  I  thought  I  had,  as  mover  of  the 
Committee,  in  decidino-  who  is  to  be  on  it.  So  altogether  this  part 
of  the  episcopal  programme  of  reform  is  progressing  well.  What 
my  speech  will  be  or  do  is  another  question.  But  I  am  already 
inundated  with  letters  from  M.P.s,  clergymen,  lawyers,  and  others, 
full  of  suggestions  ;  showing  at  any  rate  that  the  question  is  ripen- 
ing for  discussion  if  not  for  decision. 

"  As  to  the  other  matter  of  the  '  Bishops'  Bill,'  you  have  doubt- 
less read  Pusey's  letters  in  the  Times,  also  a  certain  contradiction 
of  a  misrepresentation  of  his  as  to  the  scope  of  the  Bill,  which 
appeared  '  by  authority '  in  the  Times  and  other  papers.  The 
latter  is  my  doing. 

"  Move  of  this  when  we  meet. 

"  I  have  been  busy  '  earwigging  ^  noble  lords  of  high  and  low 
degree  on  the  subject. 

"  I  only  hope  that  A.  C.  Cantuar's  speech  may  bear  out  all  my 
sayings  on  the  subject. 

"  My  motion  comes  on  Tuesday,  April  21st."" 

"  Peterborough,  March  27,  1874. 

"  I  see  that  has  announced  a  '  Three  Hours''  Agony '  service 

on  Good  Friday  next,  without  even  submitting  the  sei-vice  to  me 
for  approval ;  without  which  he  cannot  legally  have  it. 

"  I  have  been  to  town  to  see  the  Duke  of  Richmond  about 
my  motion.  He  was  very  civil,  and  we  have  arranged  Tuesday, 
21st  April,  for  it.    I  remember  now  I  told  you  of  this. 

"I  find  every  one  very  nervous  about  the  subject,  and  awfully 
afraid  of  any  damage  to  '  property.'  They  do  not  yet  see  that 
identifying  property  with  nuisances  is  not  the  best  wav  to  preserve 
it. 

"  But  I  shall  certainly  have  a  very  difficult  card  to  play  between 
speaking  so  as  not  to  offend  Conservative  lords  who  are  large 
patrons,  and  speaking  so  as  not  to  oflFend  the  conscience  of  the 
Church  by  a  bishop  palliating  gi-oss  abuse. 

"Worse  than  all,  I  shall,  I  fear,  make  a  long  speech — a  mortal 
sin  in  the  eyes  of  the  Lords  except  in  grand  drets  debates  and  set 
occasions." 

"  Peterborough,  April  4,  1874. 
"  I  enclose  you  a  characteristic  letter  of  Lord  Harrowby's  to  the 
Bishop  of  London,  which  you  may  keep  till  we  meet.    I  have 


IS74-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


6 


written  to  the  good  old  man  to  reassure  him  as  to  my  '  sarcastic 
powers.' 

"  I  see  I  shall  have  to  show  the  Lords  that  an  Irishman  can  make 
a  moderate  speech.  "  W.  C.  P." 

From  LoRu  Haerowby  to  the  Bishop  of  London. 

Grosvenor  Square,  April  2,  1874. 

My  dear  Lord, — Sir  Walter  Farquhar,  a  few  days  ago,  called  to- 
gether a  number  of  his  friends,  who  are  interested  in  the  Church,  for 
the  purpose  of  considering  the  question  of  patronage,  and  in  respect 
of  the  scandals  arising  from  its  present  position.  There  was  little  or 
no  difference  of  opinion.  One  thing,  however,  was  very  generally 
patent,  that  it  was  one  very  difficult  to  deal  with.  My  own  impression 
is,  that  the  practical  evils  arising  from  the  sale,  in  some  shape  or  other, 
are  much  exaggerated  ;  and  that  sale  in  some  form  or  other  must 
exist.  I  believe  it  must  be  admitted  and  regulated.  However  that 
may  be,  a  general  satisfaction  Avas  expressed,  that  the  Bishop  of  Peter- 
borough was  about  to  move  for  a  Commission  to  consider  it.  The 
difficulty,  however,  of  finding  a  remedy,  suggested  to  me  the  importance 
that  the  Bishop,  in  moving  for  it,  should  be  very  careful  in  his  state- 
ments rather  to  understate  the  case ;  lest,  if  ultimately  a  remedy 
should  prove  to  be  not  attainable,  the  sting  of  his  powerful  attacks 
should  be  left  behind  for  the  use  of  the  enemy. 

It  is  not  as  if  he  was  going  to  propose  a  distinct  remedy  to  Parlia- 
ment in  the  efficiency  of  which  he  had  confidence,  and  for  the  success 
of  which  it  was  necessary  to  make  out  the  strongest  case.  It  is  only 
for  inquiry,  and  for  that  (so  patent  is  the  scandal),  veiy  little  state- 
ment will  be  required.  You  know  the  power  of  his  sarcastic  statement 
is  very  great,  and  his  expressions  might  stick  and  survive  the  occasion. 

Now  I  would  willingly  say  this  to  himself ;  but  my  acquaintance 
with  him  is  but  slight. 

Perhaps  you  might  have  an  opportunity,  if  you  agree  with  me,  of 
making  some  suggestion  in  this  direction. 

Your  hands  are  ahvays  very  full,  and  I  would  not  wish  to  trouble  you 
for  an  answer. — Beheve  me,  my  dear  lord,  yours  very  faithfullv, 

Harrowby. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Athen^um  Clob, 

"May  14,  1874. 

"  I  have  such  a  long  story  of  our  town  campaigns  to  tell  you  that 
I  hardly  know  where  to  begin  or  end.    Let  us  take  the  three 


6 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


divisions  of  time — past,  present,  and  future — as  regards  the  liistory 
of  the  P.W.R.  Bill. 

"  When  I  came  to  town  lately,  I  found  the  Archbishop,  with  only 
Gloucester  and  Bristol  and  Rochester,  '  quite  promiscuously '  at 
work  in  the  '  Bounty '  rooms,  discussing  the  Convocation  amend- 
ments in  the  Bill.  His  Grace  took  me  into  counsel  very  graciously, 
and  I  succeeded  in  getting  some  things  into  and  some  out  of  the 
Bill,  which  I  think  materially  improved  it.  The  Archbishop  was 
the  more  willing  to  take  my  amendments,  as  I  found  he  relied  on 
me  to  fight  for  him  and  it  on  the  second  reading.  This  I  was  most 
unwilling  to  do,  and  told  him  so,  and  had  obtained,  at  last  a 
promise  that  he  would  not  call  on  me  unless  absolutely  necessary  to 
do  so.  He  meant  me,  and  I  only  meant,  to  reply  to  Lords  Limerick 
and  Bath,  and  that  school.  However,  all  our  calculations,  like 
most  of  those  made  before  a  debate,  were  dissipated  by  events.  The 
Archbishop  of  York  made  a  poor  and  injudicious  speech,  badly 
received  by  the  House,  where  he  is  not  popular.  Immediately 
after  him  rose  Lord  Shaftesbury,  evidently  in  for  a  deliberately 
prepared  and  smashing  criticism  on  the  whole  Bill  and  the  Bench 
to  boot.  The  Archbishop  ui'ged  me  to  reply  as  he  went  on.  But 
I  was  very  averse  to  a  second  quarrel  with  Lord  Shaftesbury,  who 
had  lately  been  reconciled  to  me,  and  had  that  very  day  written  me 
a  very  civil  letter  on  other  matters. 

I  held  to  this,  even  after  he  had  personally  attacked  me  in  his 
opening  remarks.  How  ever,  as  he  went  ahead,  tearing  the  Bill  up, 
and  with  it  liis  own  of  two  years  ago,  the  Archbishop  got  so  excited, 
and  insisting,  that  I  had  to  yield  ;  besides,  the  old  Adam  stirred  in 
me  as  I  saw  Shaftesburv,  after  attacking  me  in  front,  exposing  his 
own  flank  so  deliciously.  Accordingly  I  took  my  scat  between  the 
two  Archbishops,  they  crannning  me  with  facts  and  points  in  either 
ear,  and  I  trying  to  listen  to  Shaftesbury  with  my  eyelids.  He 
made  a  really  able  and  telling  speech,  rising  at  the  close  into  a 
strain  of  grim  and  melancholy  earnestness  that  \\'as  almost  eloquence. 
He  evidently  made  a  deep  impression  on  the  House.  I  felt  I  was 
in  for  a  big  speech,  and  not  pi"epared  for  it.  However,  I  think  I 
may  say  that  I  succeeded— at  least,  if  I  may  judge  not  only  from 
cheering  at  the  time  but  from  special  thanks  after  from  the  two 
Archbishops  and  such  opposite  men  as  Lords  Grey,  Granville,  and 
Cairns.  Lords  Nelson  and  Bath  followed,  the  former  good-natured 
and  weak,  the  latter  ill-natured  and  strong.  Lord  Harrowby 
surprised  us  all  by  coming  out  in  defence  of  Bill  and  bishop,  there- 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


7 


bv  indicating  a  split  in  the  evangelical  ranks,  which  has  since 
widened  and  deepened  into  a  rupture.  Lord  Hathcrley  spoke  from 
the  old-fashioned  High  Church  ground,  well  and  tellingly,  for  the 
Bill.  Lord  Sclborne  as  Vir  pictate  gravis  and  dcus  ex  macMnd 
made  a  really  thoughtful  and  judicious  speech  in  favour  of  the 
principle,  but  suggesting  such  admirable  amendments  in  the  Bill  as 
made  me  regret  more  than  ever  that  the  Ai'chbishop  had  not,  as 
some  of  us  suggested,  taken  him  into  counsel  from  the  first. 

"  Salisbury  was  guarded,  cold,  able,  and  in  some  respects  unfair. 
He  evidently,  under  Beresford  Hope's  inspiration,  hates  the  Bill. 
But  his  very  reluctance  showed  that  there  is  a  case  for  the  Bill  he 
cannot  gainsay,  otherwise  he  would  never  have  assented  to  its 
second  reading. 

"  The  Archbishop  replied  in  the  best  speech  I  have  yet  heard 
from  him.  Except  the  one  slip  you  noted,  of  too  hostile  a  tone  to 
Lord  Salisbury,  the  speech  was  perfect.  Dignified  and  weighty  in 
manner,  telling  in  argument,  and  rising  at  times  into  grave  and 
lofty  eloquence,  it  was  a  model  of  an  archiepiscopal  speech,  and 
was  received  accordingly. 

"  The  Duke  of  Richmond  wound  up  with  words  that  better 
indicated  the  aspect  of  the  Cabinet  than  did  Lord  Salisbury.  The 
Bill  ]-)assed  nemhie  contradicente,  and  will  now,  /  think,  })ass  the 
Lords  this  Session  ;  and  not  improbably  the  Commons.  Altogether, 
since  the  Irish  Church  debate,  I  have  not  seen  so  stin-in<>-  or  so 
strange  a  night  in  the  Lords. 

"  Every  one  seemed  to  have  changed  posts.  Shaftesbury  posed 
as  the  defender  of  the  liberties  of  the  clergy,  and  read  much  of  his 
speech  from  a  brief  drawn  by  Stephens  on  behalf  of  the  English 
Church  Union.  I  appeared  against  him  as  the  advocate  of  restric- 
tion of  liberty,  while  Lords  Bath  and  Limerick  were  loudly  cheering 
Shaftesbury ;  and  Harrowby  and  Granville  and  Halifax  and  the 
Whigs  generally  cheering  me. 

"  All  things  considered,  I  think  that  the  storm  has  cleared  the 
air ;  and  Bill  and  Bench  came  better  out  of  it  than  we  expected. 
One  thing  is  now  clear,  '  something  will  be  done  ; '  and  that  is  a 
great  deal  to  have  gained. 

"  Another  thing  not  stated  in  the  papers  pleased  me  much.  The 
Duke  of  Richmond  thanked  me  in  his  speech  for  my  suggestion  as 
to  self-regulation  for  the  Church,  and  '  hoped  I  could  give  my  mind 
to  a  practical  working-out  of  such  reform."  This  is  very  hopeful. 
Good  will,  I  now  think,  come  out  of  all  this  present  trouble.  But 


8 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XII 


it  is  and  will  be  a  troublous  crisis  ;  and  the  Archbishop  is  too  much 
led  by  inferior  men  at  this  moment  to  make  me  comfortable  as  to 
his  pilotage. 

"  However,  all  things  considered,  I  am  hopeful  now,  I  was  in 
despair  ten  days  ago. 

"  I  had  anticipated  your  suggestion  as  to  discussing  the  Bill  at 
om*  conference  ;  you  will  see  a  letter  to  that  effect  in  next  Leicester 
JoiLrnal. 

"  We  shall  have  it  out  on  the  first  day  of  conference.  At  any- 
rate  this  will  ensure  a  full  conference,  and  a  very  real  and  stirring 
debate.  "  W.  C.  P." 

On  June  2  the  Bishop  held  his  Diocesan  Conference  at  Peter- 
borough, and  the  chief  subject  of  discussion  was  the  Public  Worship 
Regulation  Bill  as  it  passed  its  second  reading  in  the  Lords. 

The  Bishop  made  an  elaborate  statement  of  the  whole  question  ; 
and  in  the  end  resolutions  in  favour  of  the  Bill  were  carried. 

Unfortunately,  when  the  Bill  got  into  Committee  in  the  House 
of  Lords  it  underwent  very  serious  changes ;  which,  in  the  eyes  Oj. 
many,  altered  fundamentally  the  character  of  the  measure  and  gave 
colour  to  the  accusation,  that  the  old  ecclesiastical  jurisdiction  had 
been  changed  by  Act  of  Parliament. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Athenmu.m  Club,  June  9,  1874. 

*'  We  ha<l  a  weary  and  dangerous  voyage  last  night  through  the 
rocks  and  shoals  of  the  Committee  on  the  Bill.  We  have  come  out, 
on  the  whole,  safe  and  well,  and  the  rest  is  pretty  plain  sailing, 
except  the  rock  ahead  of  the  Athanasian  Creed.  The  ritualistic 
peers  fought  us  inch  by  inch  most  factiously  and  obstinately.  Lord 
Bath  was  particularly  spiteful  and  obstinate.  But  spite  of  him  and 
others  we  got  through  everything  of  real  importance  in  the  Bill. 

"  Shaftesbm-y  gave  way  as  to  the  bishojis''  discretion,  but  at  the 
last  moment  Salisbury  took  one  of  his  strange  freaks  and  proposed 
the  omission  of  the  clause  giving  the  bishops  the  power  of  arbitrat- 
ing with  assent  of  both  parties.  For  a  moment  I  thought  all  was 
over  with  us,  especially  as  the  Ai-chbishop  of  York,  provoked  by 
A\hat  really  was  something  like  treachery  on  the  part  of  the 
Government,  who  had  promised  to  adopt  this  clause,  and  got  our 
assent  to  Shaftesbury "'s  judge  on  the  faith  of  it,  made  an  angry  and 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


9 


injudicious  attack  on  the  Government,  and  brought  Richmond, 
Cairns,  and  Shaftesbury,  all  three  on  him  at  once. 

"  By  dint  of  reiterated  and  rather  humiliating  pleading  on  our 
part  we  carried  the  division,  to  niy  amazement,  against  Salisbury, 
bv  a  majority  of  more  than  two  to  one;  ninety  to  forty.  This 
division  did  us  good  in  many  ways.  We  carried  Granville  and  his 
party  with  us,  and  showed  Salisbury  he  was  not  master  of  the 
situation.  All  went  rapidly  after  that  until  we  got  to  Clause  17, 
and  then  resumed  progress.  .Lord  Oranmore  nearly  wrecked  us  by 
beginning  what  he  told  the  Archbishop  would  be  an  hours  speech 
on  the  Confessional.  I  got  savage  and  hit  him  viciously,  and  the 
t"  o  leaders  got  him  down  with  difficulty,  and  the  House  then  sat 
on  him. 

"  My  amendment  comes  on  to-night.  It  is  hard  to  say  what  will 
come  of  it,  nor  do  I  much  care  now  we  have  secui'ed  the  episcopal 
discretion.  My  only  dread  is  the  delay  that  it  may  cause  in  getting 
the  Bill  through.  Truly  a  Bill  in  Committee  is  a  battle,  and  no 
one  can  say  where  he  will  find  himself  at  the  end  of  it.  The  great 
difficulty  is  to  avoid  fighting  for  your  own  hand  and  at  the  nearest 
man  to  you,  and  not  remembering  the  plan  of  the  battle,  '  losing 
touch,''  as  militaiT  men  express  it,  '  with  the  main  column.'' 

However,  all  is  well  that  ends  well,  and  I  think  that  now  the 
Bill  may  end  well ;  but  we  are  not  vet  out  of  tlie  wood.'''' 

"  Stock  Park,  Ulvekston, 

"  August  4,  1874. 

"  I  have  been  so  laboriously  idle  since  we  came  here,  as  to  have 
had  no  leisure  for  other  than  business  letters.  A  wet  day,  not  the 
last  by  a  gi-eat  many  I  fear,  gives  me  time  to  write  you  something 
more  than  a  hurried  line.  Your  last  from  St.  Briac  reached  me 
three  days  since,  and  makes  me  almost  regret  our  non-adherence  to 
our  original  idea  of  a  French  holiday  this  year.  Please  keep  a  sharp 
look-out  for  a  house  that  miglit  suit  us  for  next  year.  Please  also 
note  what  manner  of  sea-fishing  is  attainable.  I  do  not  think  that 
I  shall  get  to  you  this  year.  We  pa\-  a  tvenu^ndnus  price  for  this 
place,  and  must  economise  accordingly. 

"  We  are  very  pleasantly  placed  at  the  lower  end  of  Windermere, 
with  large  but  uncultivated  grounds  to  the  lake-side,  and  boating 
ad  libitum,  scenery  fair,  house  too  small,  walks  plenty,  and  fishing 
moderate. 

"  I  have  not  escaped  the  atra  cura  of  letters  here.    Three  reached 


10 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


me  this  morning  from  bishops  and  peers,  calling  me  to  town  for 
the  division  in  the  Lords'  to-night  on  the  Commons'  amendment 
on  the  P.W.  Bill,  which  gives  aggrieved  parishioners  an  appeal 
to  the  Archbishop.  The  bishops  are  in  a  great  fluster  about  it,  and 
I  fear  the  Lords  will  reject  it,  with  the  very  probable  result  of  the 
loss  of  the  Bill  in  consequence.  This  will  be  a  very  serious  matter, 
serious  for  the  Church  which  will  be  given  over  to  lawless  and 
violent  agitation  for  six  months ;  serious  for  Parliament  and 
Government,  which  must  face  this  question  again  in  February',  with 
the  Commons  in  a  very  angry  and  ultra- Protestant  mood ;  and 
serious  for  the  Episcopate,  who  will  be  credited  with  having  wi'ecked 
the  Bill  they  themselves  introduced  solely  because  it  trenched  on 
the  privileges  of  their  order.  I  fear  the  worst,  but  faintly  hope 
the  best — viz.,  the  Commons  acquiescing  in  the  Lords'  rejection  of 
this  amendment.  I  am  thankful  I  cannot  be  in  town  to-night,  for 
I  should  have  voted  against  nearly  all  my  brethren.  Certainly  the 
temper  of  the  House  of  Commons  is  the  one  fact  in  the  history  of 
this  Bill  for  which  I  was  not  prepared.  The  Archbishop  has  turned 
the  Ganges  into  our  garden,  and  I  fear  it  will  sweep  away  other 
things  than  the  ritualistic  weeds. 

"  Gladstone  is  deeply  mortified  by  his  ignominious  defeat,*  and 
I  hear,  on  good  authority,  fast  ripening  for  Disestablishment. 
Evidently  we  are  entering  on  a  great  crisis,  and  alas !  we  do  not 
trust  our  pilots,  either  of  Cantuar  or  York.  I  never  felt  more  un- 
comfortable or  desponding  as  to  the  future  than  I  do  now. 

"  Diocesan  affairs  are  just  now  very  quiet.  I  got  All  Saints' 
raised  to  df 300  a  year,  and  have  transferred  old  Ray  to  it,  and  have 
offered  St.  Leonard's,  ,£188  a  year  and  no  chm-ch  or  parsonage,  to 
French  of  Kettering,  a  hard-working,  moderate  man,  with  some 
small  private  means  and  a  great  desire  for  mission  work.  I  think  he 
will  take  it.    This  is  really  all  the  diocesan  news  I  know  of." 

"  Stock  Park,  Ulverston, 

"  September  2,  1874. 

"  I  am  glad  to  hear  of  your  safe  return  to  your  penates.  We 
leave  this  the  week  after  next,  rather  tired,  I  confess,  of  the  Lakes — 
at  least  of  the  Lakes  in  a  wet  season.  It  is  raining  now  as  it  only 
does  rain  in  these  parts,  and  is  cold  enough  for  November ;  the 
fishing  is  bad,  and  the  walking  ditto,  and  boating,  of  course,  out  of 

*  Mr.  Gladstone  opposed  the  second  reading  of  the  Bill,  and  was  obliged  to 
•withdraw  a  series  of  resolutions  upon  the  subject  of  which  he  had  given  notice. 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PA  TRONA  GE 


11 


the  question.  Nevertheless  the  rest  in  that  most  unfre([uented  of 
regions  for  ine,  the  bosom  of  my  family,  has  done  me  great  good, 
and  I  feel  quite  ready  for  work  again. 

"  I  quite  agree  with  you  as  to  TyndalPs  late  escapade ;  it  was 
as  thoroughly  unscientific  as  it  was  anti-religious.  It  is  really 
time  for  men  of  science  to  be  wai'ned  oft'  the  grounds  of  philo- 
sophy and  psychology  as  peremptorily  as  they  warn  religion  off 
the  territory  of  science.  A  purely  materialistic  student  of  the 
facts  of  science  is  simply  impudent  when  he  applies  his  scientific 
methods  to  things  spiritual.  It  is  as  absurd  as  the  old  application  of 
theological  methods  to  science.  Let  him  say  what  he  Tcnows  about 
his  '  atoms,"  but  when  he  attempts,  as  Tyndall  says  he  attempts, 
'  to  leap  beyond  the  bounds  of  experiment '  and  guess  at  the  cause 
of  his  '  atoms  '  he  is  just  in  the  position  in  which  Mr.  T.  places  us — 
'  that  of  a  man  atteni{)ting  to  lift  himself  by  his  waistband.'  But 
after  all  what  a  testimony  to  the  need  of  a  revelation  is  all  this  ! 
What  is  it  all  but  what  Job  said  long  ago,  '  Who  can  by  searching 
find  out  God' The  last  word  of  science  must  be  atheism,  if  science 
denies  all  that  is  not  scientifically  demonstrable;  and  just  for  that 
reason  when  science  has  said  her  last  word,  religion  says  her  first, 
'  In  the  beginning  was  the  Word  and  the  Word  was  God.'  I  look 
on  Stuart  Mill's  "  Life  "  and  Tyndall's  manifesto  as  two  valuable 
contributions  to  the  evidence  of  Christianity ;  the  one  showing 
man's  moral  need,  the  other  his  intellectual  need  of  a  revelation  ab 
extra. 

"  Only  imagine  a  world  of  Stuart  Mills  with  no  other  revelation 
than  '  Tyndall  on  Atoms ' !  I  wish  that  I  had  time  to  try  my 
hand  at  an  article  on  '  Society  reconstituted  on  the  Atomic  Theoiy.' 
M.eve  force  the  only  law,  and  mankind  reduced  to  a  herd  of  brutes, 
following  the  law  of  the  evolution  of  the  strongest,  i.e.,  the  survival 
of  the  biggest,  noisiest  and  uncleanest  brutes  in  the  drove  !  But  I 
have  other  work  to  do  just  now. 

"This  P.W.  Bill  will  try  all  our  wisdom  and  courage  in  its 
working.  I  fear  the  result  will  be  ejjiscopal  dissidcnce  and  prac- 
tical indiscretions,  or  accusations  of  it,  here  and  there,  until  at 
last  the  Pui'itanism  and  Erastianism  of  the  House  of  Commons 
grows  impatient,  takes  the  reins  in  its  own  hands,  and  upsets  the 
coach!  The  determined  Erastianism  of  the  Archbishop,  the  exas- 
peration of  the  High  Church  clergy,  the  dishonesty  of  the  llitualists, 
the  fanatical  bitterness  of  the  Evangelicals  and  the  sublime  un- 
principle  of  Dizzy,  all  point  this  way ;  the  bishops,  too,  ai-e  sore  at 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


the  way  the  Archbishop  has  over-ridden  thein  in  the  conduct  of 
the  Bill,  and  sore  at  the  false  accusations  of  the  clergy,  and  will 
form  a  very  rebellious  team  for  his  Grace  to  drive  in  January  next. 
Altogether,  spite  of  the  healing  influence  of  vacation,  I  do  not 
like  the  out-look.  But  God  rules  and  over-rules.  May  He  guide  us 
rightly !  But  we  sorely  need  a  strong  and  yet  a  gentle  hand  at 
the  helm  of  the  Church,  and  the  Archbishop  has  neither  of  these 
now. 

"  More  when  we  meet." 

"  Peterborough,  October  6,  1874. 

"  I  have  despatched  something  like  2000  copies  of  my  letter  to 
the  rm-al  deans.  This  '  mutual  conference '  between  bishops  and 
clergy  is  rather  an  expensive  system  for  the  bishops. 

"  My  brother  of  Chichester  is  just  about  this  time  ascending 
his  uneasy  throne  at  the  Brighton  Congress.  With  all  the  explosive 
eleuients  gathered  around  him  I  can  only  compare  him  to  the  man 
who  travelled  from  London  to  the  Derby  on  a  hot  summer  day, 
seated  on  a  truck  filled  with  gino-er-beer  bottles !  What  a  frothing 
and  popping  of  ecclesiastical  wrath,  bottled  for  the  last  five  months, 
will  be  going  on  under  his  seat !  He  will  not  be  wanting  in 
dignity.    I  rather  doubt  his  firmness,  but  we  shall  see. 

"  I  suspect  that  the  mot  cTordre  of  the  Ritualist  party  at  Brighton 
will  be  '  push  on  everything  for  the  next  six  months '  as  the  best 
means  of  securing  something  in  July  next — a  very  dangerous  game 
for  them  to  play  in  the  present  temper  of  the  English  nation,  but 
a  very  likely  one.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  following  extract  is  from  a  speech  delivered  by  the  Bishop 
at  a  distribution  of  prizes  at  Leicester  on  October  30,  1874. 

I  am  afraid  I  shall  be  thouglit  rather  a  heretic,  and  gettmg  over  the 
edge  of  the  neutral  ground,  when  I  say  that  I  am  not  a  very  enthu- 
siastic admirer  of  the  extent  to  which  comjietitive  examination  has 
gone  amongst  us.  I  am  rather  afraid  that  we  are  riding  the  competi- 
tive hobby  too  far  and  too  fast,  and  that  some  of  these  days  it  will  slip 
down  and  give  us  a  very  ugly  fall.  I  am  veiy  desirous  that  all  prizes 
ill  life  should  be  within  the  reach  of  the  very  lowest  members  of  the 
community,  but  I  am  greatly  afraid  this  system  is  putting  them  out  of 
their  reach ;  because  competitive  examination  means  cram  for  that 
examination,  and  cramming  means  money  to  pay  the  crammer.  I  am 
satisfied  that  as  competition  goes  on,  and  the  prizes  grow  larger,  and 
competition  grows  keener  and  the  questions  put  grow  year  by  year 


i874-7(' 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


13 


harder  and  harder^  and  cramming  gets  harder,  the  pay  of  the  cranimer 
will  grow  larger ;  and  the  result  will  be  that  the  prizes  of  life  that 
formerly  were,  as  Ave  were  told,  for  the  younger  sons  of  the  great  among 
us,  will  be  prizes  for  the  younger  sons  of  the  rich.  The  competition 
between  examiners  and  crammers  is  like  that  between  the  men  who 
make  armour-plates  and  the  men  who  make  guns  ;  but  the  worst  is 
that  they  are  not  throwing  about  insensate  metal,  but  the  brains  and 
hearts  of  boys  and  young  men.  We  have  this  competition  in  our 
schools,  and  perhaps  the  time  is  not  far  off  when  a  little  child  will  be 
obliged  to  pass  an  examination  in  the  alphabet  before  getting  leave  to 
go  into  words  of  one  syllable. 

Now  I  want  to  know  in  this  system  of  cram  what  is  to  become  of 
the  dull  boys  ?  What  is  to  become  of  a  boy  not  sharp  enough  to  beat 
other  boys  .''  I  am  not  at  all  comfortable  about  the  practical  result  of 
all  this,  and  I  begin  to  Avish  that  some  of  our  statesmen  would  think  of 
establishing  a  colony  for  dull  people,  where  men  should  go  who  never 
passed  a  competitive  examination.  Supposing  we  took  the  Fiji  Islands, 
and  of  course  got  rid  of  the  cannibals,  and  sent  over  there  every  man 
who  could  honestly  declare  that  he  never  Avent  in  for  a  competitive 
examination  ;  you  Avould  have  such  a  quiet,  peaceable,  happy  colony, 
where  solid,  steady  men  quietly  did  their  business  every  day,  and  did 
not  trouble  themselves  about  other  people's  business,  that  it  would  be 
altogether  such  a  paradisiacal  place  that  your  fussy  clever  felloAvs 
would  be  shamming  stupid  to  get  into  it.  I  am  not  sorry,  there- 
fore, that  your  examination  here  has  been  in  a  great  measure  positive 
rather  than  relative,  rather  tells  a  man  or  boy  Avhat  he  is  than  how 
he  has  gone  and  beaten  others. 

To  J.  C.  IMacDoxnell. 

"AxHENiEUM  Club,  November  19,  1874. 
"  I  have  gone  through  a  good  deal  of  Church  life  and  experience 
since  avc  parted.  I  have  started  a  Church  Extension  Society  in 
Northampton  to  raise  ^25,000  in  five  years,  and  to  create  there- 
with four  new  parishes.  It  is,  I  think,  fairly  launched  now,  but 
'  Lord  ! '  as  Pepys  says  '  to  see  the  strange  state  of  men's  minds 
in  these  days ! '  I  had  first  to  spend  three  days  interviewing 
sundry  local  magnates  separately,  and  ti'ving  to  get  them  all  to 
come  even  to  a  preliminary  meeting  on  the  subject.  I  got  them 
and  about  eighty  others  into  a  room  last  Thursday,  from  Avhich  I 
Avisely  excluded  reporters,  and  then  Ave  had  a  royal  exhibition  of 
the  narrowness  and  suspiciousness  and  bitterness  of  Evangelicalism 
on  the  vexed  question  of  the  patronage  of  the  new  churches ;  it 


14- 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XII 


was  really  pitiful  to  see  and  vexatious  to  endure.  However,  by 
waiving  all  personal  claims,  and  by  half  chaffing,  half  scolding,  I 
got  them  all  in  a  decent  frame  of  mind,  and  we  parted  good 
friends  and  with  the  Society  formed.  Since  then  I  have  been  at  an 
Episcopal  Caucus  at  Danbury  (Bishop  of  Rochester's).  I  must  not 
tell  even  you  what  passed  there,  as  it  is  stridlij  suh  sigillo.  I  will 
only  say  that  the  Episcopate  in  that  section  of  it  very  faithfully 
rej^resents  the  Leicester  Ruridecanal  Conference.* 

"  I  now  fully  believe  that  nothing  ■will  be  done  in  the  way  of 
revision  in  Convocation.  I  trust  that  this  may  prove  the  safest 
course,  if  safe  be  the  proper  word  for  a  choice  between  serious 
perils.  But  it  is,  at  any  rate,  the  only  possible  course.  This 
strange  alliance  of  Evangelicals  and  Ritualists  against  Revision, 
combined  with  the  strong  unreasoning  Conservativism  of  many  of 
the  high  and  dry  Church  party,  make  so  large  a  majority  against 
revision  as  to  lessen  the  effect  of  any  revision  that  would  touch 
any  rubric  involving  the  balance  of  parties,  and  no  other  rubrics 
are  worth  the  risk  and  trouble  of  revising.  Nothing  will,  there- 
fore, be  done,  as  I  expect ;  for  I  trust  the  sensible  men  are  strong 
enough  to  prevent  anything  else  than  revision  being  done,  e.g., 
'  Explanation  of  Rubrics,"'  or  Canons,  and  such-like  forcible-feeble 
devices  which  will  only  make  us  ridiculous.  Then  a  fall  back  on 
the  Prayer-book  and  the  Law  Courts,  and  the  bishop's  discretion ! 
I  fear  the  latter  will  soon  break  down  under  the  strain  that  will  be 
put  on  it.  Then  comes  general  liberty  of  prosecution,  general 
strife,  chaos.  Disestablishment  and  Schism. 

"  I  had  a  long  interview  to-day  with  Stephens  on  Lord  Shaftes- 
bury's coming  Bill  on  Diocesan  Fees.  Stephens  tells  me  that 
Lord  Shaftesbury  is  greatly  pleased  with  my  late  letter  to  him,  and 
thinks  me  about  the  only  honest  bishop  going.  I  should  be  better 
pleased  at  this  if  I  were  sure  of  the  honesty  of  the  narrator.  At 
anv  rate,  he  professed  to  adopt  several  of  my  suggestions  and 
volunteered  a  promise  to  show  me  the  Bill  when  drafted.  I  have 
set  my  own  Bill  (on  Patronage)  in  the  hands  of  the  draftsman  and 
shall  see  the  rough  draft  to-morrow,  so  you  see  that  no  grass  has 
been  growing  under  my  feet  of  late. 

"  I  must  not  write  more  just  now,  under  the  glare  of  the  gas- 
light. Tell  me  when  you  write  how  things  are  going  on  in  the 
Irish  Church." 

*  They  (nearly  all — Evangelicals,  High  Churchmen,  and  Broad  Churchmen) 
deprecated  the  substitution  of  any  new  rubric  for  the  old  Ornaments  Rubric. 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


15 


"  Peterborougm,  December  4,  1874. 

"  I  enclose  you  our  progi'amme  for  the  two  last  days  in  the 
Ember  week.  I  have  found  it  very  difficult  to  arrange  satisfactorily. 

"  The  difference  between  high-flown  theories  on  preparation  for 
orders,  and  possible  realities,  is  much  wider  than  spouters  at  Church 
Congresses  can  be  got  to  understand.  The  part  of  our  system 
that,  so  fai",  works  best  is  my  own  invention — the  examination  of 
the  candidate  priests  by  means  of  papers.* 

"  I  go  to  town  on  IMonday  to  discuss  my  Patronage  Bill  with  the 
draftsman  and  with  W.  Ebor;  then  will  come  Cantuar,  Sel- 
borne,  and  Cairns ;  then  the  Bishops,  at  Lambeth ;  then  the 
House  of  Lords  ;  then  the  Commons.  By  the  time  it  gets  through 
all  these  sieves,  if  it  ever  does,  it  may  come  out  like  '  the  little  end 
of  nothing  whittled  down  to  a  point.'  Certainly  there  is  a  gi-eat 
deal  of  friction  and  waste  power  in  the  machinery  of  free  Govern- 
ments. I  am  all  for  the  occasional  dictatorship  both  in  Church 
and  State.  It  is  the  only  way  out  of  constitutional  deadlocks ; 
but,  unluckily,  if  we  had  it,  neither  you  nor  I  would  be  made 
Dictators.    More  is  the  pity  ! 

"  I  hear  the  Daily  Telegraph  has  been  giving  me  a  sensation 
leader  for  something  I  did  not  say  last  Sunday  about  science. 
Strange  that  a  few  obiter  dicta  in  an  extempore  serm.on  should  get 
into  the  London  papers  and  be  discussed  in  leaders,  while  what  I 
really  took  pains  with  in  Leicester  should  fall  dead  and  still-born. 
However,  I  do  not  mean  to  trouble  myself  with  playing  '  Brummv ' 
to  the  'dog  Physic'  of  the  Telegraph.  I  am  too  busy  just  now, 
even  had  I  the  mind  to  do  so,  which  I  have  not." 

"  ATHEN.EDM  Clob,  December  9,  1874. 

"I  have  just  met  here  Chas.  Limerick,  and  had  a  talk  with  him 
about  the  three  Csjf  diocese  of  Limerick,  and  Bence  Jones.  I 
foimd  him  stirred  up  by  a  letter  of  Bence  Jones's  in  last  Guardian 
alluding  to  himself,  and  ready  to  contradict.  I  seized  the  oppor- 
tunity to  urge  him,  at  the  same  time  he  contradicted  it,  to  explain 
to  the  English  mind  hriefly  and  clearly : 

"  (1)  AVhat  the  three  C's  really  are. 

"  (2)  What  they  really  do. 

*  These  papers  were  sent  out  twice  in  the  year  to  the  rural  deans,  in  whose 
presence  the  candidate  priests  wrote  their  answers,  which  were  then  sealed  up 
and  returned  to  the  examiners.  Every  deacon  had  to  pass  two  half-yearly 
examinations  of  this  kind  before  being  presented  for  priests'  orders. 

t  Commuting,  Compounding,  and  Cutting. 


16 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xn 


"  (3)  How  far  tliey  have  been  really  availed  of. 

"  I  left  him  quite  determined  to  do  this.  It  is  high  time  that 
somebody  should  do  it. 

"  I  met  the  Archbishop  of  York  on  Monday  night,  and  the 
editor  of  the  Spectator  last  night,  and  neither  of  them  knew  what 
compounding'  was !  The  latter  was  very  fair  and  kind  as  regards 
the  Irish  Church,  but  much  impressed  with  the  real  mischief  to  the 
Eng-Ush  Church  that  was  being  done  by  these  misstatements.  I 
can  easily  get  him  to  print  or  notice  Chas.  Limerick's  letter.  So 
you  see  some  good  comes  of  bishops  '  enjoying  themselves  in  the 
great  world  of  London  and  neglecting  their  dioceses.' 

"  I  have  gone  over  the  draft  of  my  Bill  with  Brunei  the  drafts- 
man and  the  Archbishop  of  York,  and  got  the  latter  to  assent  to 
nearly  all  my  ideas.  This  is  important,  as  he  is  the  legal  adviser 
of  the  Bench,  and  his  opposition  would  have  been  formidable. 

"  I  have  got  to  see  Selborne,  Cairns,  and  the  Duke  of  Richmond, 
besides  running  the  gauntlet  of  the  bishops'  meeting  at  Lambeth, 
and  when  all  this  is  done  I  have  only  got  to  the  second  reading. 

"  Every  foolish  peer  and  member  of  Parliament  will  have  a  chance 
of  gi-afting  his  little  bit  of  folly  into  the  Bill,  and  what  we  shall 
get  in  the  end,  if  we  get  anything,  heaven  only  knows. 

"  Everything  I  hear  in  these  parts  indicates  a  do-nothing  policy 
as  regards  rubrics  in  the  coming  session.  Parliament  will  be  in  the 
cold  fit  of  its  Protestant  ague  when  it  meets,  afraid  of  meddling 
any  further  with  Church  matters ;  and  if  Convocation  does  nothing, 
it  will  do  nothing — so,  at  least,  say  sundry  leaders  of  the  Lower  and 
Upper  House  whom  I  have  talked  with.  This  is  all  well  until 
July  next ;  then  the  future  of  the  Church  will  depend  on  two  not 
very  strong  anchors — the  discretion  of  bishops,  and  the  forbeai-ance 
of  Parliament  if  bishops  prove  indiscreet.  However,  sufficient  for 
the  day  is  the  evil  thereof. 

"  I  am  going  home  to-night  by  the  five-o'clock  train,  and  it  is 
now  past  three  o'clock,  so  no  more  from  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  two  lectures  upon  the  "Art  of  Preaching"  and  "  Extempore 
Speaking,"  to  which  the  Bishop  alludes  in  the  following  letter,  were 
delivered  in  the  Trophy  Room  at  St.  Paul's  Cathedral,  in  February 
1875.  Some  of  the  pointed  sayings  and  invaluable  rules  to  be 
found  in  them  were  the  result  of  his  study  and  experience,  chiefly 
in  early  life.  Take  for  example  his  favourite  classification  of 
preachers  and  sermons. 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


17 


All  preachers  may  be  divided  into  three  classes : 
First,  the  preacher  you  can't  listen  to, 
Second,  the  pi'eacher  you  can  listen  to, 
Third,  the  preacher  you  can't  help  listening  to. 

Sermons  he  divided  into  two  classes,  the  vetiebrate  and  the  inverte- 
brate. 

He  used  to  sav  that  the  first  requisite  for  a  preacher  w  as  arrangv- 
vient,  the  second  arrangement,  and  the  third  arrangement,  thus 
altering  Demosthenes'"  dictum  that,  of*  the  three  requisites  for  an 
orator,  the  first  was  action,  the  second  action,  and  the  thii'd  action. 

He  used  to  say  that  the  power  of  speaking  effectively  depended 
upon  the  power  of  malcing  points.*  He  believed  this  to  be  so 
much  a  natural  gift,  that  it  was  almost  impossible  to  teach  it. 
This  may  have  been  in  a  measure  the  reason  why  he  has  nowhere 
written  about  it. 

The  essay  style  of  sermon  which  prevailed  generally  at  the  begin- 
ning of  this  century  is  a  complete  illustration  of  what  the  Bishop 
wanted  a  speaker  to  avoid.  He  would  himself  have  mercilessly 
discarded  any  point,  however  brilliant,  that  was  not  relevant  to  the 
prevailing  '  idea  of  the  speech  or  sermon. 

He  thus  concludes  his  lecture  on  "  Extempore  Speaking  " : 

So  far  indeed  you  may  feel  yourself  to  be  unfitted  ;  but  you  can  make 
up  for  these  deficiencies  by  the  earnestness  of  your  life,  the  devotion  of 
your  service,  the  loving-kmdness  of  your  heart.  You  may  never  be  able 
to  preach  a  great  senmon,  but  you  are  always  able  to  live  a  great  sei- 
mon.  There  are  many  men  who  have  a  marvellous  power  over  their 
people  who  are  not  great  preachers.  The  power  of  a  holy  life  is  some- 
thing that  goes  far  to  compensate  for  many  deficiencies,  and  without 
this,  the  greatest  success  in  the  pulpit  is  only  a  miserable  failure  at  the 
best. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnei.l. 

"  Peterborough,  January  4,  1875 
"  .  .  .  .  You  have  probably  seen  that  Convocation  has  been 
postponed  until  after  Easter.  On  the  whole,  I  think,  wisely,  as 
time  to  cool  is  what  is  just  now  greatly  needed  by  the  Chm'ch  ;  and 
the  less  time  left  for  possible  collision  between  Convocation  and 
Parliament  the  better. 

"  I  am  noia  convinced  that  the  working  of  the  P.AV.R.  Act 


VOL.  n. 


See  letter  of  August  26,  1847. 


B 


J8 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


for  a  year  or  two  will,  on  the  whole,  be  not  a  bad  guide  for  its 
future  revision,  and  rather  sedative  in  its  effects  than  otherwise. 
I  fully  ex{)ect  that  some  of  the  first  cases  under  it — in  private, 
at  any  rate — will  not  be  ritualistic  ones,  but  cases  of  bumptious 
and  litigious  rectors  who  have  been  nagging  their  churchwardens 
and  bisho})s  for  years  past. 

"I  have  a  case  in  hand  just  now  of  which  the  P.W.R.  would 
make  short  work — and  very  deservedly  too. 

"  I  have  a  lecture  on  preaching  to  prepare  for  the  London  Homi- 
letical  Society — 7ne  miset~um !  so  must  say  no  more  at  present. 

"  The  best  and  kindest  wishes  for  this  New  Year  to  you  and 
yours." 

"Athen^um  Club,  February  22,  1875. 

"  I  have  been  to  the  Lords  to-night,  and  have  ascertained  that 
the  second  reading  of  my  Bill  is  secure.  So  say,  at  least.  Cairns, 
Selborne,  Granville,  Richmond,  Beauchamp,  and  A.  C.  Cantuar. 
What  they  will,  all  of  them,  make  of  it  in  Committee  is  quite 
another  question.  Cairns  objects  to  two  or  three  clauses  which 
are  not,  however,  of  the  essence  of  the  Bill ;  if  a  Bill  so  much 
of  details  can  be  said  to  have  any  essence.  Walpole  will  take 
charge  of  it  in  the  Connnons.  Cross  and  Ward  Hunt  are  in 
favour  of  it.  Granville  distinctly  told  me  he  'approves  of  it  in  the 
main."  But  what  a  deal  of  coaxing  and  earwigging  it  has  taken 
me  to  get  even  so  far  ;  and  still  I  have  all  the  breaker's  and  rocks 
of  Committee  ahead. 

"  I  find  I  must  fix  Monday,  March  15,  at  latest,  for  Committee. 
This  will  entail  a  postponement  of  four  confirmations  (a  thing  the 
clergy  hate)  unless  I  can  find  a  substitute,  which  I  will  try  to  do. 
But  in  any  case  everything  must  give  way  to  this  Bill. 

"  I  am  very  tired  after  preaching  for  fifty  minutes  yesterday  at 
Whitehall,  and  have  a  heavy  cold  besides.  I  must,  however,  fight 
through  until  Thursday  night,  whatever  come  after."" 

"Athen^um  Club,  February  26,  1875. 
"  I  send  you  a  few  lines  on  the  eve  of  my  starting  for  home,  for 
a  fortnight's  rest  and  nursing,  just  to  say  that  I  am  alive  this 
morning  after  an  hour's  speech  last  night,  delivered  from  inside  of  a 
porous  plaister,  and  from  a  very  seedy  and  weak  sort  of  body  alto- 
gether. 

"  The  Times'"  report  of  my  speech  is  a  very  fair  one ;  and  on  the 
whole  I  have  no  reason  to  be  dissatisfied  with  the  reception  of  my 


IS74-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


19 


Bill,  though  I  do  not,  of  course,  like  the  reference  of  it  to  a  Select 
Committee  which  cannot  meet  until  after  Easter.  It  looked,  at 
first,  like  an  attempt  to  shelve  the  Bill.  But  from  all  I  can  learn, 
this  is  not  intended ;  and  the  Government,  i.e.,  Caii'ns,  is  disposed 
really  to  do  something'  to  amend  our  patronage  system. 

"The  objections  taken  are  not,  so  far,  at  all  serious  ;  and  if  no 
new  ones  are  raised  in  the  new,  and  therefore,  ignorant  Committee, 
I  may  get  the  Bill,  ni  its  material  features,  into  law  by  August. 
At  any  rate,  I  was  in  the  hands  of  Government,  and  could  only 
accept  their  terms,  whatever  they  might  be.  I  am  satisfied,  how- 
ever, that  the  cause  of  reform  has  made  last  night  a  decided  step 
forward.  And  now,  even  if  I  have  to  wait  another  year,  I  shall  at 
last  get  something;  effected. 

"  The  Bishop  of  Exeter's  speech  greatly  displeased  the  Conser- 
vative peers.  It  was  thought  verv  revolutionary,  and  far  too 
deferential  to  Nonconformists.  So  far,  it  helped  me,  by  making 
uiy  proposals  seem  moderate  by  comparison.  Lord  Lansdowne 
spoke  well  and  ablv  for  his  side  of  the  question ;  and  old  Lord 
Harrowby  ridiculously  on  behalf  of  '  pious  shopkeepers'  sons.' 

"As  I  have  said,  however,  on  the  whole,  and  considering  the 
fact  that  I  was  addressing  a  House  full  of  patrons,  I  have  got  as 
far  and  as  well  on  as  I  hoped  to  do. 

"The  Times  has  yet  to  issue  its  leader  on  the  subject.  Half 
sneer,  half  cold  commendation  and  carefully  trimming,  it  will,  of 
course,  be.  But  even  the  Times  will,  I  think,  hardly  denounce  the 
Bill  or  me. 

"  Now  I  must  be  off. 

"  I  am  greatly  vexed  about  this  postponement  of  the  confirma- 
tion. But  the  fact  is,  though  it  is  not  to  be  published,  Clark 
thinks  that  this  bronchial  afi'ection,  and  working  on  under  it,  has 
made  my  heart  rather  irritable.  Not  in  any  way  diseased,  but 
weaker  than  it  ought  to  be  ;  and  so  he  commands  positive  rest  for 
a  while,  and  comparative  rest  during  the  next  few  months.  Then, 
he  says,  I  shall  be  all  right.  "  W.  C.  P." 

I  quote  here  the  opening  paragraphs  of  the  Bishop's  speech, 
which  will  give  a  sufficient  explanation  of  its  origin  and  principle. 

My  Lordsj  the  Bill  to  whicli  I  am  about  to  ask  your  lordships  to 
grant  a  second  reading  to-night  is  an  attempt  to  give  legal  effect  to  the 
recommendations  of  the  Select  Committee  which  your  lordships  were 
pleased  to  appoint  on  my  motion  last  year  to  inquire  into  the  subject 


20  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


of  Church  Patronage  ;  and  I  may  state  at  the  outset  tliat  the  Bill 
neither  goes  beyond,  nor  fills  short  of,  the  recommendations  of  that 
Committee.  It  simply  embodies  the  recommendations  of  the  Select 
Committee  of  your  Lordships'  House  on  this  subject. 

Before,  however,  I  pi'oceed  to  explain  tlie  details  of  the  Bill,  which 
is  mainly  one  of  details,  I  have  to  saj-  a  few  words  as  to  the  principle 
of  the  measure  ;  and  I  do  not  think  I  can  state  what  the  principle  is 
better  than  it  is  thus  stated  in  the  first  paragraph  of  the  Report  of  the 
Select  Committee,  which  is  in  these  terms  : 

As  regards  the  first  of  these  questions,  the  Ccmnnittee  are  of  opinion 
that  all  legislation  affecting  Church  patronage  should  proceed  upon  the 
principle  that  such  patronage  partakes  of  the  natui-e  of  a  trust  to  be 
exercised  for  the  spiritual  benefit  of  the  parishioners,  and  that  whatever 
rights  of  property  originally  attached,  or  in  process  of  time  have 
attached,  to  patronage,  must  always  be  regarded  with  reference  to  the 
application  of  this  principle.  All  exercise  of  the  rights  of  patronage 
Avithout  due  regard  to  the  interests  of  the  parishioners  should,  so  far 
as  possible,  be  restrained  by  law  ;  and  the  laAv  should  also  aim  at  im- 
posing such  checks  on  the  exercise  of  his  choice  by  the  patron  as 
should  prevent,  as  far  as  possible,  the  appointment  of  unfit  persons  to 
the  cure  of  souls. 

My  Lords,  this  is  the  principle  of  this  Bill,  that  patronage  is  not 
mei'cly  and  not  mainly  property,  that  it  is  a  trust ;  and  that  if  it  be 
jiroperty,  so  far  as  it  is  property,  "  it  has  its  duties  as  well  as  its  rights," 
and  that  every  patron  is  to  be  regarded  as  exercising  a  most  solemn 
and  important  trust  in  behalf  of  the  parishioners. 

That  the  Bill  did  not  go  as  far  as  the  author  wished  Avill  be  seen 
from  the  following  sentences  near  the  close  of  the  Bishop's  speech. 

It  mav  be  asked,  then,  why  I  do  not  propose  in  this  Bill  to  entirely 
prohibit  the  sale  of  the  next  presentation.  My  simple  reason  is  that  I 
was  not  so  fortunate  as  to  obtain  the  assent  of  your  lordships'  Select 
Committee  to  that  proposition.  On  a  division  on  this  point  there  was 
a  majority  of  one  against  me.  I  have  no  wish  to  conceal  my  disap- 
pointment ;  but  I  may  mention  that  the  division  to  which  I  allude  was 
not  taken  in  presence  of  the  whole  Committee.  Members  were  absent 
who  would  have  voted  with  me ;  but  having  moved  for  the  Committee 
myself  and  having  acted  as  its  Chairman,  I  felt  loyally  bound  not  to 
propose  anything  in  this  Bill  which  the  Committee  did  not  recommend. 

The  following  is  an  instance  of  one  of  the  difficulties  which  the 
Patronage  Bill  was  designed  to  remedy.  The  Bishop  had  heard 
privately  that  a  clergyman  of  very  bad  character  was  likely  to  be 


i874-7<> 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


21 


presented  to  a  living  in  lay  patronage.  A  brother  bishop  gave  full 
l)articiilars  about  the  antecedents  of  the  man  to  be  presented,  to  the 
Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

The  person  in  (question  wrote  to  the  Bishop  to  say  he  had  been 

presented  to  the  living  of    in  his  diocese,  and  to  ask  him  to 

fix  a  time  for  his  institution.  The  Bishop  wrote  back  asking  him 
to  call  upon  him  in  London.  When  they  were  together,  the 
Bishop  told  him  he  had  heard  his  whole  story ;  that  at  such  a  time 
and  place  he  had  done  so  and  so ;  at  such  another  time  or  place  he 
had  been  guilty  of  some  other  offence  ;  and  showed  that  he  knew 
minutely  the  story  of  his  delinquencies.  He  then  spoke  to  this 
effect :  "  If  I  refuse  to  institute  you,  you  may  apply  to  the  Queen's 
Bench  for  a  mandamus  and  involve  me  in  a  lawsuit.  I  may  not 
succeed,  and  if  I  do  it  will  cost  me  dClOOO  or  £2000  which  I  cannot 
afford.  But  I  will  do  this  :  Parliament  is  now  sitting ;  and  what- 
ever I  say  there  is  pi*ivileged.  I  will  go  down  to  the  House  of 
Loi'ds  and  move  a  resolution  to  give  more  power  to  the  bishop  to 
i-eject  unfit  clerks  presented  to  livings  ;  and  I  shall  tell  the  whole 
story  of  your  life  and  delinquencies,  giving  name  and  dates.  It 
will  be  published  in  the  morning  in  every  newspaper  in  the  king- 
dom, and  then,  if  you  insist  upon  my  instituting  you,  when  you  go 
down  to  your  parish  the  very  dogs  will  hark  at  you^  The  guilty 
clerk  shrank  from  the  ordeal,  and  the  affair  ended  in  the  parties 
to  whom  the  patronage  had  fallen  presenting  a  fitting  clergyman, 
whom  the  Bishop  willingly  instituted  to  the  "cui-e  of  souls"  in  the 
parish. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  March  2g,  1875. 

"I  am  decidedly  better.  But  while  these  cold  winds  last  I  cannot 
get  well.  I  am  going  to  Buxton — or,  rather,  to  a  little  sheltered 
riverside  nook  near  Buxton — on  Tuesday  next  Avith  Charlie,  for  a 
little  more  change  and  rest. 

"  I  started  our  Church  Extension  Scheme  in  Northampton 
fairly.  A  large  meeting  and  good  platform,  and  I  think  already 
nearly  £5000  promised.  This  is,  however,  a  long  way  off  ^PSSjOOO, 
the  sum  needed.  Any  how,  I  shall  get  two  out  of  my  proposed 
four  parishes. 

"  I  go  to  town  on  April  5,  for  my  Bill.  Its  prospects  are  not 
encouraging — cold  sup2)ort  from  friends,  and  active  opposition  from 
vested  interests,  seem  the  fate  of  all  reforms  at  first.  My  bitterest 
enemies  are  proving  to  be  clerical  patrons,  who  are,  as  the  clergy 


22 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


ClIA!'. 


SO  generally  are,  given  to  panics,  and  incapable  of  seeing  outside 
the  edges  of  their  own  parishes.  I  shall  go  on,  lio\\ever,  steadily 
doing  my  best  until  I  am  stopped ;  and  then  I  shall  throw  mv 
hand  up  and  let  any  one  that  likes  take  up  the  cards.  The  next 
reformer  will  be  a  rougher  one  than  I,  and  so  the  clergy  may  find 
to  their  cost. 

"  The  Cabinet  is  sick  of  all  Church  questions,  and  hates  the  very 
idea  of  Church  Bills  in  the  Commons.  The  result  of  this  false 
Conservatism  will  be  ecclesiastical  revolution.  Suppressed  reform 
is  like  suppressed  gout — sure  to  fly  to  the  heart  at  last ;  and  then 
eoceunt  omnes.  I,  too,  am  very  sick  of  it  all  ;  and  begin  to  think 
the  end  much  nearer  than  it  seemed  \.\\o  Nears  ago.'''' 

"  AxHEN^UM  Club,  Api  il  15,  1875. 

"  Convocation  in  our  House  is  doing  nothing  with  great  dignity 
and  calm.  In  the  Lower  House  it  is  doing  nothing  practical  with 
great  heat  and  fury.  They  have  five  resolutions  under  discussion 
there  anent  the  two  rubrics,  and  the  first  and  least  debatable  will 
not  be  voted  on  until  this  afternoon  !  So  nuicli  the  better  for  us, 
who  are  playing  a  waiting  e:ame. 

"Nearly  all  I  said  on  explanatory  rubrics  was  burked  in  the 
Guardian.  But  they,  at  any  rate,  have  got  their  quietus ;  and  \\-e 
shall  reach  July  1  with  the  rubrics  as  they  are  'phis  the  law  courts 
minus  the  episcopal  discretion. 

"  I  think  we  are  gravitating  towards  an  understanding  not  1  o 
allow  prosecution  for  the  eastward  position.  Even  the  Archbishop 
tends  this  way  now.  The  position  will  be  deliciously  illogical ; 
but  that  will  not  matter  if  we  can  only  hold  it  against  the  pressure 
of  the  Puritans. 

"  I  am  hard  at  work  in  Select  Committee  on  my  Bill.  Cairns 
and  Richmond  are  behaving  ver?/  fairly ;  not  at  all  cushioning  or 
obstructing  the  Bill,  but  honestly  trying  to  improve  it  according 
to  their  lights — and,  in  some  respects,  decidedly  doing  so  according 
to  mine.  We  shall  finish  our  work,  I  expect,  in  two  more  sittings. 
But  we  onlv  sit  on  Wednesdays,  to  acconnnodate  Cairns  and 
Selborne.     '  "  VV.  C.  P." 

The  Bishop  was  a  member  of  the  Metaphysical  Society,  whicii 
included  many  scientific  men  of  every  variety  of  opinion  and  belief, 
and  sometimes  read  a  paper  at  their  meetings.  How  he  could 
have  fomid  time  for  these  in  the  midst  of  his  varied  labours  it  is 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


hard  to  understand  ;  but  he  took  a  delight  in  exercising  his  fine 
j)o\vcr  of  logic,  and  crossing  swords  with  men  from  whom  he 
totally  differed. 

One  of  the  best  specimens  of  argument  and  ridicule  is  to  be 
found  in  a  paper  which  he  read  before  this  society  on  April  18, 
1875,  in  which  he  discusses  the  propriety  and  morality  of 
maintaining  hospitals  for  incui'ables,  showing  that,  upon  the 
theories  of  life  advocated  by  many,  it  would  follow  that  the 
incurables  ought  to  be  painlessly  put  to  death. 

Before  reading  the  paper,  the  Bishop  had  sent  a  copy  to  Dr. 
Salmon.    The  following  letter  shows  how  fully  he  appreciated  it : 

From  Dr.  Salmon. 

Trinity  College,  Dublin, 

April  II,  1873. 

My  dear  Bishop, — I  had  read  the  "  Incurables  "  with  great  pleasure, 
and  was  rather  dull  not  to  have  guessed  the  authorship.  The  "greatest 
happiness  of  the  greatest  number  "  particular!}'  tickled  my  fancj'.  But 
as  far  as  I  can  judge  of  a  stream  of  tendency,  the  force  of  your  argu- 
ment, considered  as  a  reductio  ad  absurdiim,  will  be  lost  by  the  accept- 
ance of  the  absurd  conclusion. 

I  suppose  you  read  some  magazine  articles  on  Euthanasia  a  little 
time  ago.  They  looked  with  favour  on  the  Indian  mode  of  disposing 
of  our  aged  fi-iends  by  taking  them  down  to  the  Ganges,  covering  their 
mouths  with  mud,  and  bidding  them  an  affectionate  farewell.  We,  on 
the  contrary,  when  a  person  is  recognised  to  be  dying,  think  it  a  duty 
to  keep  him  alive  in  a  semi-conscious  state,  by  pouring  brandy  down 
his  throat,  perhaps  some  twenty-four  hours  longer  than  his  natural 
time  ;  and  though  we  appi-ove  of  a  physician  administering  narcotics  to 
a  person  suffering  torture  in  hopeless  disease,  we  should  condemn  him 
if  he  purposely  made  the  dose  so  sti-ong  as  to  give  the  most  effectual 
relief.  .  .  .  . — I  remam  very  faithfully  yours,  George  Salmon. 

It  will  be  seen  from  the  following  passage  in  one  of  the  Bishop's 
letters  that  Dr.  Salmon's  prediction  was  correct,  and  that  some  of 
the  Bishop's  opponents  accepted  what  he  considered  as  the  absurd 
conclusion  to  which  he  had  reduced  their  principles  : 

"  ....  I  read  my  paper,  and  Tyndall  and  Greg  calmly  adoj^ted 
my  ?  edtictio  ad  absurdum,  and  were  for  killing  the  old  woman ! 

"  W.  C.  P." 


24  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xii 


HOSPITALS  FOR  INCURABLES  CONSIDERED  FROM  A 

MORAL  POINT  OF  VIEW. 

[Paper  read  at  the  Grosvenor  Hotel,  April 
13,  1875. 

I  propose  in  this  paper  to  attempt  the  practical  appUcation  in  a 
single  instance  of  certain  theories  of  human  life  and  morals  recently 
set  forth  Avith  much  weight  of  authority.  I  shall^  in  the  first  place^ 
state  the  conditions  of  the  problem  to  be  solved,  in  their  simplest  and 
most  elementary  form  ;  and,  in  the  next  place,  the  respective  theories 
by  the  help  of  which  I  propose  to  attempt  its  solution. 

Problem  to  he  solved. 

Given  an  old  woman  afflicted  with  incurable  cancer — certain  to  die, 
say,  in  twelve  months  from  the  present  date — and  meanwhile  unable 
from  poverty  to  obtain  proper  nursing,  medical  alleviation  of  her  suf- 
ferings, or  even  the  means  of  sustaining  existence,  without  the  aid  of 
others,  while  I,  on  the  other  hand,  am  able  to  supply  all  her  wants  in 
these  respects. 

Given  further,  the  following  conditions  : 

A.  That  there  is  nothing  supem&txixaX  in  either  of  us — i.e.,  nothing 
in  which  our  nature  essentially  differs  from  that  of  any  other  known 
animal,  our  differences  from  other  animals  being  purely  anatomical,  as, 
for  instance,  that  she  and  I  are  possessed  of  thumbs,  of  great  toes  of  a 
peculiar  shape,  of  hipjiocampus  majors  in  our  brains,  and  of  certain 
useless  intestinal  appendages,  by  virtue  of  which  we  claim  to  be  supe- 
rior animals,  but  animals  merely. 

B.  That  there  is  nothing  supernatural  outside  of  us — i.e.,  that  there 
is  no  being  distinct  from  us  who  has  created  us,  and  whose  relation  to 
each  of  us  as  creator  might  be  for  us  the  ground  of  certain  relations  and 
mutual  obligations,  or  who  could  have  given  us  either  information  or 
direction  as  to  these  relations  and  obligations,  or  as  to  any  design  of 
our  being,  by  accordance  with  or  discordance  from  which  the  moral 
qualities  of  our  dealings  with  each  other  might  be  tested. 

The  question  arises.  What,  under  these  conditions,  is  my  duty  to- 
wards that  old  woman,  and  what  is  the  duty  of  the  State  towai'ds  us 
both  as  regards  hospitals  for  incurables  .'' 

I  have  obviously  before  me  the  proverbial  three  courses.    I  may — ■ 

(1)  Provide  her  with  medical  and  other  comforts  for  the  remamder 

of  her  days  ;  or  I  may 

(2)  Leave  her  alone  ;  or  I  may 
(.'5)  Terminate  her  existence. 

I  may  comfort,  neglect,  or  kill  her.    Which  of  these  three  courses 


IS74-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


25 


ought  1  to  take  ?  If  this  question  were  to  be  decided  on  tlie  ground 
of  authority  only,  I  should  probably  choose  the  second  of  these  courses, 
wliich  has  in  its  favour  the  example  of  the  great  majority  of  mankind 
in  all  ages.  But  inasmuch  as  each  of  the  other  two  courses  has  in  its 
favour  the  example  of  considerable  minorities  of  mankind,  and  as  the 
third  has  not  only  the  prestige  of  great  antiquity,  but  the  presumption 
in  its  favour  of  a  power  of  survival  which  has  preserved  it  to  the  pre- 
sent day,  the  argument  from  authority,  powerful  as  it  is  in  questions  of 
morals,  cannot  here  be  regarded  as  conclusive.  It  cannot,  I  think,  be 
pressed  farther  than  to  show  that  no  one  of  these  three  courses  can  be 
reffarded  as  inhuman  or  unnatural. 

We  must  have  recoui-se  to  other  bases  of  morals  in  order  to  decide 
which  of  these  courses  is  the  right  one  to  follow. 

Three  Bases  of  Morals. 

Of  these  bases  of  morals  there  are  three,  by  the  help  of  each  of 
which  I  would  pi'opose  to  consider  in  this  case  the  jiroper  course  of 
action. 

These  are  : 

1.  The  Mechanical.    2.  The  Utilitarian.    3   The  Perfectionist. 
Let  us  take  each  of  these  in  their  order. 

According  to  the  first  of  these,  if  I  understand  it  rightly,  all  of  us, 
both  men  and  brutes,  are  conscious  automata — machines,  that  is  to  say 
(though  improperly  so  called,  inasmuch  as  a  machine  implies  a  me- 
chanist), machines  all  whose  actions  are  mechanicalhj  necessary — the 
inevitable  and  in  voluntary'  result  of  certain  mechanical  agitations  incur 
brains,  accompanied  by,  but  in  no  way  whatever  caused  by,  certain 
sensations,  one  of  which  we  call  volition,  but  which  volition  has 
nothing  to  do  with  the  genesis  of  our  actions,  and  is  itself  as  mechani- 
cally and  as  necessarily  generated  by  circumstances  wholly  beyond  our 
choice  or  control  as  they  are. 

On  this  theory  I  confess  myself  utterly  unable  to  see  anything  save 
the  absolute  moral  indiSerence  of  these  three  courses  of  action.  I 
feel  myself  necessarily  Impelled  by  the  molecular  agitations  which  logic 
produces  in  my  brain  to  say  that  there  can  be  no  moral  responsibility 
attaching  to  the  mechanically  necessarj'  movements  of  machines,  the 
consciousness  which  accompanies  these  movements  being  as  mechanical 
and  as  necessary  as  the  movements  themselves. 

If  I  were  to  drive  a  knife  into  the  heart  of  this  supposed  old  woman, 
no  one  would  dream  of  blaming  the  knife  for  its  share  in  that  trans- 
action, it  being  not  only  an  involuntary,  but  an  unconscious  agent 
If  a  stronger  being  than  myself  were  to  fasten  a  knife  in  my  hand  and 
drive  it  against  my  will  into  her  heart,  no  one  would  dream  of  blaming 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XII 


me  (or  my  share  in  that  transaction  —  I  being,  though  not  an  uncon- 
scious, yet  an  involuntary  agent. 

If  my  consent  or  will  happen  to  go  with  that  act  of  the  stronger 
being,  or  if  I  perform  the  act  myself — the  consent  or  the  action  being 
in  this  case  as  completely  beyond  my  control  and  as  purely  mechanical 
and  necessary  as  the  motion  of  my  hand  in  the  former  case — I  cannot 
see  how,  in  this  case,  I  am  one  whit  more  morally  responsible  than 
my  arm  in  the  second,  or  than  the  knife  in  the  first  case. 

Nay,  there  is  even  a  secondary  and  improper  sense  in  which  we 
might  blame  the  knife,  and  in  which  we  cannot  blame  the  man.  We 
might  say  of  the  knife,  if  it  did  its  work  bluntly  and  ineffectually,  that 
it  was  a  bad  knife ;  but  we  should  say  this  because  we  regarded  the 
knife  as  a  machine,  whose  maker  designed  it  for  a  particular  end,  viz., 
sharp  cutting,  and  therefore  in  a  metaphorical  and  analogical  sense,  Ave 
might  saj"^  of  the  knife  which  failed  to  answer  the  design  of  its  maker 
that  it  was  a  bad  knife.  But  it  is  clear  that  we  could  not  say  this  of 
any  human  being,  unless  we  suppose  him  to  have  had  a  maker  and  to 
be  made  with  a  design.  Any  application,  therefore,  of  moral  epithets 
to  human  actions  should  be  carefully  eschewed  by  those  who  reject  the 
idea  of  a  designer  of  humanity,  inasmuch  as  they  certainly  tend  to 
foster  this  idea. 

I  know  that  I  am  warned  against  these  conclusions  by  high  authority 
as  savouring  of  "  logic,"  of  which  I  am  told  I  am  to  "  beware," — a 
warning  which  seems  to  me,  however,  as  reasonable  and  as  hopeful  as 
that  of  the  driver  of  a  train  who,  having  driven  it  to  the  edge  of  the 
precipice,  should  jump  off  as  it  was  going  over,  with  the  warning  to 
the  passengers,  "  Bewai'e  of  steam  !  "  Logic  is  as  real  a  fact  as  steam. 
Once  on  the  two  grooves  of  the  Major  and  Minor  of  a  syllogism,  we 
must  go  on  whither  they  lead  us,  in  spite  of  all  the  warnings  of  the 
man  who  has  laid  down  the  rails  and  got  up  the  steam. 

Admitting,  however,  for  argument's  sake,  the  moral  quality  of  me- 
chanically necessary  actions,  there  is  much  to  be  said  in  favour  of  the 
third  of  these  three  courses.  Undoubtedly,  if  we  had  in  like  case  to 
deal  with  one  of  those  animals  which  we  are  pleased  to  call  inferior,  we 
should  not  hesitate  to  shoot  it,  either  in  order  to  put  it  out  of  its 
misery,  or  to  save  ourselves  the  cost  of  keeping  it,  or  the  pain  of  wit- 
nessing its  agonies.  Now,  assuming  that  this  old  woman  is  simply  an 
animal,  and  no  more,  I  fail  to  see  how  the  fact  that  she  is  a  superior 
animal  should  give  her  any  exemption  fi'om  the  fate  of  an  incurably 
diseased  horse  or  dog.  I  can  see  no  more  sacredness,  on  this  theory, 
in  the  one  form  of  life  than  in  the  other.  The  assertion  that  there  is 
seems  to  me  fraught  with  dangerous  and  even  (if  I  may  use  the  word 
"  moral  "  in  this  context)  immoral  consequences.  For  if  the  superior 
animal,  simply  because  it  is  superior,  may  rightfully  kill  the  inferior 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRON  AGE 


27 


animal,  I  cannot  see  why  a  very  superior  man  may  not  rightfully  kill 
a  very  inferior  man,  supposing  in  both  eases,  of  course,  sufficient  reason 
of  convenience  or  comfort  to  the  superior  were  to  call  for  this  killing — 
as,  for  instance,  why  Babbage  and  Leech  might  not  rightly  have  killed 
the  organ-grinders  who  were  killing  them  ;  or  why  a  Sir  Isaac  Newton 
might  not  rightfully  kill  a  cretin,  between  whom  and  Sir  Isaac  there 
would  probably  be  more  difference  than  between  the  ci'etin  and  an  in- 
telligent dog. 

And  if  it  be  alleged  that  human  nature  revolts  against  the  idea  of 
destroying  diseased  and  repulsive  human  beings  for  our  own  convenience 
and  comfort,  or  even  to  relieve  them  from  misery,  and  that  therefore 
such  an  action,  if  not  immoral,  is  at  any  I'ate  unnatural  and  odious  ;  we 
must  remember  that  human  nature,  or  what  we  practically  mean  by 
that  term — namely,  our  English  human  nature — has  for  many  centuries 
been  under  the  influence  of  certain  beliefs  as  to  the  sacredness  of 
human  life — which,  if  they  are  ever  dispelled  by  pure  science,  might 
leave  a  human  nature  by  no  means  so  averse  to  the  killing  of  human 
beings  as  ours  now  in  most  cases  happens  to  be. 

There  are,  howe\  er,  certain  considerations  of  enlightened  self-interest 
which  tend,  I  admit,  rather  in  the  direction  either  of  leaving  this  old 
woman  alone,  or  even  of  placing  her  in  a  hospital  for  incurables.  It 
may  be  urged  that  the  knowledge  of  the  best  means  of  alleviating  in- 
curable disease  acquired  in  such  an  hospital  might  prove  useful  to  our- 
selves ;  and  also  that  the  principle  that  one  human  animal  may,  for  its 
own  greater  convenience  or  comfort,  kill  an  inferior  human  animal, 
might,  if  generally  acted  on  by  inconsiderate  or  ignorant  persons,  have 
unpleasant  consequences  for  ourselves.  To  the  former  of  these  jileas, 
however,  it  may  be  replied  that  it  might,  after  all,  be  better  for  our- 
selves, that  if  incurably  diseased,  we  should  be  painlessly  extinguished, 
than  that  we  should  be  alleviated.  As  regards  the  latter  of  these,  it 
might  be  urged  that,  at  any  rate,  it  could  not  apply  to  the  extinction 
of  diseased  lives,  under  proper  precautions  and  with  due  solemnities, 
by  the  State. 

On  the  whole,  therefore — on  this  mechanical  theory  of  human  life — 
I  incline  to  the  ojjinion  that  if  there  be  any  morality  in  the  case,  the 
balance  is  rather  in  favour  of  the  extinction  than  of  the  preservation  of 
the  incurably  diseased  life  ;  if  not  by  the  individual,  yet,  at  least,  by 
the  State.  I  do  not  think,  however,  that  on  this  theory  we  should  be 
justified  in  pronouncing  either  of  the  two  other  courses  to  be  innnoral. 

Tlie  Utilitarian  Tlieorij. 

Let  us,  in  the  next  place,  try  this  question  on  the  Utilitarian  or 
"greatest  happiness  of  the  greatest  number"  theory,  and  as  this  theory 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


is  confessedly  too  difficult  of  application  to  be  a  guide  for  the  actions 
of  individuals,  I  shall  test  by  it  my  second  question — whether  the  State 
should  allow  of  hospitals  for  incurables. 

I  confess,  however,  to  a  serious  practical  difficulty  in  the  way  of 
applying  this  theoiy  to  an}'  actions  whatsoever.  It  gives  us  no  defini- 
tion of  what  is  this  "  greatest  number  "  whose  happiness  is  to  be  aimed 
at.  Is  this  the  greatest  number  of  sentient  beings,  no  matter  of  what 
kind  or  quality,  or  is  it  the  greatest  number  of  human  beings  }  If  the 
former,  then  undoubtedly  the  State  ought  to  extinguish  all  cancerous 
old  women,  inasmuch  as  the  number  of  sentient  beings  who  would 
find  happiness  in  devouring  them  after  death  would  be  incalculably 
greater  than  the  number  of  persons  so  extinguished,  even  if  we  add  to 
it  the  small  number  of  persons  who  now  find  their  happiness  in  minis- 
tering to  their  wants.  On  the  same  principle,  we  may  observe  that  the 
resistance  of  a  tribe  of  Africans  to  the  locusts,  who  find  their  "greatest 
happiness  "  in  eating  green  crops,  would  be  decidedly  immoral.  If,  on 
the  other  hand,  we  limit  the  right  of  "  greatest  happiness  "  to  human 
beings,  we  can  only  do  so  on  the  principle  that  the  right  to  happiness 
depends,  not  on  the  number,  but  on  the  quality  of  the  sentient  beings 
concerned — men,  for  instance,  because  they  are  men,  i.e.,  higher 
animals,  being  more  entitled  to  be  happy  than  locusts. 

But  this  limitation  is  obviously  fatal  to  the  "greatest  number" 
theory,  inasmuch  as  it  proceeds  on  the  exactly  opposite  principle,  that 
a  lesser  number  of  superior  beings,  and  therefore  of  superior  human 
beings,  have  a  better  right  to  be  happ}'  than  a  greater  number  of  in- 
ferior ones,  a  theory  which  we  know  was  long  insisted  on  in  defence  of 
the  enslaving  of  black  naen  by  white  ones. 

Assuming,  however,  that  this  greatest  happiness  is  the  right  of  the 
superior  members  of  the  human  race,  and  that  the  State  should  aim  at 
this,  it  may  be  questioned  whether  this  is  not  merely  a  roundabout  way 
of  saj  ing  that  the  State  should  aim  at  making  good  men  happy ;  and 
if  so,  the  answer  to  the  question  whether  the  State,  on  this  principle, 
should  allow  of  hospitals  for  incurables  depends  on  ascertaining 
whether  their  existence  gives  happiness  to  good  men.  But  inasmuch 
as  if  these  hos^iitals  are  not  good  or  right  institutions,  good  men  ought 
not  to  approve  of  them,  we  get  here  into  the  vicious  circle  of  testing 
the  goodness  of  an  institution  by  the  goodness  of  the  persons  who  take 
pleasure  in  it,  and  then  of  testing  the  goodness  of  these  persons  by  the 
goodness  of  the  institution  that  makes  them  happy. 

Assuming,  however,  this  "greatest  happiness  of  the  greatest  number" 
to  mean  that  of  the  greatest  number  of  human  beings  simply,  it  seems 
to  me  clear  that  hospitals  for  incurables  should  be  suppressed  by  the 
State,  as  decidedly  immoral  institutions.  For  obviously,  on  this  theory, 
the  quantity  of  happiness  for  humanity  is  limited,  and  a  good  Govern- 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


29 


ment  is,  therefore,  bound  to  sacrifice  the  happiness  of  tlie  lesser  to  that 
of  the  greater  number  of  its  subjects.  But  if  happiness  be  a  limited 
quantity,  so  also  must  be  many  of  its  factors,  e.g.,  wealth,  comfort,  lei- 
sure, amusement,  cheerfulness,  gaiety,  and  the  like.  Clearly,  thei-efore, 
all  diseased,  helpless  and  repulsive  forms  of  existence  detract  from  the 
general  stock  of  human  happiness — indirectly  by  contributing  nothing 
to  it,  directly  by  withdrawing  from  it  the  wealth,  leisure,  cheerfulness, 
or  gaiety  which  otherwise  would  go  into  the  general  stock  of  happiness. 
All  such  existences  are  injurious  to  the  State,  they  are  the  boucltes  iiiu- 
iiles  in  the  great  siege  which  humanity  sustains  against  misery  and 
should  be  dealt  with  accordingly.  Indeed,  they  may  even  be  reckoned 
among  the  classes  dangereuses.  An  old  woman  with  a  cancerous  dia- 
thesis is  as  truly,  though  not  as  seriously,  inconvenient  to  the  State  as 
an  old  woman  with  a  mui'derous  diathesis.  The  molecular  constitution 
of  each  is  socially  mischievous,  and  though  it  is  true  that  the  mui'derous 
constitution  is  more  dangerous  than  the  cancerous,  yet,  on  the  other 
hand,  the  former  is  presumably  curable,  and  may  be  treated  by  ajijiro- 
j)riate  remedies — the  latter,  being  incurable,  can  only  be  dealt  with 
effectually  by  extinction.  These  arguments  for  the  extinction  of  in- 
curably diseased  lives  by  the  State  are  strengthened  considerably  by 
those  which  have  lately  been  urged  in  favour  of  suicide. 

It  is  argued,  with  much  plausibility,  that  it  is  the  duty  of  those 
whose  lives  are  hopelessly  burdensome  to  themselves  and  to  others,  to 
jelieve  themselves  and  society  of  this  burden  by  self-extinction. 
Clearly,  therefore,  to  assist  such  persons  in  prolonging  their  lives,  is 
immorally  to  aid  and  abet  others  in  an  immoral  neglect  of  duty.  It  is 
only  carrying  this  principle  one  step  fui'ther,  to  say  that  the  State 
should  at  least  forbid  such  aid,  as  being  socially  mischievous,  even  if  it 
do  not  go  the  length  of  requiring  such  persons  to  do  their  duty  to 
themselves  and  their  families,  or  if  they  fail  to  do  it,  of  doing  it  for 
them. 

It  may,  however,  be  urged,  on  the  other  hand,  that  such  a  course  of 
action  on  the  part  of  the  State  might  tend  to  produce  a  hai'd  and  un- 
compassionate  temper  of  society,  and  that  as  compassion  is  undoubtedly 
an  emotion  of  great  social  utility,  such  a  proceeding  would  be  contrary 
to  sound  Utilitarian  principles.  The  answer,  however^  is  obvious.  The 
emotion  of  compassion  is  undoubtedly  of  high  social  utility.  But  the 
indiscriminate  graf  'ificatioii  of  that  emotion  is  undoubtedly  most  mis- 
chievous to  society,  while  the  restraint  of  its  exercise  to  proper  objects 
no  more  tends  to  weaken  the  emotion  itself  than  the  narrowing  of  a 
stream  tends  to  make  it  shallow.  Once  let  it  be  clearly  understood 
that  incurably  diseased  paupers  are  not  proper  objects  for  the  exercise 
of  compassion,  and  the  pi'olongation  of  their  lives  will  excite,  in  all  pro- 
perly regulated  minds,  the  same  indignation  that  is  now  excited  by  in- 


30 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


discriminate  almsgiving — an  indignation  which  is  felt,  as  we  know,  by 
persons  of  the  most  warm  and  active  benevolence. 

There  is,  I  admit,  one  fatal  objection  to  the  whole  of  this  argument, 
namely,  that  it  assumes  the  moral  right  of  the  greatest  number  to  be 
happy,  and  that  this  again  assumes  the  moral  right  of  any  one  indivi- 
dual to  be  happy,  and  that  this  again  assumes,  as  its  only  possible  basis, 
that  argument  from  design  which  modern  science  so  decidedly  rejects. 
This  objection,  however,  lies  outside  the  scope  of  this  paper,  which  only 
pretends  to  apply — and  not  to  discuss — the  theories  with  which  it  deals. 

The  Perfectionist  Theory. 

Lastly,  we  may  apply  to  this  question  the  theory  of  a  scientific  basis 
of  morals  set  forth  in  a  paper  lately  read  before  this  society.  On  this 
theory,  the  ultimate  standard  of  morals  is  not  utility,  but  perfection, 
society,  we  are  told,  tending  naturally  and  inevitably  towards  this  per- 
fection by  the  development  of  a  tribal  self,  whose  office  it  is  to  inform 
and  guide  the  conscience  of  the  individual  self,  whose  "  piety  "  con- 
sists in  willingness  to  submit  to  these  external  revelations  of  the  tribal 
self,  and  who,  if  he  "impiously  "  resist  them,  may  be  "dealt  with  by 
appropriate  methods"  on  the  part  of  this  tribal  self.  In  attempting 
any  practical  application  of  this  theory,  we  encounter,  as  it  seems  to 
me,  two  serious  practical  difficulties. 

First,  this  theoiy  supplies  no  definition  of  that  "  perfection  "  which 
is  its  ultimate  standard  of  morals.  Does  this  perfection,  or  does  it  not, 
include  the  idea  of  morality  .''  If  it  does,  then  we  are  at  once  involved 
— in  deciding  any  practical  question  of  morals — in  the  vicious  circle  of 
first  making  tribal  perfection  a  test  of  morality,  and  then  of  making 
morality  a  test  of  tribal  perfection.  Clearly,  if  we  must  know  what 
morality  is  in  order  to  define  perfection,  the  knowledge  of  perfection 
can  be  no  great  help  to  us  in  defining  morality.  To  call  that  a  basis 
of  morals  of  which  morality  is  a  part  is  equivalent  to  saying  that  morality 
rests  on  morality,  a  basis  which  seems  to  me  to  lack  the  rigorous  exact- 
ness which  we  expect  from  science.  If,  on  the  other  hand,  the  defini- 
tion of  perfection  exclude  the  idea  of  morality,  then  we  are  thrown 
back  on  that  Utilitarian  theory  for  which  this  has  been  proposed  as  a 
substitute. 

Secondly,  this  standard  of  morals  fails  us  exactly  at  the  point  where 
we  most  need  it,  namely,  where  there  arises  a  conflict  of  moral  judg- 
ment between  the  individual  and  the  tribal  self;  such,  for  instance,  as 
might  conceivably  arise  between  a  tribal  self  and  the  diseased  pauper 
it  was  about  to  immolate.  In  every  such  case  it  is  clear  that  it  is  a 
fallacy  to  speak  of  the  moral  judgment  of  the  majority  as  that  of 
the  tribal  self.    For  it  is  clear  that  the  individual  who  dissents  from 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


31 


that  judgment  is  a  part  of  that  very  tribal  self  that  is  to  j udge,  the 
tribal  self  being  nothing  but  the  sum  of  the  individual  selves  of  which 
it  is  composed.  The  judgment,  therefore,  of  the  majority  of  a  tribe  is 
not  that  of  the  tribal  self,  but  only  of  a  part  of  that  self ;  and,  there- 
foi'e,  as  the  tribal  self  in  this  case  cannot  possibly  have  spoken,  I  fail 
to  see  the  "  im2:)iety "  on  the  part  of  the  individual  in  resisting  the 
judgment. 

It  is  true  that  the  tribal  self,  that  is,  society,  may  deal  with  the  in- 
dividual in  that  case,  "  by  appropriate  methods,"  i.e.,  may  hang  or 
imprison  him ;  but  unless  might  make  right,  or  unless  majorities  are 
infallible  and,  therefore,  individual  reformers  always  impious,  it  does 
not  follow  that  society  is  right  in  doing  so.  My  difficulty  (in  one  sen- 
tence) is,  that  whenever  society  and  I  differ,  I  cannot  possibly  get  that 
judgment  of  the  tribal  self  which  should  inform  my  conscience. 
Further,  the  individual  may,  I  think,  fairly  allege,  that  as  society  is,  on 
this  theory,  not  perfect,  but  only  tending  to  perfection,  he  may,  for 
aught  he  knows  to  the  contrary,  be  advancing  that  perfection  by  in- 
dulging to  the  fullest  extent  his  own  propensities,  whatever  these  may 
be— certain  that  in  the  end  the  strongest  propensities,  and,  therefore, 
on  this  theory,  the  best,  will  prevail,  by  a  process  of  natural  selection. 

On  this  theory,  therefore,  I  confess  myself  quite  unable  to  say  any- 
thing respecting  the  morality  or  immorality  of  hospitals  for  incurables, 
or  indeed  of  anything  else.  All  that  I  can  say  is,  that  if  there  be  any 
"ought  "  in  the  case,  it  is  that  each  person  ought  to  do  as  forcibly  as 
he  can  whatever  he  feels  the  strongest  impulse  to  do,  satisfied  that 
thus  he  is  best  contributing  his  share  to  the  ultimate  perfection  of  the 
tribal  self. 

Summary. 

To  sum  up,  therefore,  the  result  of  the  attempt  to  apply  to  the  case 
of  hospitals  for  incurables  the  mechanical,  the  utilitarian,  and  the  per- 
fectionist theories  of  lite  and  morals.  According  to  the  first  of  these, 
such  hospitals  most  probably  ought  not ;  according  to  the  second,  they 
certainly  ought  not,  to  be  supported  by  individuals  or  tolerated  by  the 
State  ;  according  to  the  third,  we  ought  each  of  us  to  please  himself, 
and  when  the  State  has  come  to  an  absolutely  unanimous  judgment  on 
the  matter,  we  or  our  posterity  shall  know  who  was  right. 

Hospitals  for  incui-ables,  and  all  other  works  of  pure  mercy  and  com- 
passion to  our  fellow-men,  can,  I  fear,  be  logically  justified  only  on  the 
assumption  that  the  conditions  I  assumed  for  my  problem  are  not  cor- 
rect ;  that  there  may  be  something  supernatural  in  man,  something 
essentially  different  from  all  qualities  of  all  other  animals — which  can- 
not be  ascertained  by  comparative  anatomy,  or  brought  under  the  rule 
of  merely  physical  laws  ;  and  also  that  there  may  be,  without  and 


32 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XII 


apart  from  man,  a  supernatural  author  of  his  existence,  out  of  whose 
relations  to  him  ai-ise  certain  relations  of  all  men  to  each  other,  which 
make  the  real  and  essential  difference  between  nations  of  men  and 
herds  of  brutes  ;  and  that  from  this  Being  man  may  have  derived  those 
rights  to  live  and  to  be  happy  which  it  seems  so  difficult  to  establish 
on  any  scientific  basis.  Nay,  that  He  may  even  have  given  to  man 
some  information  as  to  the  existence  of  these  facts  and  of  these  rights 
which  might  be  more  useful  to  him  than  the  external  revelations  of 
the  tribal  self — that  is  to  say,  that  there  may  be  a  supernatural  revela- 
tion of  a  basis  of  morals  suited  to  a  supernatural  creature. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonni,:ll. 

"41  Devonshire  Street, 

"  Portland  Place,  May  5,  1875. 

"  Mr.  L.  need  not  have  been  so  uneasy. 

"(1)  The  clause  in  the  Bill  to  which  he  and  others  object  was 
not  to  have  been  retrospective,  and  would  not,  therefore,  have 
touched  him  or  any  one  who  had  bought  before  the  passing  of 
the  Act. 

"  (2)  The  clause  has  vanished  from  the  Bill ! 

"  I  agree  with  you  in  thinking  that  clerical  patrons  are  acting- 
very  unwisely  for  their  own  interests  in  opposing  the  whole  Bill  so 
bitterly  as  they  are  doing. 

"(1)  They  will  never  have  a  milder  one,  that  is  certain. 

"  (2)  The  longer  they  delay  the  Bill,  the  longer  they  keep  up  the 
agitation  on  the  subject,  and  so  continually  depreciate  the  selling- 
value  of  their  own  property. 

"  (3)  They  place  themselves  in  a  very  invidious  position  as 
clergymen,  and,  I  think,  a  very  dangerous  one  as  owners  of 
property,  in  fighting  against  any  and  all  reform  of  admitted  evils 
and  abuses,  on  the  ground  that  those  are  inextricably  mixed  up 
with  their  property ! 

"  The  result  will  be,  sooner  or  later,  that  men  will  not  preserve 
the  abuse  for  the  sake  of  the  property ;  but  get  rid  of  the  property 
in  order  to  get  rid  of  the  abuse. 

"  Certainly  nothing  can  well  be  more  damaging  to  the  Church 
than  the  fact — if  it  turn  out  to  be  a  fact — of  the  existence  of  such 
a  blue  book  of  damaging  facts  and  evidences  as  last  year's  report  of 
my  committee,  and  the  fact  that  all  reform  of  these  was  stopped 
by  the  clergy  of  the  Church.  But  clergy  in  a  panic  are  like  horses 
in  a  stampede — nothing  will  hold  them.    The  Bill  cannot  possibly' 


1 87 4-7 6  CHURCH  PATRONAGE  3Ji 

<>L't  through  the  Coimnons  this  year.  Tlie  oj)})o.sitiou  of  tho.se  men 
will  force  a  counter-agitation  and  discussion,  and  the  more  of  this 
there  is  the  worse  for  them.  Their  real  wisdom  would  be  to  pass 
this  Bill  (juickly  and  have  done  with  it.  Its  real  defect  is,  not  that 
it  does  too  much,  but  that  it  does  too  little. 

"  However,  under  these  circumstances,  I  elect  to  wait  for  petitions 
until  next  year,  when  I  will  fairly  try  what  I  can  do  in  the  way  of 
sttimping  the  Church,  and  we  will  fairly  fight  it  out ;  and  then,  if 
I  am  beaten,  I  am,  and  no  more  about  it,  as  far  as  /  am  concernetl. 
You  can  tell  L.  the  facts  I  mention  as  to  the  natui-e  of  the  clause 
he  objected  to,  and  the  excision  of  it  from  the  Bill;  and  say,  at 
the  same  time,  that  /  am  in  no  hurry,  and  that,  if  they  think  it  for 
tlieir  interests  to  protract  this  contest,  /  can  wait,  and  have  no 
%\  ish  to  take,  or  seem  to  take,  an  unfair  advantage  of  the  clergy  in 
t'lie  matter." 

"Athen.sium  Club,  June  3,  1875. 

"  I  am  staving  with  Mr.  Rathbone,  the  Radical  member  for 
Liverpool,  and  meeting  at  his  house  all  manner  of  heterodox  folk. 
Sir  W.  Law^on,  Sir  W.  Harcourt,  Sir  C.  Dilke,  all  dined  with  us 
last  night,  and  a  very  pleasant  party  we  had.  Fawcett  and 
(Gladstone  are  to  dine  on  IMonday  next.  It  is  really  a  curious 
experience  meeting  such  antagonistic  elements,  and  noting  the 
amount  of  effervescence  that  follows. 

"  I  go  down  to  Peterborough  on  Saturdav,  and  come  up  on 
IMonday  for,  I  hope  and  trust,  the  third  reading  of  this  Aveary 
Biil.  I  feel  like  a  very  little  boy  holding  on  to  a  very  big  kite 
that  is  dragging  him  about  and  nearly  off"  into  space.  I  wish  I 
were  off"  for  my  holidays,  and  you  too.    We  both  want  it." 

"  June  10,  1875. 

"My  Bill,  as  you  say,  went  down  to  the  Commons  with  fairly 
flving  Colours.  I  refrained  from  scarifying  Houghton  and  Somerset, 
greatly  against  my  own  wish,  but  partly  in  deference  to  the 
entreaties  of  the  Archbishop,  and  partly  because  the  Peers  wanted 
to  go  to  dinner,  and  partly  because  I  wanted  to  give  as  much  the 
air  of  unanimity  and  good  will  to  its  departure  to  the  other  House 
as  I  could.    It  will  not  pass,  I  think,  this  session." 

"Peterborough,  July  1,  1875. 
"  I  fear      are  not  likely  to  meet  now  before  my  departure  for 
Wales,  unless  vou  come  to  me.    I  go  to-morrow  to  Haileybury  to 
VOL.  n.  c 


34 


AUCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XII 


see  my  son  Willie  and  be  at  their  speech-day ;  and  Saturday  I 
spend  in  town  for  sundry  small  affairs.  On  Tuesday  I  go  to 
]\Iears  Ashby,  Wellingborough,  for  a  churchyard  consecration,  and 
on  Wednesday  to  West  Iladdon,  near  Rugby,  for  ditto.  I  hope 
to  be  back  here  on  Thursday,  unless  something  very  urgent  turns 
up  at  Convocation,  and  to  stay  until  Monday,  12th,  when  we  start 
for  Anu'oth  Castle,  near  Tenby,  M  here  we  have  pitched  our  tent 
until  September  27,  and  where  I  have  to  indite  my  charge  and 
recruit  my  health. 

"I  mean  deliberately  to  avoid  Convocation  if  possible  just  now. 
The  time  for  consultation  and  compromise  is  past ;  the  time  for 
action  has  come,  and  we  must  each  of  us  bishops  judge  and  act  for 
himself.  The  whole  drift  of  discussion  now  in  Convocation  is 
purely  mischievous.  I  am  resolved  not  to  commit  myself  bv  any 
utterances  on  the  vestment  question,  on  which  I  may  now  at  any 
moment  be  called  on  to  act  as  a  judge. 

"  The  Lower  House  will  probably  carry  their  recommendation  for 
episcopal  permissive  veto  of  vestments,  and  our  House,  if  we  have 
a  grain  of  sense  left  us,  will  refuse  to  accept  it ;  but  I  do  not  wish 
to  take  part  in  a  discussion  in  which  it  would  be  impossible  to 
avoid  saying  many  things  which  are  better  left  unsaid  just  now. 

"  The  Archbishop's  Bill  I'elating  to  ecclesiastical  fees  is  to  be  in 
committee  to-morrow  night ;  he  has  never  once  consulted  us  about 
it.  I  should  have  to  say  this  and  something'  more  in  the  House  of 
Lords  if  I  were  there,  and  so  I  shall  stay  away.  Unless  my  vote  is 
absolutely  required,  therefore,  to  prevent  some  dangerous  concession 
as  to  vestments,  I  will  stay  away  altogether  from  deliberations 
which  can  do  no  good  and  may  do  much  harm." 

"  Peterborough,  July  4,  1875. 
"  My  suit  against  a  criminous  clerk  is,  I  ain  sorry  to  say,  now  in 
full  progress.  The  Commission  is  to  sit  in  about  three  weeks.  Oh, 
that  I  could  find  'a  lodge  in  some  vast  wilderness."'  The  only 
lodo-es  now  to  be  had  are  Masonic  and  shootiii<^  lodg-es,  the  former 
too  cheap  and  nasty,  the  latter  too  dear,  for  !)ishops.'' 

"Amroth  Castle,  Tenby, 

"September  2,  1875. 

"  I  am  glad  to  hear  your  flourishing  accouiil  of  yourself  and  your 
belongings  after  your  vacation.  ]\Iine  has  not  been  an  equal 
success.  This  place  is  expensive,  dull,  and  uninteresting;  no 
scenerv  save  that  of  the  shore  and  sea,  which  soon  pall  on  you  ;  no 


IS74-76 


CHURCH  PA  TliONA  GE 


inland  walks  or  objects  of  attraction,  and  a  very  relaxing  climate. 
I  have  felt  the  influence  of  all  this  terribly  on  my  charge,  which  I 
have  only  this  day  finished;  I  could  not  give  my  mind  to  it,  and 
yet  I  could  not  give  it  up  and  enjoy  my  holidays.  I  seemed 
strangely  languid  and  below  par  all  through  this  summer.  I  ought 
to  have  gone  to  Switzerland  or  the  Tyrol  instead  of  daundering 
about  the  shore  here — uKtwv  -rrapd  Q'lva. 

"  However,  the  charge  is  done,  flabby  and  long  and  unsatisfactory 
as  it  is ;  and  I  have  yet  three  weeks  to  try  and  get  myself  up  for 
coining  work." 

"  September  15,  1875. 

"I  am  not  able  to  take  your  prescription  of  more  bracing  air,  as 
I  am  rather  tied  here  by  the  London  printer  and  the  slips  of  my 
charge.  How  I  wish  that  the  said  charge  were  never  to  be 
required  of  bishops !  I  am,  however,  in  perfect  health,  and,  they 
tell  me,  getting  stout ;  but  I  feel  that  I  wanted  bracing  and  have 
not  got  it.  I  must  only  work  on  now  until  next  year,  and  try  a 
little  foreign  travel  without  the  worry  of  a  charge.  I  fear  the  said 
charge  will  be  like  a  pill  for  the  toothache  I  used  to  take  long  ago 
— half  butter  and  half  pepper. 

"  I  have  dealt  rather  sharply  with  some  of  my  critics  anent  the 
Patronage  Bill,  and  shall  have  bracing  enough  presently  in  the  way 
of  an  east  wind  of  pamphlets  and  letters.  What  a  hornets''  nest  he 
kicks  over  who  tries  to  reform  abuses,  and  especially  clerical  abuses  ! 
The  clergy  being,  like  women,  safe  from  all  physical  consequences  of 
their  speech,  use  it  accordmgly." 

"Peterborough,  February  1,  1876. 

"  I  go  to  Uppingham  on  Satiu-day  to  hold  an  ordination  on 
Sunday  of  one  candidate.  I  mean  to  leave  that  for  London  on 
^Monday  7th  for  Parliament  and  Convocation.  I  shall  be  probably 
absent  for  a  fortnight. 

"The  weather  just  now  looks  squally  for  the  Church.  The 
Archbishop  has  cut  the  ground  from  under  our  feet  as  regards  the 
Burials  Bill  by  his  unfortunate  and  ill-timed  utterance  at  Canter- 
bury. He  so  entirely  believes  in  Parliament,  and  so  entirely 
ignores  the  clergy,  that  he  is  really  becoming,  with  all  his  noble 
qualities  and  great  practical  sagacity,  a  great  jjeril  to  the  Church. 
He  regards  the  clergy  as  a  big  Sixth  Form,  and  the  outer  woi'ld  as 
the  parents  and  trustees  of  the  big  school,  the  Church,  and  acts 
accordingly.  He  and  our  dear  brother  of  Lincoln,  with  his  ultra- 
clerical  sympathies  on  the  other  side,  have  between  them  pretty 


36 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XII 


nearly  carried  the  Burials  Bill.  Neither  of  them  in  the  least 
realises  the  effect  on  the  imagination  of  men  of  the  acts  of  those  in 
power ;  and  yet  "  C^est  Vimagination  qui  gouverne  le  monde^''  wa.s 
Napoleon's  wise  saying.  I  get  sadder  and  sicker  every  year  as  I 
witness  the  Church  buying  her  Sibylline  books,  each  year  at  a 
higher  price.  Her  bankruptcy  is  far  nearer  at  hand  than  country 
parsons  and  Erastian  archbishops  dream.  I  feel,  too,  so  helpless 
to  do  any  good.  Were  I  not  an  Irishman — or  rather  Irish  Univer- 
sity man — I  might  perhaps  be  listened  to.  But  there  is  a  calm, 
quiet  ignoring  of  all  non-English  University  men  by  those  who  are 
so,  which  I  am  only  beginning  to  understand.  We  outer  barbarians 
are  supposed  really  to  know  nothing  of  English  Church  affairs. 
The  result  is,  I  am  regarded  as  a  Celtic  Cassandra  amongst  mv 
brethren,  when  I  talk  of  what  is  coming  as  surely  as  I  am  writing 
this,  and  nearly  as  fast  too.  I  shall  live  to  have  my  revenge  as  a 
prophet  by  my  disestablishment  as  a  bishop. 

"  We  shall  have  an  Ecclesiastical  Fees  Bill  in  the  first  week  of 
the  session,  brought  into  the  Lords  by  the  Archbishop.  It  con- 
tained a  clause  actually  giving  Penzance  a  preference  share,  in  the 
shape  of  a  guaranteed  salary  out  of  the  Fee  Fund ;  while  all  the 
other  offices  were  left  to  their  chance  of  what  the  fund  might  yield, 
pro  rata !  It  would  have  set  the  clergy  all  fairly  mad  !  Two  or 
three  of  us  who  saw  this,  insisted  on  it  being  struck  out,  and  succeeded 
accordingly ;  and  now  the  Bill  has  a  decent  chance  of  passing,  and 
at  any  rate  will  have  a  decent  appearance  when  we  bring  it  in." 

"Athen^um  Club,  February  7,  1876. 

"We  are  to  have  a  bishops'  meeting  to-morrow  to  reconsider 
the  Fees  Bill.  I  find  very  timid  counsels  urged  on  the  Archbishop 
not  to  proceed  with  this  Bill  unless  he  can  secure  the  active  support 
of  Government.  That  is  to  say,  to  announce  the  utter  uselessness 
of  bishops  in  the  Lords.  I  trust  that  he  will  hold  firm.  I  am 
quite  tired  of  creeping  into  Cairns'  pockets.  It  is  quite  time  for 
the  episcopate  to  have  a  mind  and  to  show  that  it  has  one,  and  in 
this  case  it  actually  has  one,  mirahile  dictu !  I  mean  to  say  this 
to-morrow  '  if  occasion  should  be  given,  and  need  should  require.' 

"  I  had  a  letter  from  Walpole  lately,  renouncing  charge  of  my 
Bill,  avowedly,  because  it  allows  parishioners  a  voice  in  the  selecting 
of  pastors,  which  it  does  not,  only  a  right  of  objecting  on  defined 
grounds,  and  secondly,  because  it  interferes  with  sales  of  advowsons 
and  presentations,  with  which  it  in  no  way  meddles.  Really,  because 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PA  7  HON  A  GE 


37 


liis  clerical  constituents  have  been  threatening  him !  Really  and 
truly  the  conduct  of  the  clergy  on  this  question  is  very  dis- 
creditable. 

"  The  reform  of  patronage  which  they  really  want  is  one  in  the 
intex-est  of  the  clerical  ordei-,  securing  better  promotion,  not  one  in 
the  interests  of  the  parishioners  or  the  Church,  securing  better 
men.  I  am  very  sick  of  the  whole  thing.  The  editor  of  the 
Gtiai'dian  is  privately  urgent  with  me  to  'go  on ' ;  and  he  has 
earned  the  right  to  advise  by  vei'y  loyal  support  all  through  last 
\  ear.  But  how  am  I  to  '  go  on,'  when  I  can  get  no  man  to  take 
up  the  question  in  the  Commons  ;  and  when  it  would  be  obviously 
absurd  to  re-introduce  the  Bill  in  the  Lords  ?  Truly  we  are 
coming  very  fast  to  the  condition  in  which  Captain  Parolles 
represented  the  Duke's  army  as  being,  when  he  said  that  there 
were  ten  thousand  of  them  ;  but  that  one  half  of  them  '  dare  not 
shake  the  snow  from  off  their  cassocks  lest  they  shake  themselves 
to  pieces ! ' 

"  I  am  beginning  almost  to  long,  I  have  been  for  some  time 
looking,  for  Disestablishment.  It  will  very  nearly  di'own  us ;  but 
it  will  kill  the  fleas. 

"  Fancy  an  archdeacon  gravely  writing  to  us  a  solemn  appeal 
against  the  Fees  Bill  because  it  abolishes  apparitors  !  these  being, 
in  his  sapient  judgment,  '  most  valuable  officers.'  After  that  I 
expect  to  hear  a  proposition  from  somebody  for  the  rebuilding  of 
Noah's  ark. 

"  However,  I  need  not  give  you  any  more  of  my  soeva  indignatio. 
I  ought  to  have  been  the  editor  of  a  Radical  newspaper,  instead  of 
being  a  Conservative  bishop.  You  ought  to  have  been  the  bishop ; 
and  oh  !  how  I  should  have  pitched  into  you  as  the  indignant  Rector 
of  Walgrave ! 

"  To-morrow  we  don  Barons'  robes  and  hear  the  Queen ;  and  in 
a  day  or  two  I  may  have  some  news  to  give  you." 

To  Mrs.  Magee. 

" '  Mason's,'  Northampton, 

"Sunday,  February  21,  1876. 

"  I  am  quietly  resting  after  my  two  sermons,  and  have  a  few 
cjuiet  moments  to  tell  you  how  all  has  fared  since  I  came  here. 

"  The  Mission  seems,  by  the  account  of  all  engaged  in  it,  and 
even  by  its  half  hostile  critics  in  the  anti-Church  press,  to  have 
been  a  marvellous  success.    The  churches  hei-e  have  been  crowded 


38 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


to  overflowing  at  every  service,  and  great  numbers  have  come 
who  had  never  entered  any  place  of  worship  before.  The  whole 
muss  of  the  people  seem  deeply  and  strangelv  stirred ;  and  that  by 
no  remarkable  eloquence  of  the  missioners,  who  arc,  none  of  them, 
very  ,  famous  or  eloquent  men  ;  but  simply  by  earnestness  and 
faithfulness,  and,  as  far  as  I  can  learn,  by  great  and  diligent  pains 
taken  by  the  clergy  beforehand. 

"  I  addressed  a  large  gathering  of  woi'king  men  yesterday,  in  a 
foundry  in  the  suburbs  near  the  railway  station.  They  were  most 
attentive  and  reverent.  This  morning  !•  preached  in  the  temporary 
church  at  Farcotton — a  large  barn  fitted  up  as  a  church.  It  was 
filled  to  the  verv  windows,  and  the  worship  was  hearty  and  earnest. 

"  This  afternoon  I  saw  a  remarkable  sight — fifteen  huntlred  men 
— and  men  only — in  St.  Katherine's  Church.  Most  of  them 
working  men.  Hundreds  had  gone  away  unable  to  obtain  ad- 
mittance. I  was  very  tired.  But  the  sight  inspired  me,  and  I 
])reached  to  a  most  silent  and  attentive  audience  for  forty-tive 
minutes.  Certainly  the  Mission  is  a  great  fact,  and  has  done  me 
good,  I  trust,  as  well  the  people. 

"  I  am  fairly  well,  and  not  much  tired  now.  I  have  two 
addresses  to  give  to-morrow,  and  then  Confirmations  and  Church- 
yard Consecration  on  Tuesday.  "  W.  C.  P.^' 

In  November,  1875,  Dr.  Nevin,  the  Chaplain  of  the  American 
Church  in  Rome  wrote  the  following  letter : 

I  am  highly  gratified  to  hear  that  you  Avill  be  with  us,  and  preach 
for  us,  on  the  occasion  of  the  consecration  of  "  St.  Paul's-within-the 
walls,"  as  our  church  begins  to  be  popularly  called.  I  answer  at  once 
that  your  sermon  shall  be  assigned  to  Sunday,  26th  March,  as  you  wisli. 
....  On  page  222  "  History  of  the  Episcopal  Cluu-ch  in  America  " 
(Bishop  Wilberforce)  it  is  stated  that,  in  1787,  on  Sunday,  the  4th  of 
FebruaiT,  in  the  archiepiscopal  chapel  of  Lambeth,  the  two  pi-esbyters 
William  White  and  Samuel  Provoost,  of  the  Church  in  America,  were 
consecrated  bishops  by  the  two  Archbishops  and  the  Bishops  of  Bath 
and  Wells  and  Peterborough  .... 

The  Bishop  started  on  March  14,  with  two  of  his  daughters,  for 
Home  to  fulfil  his  engagement  there.  One  English  and  two 
American  bishops  took  part  in  the  consecration  ceremony,  a  fitting 
})ublic  testimony  to  the  communion  between  the  two  Churches. 
The  Bishop  and  his  party  then  went  to  Venice  and  returned  after 
an  absence  of  little  moi  e  than  a  month. 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


39 


To  J.  C.  MacDoxxki.i.. 

"  RowsLEY,  April  26,  1876. 

"I  want  very  much  to  have  a  talk  with  you  about  the  Irish 
mode  of  deahng  with  glebe-houses  and  dila[)itlations.  I  expect  to 
be  examined  before  the  Select  Committee  of  the  House  of  Commons 
now  sitting,  and  want  to  bring  forward  my  plan  of  renting  glebe- 
houses,  and  freedom  from  all  dilapidations,  and  this  is,  I  think, 
the  Irish  plan  now.    Can  you  tell  me  anything  about  it  ? 

"  I  know  nothing  of  the  haute  politique  either  of  Church  or  State, 
as  I  have  not  been  to  headquarters  since  my  return.  We  are,  I 
suppose,  as  usual,  drifting'  and  getting  nearer  and  neai'er  to  our 
Niagara;  Cantuar  at  the  helm,  quite  satisfied  that  a  good  strong 
iM-astian  wind  from  St.  Stephen's  is  carrying  us  steadily  and  safely 
along,  the  crew  mutinying,  and  the  deck  cargo  of  antiquated 
abuses  shifting  perilously  ;  while  no  one  dares  so  much  as  to  put  a 
pennyworth  of  tar  in  the  yawning  seams  in  the  ship's  side ;  or,  if 
any  one,  like  my  unlucky  self,  ventures  to  propose  this,  he  is  straight- 
way heaved  over  as  a  Jonah. 

"  There,  that  is  a  pleasant  sketch  of  the  good  ship,  Church  of 
England  ;  becalmed  oft'  Disestablishment  point,  and  drifting  on 
shore  in  a  strong  current.  By  our  special  artist ;  who  is  also,  yours 
ever  affectionately,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

"  Athen.-eum,  May  4,  1876. 

"  I  never  remember  such  weather,  nor,  I  think,  does  any  one  else. 
Not  merely  cold  and  wintry,  but  in  some  way  atmospherically  and 
organically  unhealthy.  We  had  a  nairow  escape  at  Rome.  Of 
the  two  American  bishops,  who  took  part  in  the  church  opening ; 
one  has  nearl}  died  of  typhoid  fever,  and  the  other,  besides  being- 
ill  himself,  has  lost  a  son-in-law  of  fever,  after  a  fortnighfs  illness. 
Rome  seems  to  have  suffered  from  meddlino-  with  its  drainao'e.  No 
wonder  after  2500  years  (  I  put  £  because  I  ha\e  been  before  a 
committee  all  day  on  £  s.  d.  as  to  Dilapidations)  of  exci-etorial 
deposit.  '  Imperial  C«sars  dead  and  turned  to  clay  left  the  river 
and  cloaca  in  a  very  pestiferous  state  before  they  departed.  But 
Italy  is  becoming  most  malarious  in  all  its  cities  ;  and  I  am  thank- 
ful to  be  safe  at  home  from  my  visit  there. 

"  I  have  spent  three  hours  to-day  before  a  Select  Committee  of 
House  of  Commons  on  Dilapidations.  I  found  them  very  reason- 
able and  fairly  intelligent  for  men  dealing  with  an  unfamiliar 


40 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XII 


subject.  I  think  that  they  rather  inclined  to  niv  theory  of  an 
annual  payment  and  no  dilapidations.  I  confess  I  was  gratified  at 
liearing  the  chairman  announce  that  sundry  clerical  witnesses  had 
testified  to  the  'fairness  and  mildness''  of  my  administration  of  the 
Act.  I  suspect  that  some  of  my  brethren  have  left  this  too  much 
to  secretaries  and  surveyors ;  and  ha\  e  put  too  little  of  rule  of 
tliumb  into  their  administration. 

"  I  am  glad  you  are  coming  to  us  on  the  16th  inst, 
"  I  return  home  to-morrow,  to  return  here  next  week  for  Con- 
vocation." 

"Peterborough,  May  14,  1876. 

"  I  am  purposely  avoiding  the  debate  to-morrow  night.  I  cannot 
fight  Lord  Granville  and  the  Lower  House  of  Convocation  at  the 
same  time.  The  clergy  have  gone  mad  on  the  eve  of  the  political 
battle ;  and  I  do  not  care  to  fight  in  the  van  of  a  line  of  mad 
elephants,  whose  tusks  will  be  through  me  then  and  afterwards, 
while  I  am  trying  to  face  their  adversaries. 

"  The  Lower  House  of  Convocation  has  outdone  itself  in  senseless 
and  gratuitous  bigotry  and  episcopophobia ;  and  I  am  really  too 
diso-usted  and  disheartened  to  be  the  advocate  of  the  clerav  in  a 
place  where  all  their  foolish  utterances  will  be  cast  in  my  teeth.  I 
have  paired  against  this  resolution.  More  I  cannot  do  ;  so  we  will 
have  a  quiet  evening,  and  I  will  '  insinse '  you  into  the  stupid, 
profitless  history  of  this  last  week  in  Convocation. 

"  W.  C.  P." 

The  following  letter  on  Ecclesiastical  Prosecutions  was  written 
by  the  Bishop  to  the  Times : 

Sir, — "An  English  Churchman,"  in  your  columns,  challenges,  and,  I 
think,  completely  refutes,  the  claims  advanced  by  certain  of  the  clergy 
"  that  the  Church  of  England  shall  govern  herself  in  spiritual  matters 
without  any  interference  from  the  secular  authoi'ity."  He  does  so  by 
showing — what  every  student  of  ecclesiastical  histoiy  knows  perfectly 
well — that  the  State  has  repeatedly  interfered  by  way  of  legislation  in 
the  spiritual  matters  of  the  Church  of  England.  Whatever  may  be 
said  of  this  as  a  matter  of  principle,  it  is  undoubtedly  a  matter  of 
historical  fact.  It  would  seem  to  follow  from  it  that  those  who  accept 
benefices  in  a  Church  whicli  has  for  centuries  accepted  and  submitted 
to  such  legislation  ai-e  not  exactly  free,  so  long  as  they  retain  their 
benefices,  to  refuse  obedience  to  all  laws  wliich  have  been  so  enacted. 
The  claim,  however,  of  these  gentlemen  for  freedom  from  secular 


1874-76 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


41 


interference  in  spiritual  matters  goes  a  good  de.il  beyond  the  denial  of" 
right  of  secular  legislation  for  the  Church.  It  goes  to  the  denial  of  any 
right  of  secular  interprelalioH  of  the  laws  of  the  Church.  Mr.  Tooth,  in 
his  present  manner  of  conducting  divine  service  in  his  church,  is  not 
merely  denying  the  right  of  Lord  Penzance  to  inhibit  him  ;  he  is 
inhibited  because  he  had  previously  disobeyed  the  interpretation  of 
the  law  of  the  Church  given  by  the  final  Court  of  Appeal.  Tliis 
disobedience  is  justified  by  many  of  Mr.  Tooth's  party  among  the 
clergy,  on  the  ground  that  they,  as  "spiritual  persons,"  will  not,  and 
ought  not  to,  obey  the  decision  of  any  secular,  or,  as  they  like  to  term 
it,  "  State-made  court "  whatever.  I  have  no  doubt  that  these  gentle- 
men are  actuated  by  the  loftiest  of  motives  in  the  view  which  they 
thus  take  of  their  position  as  presbyters  of  the  Christian  Church.  I 
fear,  therefore,  that  they  will  regard  as  very  low  and  utterly  secular 
the  view  which  I  ask  leave  to  present  to  them  of  their  position  as 
beneficed  clergymen  of  the  Churcli  of  England.  It  is,  however,  I  can 
assure  them,  a  view  which  is  taken  by  a  good  many  plain-tliinking 
countrymen  of  theirs  at  this  moment.  It  is  simply  tliis — that  they  are 
claiming  to  hold  property  by  law,  and  at  the  same  time  to  defy  and 
denounce  the  law  by  virtue  of  which  they  hold  it.  Every  beneficed 
clergyman  in  the  Chui'ch  of  England,  by  law  established,  j)ossesses 
certain  rights  of  a  very  secular  kind  indeed.  He  has,  for  instance,  a 
freehold  right  in  his  benefice  and  vicarage,  and  he  possesses,  in  riglit 
of  his  benefice,  certain  endowments,  as,  for  instance,  rent,  i-ent-charge, 
tithe,  Easter  dues,  and  the  like.  In  the  possession  and  enjoyment  of 
these  he  is  secured  by  certain  "secular"  laws  wliich  give  him  the 
authority  to  defend  and  enforce  his  rights  respecting  them  on  all  and 
sundry  by  the  interference  of  secular  courts  of  law,  and  further,  if  need 
be,  by  the  aid  of  secular  bailiffs  and  policemen.  The  whole  authority 
and  power  of  the  State,  in  shoi't,  is  placed  at  his  disposal  for  the 
enforcement  of  his  legal  rights.  It  is  so  placed,  however,  upon  one 
very  clear  and  express  condition — viz.,  that  he  shall,  "in  public  prayer 
and  the  administration  of  the  Sacraments,  use  the  form  prescribed  in 
the  Book  of  Common  Prayer  and  none  other."  It  was  on  the  faith  of  a 
solemn  promise  and  contract  to  this  effect  that  each  one  of  these 
"  spiritual  persons "  obtained  admission  to  the  temporalities  of  liis 
benefice. 

Now,  if  any  parishioner  of  any  one  of  these  gentlemen  were  to 
refuse  to  pay  him  his  tithe  or  rent-charge  on  the  ground  that  such 
payment  was  (as  a  great  many  parishioners  nowadays  assert)  the  result 
of  an  undue  "  interference  of  secular  authority  in  spiritual  matters,"  he 
would  veiy  soon  find  his  pastor  would  have  no  scruple  of  conscience  as 
to  invoking  against  him  the  secular  authority  of  "a  State-made  court " 
for  his  breach  of  the  conditions  on  which  he  received  his  joroperty- — 


42 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP,  xn 


namely,  that  it  was  chargeable  with  certain  payments  to  the  incumbent 
of  his  parish.  Maj-  I  ask,  then,  whether  the  parishioner  has  not 
precisely  the  same  right  to  invoke  the  "  interference  "  of  the  same 
"  secular  authority  "  to  compel  the  incumbent  to  fulfil  the  conditions 
on  which  he  received  his  property — namely,  that  he  shall  perform 
divine  service  in  his  parish  church  according  to  the  rites  and  ceremonies 
of  the  Church  of  England,  and  not  according  to  such  rites  as  he  may 
please  to  evolve  out  of  his  inner  consciousness  for  himself  as  a  pi'iest  of 
tlie  Holy  Catholic  Church?  And  if  this  be  so,  has  not  the  State  the 
same  right  and  "  authority  "  to  try,  in  a  secular  court,  the  question 
whether  the  clergyman  has  or  has  not  fulfilled  the  contract  by  \drtue 
of  which  he  holds  his  benefice,  that  it  has  to  try  the  question  of  the 
fulfilment  of  any  other  contract  whatsoever  ?  What,  in  short,  is  the 
much  abused  "  Aggrieved  Parishioner"  doing,  who  sues  his  incumbent 
in  a  "  State-made  court,"  but  suing  for  breach  of  contract  ?  And  if  so, 
what  is  the  meaning  of  all  this  outcry  against  "secular  interference  in 
spiritual  matters "  ?  Do  those  who  make  this  outcry  really  suppose 
tliat  clergymen  of  the  Church  of  England  alone  of  all  other  Englishmen 
are  to  be  allowed  to  possess  property  by  secular  law,  and  to  enforce 
against  their  fellow-citizens  by  ''secular  authority"  all  the  rights  and 
privileges  incident  to  such  possession,  and  nevertheless  are  to  be 
completely  exempt  from  all  aj)peal,  on  the  other  hand,  to  secular  law 
to  compel  them  to  dischai-ge  those  duties  on  condition  of  discharging 
which  they  have  obtained  their  property  ?  If  this  be  the  "  freedom 
from  the  interference  of  secular  authority  in  matters  spiritual  "  claimed 
by  certain  of  the  clergj',  I  fear  they  are  not  likely  to  get  it  so  long  as 
there  is  any  law,  or  secular  authority  to  enforce  law,  left  in  England. 
If  it  is  not  this  that  they  claim,  would  they  have  the  goodness  to  say 
distuictly  w  hat  it  is  ?  A  Perplexed  English  Citizen. 


CHAPTER  XIII 


THE  TEMPERANCE  QUESTION;  ECCLESIASTICAL 
PROSECUTIONS 

There  have  been  very  sharp  controversies  about  the  Bishop  of 
Peterborough's  action  and  sayings  upon  the  temperance  question. 
Controversies,  in  the  first  instance,  as  to  what  he  cUd  say  ;  and  then 
as  to  the  truth  or  propriety  of  his  words.  It  seems  better  to  treat 
of  this  subject  once  for  all,  and  collect  into  one  chapter  some  of 
the  Bishop's  utterances,  and  the  connnents  of  his  opponents  upon 
them. 

The  Bishop  was,  throughout  his  episcopate,  a  consistent  and 
earnest  advocate  of  temperance  societies,  with  a  strong  preference 
for  the  Church  of  England  Temperance  Society.  What  he  advo- 
cated in  public  he  practised  in  private.  He  often  would  not  touch 
wine  in  aiiv  form  till  his  day's  work  was  done  ;  and  if  he  took 
anything-  it  was  a  little  claret  and  water.  He  was  at  variance  with 
nianv  of  the  advocates  of  temperance,  not  about  their  objects,  but 
about  the  legislative  measures  which  they  proposed  for  attaining 
their  objects.  He  was  from  the  first  a  decided  opponent  of  the 
Permissive  Bill  or  "  Local  Option,""  as  it  is  sometimes  called.  The 
occasion  which  connnenced  all  this  controversy  was  a  speech  delivered 
in  the  House  of  Lords  upon  the  Intoxicating  Liquor  (Licensing) 
l}ill,*  in  which  he  said  : 

I  entirely  agree  with  the  noble  lord  who  preceded  me  (Lord 
Houghton)  as  to  the  mischief^  and  I  would  even  say  the  absurdity,  of 
the  Permissive  Bill.  I  believe  such  a  Bill  would  be  not  only  absurd, 
but  mischievous,  and  that  it  would  tend  to  exasperate  all  the  difficulties 
of  this  question  ;  that  in  towns  where  it  was  most  needed  it  would  be 
inoperative,  and  that  where  it  was  most  operative  it  would  be  least 
needed.  It  proceeds  on  this  most  vicious  political  principle — that  the 
tyranny  of  a  mere  majority,  not  of  representative  men,  but  counted 

*  May  2,  1872. 


44< 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XI II 


merely  from  door  to  door,  slioukl  govern  any  people.  Such  a  principle 
is  most  pernicious.  I  hold  it  is  the  right  of  Englishmen  to  be  governed 
by  the  Estates  of  the  Realm  sitting  in  Parliament,  not  by  a  haphazard 
majority  collected  by  agitation  and  canvassing.  This  is  one  of  the 
dangers  of  all  democracy — it  ignores  the  rights  and  privileges  of  the 
minority  as  against  the  majority ;  and  therefore  I  believe  the  tendency 
of  all  modern  legislation  ought  to  be  towards  protection  of  the  rights 
and  privileges  of  minorities.  Therefore  I  entertain  the  strongest 
dislike  to  the  Permissive  Bill.  I  cannot,  perhaps,  express  it  in  a 
stronger  form  than  by  saying  that,  if  I  must  take  my  choice — and  such  it 
seems  to  me  is  really  the  alternative  offered  by  the  Permissive  Bill 
— whether  England  should  be  free  or  sober,  I  declai-e,  sti'ange  as  such 
a  declaration  may  sound  coming  from  one  of  my  profession,  that  I 
should  say  it  would  be  better  that  England  should  be  free  than  that 
England  should  be  compulsorily  sober.  I  would  distinctly  prefer 
freedom  to  sobriety,  because  with  freedom  we  might  in  the  end  attain 
sobriety ;  but  in  the  other  alternative  we  should  eventually  lose  both 
freedom  and  sobriety.  But,  though  I  am  strongly  opposed  to  the 
Permissive  Bill,  I  do  wish  that  the  ratepayers  should  have  some  voice — 
not  an  absolute  and  sole  voice,  but  some  voice — in  the  regulation  of 
the  liquor  traffic. — "Speeches  and  Addresses,"  pp.  119-120. 

These  words  involved  the  Bishop  in  much  controversy.  The 
words  "England  free  or  England  sober""  were  torn  from  their 
context  and  quoted  with  approbation  or  censure  by  both  the 
opponents  and  advocates  of  the  Permissive  Bill ;  and  with  equal 
unfairness  by  both.  Rightly  understood  (and  it  seems  hard  to 
express  his  meaning  more  plainly  or  guard  it  more  carefully)  these 
M  ords  connnend  themselves  to  every  Englishman.  Quoted  by  frag- 
ments, and  twisted  to  suit  the  purpose  of  reckless  partisans,  they 
were  made  to  contradict  their  original  purpose  and  meaning.  As  the 
Bishop  said  in  a  speech  in  the  House  of  Lords  on  June  30,  1876 : 

When  the  subject  of  temperance  was  brought  before  your  lordships 
on  a  former  occasion,  I  obtained  an  unexpected  and  undesirable 
notoriety  in  consequence  of  an  observation  I  then  made.  As,  however, 
I  retain  veiy  strongly  the  opinion  I  then  expressed,  I  fear  I  must  incur 
still  further  unpopularity  by  stating  that  my  opinion  is  unchanged — 
rather  strengthened — by  what  I  have  heard  since.  Nothing  but  a 
very  deep  conviction  of  the  soundness  of  those  opinions  would  induce 
me  to  incur  fresh  unpopulai-ity  by  repeating  them  on  the  present 
occasion.  I  then  ventured  to  say,  not  as  a  simple  and  genei'al  proposi- 
tion, that  I  preferred  freedom  to  sobriety,  as  if  there  were  any  natural 
antagonism  between  freedom  and  sobriety,  and  as  if  a  man  could  not 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


45 


at  the  same  time  be  perfectly  free  and  perfectly  sober,  but  that  if  I 
should  ever  be  compelled  to  make  my  choice  between  freedom  and 
sobriety,  then  in  that  case  I  should  prefer  freedom.  I  never  could 
support  unwise  or  injudicious  legislation  which  tended  in  the  direction 
of  suppressing  freedom,  even  if  by  that  legislation  were  gained  the 
advantage  of  sobriety.  We  might  gain  this  advantage  of  sobriety  by 
imprisoning  every  man  and  woman  and  keeping  them  on  bread  and 
water  but  that  would  be  a  degree  of  interference  with  the  liberty  of 
the  subject  which  would  induce  the  strongest  advocate  of  temperance 
to  say  he  preferred  freedom  to  sobriety. — "  Speeches  and  Addresses," 
pp.  123-124. 

Those  who  wish  to  see  a  fuller  statement  of  the  Bishop's  object- 
tions  to  the  Permissive  Bill  ought  to  read  the  part  of  this  speech 
beginning  with  the  following  words  : 

It  would  be  out  of  order  to  discuss  a  Bill  not  before  your  lordships, 
but  I  have  been  a  great  deal  taken  to  task  by  the  advocates  of  the 
Permissive  Bill — who  reserved  all  their  intemperance  for  their  speeches 
— and  I  should  therefoi'e  like  to  say  in  a  few  words  why  I  oppose  this 
measure. — "Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  126. 

But  the  Bishop  was  worried  to  the  end  of  his  days  by  misrepre- 
sentations of  his  words ;  and  even  since  his  death  they  have  not 
been  forgotten.  In  an  article  in  the  Contemporary  Revieio  for 
October,  1892,  written  by  Archdeacon  Farrar,  in  which  he  shows  a 
full  appreciation  of  Bishop  Magee's  genius  and  character,  he  hai-ps 
in  the  end  upon  the  epigram  of  England  drunk  or  sober  as  a 
''^  flittering  sophism,''''  as  a  form  of  words  which  it  is  so  "  difficult  to 
disentangle,  and  so  impossible  to  maintain  when  it  is  disentangled ; 
as  involving  a  radical  falsity,  and  even  an  interlinked  concatena- 
tion of  many  falsities."  I  would  rather  say  of  it  what  the  Bishop 
himself  said  in  another  speech  at  Northampton  ("  Speeches  and 
Addresses,"  p.  135),  that  so  far  from  "  being  a  startling  proposition 
this  seems  like  an  obvious  truism." 

I  so  far  agi'ee  with  the  Archdeacon  that  "the  form  of  the  Bishop's 
epigi'am  would  have  been  much  better  avoided"  ;  and  so  thought 
the  Bishop  himself  in  the  light  of  subsequent  experience. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  AXHEN^UM,  July  17,  1876. 

"I  am  very  glad  you  so  much  approve  of  my  reply  to  Bishop 
Abraham. 


46 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIII 


"If  7/o«  did  not  understand  the  ground  of  my  objection  to  the 
Permissive  Bill,  it  is  clear  that  multitudes  besides  must  have  mis- 
understood it  too.  And  this  will  make  me  more  patient  of  what 
seemed  to  me  the  jiersistent  misrepresentation  of  many  of  the 
advocates  of  the  Bill.  At  any  rate  I  have  now  made  clear,  I  think, 
to  all  reasonable  men,  what  it  was  I  really  meant.  AVhcther  that 
is  right  or  wropg  is,  of  course,  another  question. 

"  I  am,  as  you  may  suppose,  deluged  with  letters,  vituperative 
and  otherwise,  from  men  who  seem  to  have  -water  on  the  brain  so 
badly  as  to  be  incapable  of  understanding  the  simplest  argument. 
— Yours  in  much  haste,  and  deliquescent  heat,  ever  affectionatelv, 

"  W.  C.  Peteuboeolgh." 

"Peterborough,  July  21,  1876. 

"  I  have  offered  Eydon  to  Chapman,  and  St.  Luke's,  Leicester,  to 
Flood  of  Northampton.  I  shall  still  have  to  find  an  active  young 
man  for  Flood's  small  incumbeucv  at  Farcotton,  Northampton — 
i?150  a  year,  no  house,  and  hard  work. 

"  However,  I  am  at  last  getting  my  preferment  list  out  of  the 
haphazard  condition  in  which  I  found  it ;  and  filling  my  best 
livings  with  middle-aged  or  elderly  men,  and  my  poor  and  toilsome 
ones  with  young  men,  to  be  moved  on  in  their  turns.  LTiis  is  a 
svstem  that  never  seems  to  have  occured  to  Bishop  Davys,  nor, 
probably,  to  Bishop  Jeune.  But  it  has  enabled  me  to  make  thirty- 
seven  appointments  out  of  the  seventy-two  in  mv  gift  in  eight 
years,  and  thus  to  increase  greatly  the  circulation  of  the  diocese." 

"  !MuLGRAVE  Cottage,  Whitby, 

"August  3,  1876. 

"I  was,  like  yourself,  much  shocked  by  the  news  of  's  death, 

and  the  manner  of  it.  I  was  not,  however,  surprised  by  the  fact 
of  suicide,  under  the  circumstances.  Lung  diseases,  when  severe, 
not  uncommonly  terminate  in  delirium.  The  venous  blood,  unoxy- 
genated  from  the  inaction  of  the  lungs,  goes  poisoned  to  the  head, 
and  produces  the  same  effect  as  the  delirium  of  intoxication  or 
drowning.  I  have  known  two  cases  of  a  similar  kind ;  one,  that 
of  a  man  dying  of  decline,  who  knew  he  had  not  a  week  to  live,  and 
was  in  a  perfectly  resigned  and  even  happy  frame  of  mind,  but  w  ho 
suddenly  destroyed  himself  in  an  access  of  delirium.  The  strange 
thing,  however,  to  me  has  always  been — why  delirium  or  insanity 
should  so  often  take  the  suicidal  or  even  the  homicidal  direction. 
The  latter  may  be  perhaps  the  reversion  of  the  man  to  the  original. 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


47 


merely  anivial  type ;  the  brute,  which  alas  is  in  us  all,  acting  out 
its  brutal  instinct  of  destruction  unrestrained  by  reason.  But  why 
suicide?  No  animal  ever  connnits  suicide  except  man.  There 
seems  to  be  no  instinct  to  cause  it.  It  is  a  strange  fact  in  our 
human  nature,  and  an  awful  one.  Not  that  a  sane  man  should 
destroy  himself;  once  remove  the  check  of  belief  in  a  future  life,  or 
even,  perhaps,  because  of  that  belief  in  some  cases,  and  I  can 
imagine  nothing  more  natural  and  sane  than  suicide.  But  why 
should  delirium  or  insanity,  not  acting  on  reason  but  impulse,  tend 
to  self-destruction This  always  seemed  to  me  to  open  a  glimpse 
into  the  spiritual  world  around  us ;  and  gives  me  always  strong- 
reason  to  believe  in  the  action — purely  malevolent — of  evil 
spirits. 

"  The  first  chapter  of  Job  is,  I  suspect,  not  all  parable  or  poetry 
either.  As  to  good  men  being  allowed  to  suffer  such  assaults,  it 
does  not  seem  to  me  more  difficult  to  understand  than  the  fact  of 
good  men  being  exposed  to  murder  at  the  hands  of  bad  ones. 

"  —  was  a  good  man,  if  ever  there  was  one ;  but  that  would 
not  have  hindered  a  bad  man  from  killing  him  ;  why  then  shoukl 
it  have  hindered  an  evil  spirit  from  moving  him  unconsciously  to 
destroy  himself.'' 

"  God  help  and  keep  us  all.  How  little  do  we  imagine  all  that 
may  be  around  us  as  well  as  in  us,  of  evil  and  danger,  bodily  and 
spiritual. 

"  We  are  here,  a  party  of  twelve,  including  four  school-boys ; 
two  of  the  Percivals  having  come  with  us.  So  vou  may  suppose  we 
are  crowded,  hungry,  and  noisy  ;  but  nevertheless  happy.  Best 
love  to  all  yours." 

"  MuLGRAVE  Cottage,  Whitby, 

"August  ig,  1876. 

'■^  Best  thanks  for  your  well-timed  and  well-written  letter.  It  is 
exactly  what  I  should  have  w  ished  to  have  been  said ;  and  it  is, 
besides,  very  tactical. 

"  I  had  not  seen  last  week's  Leicester  Journal ;  it  having  been, 
oddly  enough,  the  only  one  which  has  not  reached  me.  But  I  fully 
anticij)ated  howls  more  or  less  prolonged  and  acute.  I  agree  with 
you,  that  those  in  Leicester  whom  I  have  so  materially  aided  ought 
to  say  a  word  in  my  defence.  But  I  never  expect  gratitude  ;  and 
after  all,  nothing  they  could  say  could  silence  the  Blaby  and 
Countesthorpe  bowlings.  There  is  no  feeling  stronger  in  English 
life  than  parochial  jealousy.    It  is  more  intense  even  than  that  of 


48 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


counties ,  and  these  appointments  are,  therefore,  always  at  first 
intensely  unpopular ;  and  in  this  case  the  unpopularity  is  enhanced 
by  the  Countesthorpe  Home  Rulers.  However,  I  have  two  great 
comforts  in  the  case. 

"  (1).  The  thing  is  done. 

"  (2).  I  am  sure  I  did  right. 

"After  that  I  must  just  wrap  my  cloak  round  me,  under  the 
shower  of  newspaper  abuse ;  helped,  howevei',  by  the  loan  of  vour 
fi"iendlv  umbrella  of  '  fact.' 

"We  are  greatly  enjoying  our  holidays  here;  and  it  is,  as  the 
Scotch  say,  '  a  far  cry '  from  this  to  Blaby-cum-Countesthorpe. 

"  I  am  glad  you  have  Richard  with  you. 

"  I  find,  year  after  year,  the  increasing  pleasure  of  one''s  boys 
becoming  companions  and  not  merelv  playthings  or  cares. 

"  ^Ve  have  a  boat  here,  and  fish  and  bathe  largely." 

"It  just  occurs  to  me,  that  if  the  apportionment  of  part  of  the 
means  of  Blaby  to  poor  parishes  be  '  disendowment,'  equally  so  is 
every  augmentation  or  new  parochial  endowment  granted  by  the 
Ecclesiastical  Commissioners. 

"  These  are  all  of  them  nothing  else  than  '  apportionments '  of 
means  from  episcopal  and  capitular  endowments  to  poor  parishes. 
Equally  so  are  the  first-fruits  to  Queen  Anne's  Bomity.  I  presume 
that  if  Blaby  had  been  a  poor  parish,  it  would  not  have  objected, 
on  the  score  of  principle,  to  endowments  from  the  above  sources. 
You  may  remember,  perhaps,  how  Sydney  Smith  denounced  the 
whole  Ecclesiastical  Commission  on  this  very  ground  of  '  spolia- 
tion." 

"  This  is  a  point  which,  if  you  were  to  continue  yom-  con-e- 
spondence,  you  might  perhaps  work  to  ad\  antage."" 

"  MuLGRAVE  Cottage,  August  28,  1876, 

"  We  are  very  quietly  vegetating  here ;  the  late  cold  and  rough 
weather  rather  having  interfered  with  amusements  of  all  kinds, 
and  especially  with  boating.  A  northerly  or  a  south-easterly  wind 
raises  a  very  heavy  and  dangei'ous  surf  here.  Just  now  it  is  raining 
heavily. 

"I  do  not  think  that  I  told  you  that  I  was  invited,  and  declined, 
to  preside  at  the  Social  Science  Congress  at  Liverpool  in  October 
next.  I  was  rather  tempted  to  accept.  But  I  confess  that  I  shi'ank 
from  sacrificing  the  best  part  of  my  vacation  to  composing  the 
opening  address  for  said  Congress.    A  charge  once  in  thi-ee  yeai's  is 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS  49 

({uite  eiioiio-h  for  one  who  is  no  writer ;  ami  who  detests  '  Hterary 
composition'  of  all  kinds. 

"  I  do  trust  that  either  Plunket  or  Ueichel  may  save  the  Irish 
Church  from  the  ridicule  of  numherin<>;  amonost  her  bishops. 

"  The  Evanji-elicals  certainly  love  to  invite  brambles  to  be  king.s 
over  them  ;  but  is  a  bramble  who  cannot  even  produce  black- 
berries. Plunket  would  make  a  respectable  and  ])opular  bishop  ; 
Ueichel  an  able  and  un})opular  one ;  vniless  recognition  and  pros- 
perity soften  him  as  repression  and  adversity  have  probably  some- 
what hardened  him." 

"  MuLGRAVE  Cottage,  Whitby, 

"September  i8,  1876. 

"  I  doubt  if  the  whole  history  of  democracy,  rife  as  it  is  with 
instances  of  passionate  injustice,  supplies  a  grosser  one  than  the  cry 
against  the  Ministry  of  the  last  three  weeks. 

"  Heaven  knows  the  Turk  is  bad  enough,  but  he  is  no  worse  now 
than  he  was,  and  was  knoran  to  be,  twenty-four  years  ago,  when  the 
English  nation  hissed  Prince  Albert  because  he  doubted  the  wisdom 
of  our  fighting  for  him. 

"  I  detest  massaci'e,  but  I  detest  nearly  as  much  the  dishonesty 
of  making  political  capital  out  of  it ;  and  I  am  disgusted  with  the 
blatant  and  mischievous  nonsense  that  our  platform  spouters  are 
uttering  at  every  meeting  on  a  cjuestion  of  which  they  know  abso- 
lutely nothing. 

"We  have  just  returned  fi'om  a  short  visit  to  William  of  York, 
a  very  pleasant  one.  I  think  I  saw  in  my  intercourse  with  the  great 
man  evidence  that  he  very  little  realises  the  present  critical  state 
of  things  in  the  Church.  Archbishops,  I  su])pose,  do  get  into  that 
balloon  into  which  bishops  are  accused  of  getting  now  and  then. 
But  it  is  certainly  a  misfortune  at  this  moment  to  have  two  Primates 
nearly  alike  in  Church  views,  and  singularly  alike  in  their  want  of 
imagination,  and  therefore  of  })ower  of  sympathy  with  others  or 
anticipation  of  events. 

"Add  to  this  a  curiously  like-minded  Lord  Chancellor,  put  these 
three  on  the  judicial  committee  to  decide  the  burning  question  of 
the  day,  and  you  have  an  awkwai'd  conjunction  of  planets  from 
which  to  cast  the  horoscope  of  the  Church." 

"  Peterborough,  October  21,  1876. 

"  I  had  a  very  satisfactory  reply  to  my  letter  from  the  Archbisho}> 
of  Canterbury.    He  is  as  easy  to  move  in  })riyate  as  he  is  hard  to 

VOL.  n.  D 


50 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


move  in  public.  He  has  written  to  Cairns  enclosing  niy  letter, 
and  evidently  thinks  it  better  to  delay  the  hearing  of  appeals,  as 
I  suggested.  The  persuading  of  Cairns,  however,  is  a  very  different 
matter.  I  have  stirred  up  others  of  my  brethren,  therefore,  to 
write  to  Cantuar  and  W.  Eboi",  in  the  hopes  that  their  letters  also 
may  go  on  to  Cairns,  and  kec])  him  from  going  on. 

"  You  have  probably  seen  Cowie's  and  Talbofs  letters  in  this 
week's  Guardian.  I  fully  expect  now  that  the  hearing  will  be 
delayed ;  but  the  provoking  thing  is  that  Cantuar  and  Ebor 
should  have  needed  all  this  '  opening  of  their  eyes '  to  w  hat  is  so 
very  obvious  and  serious  a  danger.  That  is,  however,  just  the  fault 
of  both  ;  neither  has  a  particle  of  imagination,  and  without  that 
there  can  be  no  foresight. 

"  The  result  in  this  case  will  be  that  the  delay  will  be  attributed 
to  the  remonstrances  of  Dickenson  and  Cowie  and  Talbot  and  Co. ; 
and  the  Archbishop  and  we  also  get  the  credit  of  being  '  willing  to 
wound,'  but  at  last  '  afraid  to  strike.'  This  comes  of  having  a 
ruler  who  is  not  a  leader.  I  foresee  great  mischief  coming  of  this, 
for  the  episcopate  first  and  ultimately  for  the  Church.  I  am  getting 
very  rebellious  in  consequence,  and  may  soon  attempt  local  '  auto- 
nomy,'' in  my  own  diocese  at  least. 

I  saw  Disney  at  Stamford,  and  have  arranged  to  be  with  him  at 
5  P.M.  by  train  from  Leicester,  where  I  sleep  the  night  before, 
having  to  preside  at  a  temperance  meeting  in  the  evening! 

You  see  Plunket  goes  to  Meath ;  on  the  whole,  a  fair  appoint- 
ment, and  a  merciful  esca})e  from  .    Henry  Jellett  was  fourth 

in  the  running,  with  twenty-one  clerical  and  thirty-three  lay  votes. 
He  is  asked  to  preach  three  sermons  before  the  University  of  Cam- 
bridge, and  wants  to  get  oft' ;  but  I  will  not  let  him ;  he  must  be 
foi'ced  to  the  point. 

"I  got  home  late  last  night  from  Leicester,  being  detained 
on  the  road  by  a  train  which  had,  they  said,  '  got  loose  on 
the  line.'    Fancy  a  train  on  the  rampage  ! " 

"  Peterborough, 

"  November  4,  1876. 

"  You  see  that  the  appeal  cases  are  '  unavoidably  postponed.' 
1  am  having  a  rather  interesting  con-espondence  with  Shaw  Stewart, 
one  of  the  joint  authors  of  the  late  protest  in  the  Guardian  on  the 
subject.  Words  cannot  express  his  bitterness  against  the  Arch- 
bishops, and  he  evidently  speaks  for  his  party." 


J876-77 


TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


51 


To  J.  G.  TAT.iiOT,  Esq.,  :VI.P. 

"The  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"  October  ig,  1876. 

"  Dkar  ^h\.  Tai.hot, — I  have  just  read  in  the  Guardian  your 
and  Mr.  Shaw  Stewart's  letter  relating  to  the  appeals  pending  in 
the  Court  of  Judicature. 

"  The  subject  has  by  no  means  escaped  the  attention  of  those 
who,  like  myself,  have  to  carry  out  the  decision  of  the  Court ;  and 
strong  representations  have  been  ere  this  made  upon  the  subject. 

"I  have  good  reason  to  believe  that  these  have  been  very  favour- 
ably considered  in  the  quarter  to  A\  hich  they  were  addressed.  But 
I  think  it  probable  that  the  difficultv  to  be  overcome  lies  in  the 
■lai/  rather  than  in  the  ecclesiastical  portion  of  the  new  court ;  and 
that  at  this  moment  the  ecclesiastical  portion  mav  need  to  be 
strengthened  in  opposing  what  I  agree  with  you  in  regarding  as 
a  most  disastrous  course  for  the  peace  and  even  stability  of  the 
Church.  May  I  therefore  venture  to  suggest  that  a  jjrivafe  remon- 
strance, strongly  worded,  should  be  addressed  by  yourself  and  Mr. 
Stewart — possibly  by  others — to  the  Archbisho]3  of  Canterbury  ? 
I  should  think  it  more  than  probable  that  such  a  remonstrance 
would  reach  other  eyes  than  his,  and  have  good  effect  at  this 
moment.  May  I  venture  to  add  that  I  think  this  likelv  to  be 
more  effectual  than  public  letters,  which  sometimes  have  the  effect 
of  hai'dening  the  purpose  of  men  of  strong  will,  and  making  them 
refuse  to  yield  to  denunciation  (or  what  they  mav  regard  as  denun- 
ciation) what  they  might  yield  to  private  remonstrance  ? 

"  I  trust  to  your  known  love  for  the  Church,  and  for  her  peace 
at  this  juncture,  to  forgive  the  freedom  of  this,  and  am  very  faith- 
fully yours,  "  W.  C.  Petekbokouc;!!.'''' 

"P.S. — I  have  no  objection  to  Mr.  Shaw  Stewai't  seeing  this 
letter  conjiclentialhj,  if  you  think  it  worth  showing  to  him. 

"W.  c.  p." 

From  J.  G.  Talbot,  Esq.,  M.P. 

Falconhurst,  Eden  Bridge,  Kent, 

Sunday,  October  22,  1876. 

Dear  Bishop  of  Peterborough, — I  need  not  say  that  I  am  very 
much  obliged,  not  only  for  the  very  interesting  letter  you  have  sent 
me,  but  for  the  confidence  of  which  it  is  a  proof. 

I  will  do  what  I  can,  in  conjunction  with  my  co-signatories,  to  carry 


52 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIII 


out  your  suggestions.  I  use  the  plural  because,  as  you  will  see  in  the 
next  Guardian,  it  was  only  by  a  slip  that  Lord  Devon's  name  did  not 
appear  also ;  and  I  hope  I  have  acted  in  the  spirit  of  your  permission 
by  showing  your  letter  also  to  him. 

I  am  a  little  puzzled  as  to  what  points  to  insist  on  in  a  private  letter 
to  the  Archbishop,  but  I  suspose  I  shall  not  be  doing  wrong  if  I 
confine  myself  to  two  : 

(«)  The  undesirability  of  hasty  decision  if  there  is  any  hope  of 

arrangement ;  and 
(6)  The  wisdom  of  leaving  the  appointment  of  assessors  till 
Parliament  shall  have  had  an  opportunity  of  pronouncing 
upon  the  mode  of  their  selection. 
If  you  have  any  further  suggestion  to  make,  I  shall  be  very  grateful 
for  it,  and  probably  the  letter  will  not  go  to  the  Archbishop  for  two  or 
three  days. — Believe   me,  with  many  thanks,  yours  veiy  truly  and 
respectfully,  John  G.  Talbot. 

From  J.  A.  Shaw  Stewart,  Esq. 

13  Queen's  Gate,  London,  S.W.,  October  24,  1876. 

My  dear  Lord, — I  thank  you  very  sincerely  for  allowing  me  to  see 
your  letter  to  J.  G.  Talbot.  I  shall,  of  course,  preserve  its  strict 
privacy ;  but  I  am  indeed  thankful  to  know  that  at  this  most  critical 
juncture  your  lordship's  eloquent  and  powerful  voice  will  be  I'aised 
against  any  hasty  or  precipitate  action. 

It  is  well  that  those  in  authority  should  know  that  the  general  body 
of  clergy  who  may  be  affected  by  recent  legislation  look  upon  the  two 
Ai'chbishops  as  partisans,  and  they  would  consider  that  their  presence 
in  court  would  vitiate  any  judgment  that  might  be  delivered. 

The  recent  utterances  of  the  Primate  will  cause  many  sober-minded 
laymen  to  endorse  this  view. 

We  know  that  men  of  strong  will  and  statesmanlike  craft  will 
influence  and  bias  even  a  strong  court ;  and  we  trust  that  many  of  our 
fathers  in  God  will  awake  from  the  panic  and  scare  of  1874,  and  not 
implicitly  bow  before  and  accept  the  mandates  issuing  from  Addington 
and  Bishopthorpe. 

I  write  plainly  because  we  feel  strongly,  and  incalculable  harm  may 
follow  a  false  step  at  present. — I  am,  my  dear  lord,  very  faithfully 
yours,  J.  A.  Shaw  Stewart. 

To  J.  A.  Shaw  Stewart,  Esq. 

"  The  Palace,  Peterborough,  October  26,  1876. 
"My  dear  Sir, — I  have  to  thank  you  for  your  kind  reception  of 
the  suggestion  I  made  in  my  letter  to  Mi'.  Talbot. 


•  876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


53 


"  I  ain,  ill  coninioii  with  many  others  of  my  e))isco|)al  hrethreii, 
most  anxious  that  there  should  be  no  j)reci})itate  action  in 
respect  to  the  comiiio-  decision  on  the  ecclesiastical  appeals  now 
pending. 

"  I  am  not  without  hope  that  this  may  now  be  averted. 

"  I  am  only  too  well  aware  of  the  feelings  entertained  and 
expressed  by  many  of  the  clergy  of  one  school  in  the  Church 
respecting  the  Archbishops. 

"  I  deeply  regret  them,  because  I  believe  them  to  be  in  a  great 
degree  unfounded ;  and  the  constant  and  bitter  expressions  of  them 
to  be  mischievous,  in  more  wavs  than  one. 

"  If  there  be  a  tendencv  to  partisanship  in  any  man's  mind,  it  is 
hardly  likely  to  be  lessened  by  incessant  and  violent  abuse  on  the 
part  of  strong  partisans  on  the  other  side. 

As  regards  my  own  jiosition  and  that  of  my  brethren  of  the 
episcopate,  I  think  I  can  assure  you  that  there  is  not  and  has  not 
been  any  disposition  to  surrender  our  independence  of  thought  and 
action  in  matters  ecclesiastical. 

"  My  own  support,  for  instance,  to  the  introduction  of  the 
F.AV.R.  was  rendered  deliberately  though  reluctantlv  from  a 
conviction  which  I  still  entertain,  that  the  dangers  of  entirely 
unrestrained  license  were  greater  than  even  the  obviously  great 
dangers  of  some  measure  of  restraint ;  and  I  certainly  was  influ- 
enced in  my  action  then  by  no  servile  submission  to  any  superior 
authority. 

"  I  write  thus  frankly  in  reply  to  the  frank  expressions  in  your 
letter  (for  which  I  thank  you)  because  I  think  it  would  be  most 
imfortunate  that  an  impression  such  as  that  expressed  in  your 
letter  should  prevail  at  this  moment,  vh.,  that  the  bishops  had 
surrendered  themselves  to  any  dictation  from  either  of  the  (juarters 
you  refer  to. 

"  Such  an  impression  must  be  fatal  to  all  hope  of  peaceful 
solution  of  present  difficulties,  as  it  would  destroy  all  chance  of 
resort  on  the  part  of  the  clergy  to  that  fatherly  discretion  aiul 
governance  which,  in  disputed  cases,  the  P.W.R.  provides  for  ;  a 
provision  which  I  am  convinced  may,  if  wisely  availed  of,  do  more 
than  legal  decisions  to  ensure  peace  and  prevent  schism. 

"  I  have  no  need,  I  am  sure  from  the  tone  of  your  letter,  to 
ajjologise  for  the  freedom  or  the  length  of  this  letter,  and  I  am, 
my  dear  sir,  very  faithfully  yours, 

"  W.  C.  PeTK1!HOI{OL^GH." 


54 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


To  J.  G.  TAi.iiOT,  Esq.,  M.P. 

"  The  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"October  26,  1876. 

"  Mv  DKAii  Mi!.  Talbot, — I  am  sincerely  glad  to  hear  the  news 
you  gave  me  of  the  postponement  of  the  P'olkestone  case.  I  wish 
with  you  that  the  interval  thus  obtained  might  be  used  in  the 
interests  of  peace.  I  fear  that  it  may  only  be  used  in  '  getting 
ready  for  war.'  If  only  both  sides  would  agree,  hc/brc  the  judgment 
is  issued,  to  accept  it  as  final,  and  obey  it,  zohen  called  on  to  do  so^ 
there  would  be  peace.  But  I  fear  this  is  only  tantamount  to  saying 
that  if  all  men  were  reasonable  and  peaceable  there  would  be  no 
war.  And  yet  I  can  see  no  other  way  out  of  our  present  diffi- 
culties, save  the  enacting  of  an  entirely  new  Ornaments  Rubric  by 
the  Church  in  Convocation,  which  should  be  liberal  and  compre- 
hensive and  yet  definite.  This  was  what  I  proposed  nearly  twa 
years  ago,  and  carried  a  resolution  in  favour  of  in  the  Upper  House 
of  C'onvocation.  It  was  however  violently  denounced  by  extreme 
men  on  both  sides  then ;  and  Convocation  has  since  done  nothing 
in  this  direction. 

"  To  attempt  this,  after  the  judgment  shall  have  again  exasperated 
men's  minds  on  one  side  or  the  other,  is,  I  fear,  hopeless.  Nothing 
therefore  seems  left  to  the  friends  of  peace  save  acquiescence  in  the 
last  word  of  the  Law  Courts.  I  wish  I  saw  a  better  outlook  for 
the  Church  than  this,  but  I  do  not. — Yours  most  truly, 

"  W.  C.  PETKUliOKOU(;H." 

To  J.  A.  Shaw  Stkwakt,  Esq. 

"  The  Palace,  Petf.rborough, 

"  November  i,  187G. 

"  My  DEAH  Siu, — Before  replying  to  your  letter  let  me  thank 
you  for  its  plainness  of  speech. 

"  We  bishops  so  seldom  receive  such  a  token  of  respect  that  we 
prize  it  all  the  more  when  it  is  given  us. 

"  J'or  the  most  part  we  find  that  plain  speech  respecting  us  is 
used  o/" rather  than  to  us.  The  result  is  that  opportunities  of  frank 
explanation  such  as  that  given  by  your  letter  are  I'arely  afforded 
us.  Let  me  avail  myself  of  that  \\hich  you  have  now  afforded 
me. 

"  Your  view  of  the  position  and  motives  of  the  episcopate  is,  I 
fear,  that  of  many  others,  and  tends,  I  fear,  to  influence  their  action 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


55 


ill  matters  of"  moment  to  the  Church.  I  believe  it  to  he  a  very 
mistaken  one.    Let  me  oive  you  what  I  regard  as  a  mucli  truer  view. 

"  And  first,  as  to  the  position  of"  the  late  liishop  ^Vilberf"orce. 
It  was  undoubtedly  one  of"  connnanding  power  and  influence 
amongst  his  episcopal  brethren  as  in  the  Church  at  large.  AVhether 
it  was  not  too  much  so  for  the  good  of  the  Church  may  be  doubted. 
I  myself  believe  that  it  led  him  to  trust  too  much  to  his  own  great 
power  of  personal  influence  to  keep  all  parties  in  stable  e{[uilibrium 
forgetting  that  such  power  must  die  with  himself,  and  that  in  the 
long  run  the  Church  must  be  rided  by  law  antl  not  by  the  personal 
influence  of  great  prelates. 

"  I  kiunc  that  in  his  latter  days  he  was  beginning  to  suspect  the 
mistake  he  had  made  in  this  respect. 

"  He  expressed  to  mvself  more  than  once  great  uneasiness  at  the 
growing  lawlessness  of  the  clergy,  and  his  belief  that  some  legis- 
lation would  be  necessary  to  restrain  it. 

"  My  last  conversation  with  him,  a  few  days  before  his  death, 
was  to  this  eff"ect. 

"  He  was  beginning  to  see  that  even  his  tolerance  and  catholicity 
was  being  abused,  and  that  he  was  being  manugrd  by  those  whom 
he  had  believed  that  he  was  rnanug'mg'. 

"  I  greatly  doubt  therefore,  whether,  had  he  lived,  he  would  have 
opposed  the  introduction  of  some  such  measure  as  the  P.W.R. ; 
though  doubtless  he  would  have  left  his  mark  upon  it  in  Pai  lia- 
ment. 

"  (2)  As  regard  the  ejnscopate  and  the  two  Primates : 
"  Pardon  me  if  I  say,  that  your  idea  of  a  timid  and  yet  ambitious 
episcopate  half  awed  into  submission  by  the  Priniates,  half  tempted 
to  silence  by  hopes  of  becoming  primates  in  their  turn,  and  alto- 
gether thus  '  outgeneral  led  by  the  statecraft''  of  their  chiefs,  is 
purely  mythical.  I  do  not  know  anywhere  a  more  independent 
body  of  men  than  the  English  ej)iscopate ;  and  as  to  hopes  of  the 
{)rimacy,  I  cannot  of  course  gauge  the  hearts  of  other  men,  I  can 
only  judge  them  by  my  own ;  and  I  can  truly  say  that  never — 
even  as  a  dream — has  such  a  thought  crossed  my  mind.  Assuredly 
it  has  never  prevented  me  from  difl"ering  with  or  (as  you  may 
perhaps  remember)  opposing  and  defeating  the  Primate  in  Parlia- 
ment when  I  felt  it  my  duty  to  do  so. 

"  I  am  persuaded  that  I  am  not  more  single-minded  than  my 
brethren  in  this  respect,  as  indeed  their  conduct  on  the  ([uestion  of 
appeals  to  the  Primates  under  the  P.\\Ml.  sufficiently  proves. 


56 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xm 


"I  wish  vcrv  much  that  those  who  like  vourself" arc  in  a  position 
to  influence  others  could  once  for  all  dismiss  this  idea  of  a  cowed 
and  '  out-generalled  episcopate "  caucussed  (with  but  few  exceptions) 
into  tame  submission  bv  two  craftv  and  strong-minded  chiefs.  It 
is  not  only  unjust  to  them  and  to  us,  but  fatal  to  all  really  cordial 
and  therefore  useful  relations  between  us  and  a  large  body  of  loyal 
Churchmen,  such  as  yourself. 

"  Prav  believe  that  when  the  bishops  act  with  the  Primates  it  is 
because  thev  agree  with  them ;  and  that  when  and  where  they 
differ  from  them  they  act  accordingh". 

3.  As  regai'ds  what  you  so  kindly  sav  of  myself  and  mv  position 
amongst  mv  brethren,  I  fear  that  vou  have  greatly  over-estimated 
both.  But  were  mv  influence  even  tenfold  gi"eater  than  what  vou 
rate  it  at,  I  could  never  realise  your  wish  that  I  should  'champion'' 
any  one  party  in  the  Church. 

"  I  do  not  really  and  entirely  belong  to  any  one  Chmx-h  party, 
and  as  the  result  I  am  pretty  evenly  abused  bv  each  in  turn. 

"  I  am  of  no  other  party  than  that  of  the  Church  of  England,  as 
I  find  her  in  her  Prayer-book  and  her  history.  I  tolerate — I  hope 
htrgrhj — all  that  even  bv  a  stretch  of  charity,  I  can  fairly  see  to 
be  within  these  limits.  I  am  idtcrhj  intolerant  of  all  on  any  side 
that  goes  beyond  them. 

"  Now  I  cannot  even  with  the  utmost  charitv  help  seeing  that 
the  extreme  Ritualists  go,  and  avowedly  aim  at  going,  bevond  these 
limits. 

"  I  see  and  Icmnc  of  the  deliberate  adoption  of  dlstim  thj  Roman 
doctrines,  practices,  rites,  ceremonies,  devotions  and  even  phrases 
and  turns  of  expression.  I  see  this  joined  with  deliberate  and 
insulting  defiance  not  of  the  merely  legal  authority  of  bishops, 
but,  as  I  personally  know,  of  their  earnest  and  paternal  remonstrances 
and  entreaties,  far  more  frequently  resorted  to  than  we  are  given 
credit  for. 

"  I  see,  therefore,  clearly  and  plainly,  a  determination  on  the  part 
of  some  men  to  Romanise,  or,  failing  that,  to  revolutionise,  our 
Church.  I  see  too,  with  deep  pain,  the  great  historical  High 
Church  ]5arty — jiartlv  from  generosity,  partly  from  a  certain 
amount  of  theological  sympathy  with  what  they  regard  as  only 
exaggerations  of  their  own  views,  partly,  I  fully  own,  from  disgust 
at  the  fatuous  impolicy  and  bitterness  of  many  of  the  opponents  of 
these  men  who  strike  at  Hioh  Churchmen  through  them — more  and 
more  identifying  itself  with  men  w  ho  are  utterly  untrue  to  its  best 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


57 


traditions,  and  who  sneer  at  and  vilify  its  noblest  names,  and  scout 
its   miserable  AngTicdu'isni.'' 

"  Seeing  and  deploring  all  this  as  I  do,  I  cannot  identify  myself 
with — still  less  hope  to  lead  or  champion — those  High  Churchmen 
who,  though  themselves  truly  loyal  to  our  Church,  throw  their 
shield  over  those  whom  I  cannot  honestly  regard  as  loyal  to 
her. 

"  On  the  other  hand,  I  shrink  with  unconcealed  dislike  from  the 
vulgar,  bittei",  ignorant  Puritanism  that  is  engaged  in  the  persecu- 
tion of  these  men.  1  see  that  by  their  incredibly  foolish  attacks  on 
things  j)erfectly  harmless  and  dear  to  many  a  loyal  Churchman  (e.g:, 
the  eastward  position),  they  are  forcing  on  that  alliance  between 
the  High  Churchmen  and  the  extremest  Ritualist  which  a  common 
danger  naturally  impels  to. 

"  I  see  how  narrow,  how  schismatical,  how  uncatholic  is  their  line 
of  action.  I  have  opposed  it  and  denounced  it,  and  been  bitterly 
reviled  by  them  for  so  doing. 

"  But  I  see  also  one  thing  more,  that  in  this  bitter  strife  of 
parties  both  distrust  and  hate  the  bishops,  mainly,  I  do  believe, 
because  they  honestly  endeavour  to  be  just  to  both  in  turn. 

*'  I  see,  therefore,  how  hopeless  it  is  for  any  bishop,  who  icill 
not  be  a  party  man,  to  attempt  to  moderate  or  restrain  any 
party. 

"  I  can  only  endeavour  honestly  and  fairly  to  administer  our 
present  most  ambiguous  laws  and  imperfect  discipline  in  the  diocese 
over  which  I  am  called  to  rule ;  and  to  continue  to  do  so  when  the 
last  word  of  the  Law  Courts  shall  have  given  a  final  decision  on 
questions  which  can  now  unhappily  be  decided  in  no  other  way 
than  by  law  suits. 

"  No  one  can  now  })lay  the  role  of  Bishop  ^Vilberforce.  Were  he 
now  alive  he  could  no  longer  play  it  himself. 

"  Church  parties  are  now  so  embittered,  so  committed  to  inter- 
necine strife,  that  they  will  listen  to  no  voice  save  that  which  calls 
to  war. 

"  The  clergy  who  defied  their  bishops,  and  demanded  to  be 
governed  only  by  '  monitions  which  they  would  send  to  their 
lawyers,"'  must  now  abide  the  issue  which  they  have  deliberately 
challenged. 

"  Those  of  the  other  side  who  have  so  eagerly  rushed  to  law, 
rejecting  the  mediation  of  the  bishops  as  that  of  '  traitors  and 
fautors  of  Ritualism,''  nuist  submit  to  possibly  very  unexpected 


58 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


and  unwelcome  interpretations  of  the  law  to  which  they  are  so 
confidently  appealing. 

"  The  Church,  which  in  Convocation  refused  to  alter  disputed  and 
ambiguous  rubrics,  by  a  hair's  breadth,  must  now  see  their 

rubrics  os-si/icd  by  hard-and-fast  legal  interpretation,  when  they 
might  have  been  softened  by  wise  and  comprehemivc  legislation. 
And  quiet  and  peaceful  and  loyal  Churchmen  must  find  their 
liberties  abridged  by  the  results  of  litigation  which  they  neither 
invoked  nor  desired. 

"  The  end  of  all  this  is  neither  far  off  nor  hard  to  foresee  ;  '  nec 
vitla  )HT  roncdia  pati  poMi/mus"  sums  uj)  our  present  position;  and 
what  can  that  end  in  but  dhsohitioii  ?  When  that  comes  to  pass, 
men  will  of  course  bitterly  blame  the  bishops ;  when  its  history  is 
fairly  written  the  blame  will  be  more  fairlv  apportioned. 

"  Meanwhile,  we  must  only  nmc  each  follow  out  his  own  convic- 
tions in  doing  or  suffering  as  it  may  be.  We  cannot  cldoroform 
the  Church  for  the  coming  critical  operation  in  the  Law  Courts. 
Whatever  amount  of  '  shock '  may  result  to  the  patient,  it  is  quite 
certain  the  operation  will  take  place,  and  men  xooidd  '  have  it  so.' 

"  God  grant  us  all  a  better  issue  out  of  our  unhap})y  strife  than 
we,  any  of  us,  deserve. 

"  This  is  a  very  long  letter,  an  almost  cruel  revenge  on  you,  you 
will  say,  for  what  you  quite  needlessly  call  the  '  freedom '  of  your 
letter.  Let  me  venture  to  add  even  a  further  infliction  by  asking 
you  to  read  the  latter  portion  of  the  accompanying  charge,  in  which 
I  endeavoured  to  define  the  position  of  bishops  versun  rubrics  and 
Law  Courts.  May  I  ask  its  return,  as  I  ha\'e  no  other  copy  — 
Believe  me,  very  faithfully  yours,  "  AV.  C.  Peterhokough.'" 

From  J.  A.  Shaw  Stkwaiit,  Esq. 

13  Queen's  Gate,  London,  S.W,, 

November  8,  1876. 

Mv  DEAR  Lord, — I  have  delayed  answering  your  letter  of  the  1st, 
because  I  was  yesterday  to  meet  Lord  Devon  and  J.  G.  Talbot,  and  I 
think  you  will  be  glad  to  know  that  we  have  decided  at  present  to 
address  no  further  remonstrance  to  the  Archbishop.  The  object  we 
wished  to  attain,  vi~.,  the  avoidance  of  undue  haste,  seems  to  be 
gained,  and  we  thought  any  further  interfei'ence  might  only  tend  to 
irritate. 

Allow  me  to  thank  you  most  sincerely  for  the  very  kind  and  frank 
way  in  wliich  you  have  received  my  presumptuous  approaches. 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


59 


I  am  extremely  glad  to  have  read  carefully  the  manner  in  whicii  you 
address  your  clergy  on  the  Public  Worship  Act.  I  think  such  an  im- 
partial and  judicial  tone  will  go  far  to  make  it  a  sleeping  Act  in  your 
diocese  ;  and  such  paternal  treatment  will  do  more  to  quiet,  and  render 
sensible  and  amenable  the  extreme  men,  than  any  amount  of  threats 
or  coercion. 

I  fear,  my  dear  lord,  I,  like  many  others,  have  said  hard  things  of 
our  spiritual  rulers,  even  whilst  addressing  one  of  them.  May  I  end 
by  assuring  you  very  truly  how  grateful  I  feel  to  God  for  giving  us  in 
these  most  troublous  and  anxious  days  so  many  true-hearted,  devoted, 
self-denying,  and  thoroughly  Christian  and  fatherly  bishops,  as  are  to 
be  found  in  our  present  Episcopal  College  } — Yours  very  truly, 

J.  A.  Shaw  Stewart. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxkki.l. 

"  Peterborough,  December  5,  1876. 

"  I  intend  offering  Paston  to  Andrew,  the  rural  dean,  but  it  will 
be  but  a  })oor  gift.  A  curate  must  be  kept  to  reside  in  the  adjacent 
hamlet  of  Dogsthorpe,  and  this  will  reduce  Paston  to  very  little 
over  ij^SOO  a  year  and  a  house,  and  a  house  too  of  an  expensive 
kind  to  keep  uj).  Whom  I  am  to  find  to  fill  Andrew's  parish  of 
=^200  a  year  and  no  house,  and  Werrington,  ecjually  houseless, 
with  c£^220,  is  not  so  easy  to  say.  Subdivision  of  livings,  and  re- 
distribution of  Church  property,  is  fast  reaching  its  extreme  limit. 
The  Church  wants  some  new  i  lotli,  and  can  go  on  no  longer  pieceing 
and  turning  her  old  clothes. 

"  I  had  a  nice  letter  from  Plunket  in  reply  to  niy  congi-atulations  ; 
he  is  to  be  consecrated  at  Armagh  on  the  10th  inst. 

"  Our  great  crux  about  episco])al  assessors  is  at  last  settled,  and 
perhaps  in  the  best  way  ])ossible.  The  three  ex  ajficio  assessors, 
Cantuar,  York,  and  London,  sit  in  rotaiioii,  tt)gether  with  the  four 
junior  bishops.    This  will : 

"(1)  Exclude  Durham. 

"  (2)  Exclude  from  the  re-hearing  of  the  Purchas  case  its  princi[)al 
author,  W.  Ebor. 

"(3)  Give  the  Ritualists  Chichester  and  Ely, 
the  other  two  being  St.  Asaph  and  St.  David's ;  the  former 
knowing  as  nuich  about  the  subject  as  I  do  about  conic  sections, 
and  therefore  really  counting  for  nothing ;  the  latter  fairly  con- 
versant, as  things  go,  with  the  ritualistic  controversy,  and  rather 
High  Church  than  otherwise.    Altogether  it  is  a  very  fair  tribunal. 


60 


J  KCH BISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


and  the  Ritualists  will  make  a  false  move  in  the  game  if  they  refuse 
to  plead  before  it,  as  I  hear  rumours  of  their  intending  to  do. 

"  ^Vhen  I  remember  what  seemed  impending  in  October  last,  a 
judgment  before  the  court  was  fully  constituted,  with  Durham  for 
one  of  the  j  udges,  I  feel  as  one  of  the  officers  of  a  ship  j  ust '  clawed 
off""'  a  lee  shoi"e,  and  thankful  for  that  mercv,  even  though  there  is 
very  rough  weather  to  windward  still. 

"  Chiu'ch  Extension  at  Northampton  is  really  progressing  at  last, 
Laus  Deo !  Indeed,  thanks  to  God's  goodness,  this  year  1876  closes 
as  brightly  for  the  diocese  as  any  preceding  one,  and  more  so  than 
most  of  them.  I  do  really  bes'in  to  feel  as  if  I  were  g-ainino;  some 
hold  at  last  on  the  diocese,  and  seeing  some  fruit  of  my  Avork. 
Would  that  I  could  hope  that  the  storms  of  February  next,  blowing 
from  the  Judicial  Committee,  may  not  wreck  all  and  throw  us  into 
utter  strife  and  confusion.    Quod  Deii.s  avertat  J"" 

"  December  26,  1876. 

"  Thank  you  for  your  welcome  Christmas  letter.  We  have  all 
spent  our  Christmas  happily  and  peacefully  at  home  together,  un- 
troubled by  candidates,  who  were  all  ordained  and  away  on  Thurs- 
day last.  Christmas  Day  falling  on  a  ^Monday  necessitated  this 
abridgment  of  the  ordination  arrangements. 

"  I  am  rather  ])ainfully  struck  with  the  growing  ujncard  tendency 
of  the  said  candidates.  The  theological  training  colleges*  presided 
over,  for  the  most  part,  by  very  High  Churchmen,  are  rapidly 
turning  out  a  number  of  voung  .sem  'uiarjj  priests  ;  all  moulded  on 
the  same  pattern,  set  up  with  about  the  same  amount  and  kind  of 
reading,  and  using  the  same  party  shibboleths  and  catch-words, 
often,  of  course,  without  understanding  their  real  meaning. 

"The  English  Church  is  feeling  now,  and  will  long  feel  here- 
after, the  \\ant  of  a  University  Divinity  School  where  men  might 
have  been  trained  in  broad  daylight,  and  under  the  influence  of  the 
broad  free  thought  and  life  of  a  great  University,  by  men  who  had 
a  great  public  position,  and  whose  teaching  was  public  and  re- 
sponsible. 

"  These  little  darkened  side  chapels  of  theological  colleges,  Avhere 
esoteric  teaching  is  given  to  bands  of  selected  disciples,  will  work 
and  are  working  serious  mischief. 

"  I  hardly  know  how  to  deal  with  the  men  who  come  from  thein. 
Their  answers  to  my  doctrinal  (juestions  are  almost  always  within, 

*  See  also  letter  of  June  17,  i88g. 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUriONS 


61 


though  perhaps ///.vi;  within,  the  allowable  limits  of  tlie  Cluiivh  of 
Eiio-laiul  teaching  ;  and  when  they  are  not,  the  n)en  genei-ally  recant 
them  or  put  a  (^uite  orthodox  meaning  on  them,  with  even  too 
great  and  suspicious  alacrity.  Not  that  I  think  them  dishonest  in 
so  doing,  but  rather,  for  the  most  })art,  ignorant  of  the  real  nature 
and  tendency  of  their  own  opinions,  and  of  course  all  the  more  in 
danger  of  2;oin<>'  a  "'reat  deal  fui'ther  in  a  year  or  two  when  the 
catch-words  they  have  adopted  gradually  reveal  their  true  meaning 
to  them,  anil  they  are  too  far  committed  to  and  influenced  by  their 
use  of  them  to  be  startled  by  finding  out  the  real  meaning  of  all 
they  have  been  saying,  or  by  being  asked  to  follow  out  their  views 
to  their  legitimate  conclusions. 

"  All  this  bodes  a  rapid  growth  of  young,  hot-headed,  and 
ignorant  sacerdotalism,  to  be  followed  ultimately  by  sceptical 
reaction. 

"  I  wish  I  could  see  a  remedy  for  this,  but  I  do  not.  Sceptical 
knowledge  and  ignorant  pietism  seem  to  be  crystallizing  thought 
and  religious  life  in  England  around  them,  as  they  have  long  since 
been  doing  on  the  Continent.  However,  this  is  getting  a  long  way 
off*  from  Peterborough  and  Walgrave  Christmas  parties.  I  am  glad 
you  have  all  yours  round  you,  even  though  it  be  for  the  last  time 
for  at  least  some  years  to  come. 

"  This  flitting  of  the  fledged  younglings  from  the  old  bird's  nest 
is  very  trying  ;  and  yet  is  it  not  a  wisely  appointed  weaning  of  us 
old  folk  preparatory  to  our  final  flitting It  would  be  hard  to  be 
called  away  from  the  home  all  filled  with  the  light  of  dear  faces  and 
sound  of  dear  voices ;  but  when  the  light  is  gone,  and  the  voices 
hushed,  and  the  fire  low  on  the  hearth,  we  ai'e,  or  ought  to  be,  moi-e 
ready  to  rise  up  and  go,  and  leave  our  place  to  others. 

"  The  only  amari  aUqu  'id  for  me  of  the  closing  year  comes  in  the 
shape  of  a  correspondence  between  a  Leicester  attorney  (acting  on 
behalf  of  the  Countesthoi-jie  parishioners)  and  the  Ecclesiastical 
Commissioners. 

"  What  a  hornefs  nest  he  brings  about  his  ears  who  does  not 
'  let  things  be,'  however  bad  they  are,  but  nuist  needs  try  to  mend 
them  !  He  gets  all  the  stings,  and  any  honey  going  goes  to  those 
who  give  him  neither  thanks  for  the  honey  nor  pity  for  the  stings. 

"  As  a  solatium  for  all  this,  however,  Northampton  Church 
matters  are  very  hopeful.  I  ha\e  now  four  good  men  at  work,  or 
all  but  at  work,  in  each  of  my  four  new  parishes  ;  churches,  of  a 
sort,  in  two  of  them,  and  the  third  now  being  built. 


62  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xm 


"  The  boys  ave  delighted  at  the  thought  of  going  to  you  after  New 
Year's  Dav  or  week  ;  we  will  settle  the  day  soon.  I  wish  that  as  an 
old  boy  I  too  could  come  for  one  night  at  least.  Perhaps  I  may 
manage  it  about  January  11,  when  I  am  to  be  at  a  Church  Exten- 
sion ^Meeting  in  Northampton. 

"  With  all  best  and  kindest  Christmas  wishes  for  you  and  yours 
from  me  and  mine." 

"  Belvoir  Castle,  Grantham, 

"January  i6,  1877. 

"  You  will  have  seen  from  the  papers  that  the  extraction  of 
Tooth  "'oes  on.  I  wish  the  Church  could  be  chloroformed  for  the 
operation.  Out  he  must  now  come,  though  what  will  be  the  result 
on  the  patient  is  doubtful.  I  see  that  all  the  press,  save  the 
Satiirchiij,  is  against  Tooth  ;  and  even  the  Saturday  is  not  so  much 
Jbr  him  as  against  the  P.W.R. 

"  The  English  Church  Union  hold  their  great  demonstration 
to-night.  But  the  wind  has  been  greatly  taken  out  of  their  sails 
by  Loixl  Penzance's  speech  in  court  on  Saturday  last.  Still,  they 
ai'e  a  strong  body,  and  will  fight  hard.  Disruption  may  come  of 
it,  but,  I  think,  hardly  yet. 

"  We  have  a  little  Cabinet  Council  here — Gathorne  Hardy, 
Cross,  Lord  J.  ]VIanners,  S.  Northcote,  and  Dizzy's  private  secretary. 
Turner.  The  Cabinet  ]Ministers  seem  rather  uneasy  about  this 
wretched  Tooth  drawing ;  Hardy  especially,  who,  of  course,  hears 
a  good  deal  from  his  clerical  Oxford  constituency. 

"  I  hear  that  Liddon  and  others  of  the  High  Church  jiarty  are 
planning  a  series  of  calls  on  Tooth  in  prison  !  "What  childish  and 
yet  mischievous  folly  !  ^ 

"  Peterborough,  January  26,  1877. 

"I  thought  you  might  like  to  see  the  enclosed  from  Hassard. 
Put  it  in  the  fire  when  you  have  read  it.  The  I'ecent  rebellion  of 
the  English  Church  Union  against  all  action  of  the  Privy  Council, 
and  their  withdrawal  from  the  suit,  so  altered  the  position  of  the 
Archbishop  that  I  think  he  did  rightly  in  sitting  on  the  case.  If 
the  judgment  be  a  liberal  one,  his  concurrence  in  it  will  give  it 
great  weight,  and  tend  to  the  acquiescence  in  it  of  the  Low 
Churchmen,  who  are  just  now  left  out  in  the  reckonings  of  many, 
but  who,  in  the  end,  nuist  come  to  be  reckoned  with,  and  may 
prove  quite  as  troublesome  and  more  powerful  than  the  Ritualists. 

"I  touched  on  the  subject  at  our  rural  deans'  meeting  here  on 
Thursday,  urging  generally  the  wisdom  of  keeping  quiet  and  not 


1876  77        TEMPERANCE;  PROSECUTIONS 


63 


oetting  up  or  joining  in  manifestos  or  declarations  on  one  side  or 
the  other  just  now.  I  was  glad  to  find  this  suggestion  aeee])ted 
heartily.  Yard  tells  nie  there  is  a  split  in  the  Knglish  Church 
Union  on  the  (luestion ;  and  I  think  this  is  borne  out  by  the 
wording  of  their  resolutions,  which  are  as  full  of  ambiguous  com- 
promises as  the  litigated  rubrics  to  which  they  refer. 

"  Please  send  me  the  copy  of  the  '  National  Portrait  Gallery '  of 
which  you  speak.  I  have  not  seen  it.  I  have  little  doubt  that, 
whether  for  good  or  evil,  it  is  not  a  good  likeness.  But  I  am 
curious  to  see  myself  as  others  see  me. 

"  You  may  see  another  likeness  in  this  week's  Leicester  Journal, 
signed  Clericus,  anent  the  Countesthorpe  matter. 

"Willie  has  just  gone  to  school,  leaving  our  household  nearly  as 
small  as  vour  own.  It  is  melancholy  rather,  all  this  coming  and 
going ;  but  what  else  is  all  our  life,  until  we  reach  the  abiding  city  ! 

"  I  suspect  that  the  want  of  vigour  as  to  Donnellans  of  which 
you  complain  arises  from  the  fact  that  the  subject  has  grown  cold 
in  your  mind.  I  greatly  doubt  whether  any  man  ever  re-Mrote  his 
own  works  very  lovingly  or  successfully.  These  productions  of  ours 
must  be  struck  oft",  like  the  French  shoemaker's  little  boot,  'in  a 
moment  of  enthusiasm."  The  creative  fire  goes  out  afterwards, 
and  it  is  dull  work  raking  the  ashes.  I  suspect  you  would  find 
vigour  enough  if  you  took  up  a  new  line  of  thought. 

"  I  hope  your  thought  at  the  moment  is  clear  as  to  your  coming 
here  on  next  Monday,  and  staying  at  least  imtil  A\'^ednesday,  when 
I  may  go  to  town  to  see  the  eighty-ton  gini  fired  early  on 
Thursday  at  Shoeburyness,  to  which  function  I  am  invited  by  my 
wife's  cousin,  Harvey,  of  the  Artillery.  The  charge  \\  eighs  nearly 
a  ton,  and  /  have  a  fancy  for  big  charges — at  least,  so  savs  the 
Rocl:. 

"  My  friends  at  are  coming  out  with  a  grand  statement  of 

their  gi-ievances  against  me  and  W.,  their  vicar.  He  is  a  goose,  and 
they  are  regular  John  Bulls.  Between  them  they  have  got  the 
farm-yard  in  a  row,  and  I  find  it  hard  to  quiet  the  animals.  I 
cannot  '  make  summer  of  the  winter  of  their  discontent,"  as 
Shakespeai-e  has  it." 

"Peterborough,  February  15,  1877. 
"We  are  all  'waiting  for  the  judgment,''  like  the  rest  of  the 
Church.    And  it  was  the  universal  opinion  amongst  us  that  just 
now  there  was  nothing  else  to  be  done,  and  that  the  less  we  said 
the  better.    There  is  a  certain  amount  of  disintegration  going  on 


64 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


in  the  Eno-lish  Cluurh  Union,  and  very  little  enthusiasm  for  Tooth  ; 
and  we  thought  that  any  intermeddling  by  us  just  now  might  only 
check  the  former  and  stimulate  the  latter,  and  so  we  agreed  to  a 
'masterly  inactivity"  until  Easter  next,  when  the  'judgmenf  will 
appear.  No  one  can  predict  its  nature.  But  the  Aix-hbishop 
evidently  wishes  it  to  be  an  open  one  as  regards  eastern  position. 
He  is  now  (juite  alive  to  the  importance  of  this  to  the  peace,  and 
almost  to  the  stability,  of  the  Church.  Vestments  will,  I  hear,, 
very  possibly  be  legalised,  if  not  decided  to  be  compulsory. 

"  I  declined  to  meet  in  conference  Wood,  Carter,  and  some  other 
extremists.  They  proposed  that  we  should  discuss  with  them,  not 
the  conditions  on  which  they  would  suiTender  to  us,  but  those  on 
which  we  should  surrender  to  them — viz.,  a  new  Court  of  Appeal 
consisting  of — what  do  you  think  — all  the  bishops,  aided  by 
assessors  from  the  Lower  House ;  and  the  decision  of  the  Court  to 
be  final !  Fancy  going  to  Parliament  and  to  the  Evangelicals  with 
such  a  })roposal !  And  fancy  its  being  made  by  men  who  have 
persistently  vilified  the  bishops  for  the  last  ten  years !  Of  course, 
if  it  were  (per  impossibile)  established,  the  next  demand  would  be 
that  it  should  decide  according  to  '  Catholic  tradition,""  and  then, 
next,  that  the  bishops  who  had  to  act  as  final  Appeal  Court  in 
Church  (luestions  should  not  be  chosen  by  the  State.  In  fact,  they 
are  bent  simply  on  doing  what  they  like  by  hook  or  by  crook.  I 
am  resolved  that,  at  any  rate,  they  shall  not  have  the  help  of  mj/ 
iTook  in  this  attempt.  This  conference  has  fallen  through,  and  I 
think  happily.  It  would  just  now  look  to  them  like  weakness,  and 
to  the  Evangelicals  like  treachery.  So,  as  I  said,  we  all  lie  on  our 
oars  and  wait  for  the  Ilidsdale  decision.    After  that  the  deluge ! 

"  ^Ve  spent  a  pleasant  three  days  at  Addington  in  company 
with  Bishop  of  Exeter  and  his  bride.  Bishop  of  Winchester  and 
wife  and  daughter,  Dean  Stanley,  Browning  the  poet,  Smith  (editor 
of  the  Quarterly),  and  sundry  dii  minores. 

I  left  town  on  Saturday  last  for  a  Church  mission  at  Rushden, 
and  left  that  on  Monday  for  a  church-opening  at  Castle  Donnington, 
Leicestershire,  on  Tuesday.  I  met  Archdeacon  Fearon  there,  bright 
and  cheery  as  usual,  like  a  dear  old  evergreen  as  he  is. 

"  I  got  home  here  to  Shrove  Tuesday  dinner,  very  tired,  but 
all  well." 

"  Peterborough,  March  lo,  1877. 
"I  have  to  preach  at  Whitehall  Chapel  on  Sunday  week.  Alas! 
I  have  not  yet  got  my  text. 


1S76-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


G5 


"  I  read  your  letter  in  the  Guardian  with  great  satisfaction,  so 
also  have  sundry  of  the  clergy  who  talked  to  me  of  it  on  my  tour. 

"As  I  have  just  completed  twenty  confirmations  in  thirteen  days, 
you  must  not  expect  a  very  coherent  letter.  My  head  is  going- 
round  like  a  top,  with  a  kind  of  confused  feeling,  such  as  a  miller's 
horse  might  have  after  going  round  in  the  mill  for  a  day  or  two. 
My  '  innards,'  too,  are  in  a  highly  '  mixed  condition  '  after  twenty 
luncheons  and  dinners  with  dubious  sherry  and  questionable  f?«/;-rt'.9. 
However,  the  tour,  as  regards  better  things  than  these,  has  been 
very  satisfactory  and  hopeful. 

"  The  rest  when  mc  meet." 

"  St.  Martin's  Vicarage,  Leicester, 

"Saturday,  March  24,  1877. 

"  Our  meeting  yesterday  for  augmentation  of  small  benefices  was 
fairly  satisfactory ;  upwards  of  £^0Q  was  subscribed  in  the  room, 
and  we  have  thus  made  a  good  beginning.  But  how  tired  I  do  feel 
of  being  always  the  mainspring  of  the  diocesan  watch.  In  good  old 
days  the  bishop  was  only  the  balance  ;  now,  nothing  is  done  by  the 
hands  unless  he  moves  and  keeps  them  moving.  I  begin  to  feel 
that  I  cannot  carry  on  much  longer  at  this  pace.  The  worst  sign 
of  exhaustion  is  when  rest  does  not  pick  you  up,  and  when  illness, 
\vhenever  it  comes,  clings.  However,  all  this  is  wTitten  under  the 
influence  of  influenza,  for  which  I  must  make  allowance — more  than 
any  one  ever  makes  for  me." 

"Bedford  Hotel,  Brighton, 

"March  31,  1S77. 

"  The  weather  has  changed  here,  just  before  my  arrival,  from  May 
to  March.  It  was  blowing  a  stiff"  sou'-wester  when  I  attempted 
a  walk  on  the  Marine  Parade.  I  hope  I  may  be  more  fortunate 
to-morrow.  I  wish  that  I  dare  worship  to-morrow  at  the  extreme 
church  here  (Wagners),  just  to  see  with  my  own  eyes  Ritualism 
in  full  blow.  But  I  dare  not — and  I  think  I  ought  not — for  a  good 
many  reasons. 

"I  must  show  you,  when  we  meet,  Cantuai''s  reply  to  Canon 
Carter's  letter.  It  is  very  good.  But  it  will  exasperate  the  extreme 
men  all  the  more  for  its  cogency  ;  while  there  are  streaks  of  Eras- 
tianism  here  and  there  in  it  which  are,  I  think,  unfortunate,  and 
will  be  '  exploited '  abundantly  by  the  Ritualists.  After  all,  what 
a  strong  man  he  is.  Resolute  and  self-contained  and  persistent. 
He  will  never  be  a  leader ;  and  his  office  is  not  powerful  enough 

VOL.  II,  E 


66 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


now  to  make  him  a  ruler  who  is  not  also  something  of  a  leader 
too.  But  he  would  have  been  a  great  ruler  fifty  years  ago.  I  see 
that  he  leans  nevertheless  to  reform  of  Convocation,  and  to  its 
emancipation  on  matters  of  detail  from  Parliament.  This  is  more 
than  he  ever  said  before,  and  may  form  the  germ  of  important 
reforms  vet. 

"  I  saw  Brunei,  the  episcopal  draftsman,  to-day  at  the  Athenaeum. 
He  tells  me  that  the  report  of  Penzance''s  resignation  is  not 
true  ;  and  yet  it  was  so  circumstantial  that  I  almost  believed  it. 
But  really  the  ecclesiastical  atmosphere  is  just  now  dark  with 
canards.  They  fly  in  flocks  and  cackle  horribly.  The  last  was  in 
the  Church  Times,  that  the  Queen  insisted  on  Tooth's  liberation, 
and  declared  that  if  he  were  not  set  free  by  Penzance,  she  would 
exercise  her  royal  prerogative  on  his  behalf,  and  set  him  free  at 
once.  I  suppose  these  stories  really  go  down  with  those  for  whom 
the  Church  Times  writes.  But,  as  old  Pepys  would  have  said, 
'  Lord,  to  see  how  simple  some  men  are,  and  how  other  men  do 
gull  them.' 

"  I  have  sent  the  Duke  of  Richmond  and  Gordon  an  amendment 
on  his  Bill,  allowing  a  service  for  those  over  whom  our  present 
service  may  not  be  read.  He  promises  to  submit  it  to  the  Cabinet, 
and  has  sent  it  to  Cross.  For  this  mercy  he  claims  a  speech  from 
me  on  the  second  reading  of  the  Bill.  As  I  could  hardly  have 
avoided  this  in  any  case,  his  claim  makes  no  great  difference.  But 
it  will  be  walking  on  eggs.  I  agree  neither  with  Granville  nor 
A.  C.  Cantuar,  nor  the  clergy  generally ;  and  a  triangular  duel  is 
only  an  amusing  thing  in  Marryafs  novels.  In  the  reality  it  is 
awkward  and  dangerous.  I  fear  I  shall  please  nobody,  least  of  all 
mvself. 

"  How  sick  I  am  of  speaking,  preaching,  talking,  and  working 
generally  !  How  I  long  for  the  side  of  a  trout  stream,  or  a  boat  on 
Loch  Inagh,  with  no  letters,  no  after-thoughts,  no  nothink. 

"  Surely  ^akya  Mouni,  the  great  founder  of  Buddhism,  must 
have  been  a  bishop  of  some  sort  when  he  invented  the  heaven  of 
Nirvana.  Even  lotus  eating  must  have  been  the  idea  of  some  sore 
worried  Greek  priest,  who  had  probably  to  attend  many  temple 
'  restorations '  and  take  part  in  many  processions,  and  had  Greek 

\Y  -s  to  manage,  and  dreamed  one  night  of  '  the  land  where  it 

is  always  afternoon.'  Alas  for  me  !  my  lotus  just  now  is  quinine, 
and  my  ague  fit  comes  on  regularly  each  afternoon,  in  spite  of  the 
said  ([uinine.    However,  I  hope  to  have  the  refreshment  of  a  talk 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE ;  PROSECUTIONS 


67 


with  you  on  Wednesday  next.  Will  you  take  a  day  or  two  with 
Charlie  and  me  at  Rowsley,  close  to  Haddon  Hall  and  Chatsworth? 
I  think  you  would  like  it,  and  I  am  sure  it  would  do  you  good  and 
me  too. 

"  This  is  an  awfully  long  letter ;  but  I  do  not  often  get  time  to 
write  one.   I  trust  you  are  all  recovering  yourselves  at  Walgrave." 

"41  Devonshire  Street, 

"  Portland  Place, 

"  May  15,  1877. 

"  The  plot  ecclesiastical  and  political  is  thickening  fast  enough 
up  here. 

'•^Imprimis — as  regards  the  Burials  Bill.  The  coalition  between 
the  two  Archbishops  and  Granville  and  Harrowby  is  now  a  known 
fact ;  and  it  is,  moreover,  very  likely  to  be  successful.  I  find  the 
Government  is,  or  professes  to  be,  very  much  annoyed  by  it;  some 
members  of  the  Cabinet  really  so — Duke  of  Richmond,  Cross, 
Hardy,  and  Salisbury,  have  all  said  so  to  me.  Dizzy,  as  usual, 
plays  the  Sphinx,  and  very  cleverly  too.  He  has  put  up  Cantuar 
to  make  his  speech  before  going  into  Committee ;  and  last  night 
he  put  me  up  to  reply  to  him.  He  (Dizzy)  meanwhile  lying  by  to 
see  which  way  the  House  inclines.  Of  course  I  know  that  I  am 
his  catspaw  ;  nevertheless,  I  have  accepted  his  proposal.  For  I 
must,  in  any  case,  speak,  and  could  not  do  so  w  ithout  ojDposing  the 
Archbishop.  Now,  by  assenting  to  reply  to  him  at  once  I  get  the 
best  place  next  to  his  in  the  debate  and  a  good  time,  and  a  secure 
hearing  before  dinner-hour.  So  I  am  to  fight  my  own  Archbishop 
— a  most  difficult  and  awkward  thing  to  do  at  any  time,  and  in 
this  matter  specially  so.  However,  I  am  in  for  it,  and  must  go 
through  with  it ;  though  it  will  be  the  most  critically  delicate  thing 
I  have  ever  had  to  do  in  the  way  of  speaking.  The  Government 
will  withdraw  their  seventy-fourth  clause,  and  probably  vote  against 
the  Archbishop  and  Harrowby.  They  will  make  the  Bill  a  mere 
sanitary  one  therefore.  This  I  am  sorry  for.  But  the  extreme 
course  taken  by  the  two  Aixhbishops  has  upset  everything.  I  am 
going  down  now  to  a  bishops'  meeting,  to  discuss  these  and  other 
matters. 

"  To-night  I  dine  with  the  Archbishop.  Thursday  night  I  fight 
him.    This  is  a  little  like  Ulysses  and  Polyphemus : — 

He  ate  his  mutton,  drank  his  wine,  and 
Then  he  poked  his  ei/c  out — 


68 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIII 


only  archbishops''  eyes  are  not  so  easily  poked  out,  and  only  that 
in  this  case  I  fear  that  I  shall  be  really  oi;-tc.  However,  we 
shall  have  a  lively  time  of  it,  and  you  will  have  some  lively  reading 
on  Friday  next/' 

"  AxHENiEDM  Clue,  May  19,  1877. 
"  You  will  have  seen  ere  this  the  debate  and  division  in  the 
Lords  on  the  Burials  Bill.  Result,  a  wretched  fiasco  for  the 
Government  and  a  final  defeat  of  the  Church.  The  two  Arch- 
bishops, with  a  following  of  some  fifteen  Conservative  peers,  and 
the  abstention  of  as  many  more,  carried  the  day,  w  hile  the  vacilla- 
tion and  uncertainty  of  the  Government  made  it  all  but  impossible 
for  their  advocates,  like  myself,  to  support  them.  Clearly,  they 
ought  never  to  have  put  in  the  seventy-fourth  clause.  But  when 
they  did  touch,  as  they  did  in  it,  on  the  religious  question,  they 
should  liave  devised  a  better  one.  As  it  was,  they  offended  every 
one  and  pleased  no  one.  I  did  my  best  behind  the  scenes,  and 
had  nearly  succeeded.  I  told  Richmond  and  Salisbuiy  that  the 
Archbishops'"  amendments  were  the  key  of  the  position  ;  and  that 
if  they  knocked  them  out  the  Ai-chbishops  dare  not  vote  for  Har- 
rowbv.  Unluckily,  at  the  last  moment  they  gave  the  Archbishop 
one  half  of  his,  and  then  were  di'agged  on  to  the  other  half  logically, 
and  so  lost  by  sixty  to  sixty-five.  After  that,  Harrowby's  triumph 
was  nearly  certain  ;  and  a  triumph  it  was,  though  a  tie.  My  ova\ 
speech*  was,  as  you  guess,  given  under  tremendous  difficulties, 
moral  and  physical.  They  tell  me  that  it  was  a  good  one.  (It  is 
miserably  reported,  even  in  the  Times).  But  I  confess  I  did  not 
like  it  myself.  Probably  it  told,  for  it  desperately  angered  the 
Opposition  front  bench,  Selborne  in  particular  being  actually 
offensive,  and  accusing  me  of  wishing  to  degrade  Christianity.  The 
Archbishop,  like  a  high-minded  gentleman  and  Christian  as  he  is, 
shook  hands  with  me  when  I  had  done.  I  said  two  or  three  sharp, 
and  they  say,  humorous  things  ;  and  the  speech,  in  which  these  are 
quoted  and  much  of  the  rest  suppressed,  has  an  air  of  levity  which 
really  did  not  belong  to  it.  However,  this  is  enough  as  regards 
myself. 

"  As  to  the  future,  it  is  clear  that  the  game  is  up  ;  and  what 
surprises  me  is,  that  the  Church,  clerical  and  lay,  takes  it  so  quietly. 
T  suppose  they  are  simply  stunned. 

"  What  Government  \y'\\\  do  now  no  one  knows.  But  I  think 
that  the  sooner  they  give  effect  to  Harrowby's  resolution  in  a  Bill 
*  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  177. 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE;  PROSECUTIONS 


69 


of  their  own  the  better.  The  next  Election  may  bring  in  tlic 
Liberals,  and  they  will  give  the  clergy  nothing. 

"  I  was  greatly  struck  Avith  the  tone  of  suspicion  and  dislike  of 
clergy  and  bishops  that  ran  all  through  the  debate.  If  the  clergy 
wish  to  see  '  lay  alienation  '  they  should  come  to  the  House  of 
Lords.  Truly  they  have  brought  a  great  deal  upon  themselves  by 
their  impracticable  and  obstinate  folly.  And  yet  I  feel  that,  be 
they  what  they  may,  these  are  the  men  whom  we  shall  have  to 
work  the  disestablished  Church  with  ere  long,  and  the  Arch- 
bishops do  not  see  that  in  the  least.    I  wish  they  did." 

To  Rev.  Christopher  Wordsworth. 

"Peterborough,  May  25,  1877. 

"  I  have  never  required  the  clergy  of  this  diocese — even  before 
the  recent  judgment — to  stand  at  the  north  end.  The  eastward 
position  is  in  my  opinion  now  practically  legalised,  and  the  clergy 
are  free  to  take  it  if  they  think  fit.  This  freedom,  however,  I  am 
sure  you  will  feel  ought  not  to  be  exercised  if  by  so  doing  the 
clergyman  is  likely  to  give  offence  to  his  people. 

"  The  question  of  the  position  being  in  itself  a  matter  of  in- 
difference, the  adopting  it  or  not  becomes  as  it  seems  to  me  purely 
a  question  of  expediency  and  edification.  In  answer  therefore  to 
your  question,  I  should  say,  that  in  your  place  I  should  be  guided 
by  the  feelings  of  the  congTegation  and  specially  of  the  com- 
municants. 

"  If  gratifying  my  own  feelings  and  wishes  in  the  matter  did  not 
pain  or  alienate  them,  I  should  take  the  eastward  position.  If  it 
did,  I  should  sacrifice  my  feelings  for  them,  and  believe  that  by  so 
doing,  I  should  ^  in  upon  their  regard  and  attachment  to  myself 
and  to  the  Chiu'ch. 

"  I  hope  you  are  getting  comfortably  settled  in  your  new  resi- 
dence.— Believe  me,  very  truly  yoiu's, 

"  W.  C.  Pktekborough." 
To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Athen^um  Club,  July  9,  1877. 
"  I  send  you  a  few  lines  on  the  eve  of  starting  for  Ardrishaig, 
not  that  I  have  much  to  tell  you.    I  kept  clear  of  Convocation 
and  am  glad  I  did  so ;  they  did  not  want  me,  and  did  very  well 
without  me.    They  have,  I  think,  got  rather  into  a  wrong  groove 


70 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIII 


in  condemning  books  and  societies.  Just  now  it  tells  well,  as  we 
are  coming  down  on  the  S.H.C.*  Hereafter,  however,  it  may  give 
us  serious  trouble. 

"  I  preached  last  night  at  Westminster  to  an  enormous  crowd. 
I  succeeded,  I  think,  in  '  exploiting,'  as  the  French  would  term  it, 
the  Modern  Sadducee.  He  and  his  brother  culprit,  the  Pharisee, 
between  them  took  me  fifty  minutes  ;  but  for  some  remains  of  ague  I 
ought  to  have  disposed  of  them  in  forty. 

"  I  had  a  very  interesting  time  with  Dean  Stanley,  and  heard 
sundry  good  things,  the  best,  however,  being  the  little  mortal 
himself.  A  strangely  fascinating,  queer,  solitary,  sad  bit  of  Church 
history  he  is,  and  wonderfully  well  set  he  is  in  that  old  quaint 
deanery  and  in  the  great  historic  abbcv. 

"My  wife  and  daughters  got  to  Ardrishaig  thirty  hours  after 
they  left  Peterborough,  having  been  detained  by  the  breaking 
down  of  a  luggage  train  near  Glasgow.  I  expect  this  will  not 
occur  twice  in  the  same  season,  and  so  I  hope  to  arrive  without 
adventure  to-morrow.    They  are  greatly  pleased  with  the  place. 

"  There  is  no  news  of  any  kind  stirring  here." 

"AiTECHUAN,  Ardrishaig, 

•'July  30,  1877. 

"  The  rain  and  mist  are  almost  incessant,  and  have  left  but  little 
chance  of  explorations  or  excursions  as  yet,  nor  does  there  seem,  so 
far,  any  chance  or  sign  of  improvement.  This  is  the  more  trying 
as  the  country  round  about  is  evidently  well  Avorth  exploring,  the 
scenery  being  very  fine  and  wild  ;  sea  lochs,  inland  lochs,  moor  and 
mountain  abounding.  The  only  drawbacks  besides  the  weather, 
are :  First,  the  civilisation  of  our  neighbours,  which  involves  calls 
and  luncheons  and  the  other  impedimenta  of  polite  life,  and 
prevents  that  relapse  into  savagedom  which  is  so  essential  to  real 
holidays  for  a  hard-worked  man  whose  work  lies  so  mvich  amongst 
the  civilized  classes,  and  one  of  Avhose  hardest  labours  is  eating  of 
luncheons  ad  nauseam.  Secondly,  the  demands  of  the  Bishop  of 
Argyle  here  for  sermons,  for  which  he  has  an  unlucky  claim,  owing 
to  my  having  utilised  him  once  for  confirmations.  However,  spite 
of  all  this  we  are  not  badly  oft'. 

"  The  boys  are  come  and  we  have  a  sailing  boat,  and  they  fish 
and  get  lots  of  worthless  sea  fish ;  and  when  we  do  get  out  the 
scenery  is  certainly  charming. 

*  The  Society  of  the  Holy  Cross. 


1876-77       TEMPERANCE;  PROSECUTIONS 


71 


"  I  am  hesitating  about  a  run  to  lona,  disstant  two  days  from 
this,  with  a  peep  at  Staff'u.  I  suppose  I  ought  to  let  my  '  piety 
oTow  Avarmei-,"'  as  Dr.  Johnson's  did,  'among  the  ruins  of  lona'  and 
be  able  to  say  I  have  seen  it  when  I  return. 

"  The  folk  here  are  very  Gaelic  both  in  speech  and  garb.  Fancy 
being  called  on  by  a  real  live  Highland  laird  in  full  costvune,  kilt, 
bare  knees,  sporan,  skene  dhu,  and  all  the  rest  of  it.  All  the  said 
lairds  are  Campbells.  We  had  twenty-three  Campbells  in  church 
last  Sunday.  They  are  all  accordingly  known  by  the  names  of 
their  lairdships  like  so  many  peers ;  in  short  the  whole  thing  is 
like  a  page  out  of  Waverley,  only  of  a  later  edition. 

"  The  Church  here  is  in  a  curious  condition,  mainly  consisting  of 
these  lairds  and  their  households ;  though  in  some  of  the  islands 
there  are  congregations  of  the  poorer  sort,  mostly  attached  Epis- 
copalians who  have  clung  to  their  old  faith  for  centuries,  and  are 
now  building  themselves  churches  and  rejoicing  greatly  in  the  visits 
of  a  bishop. 

"  I  am  to  be  present  at  the  Synod  of  this  diocese  next  week.  I 
suppose  some  thirty  souls  will  constitute  it,  and  yet  it  will  have  a 
dignity  beyond  that  of  our  Diocesan  Conference  or  even  Convoca- 
tion, in  that  it  will  legislate  and  not  merely  express  opinions.  The 
'  living  voice,"'  which  is  only  a  voice,  is  sadly  apt  to  degenerate  into 
a  scream  or  sink  into  a  whisper ;  when  it  makes  laws  it  is  more 
grave  and  natural,  and  less  hysterical  and  garrulous. 

"  I  hear  nothing  of  interest  from  the  diocese  of  Peterborough, 
a  good  sign  of  affairs  there." 

"Ardrishaig,  N.B.,  August  21,  1877. 
"  I  had  two  letters  from  Thicknesse  describing  Hull's  institution 
and  acceptation  by  the  congregation  on  Sunday  last.  Nothing, 
according  to  his  account,  could  have  gone  off  better.  Lord 
(Jverstone's  letter  to  the  churchwardens  seems  also  to  have  been 
very  gratifying ;  altogether  it  is  tliere  what  it  is  not  here,  post  nubila 
Phcehis.  Everything  now  depends  on  Hulls  judgment  and  caution, 
and  I  have  good  hope  of  both.  If  he  succeeds  I  have  fairly 
floored  the  Evangelicals  in  Northampton  as  I  have  already  done 
in  Peterborough  and  Leicester.  What  a  pity  though  that  they 
should  need  to  be  floored ;  why  will  they  prove  themselves  every- 
where and  always  so  impracticable  and  irreconcilable  I  suppose 
that  they  feel  themselves  an  expiring  party,  and  are  hair-sore  and 
jealous  accordingly.  Heaven  knows  I  came  to  this  diocese  no 
High  Churchman,  and  willing  enough  to  co-operate  with  the 


72 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIII 


Evangelicals ;  but  they  are  driving  me  more  and  more,  spite  of 
mvsclf,  into  the  arms  of  the  High  Churchmen,  who,  yet,  I  suspect, 
know  very  well  I  do  not  thoi'oughly  belong  to  them.  How  easy 
it  is  to  be  a  party  bishop  pure  and  simple,  like  Durham.  No  one 
misunderstands  him,  and  as  for  abuse,  he  gets  all  on  one  side ;  like 
a  traveller  on  an  Irish  car  with  the  rain,  and  can  at  least  keep  one 
side  dry^ — more  than  I  can  do,  who  catch  it  all  round. 

"  We  may  have  a  row  about  the  '  Priest  in  Absolution,'  in 
October,  but  I  have  a  little  doubt  which  way  the  gi-eat  majority  of 
the  Conference  will  go.  On  the  whole  this  '  Priest  in  Absolution ' 
has  hurt  the  Ritualists  much,  but  perhaps,  I  fear,  the  Church  of 
England  quite  as  much.  These  Ritualists  will  'rend  her  sore'  ere 
they  go  out,  if  they  ever  are  forced  out ;  still,  there  are  signs  that 
the  line  of  demarcation  between  the  sound  and  the  gangrened 
parts  of  the  High  Church  school  is  developing  itself.  Such  a 
resolution  as  Roberts's  has  its  value  in  this  respect,  and  more  of  like 
kind  will,  I  expect,  follow.  A  real  danger,  however,  mav  be  the 
Impatience  of  the  laity  at  the  slowness  of  this  process,  and  some 
attempts  in  Parliament  to  quicken  it.  A  movement  for  Liturgical 
Revision  in  the  House  of  Lords  would  be  a  very  awkward  thing 
indeed,  and  it  is  by  no  means  impossible.  These  ninety-six 
peers  who  signed  the  I'ecent  anti-confessional  memorial  to  the 
bishops  may  vet  prove  dangerous  in  that  direction  if  thev  find  a 
good  leader ;  and  it  is  hard  to  sav  \\'hat  line  the  Archbishop  of 
Canterbury  might  take  in  that  case.  At  any  rate  between  an 
alienated  laity  who  may  go  in  for  Disestablishment,  if  the  Ritualists 
are  not  cast  out,  and  Gladstone,  who  will  go  in  for  it  if  thev  are^ 
we  shall  have  nice  steering  between  Scylla  and  Charybdis,  and  a 
fair  chance  of  a  wreck  on  one  or  the  other  of  these. 

"  W.  C.  P." 


CHAPTER  XIV 


CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD 

The  following  correspondence  brings  out  very  clearly  the  Bishop's 
views  upon  Confession,  and  also  his  estimate  of  the  Society  of  the 
Holy  Cross.  The  one  was  the  outcome  of  his  life''s  study  and 
thought ;  the  other  was  the  result  of  a  very  careful  examination 
of  the  Societ}''s  rules.  In  order  to  gather  together  his  most 
important  utterances  upon  this  subject,  I  add  a  letter  to  one  of  his 
clergy  who  consulted  him  upon  a  particular  case.  It  is  an  example 
of  his  application  of  the  jirinciples  explained  before. 

To  Caxon  Lowe. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"September  13,  1S77. 

" .  .  .  .  My  objections  to  the  Society  are  founded  on  a  careful 
study  both  of  the  book  which  it  adopted  and  circulated — 'The 
Priest  in  Absolution'' — and  also  of  the  rules  imposed  on  its 
members.  As  regards  the  former — '  The  Priest  in  Absolution ' — 
its  teaching  respecting  confession,  as  well  as  on  the  other  points, 
appears  to  me  to  be  definitely  and  unequivocally  that  of  the 
Church  of  Rome  as  distinguished  from  that  of  our  own  Church. 
It  distinctly  asserts  in  more  than  one  passage,  and  evidently 
assumes  throughout,  the  necessity  of  private  and  sacramental 
confession,  and  of  the  enumeration  by  the  penitent  of  all  his 
mortal  sins  at  least,  and  consequently  the  necessity  of  that  minute 
and  detailed  examination  of  the  penitent  in  which  this  book  aims 
at  instructing  the  confessor.  As  regards  the '  rules '  of  this  Society, 
the  least  strict  of  these  which  is  obligatory  on  all  its  members 
binds  them  to  '  say  Mass '  and  to  '  practise  sacramental  confession 
at  least  once  a  year.'  This  is  Roman  language  and  the  Roman 
rule ;  it  is  not  the  language  nor  the  rule  of  the  Church  of  England, 


74 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


The  fact  that  this  was  not  the  original  rule  of  the  Society,  and  that 
it  was  subsequently  altered  in  this  distinctly  Romeward  direction, 
shows,  to  my  mind,  a  distinct  Romeward  tendency  on  the  part  of 
those  who  sway  its  counsels.  I  am  aware  that  some  of  its  original 
members  disapproved  of,  and  were  in  consequence  exempted  from, 
this  rule  in  its  altered  form ;  also  that  many  of  these  disapprove 
strongly  of  '  The  Priest  in  Absolution." 

"  It  seems  to  me  clear  that  those  who  do  disapprove  either  of 
these  rules  or  of  'The  Priest  in  Absolution''  ought  publicly  to 
sever  themselves  from  a  society  which  continues  to  impose  these 
rules  and  which  has  publicly  refused  to  condemn  this  book. 
Certainly,  until  they  do  this,  they  cannot  complain  if  they  are 
regarded  as  approving  of  both.  Such  public  withdrawal  from  the 
Society  of  the  Holy  Cross  seems  to  me  more  especially  incumbent 
upon  those  to  whom  parents  in  om*  Church  are  invited  to  entrust 
the  education  of  their  children.  At  any  rate,  speaking  for  myself, 
I  must  plainly  say  that,  so  long  as  any  institution  claiming  to  be 
conducted  on  the  principles  of  the  Chm'ch  of  England  is  connected 
in  the  person  of  any  one  of  its  officials  with  the  Society  of  the  Holy 
Cross,  I  cannot  as  a  bishop  of  that  Church  give  to  it  my  public 
recognition  or  support." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Peterborough,  September  i8,  1877. 
"  I  do  not  want  to  trouble  you  with  any  mental  exercise  during 
your  holidays,  but  I  should  like  you  to  read  carefully  a  certain 
correspondence  in  this  week's  Guardian  between  Canon  Lowe  (head 
of  Denstone  Schools)  and  myself,  dealing  mainly  with  confession  and 
the  S.H.C.,  as  I  fully  expect  to  have  what  the  Americans  call  a 
'  rough  time '  of  it  with  some  of  the  S.H.C.  men  as  soon  as  they 
appear.  I  should  like  you  to  tell  me  how  far  my  letters,  in  your 
judgment,  hold  water,  and  where  are  their  weak  points.  You  will 
see  that  I  attack  '  The  Priest  in  Absolution,'  not  on  the  gi-ound  of 
its  indecency,  which  I  always  thought  a  false  issue,  and  more  so  now 
that  I  have  carefully  studied  it,  but  on  the  ground  of  its  Roman  doc- 
trine of  Confession.  Of  course  on  this  ground  I  am  more  open  to 
challenge  than  on  the  other,  as  the  Ritualists  dare  not  invite  quota- 
tion of  what  is  indecent.  They  will  be  only  too  pleased,  at  first  at 
least,  to  try  the  other  issue.  But  on  this  I  am  satisfied  that  the  case 
against  them  is  really  far  stronger.    The  book,  for  a  book  of  the 


\ 


1877-79     CONFESSION ;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD 


kind,  is  far  from  being  an  impure  one,  either  in  fact  or  intent,  but 
it  is  thoroughly  Roman  in  its  doctrine  and  phraseology.  The  fact 
too,  of  the  change  in  the  rules  of  the  Society  (I  have  the  original 
and  the  altered  rules),  to  which  I  refer  is  curiously  significant,  and 
to  my  mind,  more  convincing  of  Romanising  than  the  book  itself. 
At  any  rate,  please  read  and  perpend ;  also  tell  me,  if,  under  the 
circumstances,  you  think  I  did  well  to  allow  my  name  to  be  added 
to  the  list  of  supporters  of  the  Denstone  Schools.  I  have  besides 
an  awkward  case  in  hand  of  a  clergymen  who  is  a  member  of  the 
S.H.C.  being  presented  to  a  benefice ;  this  will  keep  until  I  see 
you  again,  but  I  am  at  ])rGsent  disposed  to  require  him  to  submit 
to  examination  before  I  institute  him." 

To  Rev.  F.  L.  Bagshawe. 

Having  regard,  then,  to  these  portions  of  the  existing 
rule  and  statutes  of  your  Society,  I  am  bound  at  once  to  connect 
my  former  statement  and  to  substitute  for  it  this :  The  rules  and 
statutes  of  this  Society  (1)  require  from  all  its  brethren  the 
'  saying  of  Mass,'  and  (2)  enjoin  the  '  saying  of  Mass  '  on  certain 
occasions  for  the  '  souls  of  the  departed '  brethren.  (3)  They 
require  from  laymen,  as  the  condition  of  affiliation,  the  adoption  as 
their  Rule  of  Life  of  the  Roman  rule  of  confession  'at  least  once  a 
year."  (4)  '  They  recommend '  this  rule  in  its  most  distinctive 
Roman  form  to  all  their  brethren  '  for  adoption."'  I  readily  give 
your  Society  all  the  benefit  M  hich  it  can  derive  from  this  correction, 
though  I  confess  that  I  cannot  see  the  importance  which  you 
attach  to  it.  I  have  only  to  add  that  it  in  no  way  alters — in  some 
respects  it  strengthens — the  opinion  I  have  already  expressed,  that 
the  tendency  of  your  Society  is  distinctly  Romewai'd." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Peterborough,  September  28,  1877. 
"  You  will  see  a  second  epistle  of  mine  in  this  week's  Guardian. 
It  was  A\  ritten  in  reply  to  one  I  received  from  the  Master  of  the 
S.H.C  ^vhich  he  told  me  he  was  sending  to  the  Guardian.  On 
receiving  my  reply  he  wrote  to  say  that  he  wished  to  withdraw 
his  letter.  I  at  once  telegi'aphed  to  the  Guardian  to  withdraw 
mine,  and  also  to  him  to  tell  him  I  had  done  so,  and  give  him 
time  to  publish  his  if  he  wished,  if  my  telegram  came  too  late, 
as  it  did.    This,  however,  he  did  not,  or  could  not  do,  so  mine 


76 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


comes  out  alone.  The  whole  matter  is  very  curious.  At  first  I 
was  disposed  to  impute  some  mala  fides,  but  I  think  the  truer 
account  of  the  matter  is  this  : 

"  That  the  S.H.C.  had  fallen  under  the  control  of  Mackonochie  & 
Co.,  and  that  Bagshawe,  who  is  a  somewhat  more  moderate  man, 
was  lately  apjiointed  Master  in  Mackonochie's  place,  by  the  more 
moderate  section,  and  has  been  trying  to  tone  down  the  statutes 
a  little.  Naturally  he  did  not  wish  to  be  drawn  into  a  controversy 
with  Mackonochie  and  the  extremer  section,  and  so  wished  to 
suppress  his  letter  and  mine.  I  infer  this  from  a  correspondence 
I  have  been  holding  with  a  ]\Ir.  Wilson  of  Merton  College,  Oxford, 
one  of  the  committee  of  the  S.H.C,  on  the  same  subject.  There 
are  evidently  two  parties  in  the  Society  and  for  a  time  the 
Romanisers  had  the  upper  hand.  Both  Bagshawe  and  Wilson 
write  like  gentlemen,  and  the  letters  of  the  latter  are  very  interest- 
ing ;  I  will  show  them  to  you  the  first  time  you  come  here.  They 
show  how  far  men's  minds  may  become  so  unconsciously  saturatetl 
with  Roman  doctrine  as  to  be  quite  unconscious  of  their  own 
divergence  from  their  o\\\\  Church. 

"  I  have  also  had  a  very  interesting  correspondence  with  the  Rev. 
J.  Oakley  of  London,  an  advanced  High  Churchman,  but  not  a 
Ritualist,  but  hitherto  a  supporter  of  them.  He  thanks  me  warmly 
for  my  letters,  and  admits  the  need  of  some  restraint  on  the 
extreme  men.  This  is  a  good  symptom,  and  I  wrote  accordingly 
in  reply. 

"  I  am  not  yet  abused  in  the  Churcli  Times,  but  I  fully  expect 
to  find  myself  gibbeted  in  to-morrow's  issue  of  the  said  print. 
I  am  more  afraid  of  being  praised  in  the  Rock  or  the  Record. 
Altogether  I  cannot  but  hope  that  I  have  done  some  good ; 
certainly  the  views  this  matter  has  given  me  on  the  inner  policy 
and  life  of  the  Ritualists  are  very  instructive  and  curiously 
interesting. 

"  Orby  Shipley,  who  had  just  asked  me  to  join  him  in  a  course 
of  sermons  in  London,  writes  to  notify  that  at  some  future  time  he 
may  notice  my  letters.  I  have  been  reading  all  my  old  Trinity 
College  studies  on  this  point,  and  think  I  am  fairly  ready  for 
him. 

"  Ciu'iously  enough,  while  this  was  going  on,  I  had  to  deal  on 
the  other  side  with  RoUeston  of  Scraptoft,  who  was  delated  to  me 
for  engaging  to  preach  in  a  Dissenting  Chapel  in  Tunbridge. 

"  As  the  delator  \\  as  a  fierce  High  Chui-chman,  and  had  written 


1877-79     CONFESSION ;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  77 


a  letter  to  make  capital  for  his  side  out  of  the  matter  with  reference 
to  the  Public  Worship  Regulation  Act,  and  also  was  writing  to 
the  Archbishop,  in  whose  diocese  Tunbridge  is,  with  the  same 
intent,  the  case  looked  ugly.  Happily  I  sat  upon  Rolleston  so 
severely  that  he  withdrew  his  sermon,  and  so  ends  crux  number 
two.  Then  turns  up  crux  number  three  in  the  person  of  S.  M., 
ultra-low  Churchman  and  half  heretic  on  the  annihilation  of  the 
wicked,  who  is  announced  to  preach  in  this  diocese.  Luckily  for 
me  the  facts  of  his  story  in  London  are  not  clearly  known  or 
stated,  nor  his  views,  and  as  he  is  to  preach  the  day  after  to- 
morrow, I  '  have  not  time  to  make  the  necessary  enquiries.''  But 
oh !  how  we  bishops  have  need  to  pray  St.  Paul's  prayer  for 
deliverance  from  unreasonable  men. 

"The  fact  is  the  Church  is  hair-sore  just  now  all  over,  and  the 
least  touch  anywhere  causes  a  scream  of  anger.  Certainly  the 
Archbishop's  Burials  Bill  will  not  act  as  an  emollient.  I  do  not 
envy  him  his  coming  presidency  at  Croydon. 

"  I  am  rejoiced  to  find  that  you  think  my  letters  and  my  line 
of  attack  on  the  Bits,  are  sound." 

To  Rev.  . 

"  Northampton,  November  25,  1877. 
"  My  dear  Sir, — The  case  on  which  you  asked  mv  counsel  is  a 
difficult  one.  Not  because  I  feel  any  difficulty  as  to  the  principles 
which  should  govern  it,  but  because  I  am  hardly  in  a  position  to 
say  how  those  principles  may  best  and  most  safely  be  applied  in 
this  particular  instance,  for  the  spiritual  good  of  the  person  con- 
cerned. 

"  The  case  seems  clearly  to  be  one  of  a  morbid  conscience  en- 
feebled by  the  constant  use  of  the  medicine  of  confession  as  food, 
and  not  as  a  medicine. 

"  The  danger  already  is  that  if  you  too  hastily  or  severely  apply 
even  sound  principles  to  such  a  case,  the  result  may  be,  not  that 
your  patient  may  adopt  your  treatment  and  so  recover,  but  may 
have  resort  to  some  other  spiritual  physician  and  so  grow  Avorse. 
On  the  other  hand,  you  clearly  cannot  and  ought  not,  in  order  to 
prevent  this,  take  any  course  inconsistent  with  what  you  believe  to 
be  the  teaching  of  the  Church  of  which  you  are  a  minister. 

"  Speaking  generally — as  to  all  cases  of  persons  claiming  to  confess 
to  their  parish  priest — I  should  say,  that  he  is  not  entitled  to  refuse 
to  I'eceive  such  confession,  provided  it  may  be  made  strictly  in 


78 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIV 


accordance  with  the  rules  of  our  Church  in  this  matter.  And  these 
are  that  the  penitent,  before  bringing  his  grief  to  his  pastor, 
shall 

"  (1)  Confess  his  sin  to  Almighty  God,  and 

"  (2)  If  it  be  also  against  his  neighbour,  shall  confess  it  to  him. 
Then,  but  only  then,  if  by  these  means  he  shall  not  have  obtained 
peace,  is  he  allowed  by  our  Church  to  open  his  grief  to  his 
minister. 

"  (1)  If  I  were  asked  therefore  by  a  parishioner  to  hear  a  con- 
fession, I  should  ask :  '  Have  you,  before  coming  to  me,  complied 
with  oiu'  Church's  rule,  and  first  confessed  to  God,  and  also,  if 
necessary,  to  your  neighbour  ?  If  not,  I  must  require  you  to  do 
■  this  fully,  truly,  and  completely,  before  you  resort  to  me. 

"  (2)  If  the  penitent  say  (as  yours,  I  suspect,  would  not  say)  '  I 
have  done  this,  and  yet  cannot  find  peace,'  I  should  then  say  '  Tell 
me  what  is  that  sin,  or  what  those  sins,  and  only  those,  which  still 
weigh  upon  your  mind.'  I  should  hear  the  confession  of  these,  and 
of  these  only,  and  I  should  firmly  but  kindly  check  all  attempts  at 
what  is  called  a  '  full  confession.'  I  should  further  ask  no  questions 
as  to  the  circumstances  of  even  them,  but  should  question  the 
penitent  solely  as  to  the  nature  and  degree  of  his  repentance.  I 
should  endeavour  in  this  way  to  fix  his  mind  upon  the  thought  that 
it  is  the  fulness  and  completeness  of  his  repentance,  and  not  the 
completeness  of  his  comnnmication  of  all  his  sins,  on  which  his  for- 
giveness depends  with  God. 

"  (B)  If  I  am  satisfied  of  the  sincerity  of  his  repentance,  I  should 
say  to  him  :  '  I  fully  believe  that  you  are  forgiven  by  God,  and  I, 
as  His  minister,  assure  you  of  this.  You  may  now  go,  so  far  as  I 
can  judge,  with  a  clear  conscience  to  the  Holy  Communion,  and 
there  you  will  receive  "  the  benefit  of  absolution."  As  to  priest's 
absolution  the  Chui-ch  has  not  provided  me  with  any  form  for  it — 
save  in  the  case  of  the  dying.  She  has  provided  for  those  in 
health,  in  public  absolution  in  the  communion  office,  and  this  all 
true  Churchmen  admit  to  be  a  perfectly  valid  absolution.  There  is 
no  special  or  exceptional  virtue  in  priest's  absolution,  even  were  I 
authorised  to  give  it  you.  Meet  me,  therefore,  before  the  holy 
table,  and  I  will  "  absolve  "  you  there.' 

"  (4)  Such  a  course  would,  I  believe,  not  only  be  strictly  accord- 
ing to  the  rule  of  our  Church,  but  also  strictly  in  accordance  with 
the  best  and  most  truly  Catholic  precedents  of  the  Early  Church. 
For  whatever  may  have  been  the  probability  of  priest's  confession 


1877-79    CONFESSION;  PAN- ANGLIC  AN  SYNOD  79 


having  been  allowed  or  practised  in  the  Early  Church,  certainly 
there  was  no  such  thing  known  then  as  priest's  absolution.  The 
whole  disciplina  penitentice  was  assuredly  public,  even  though,  in 
order  to  prepai'e  for  it,  penitents  may  have  told  in  private  to  the 
pi'iest  the  sins  which  he  may  have  then  directed  or  counselled  them 
to  confess  in  public. 

"  A  priest's  absolution  would  in  the  Early  Church  have  been  re- 
garded as  an  unlawful  evasion  of  penitential  discipline. 

"  I  hold,  therefore,  that  a  priest  of  the  Church  of  England  is 
acting  strictly  in  accordance  with  her  rule,  and  strictly  in  accord- 
ance with  truly  catholic  precedent,  who  takes  such  a  course  as  that 
which  I  have  sketched.  I  think  that  in  the  case  you  describe,  this 
would  be  a  wiser  course  than  that  of  simply  refusing  to  receive  the 
confession,  which  indeed  our  Church  would  hardly  warrant  you  in 
doing,  while  it  also  affords  you  the  opportunity  of  endeavouring  to 
restore  the  mind  of  this  parishioner  of  yours  gradually  to  a  healthier 
tone,  and  to  more  of  ,9<'_i^-examination  and  ■S£'?/-discipline  than  she 
has,  I  fear,  of  late  been  used  to,  as  well  as  to  a  happier  sense  of  her 
own  nearness  to  her  heavenly  Father,  and  her  right  to  tell  Him, 
and  Him  only,  all  her  sins. 

"  I  have  thus  given  you  such  advice  as  with  fullest  thought  occurs 
to  me  in  this  difficult  matter.  Earnestly  praying  for  you  that  you 
may  be  wisely  guided  in  it,  I  am,  very  faithfully  yours, 

"W.  C.  Peterborough. 

"  P.S. — On  reading  over  again  your  letter,  it  has  occurred  to  me 
that  the  young  lady  in  question  may  be  too  much  of  an  invalid  to 
attend  the  Holy  Communion  in  public.  If  this  be  so,  I  should  say 
that  you  are  bound  to  administer  to  her  the  Holy  Communion  in 
private,  and  that  as  this  of  course  contains  the  absolution  I  referred 
to,  she  would  have  in  the  most  direct  and  personal  form  the  benefit 
of  such  absolution  whenever  she  communicated. 

"  You  are  not  bound  as  a  licensed  preacher  to  use  the  Visitation 
for  the  Sick.  But  if  you  do  use  it,  you  would,  I  think,  be  bound 
to  hear  her  confession  if  she  told  you  that  her  conscience  '  was 
troubled  with  any  weighty  matter.'  And  in  that  case  there  is  a 
form  of  absolution  provided. 

"  But  unless  the  use  of  this  Service  of  Visitation  for  Sick  was 
specially  demanded  at  your  hands,  I  would,  in  your  place,  endeavour 
to  persuade  the  invalid  to  content  herself  with  the  equally  valid 
absolution  of  the  Communion  Office." 


80 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


To  J.  C.  MacDonneix. 

"  Peterborough,  October  4,  1877. 
"  I  have  read  TyndalFs  address.  It  is  a  very  interesting  and 
v  aluable  one  for  Christian  apologists ;  it  shows  the  absolute  im- 
possibility, logically,  of  any  resting-place  between  Christianity  and 
Atheism  for  us  Christians.  His  arguments  for  the  necessity  of  all 
actions  and  feelings  and  motions  are  unanswerable,  I  think,  by  the 
Deist  who  rejects  revelation  and  denies  the  possibility  of  prayer  for 
any  physical  good,  while  allowing  praver  for  spiritual  blessings. 
Tyndall  &  Co.  are  proving  scientifically  that  the  spiritual  sphere  is 
as  much  under  the  domain  of  necessary  law  as  the  physical,  and 
thus  cutting  the  ground  from  under  the  feet  of  such  sentimental 
Deists  as  Martineau  and  Francis  Collier  and  Newman.  I  find  a 
prophecy  of  this  in  one  of  my  notes  on  Newman's  '  Phases,""  written 
years  ago. 

"  TyndalFs  allusion  to  Butler  is  a  favourite  one  with  him,  and 
obviously  fallacious.  He  says :  '  The  argument  from  necessity  did 
not  frighten  Butler."  Certainly  not,  as  it  affected  Butlers  argument, 
Avhich  was  for  the  moral  government  of  the  world  by  rewards  and 
punishments.  Of  course  Butler's  answer  to  the  plea  of  the  necessi- 
tarian against  the  doctrine  of  responsibility  was  unanswerable  :  that 
the  punishment  was  necessary  as  the  crime.  But  Butler,  I  suspect, 
Avould  have  been  a  good  deal  frightened  as  to  the  argument  from 
necessitv  in  its  bearing  on  quite  another  point,  v'lz.^  the  idea  of  duty 
(as  distinguished  from  that  of  fear  of  punishment)  as  a  moral  force 
actins;  on  the  conduct  of  men. 

"  If  men  are  in  all  respects  mere  machines,  there  can  be  for  them 
no  real  duties,  no  right  or  wrong  in  their  sense  of  obligation ; 
though  there  may  be  abundant  motive  in  the  fear  of  punishment 
or  suffering  still  remaining. 

"Indeed,  the  objection  to  TyndalFs  theory,  in  its  moral  bearing 
on  the  question  of  duty,  is  not  that  it  does  away  with  all  restraining 
motive  against  crime,  i.e.,  offence  against  national  law — it  leaves 
ample  room  for  this — but  that  it  does  away  with  the  very  idea  of 
sin  as  the  free  act  of  a  self-determining  being,  and  therefore  with 
all  morality  in  the  proper  sense  of  the  word. 

"  If  I  fear  to  put  my  hand  in  the  fire  because  I  know  it  will  burn 
me  by  necessary  law ;  or  if  I  fear  to  lie  or  murder  because  I  believe 
that  by  equally  necessary  law  I  shall  burn  for  ever  in  another  world ; 
the  restraint  in  each  case  may  be  very  powerful :  but  the  idea  that 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  81 


I  have  done  a  wrong  act,  an  act  which  I  ought  not  to  have  done, 
and  wliich  being  done  I  ought  to  feel  sorry  for,  is  as  unreasonable 
and  inconceivable  in  the  one  case  as  in  the  other.  In  fact,  the 
word  '  ought '  vanishes,  in  its  proper  sense,  altogether  from  human 
language.  Unfortunately,  however,  for  Tyndall's  theory,  it  does 
not  vanish  from  the  human  heart.  What  he  has  to  account  for  is 
the  fact  that  when  we  break  one  law  of  nature,  the  physical,  we 
suffer  pain  but  no  remorse  ;  and  when  we  break  another  law  of  our 
natui'e,  the  moral,  we  do  suffer  remorse  ;  we  feel  not  only  that  we 
have  incurred  but  also  deserved  punishment. 

"The  practical  effect  of  Tyndall's  theory  on  human  morality 
must,  of  course,  be  fatal.  It  abolishes  morality  absolutely  and 
completely,  and  this  would  certainly  '  have  frightened  Butler.' 

"  I  hope  that  this  flaw  in  his  reasoning  will  be  noticed  by  some 
student  of  Butler.  I  wish  you  would  try  your  hand  in  a  letter  to 
the  Spectator  ;  or,  if  you  are  too  lazy,  poke  up  Reichel  to  do  it.  I 
am  far  too  busy  just  now  even  to  think  of  it ;  work  is  beginning 
to  crowd  in  on  me  spite  of  all  my  resistance,  nearly  as  much  as 
ever.  I  have  not  a  day  now,  from  Monday  next  until  December  1, 
free  from  work,  and  yet  I  have  refused  nearly  as  much  as  I  have 
undertaken.  Some  of  this,  however,  is  aiTears  of  my  spring 
illness. 

"  I  am  sorry  to  hear  of  your  cold,  but  this  weather  ought  to  cure 
you  soon.  It  is  glorious  here,  though  tantalising  when  I  think  of 
our  wet  vacation. 

"  I  see  that  the  S.H.C.  '  makes  no  sign '  in  to-day's  Guardian. 
My  last  letter  has,  I  find,  gi*eatly  consternated  them.  They  had 
no  idea  that  the  secret  history  of  their  society  was  known  to  any 
bishop.  It  certainly  is  most  instructive,  and  fully  justifies,  I 
think,  Cantuar's  charge  of  conspii-acy  against  the  leaders  of  the 
society.  What  startles  me  most  in  the  matter,  however,  is,  not 
that  Mackonochie  and  Co.  should  have  made  this  Romanising 
change  in  the  society  ;  but  that  really  loyal  Churchmen  should 
have  accepted  it  so  easily,  for  others  at  least,  if  not  for  themselves. 
It  argues  a  want  of  sensitiveness  against  Romanism  that  reminds 
me  of  Pope's  lines  about  vice  : 

Yet  seen  too  oft,  familiar  with  her  face, 
We  first  endurCj  then  jnttj,  then  embrace. 


"  It  is  all  very  serious  and  anxious  for  those  who  have  to  govern 
the  Church,  and  indeed  for  all  of  us." 

VOL.  IX.  F 


82 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


To  Canon  Aiigles. 

"  Peterborough,  October  i6,  1877. 

"  I  am  desirous  of  stating  for  the  consideration  of  your  Chapter 
the  conclusion  to  which  I  have  come  as  to  the  effect  of  the  recent 
decision  in  the  Ridsdale  case  on  the  question  as  to  the  proper  dress 
of  the  celebrant  in  cathedral  churches. 

"  Previously  to  this  j  udgmcnt  I  had,  as  you  are  aware,  worn 
a  cope  when  celebrating  on  the  great  festivals,  believing  as  I 
did  that  this  dress  was  required  by  the  Purchas  judgment  to 
be  worn  by  me  on  those  days.  The  judgment,  however,  in  the 
Ridsdale  case  seems  to  me  to  require  that  the  use  of  the  cope 
by  the  celebrant  in  cathedral  churches  shall  extend  to  all  cele- 
brations. 

"Accepting,  as  I  do,  this  decision  of  the  Supreme  Court  of 
Appeal  in  a  fully  argued  case  as  binding  in  law  and  in  foro  con- 
scientioc,  I  feel  bound  to  obey  and  to  set  a  public  example  ot 
obedience  to  it.  It  is  my  intention,  therefore,  for  the  future  to  wear 
a  cope  on  all  occasions  when  celebrating  Holy  Communion  in  our 
cathedral. 

"  I  am  sure  that  the  cathedral  authorities  would  desire  that, 
if  possible,  we  should  all  of  us  observe  in  this  matter,  as  in  others, 
a  uniform  use.  I  venture,  therefore,  to  draw  your  attention,  and 
that  of  the  Chapter,  to  the  passages  which  I  have  marked  in  the 
accompanying  copy  of  the  Ridsdale  judgment,  and  to  express  the 
hope  that  should  your  Chapter  put  upon  these  the  same  construc- 
tion as  myself,  they  may  direct  that  the  wearing  of  the  cope  bv  the 
celebrant  in  the  administration  of  the  Holy  Conmiunion  shall  be 
our  cathedral  use  for  the  future. 

"  The  question  as  to  the  proper  colour  for  our  copes,  though  not 
altogether  immaterial,  seems  to  me  one  of  no  very  great  importance. 
Possibly  white  might  least  offend  the  susceptibilities  of  some 
members  of  the  congregation  to  whom  the  cope  itself  may  be  a 
rather  unwelcome  novelty.  If  your  Chapter  should  be  of  this 
opinion,  I  should  be  happy  to  adopt  that  or  any  other  colour  they 
may  prefer.  I  am  persuaded  that  the  decision  of  your  Chapter  on 
the  whole  question  will  be  influenced  by  one  only  desire,  namely 
that  of  discharging  faithfully  their  grave  responsibility  as  the 
officers  of  the  principal  church  of  this  diocese.  Believe  me,  my 
dear  Canon  Argles,  very  faithfully  yours. 

"  W.  C.  Peterborough.'" 


1877-79     CONFESSION ;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  83 


In  the  latter  end  of  November  in  this  year,  the  Bishop  had 
a  j)assage  of  arms  with  John  Bright.  I  preface  these  letters 
Avith  the  story  of  their  first  encounter,  \\hich  I  had  from  an  eye- 
Avitness. 

When  Dr.  Magee  was  Dean  of  Cork,  he  met  John  Bright  at 
dinner,  in  the  house  of  a  mutual  friend.  Mr.  Bright  knew  little  of 
the  man  who  sat  opposite  to  him ;  and  his  contempt  for  Church 
dignitaries  was  not  likely  to  be  less  in  the  case  of  an  Irish  Dean. 
He  had  the  conversation  very  nmch  to  himself,  and  lectured  all 
round  him  with  his  usual  ability,  and  Dr.  Magee  listened  atten- 
tively, without  showing  much  disposition  to  take  any  part.  How- 
•ever,  the  subject  of  Ireland  and  her  political  condition  turned  up, 
and  Mr.  Bright  made  some  contemptuous  remark  upon  the  ignor- 
ance of  Irishmen  of  their  own  country,  casting  a  glance  at  the 
Irish  Dean.  This  was  too  much  for  Dr.  Magee,  and  he  put  in  a 
sharp  thrust.  Before  long  all  other  conversation  stopjied,  and  all 
listened  eagerly  to  the  argument  between  the  two.  The  verdict  of 
some  who  were  present  was  that  Mr.  Bright  got  the  worst  of  it. 
Long  subsequently  they  agreed  in  their  discontent  with  the 
English  (not  the  scholarship)  of  the  Revised  Version  of  the  New 
Testament;  and  the  Bishop  often  said  that  it  would  have  been 
very  much  better  if  John  Bright  had  been  one  of  the  revisers ;  and 
that  at  all  events  they  ought  to  have  had  some  colleague  like  him, 
who  did  not  know  Greek,  but  would  judge  the  translation  solely 
from  the  standpoint  of  pure  English. 

Lord  J.  Manners  j  esterday  laid  the  foundation  stone  of  a  new  parish 
church  at  Loughborough.  At  the  luncheon  which  followed.  Lord  J. 
Manners  proposed  the  health  of  the  Bishop  of  the  diocese,  and,  in 
referring  to  the  division  in  the  House  of  Lords  on  the  Burials  Bill^  said 
the  panic  among  the  suppoi-ters  of  the  Church  was  due  to  their  leaders 
having  gone  over  to  the  enemy.  The  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  in 
responding,  said  he  thought  upon  the  whole  in  these  days  bishops  were 
rather  looking  up,  and  coming  to  the  front,  because  they  were  not  only 
honoured  and  graced  occasionally,  as  they  were  that  day,  by  the 
presence  and  co-operation  of  a  Cabinet  Minister,  but  they  wei'e 
occasionally  favoured  with  the  candid  ci-iticism  of  ex-Cabinet  Ministers. 
Mr.  Bright,  at  Rochdale,  had  been  kind  enough  lately  to  bestow  upon 
the  clergy  and  bishops  of  the  Church  of  England  no  small  amount  of 
pains,  and  a  considerable  amount  of  very  valuable  criticism.  Now  he 
said  it  was  valuable  criticism  quite  unaffectedly,  because  it  was  good 
for  them  all  occasionally  to  see  themselves  as  others  saw  them,  and  he 


84 


ARCHBISHOP  31  J  GEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


■was  sure  that  an  observer  so  keen  and  shrewd  as  Mr.  Bright  might 
occasionally  have  words  to  say  to  them  which  might  have  their  value 
to  tliem.  If  he  might  presume  to  enter  upon  a  comparison — which  he 
feared  might  shock  Mr.  Bright  very  much — Mr.  Bright  was  somewhat 
like  Lord  Cliancellor  Eldon,  who  seldom  came  inside  the  church,  but 
boasted  that  he  supported  it  like  a  buttress  from  outside.  ...  It  was 
his  fortune,  or  his  misfortune,  to  have  been  in  the  gallery  of  the  House 
when  Mr.  Bright  was  delivering  what  appeared  to  him  to  be  an 
exquisitely  beautiful  and  touching  speech  upon  a  sorely  vexed  question 
—the  Burials  Bill.  He  never  heard  a  speech  more  full  of  pathetic 
beauty  and  power ;  but  when  speaking  on  that  subject  it  occurred  to 
the  great  orator  to  stop  and  to  sneer  at  the  observances  of  the  Church 
of  England,  and  speaking  of  his  own  buiial  grounds,  to  say :  "  They 
have  not  been — what  do  they  call  it  ?- — consecrated."  He  confessed 
when  he  heard  that,  it  seemed  to  him  to  be  an  entirely  unworthy  jeer, 
unworthy  of  the  speaker,  unworthy  of  the  subject,  and  unworthy  of  the 
place — a  jeer  at  the  cherished  religious  feelings  and  observances  ot 
many  who  stood  around  him.  He  felt  so  far  grateful  to  the  speaker 
that  he  had  proved  to  him,  if  proof  were  needed,  that  bigotry  and 
illiberality  were  not  always  the  monopoly  of  Churchmen.  .  .  .  Well, 
Mr.  Bright  accused  the  clergy  of  being  largely  indifferent  to  the 
aspirations  of  the  people.  He  was  sure  that  Mr.  Bright  did  not  mean 
by  that  that  the  clergy  were  indifferent  to  the  social,  moral,  and  higher 
aspirations  of  the  people.  He  supposed  Mr.  Bright  meant  that  the 
clei'gy  of  the  Church  of  England  were  opposed  to  the  political  aspira- 
tion of  the  people.  Well,  he  was  glad  to  say  that  the  clergy  were  not 
keen  politicians  on  the  one  side  or  the  other,  and  he  hoped  that 
poUtical  strife  might  never  deeply  taint  or  deeply  injure  the  spiritual 
tone  of  the  Church.  He  was  quite  sure  that  there  were  many  of  the 
clergy  whom  Mr,  Bright  would  call  Liberals,  and  whose  aspirations,  to 
a  certain  extent,  at  least,  must  agree  with  Mr.  Bright's  own.  He  was 
not  sure  that  they  agreed  entirely ;  and  perhaps  he  could  not  better 
illustrate  this  than  by  a  story  on  the  point.  He  happened  about  three 
years  ago  to  be  passing  through  the  cloister  of  his  cathedral  on  a 
summer's  evening,  and  he  saw  a  very  worthy  mechanic  in  a  state  of 
what  he  might  describe  as  not  exactly  very  bigoted  teetotalisra.  As  he 
was  viewing  the  cathedral  in  all  its  beauty,  and  steadying  himself  with 
some  difficulty,  the  man  looked  up  at  the  building  and  said :  "  Ah,  my 
fine  fellow,  John  Bright  will  have  you  down  some  of  these  fine  days." 
Well,  he  hoped  the  clergy,  even  the  most  Liberal  of  them,  might  be 
pardoned  if  they  did  not  enthusiastically  welcome  one  of  these  aspii-a- 
tions  of  the  people  which  might  find  an  echo  in  the  breast  of  Mr.  Bright. 
— Extract  from  the  Times,  November  20,  1877. 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  85 


From  John  Bright,  Esq.,  M.P. 

Rochdale,  November  23,  1877. 
Dear  Bishop  of  Peterborough, — I  have  read  your  speech,  and  write 
to  make  one  correction  in  it.  You  refer  to  my  speech  on  the  Burials 
Bill,  to  which  you  give  too  much  praise,  but  you  condemn  what  you 
term  the  '  sneer '  intended  in  my  mention  of  the  ceremony  of  consecra- 
tion. I  assure  you  there  was  no  sneer  intended.  The  speech  was 
entii-ely  unpremeditated.  I  had  no  intention  of  saying  anythmg  on  the 
question  when  I  went  down  to  the  House,  and  what  I  said  arose  from 
feelings  excited  during  the  debate ;  when  I  came  to  the  word  "  conse- 
cration," it  entirely  escaped  me,  and  for  the  moment  I  could  not  recall 
it.  In  my  difficulty  I  turned  to  my  friends  on  the  bench  near  me,  and 
said  :  "  What  is  it  called  ? "  or,  "  What  do  they  call  it }  "  One  or  more 
of  them  answered  "  Consecration,"  and  one  or  more  laughed,  I  suppose 
at  my  ignorance  or  forgetfulness,  and  this  laugh,  which  was  some- 
what ill-timed,  made  that  seem  a  sneer  which  was  never  so  intended 
by  me. 

This  charge  has  been  made  against  me  more  than  once,  but  always, 
I  think,  in  party  newspapers  to  winch  I  did  not  think  it  needful  to 
reply  ;  but  coming  from  you,  I  write  now  to  correct  an  eiTor  and  a 
misrepresentation  which  perhaps  I  ought  to  have  corrected  before. 

You  will  not  blame  me  if  I  do  not  believe  in  the  virtue  of  consecra- 
tion. I  cannot  believe  in  what  is  called  "  holy  ground,"  any  more  than 
you  can  believe  in  "  holy  water,"  and  for  the  same  reason,  that  there  is 
nothing  in  it ;  but  it  is  not  necessary  to  ridicule  all  that  one  cannot 
believe,  although  it  is  certain  that  ridicule  has  had  its  share  in  clearing 
the  world  of  some  portion  of  the  superstitions  which  have  misled  and 
afflicted  it. — I  am,  with  great  respect,  veiy  sincerely  youi's, 

John  Bright. 

To  J.  Bkight,  Esq.,  M.P. 

"  Northampton,  November  27,  1877. 
"  Absence  from  home  on  a  confirmation  tour,  dui'ing  which  your 
letter  followed  me,  has  prevented  my  earlier  acknowledgment  of  it. 
I  hasten  now  to  thank  you  for  it,  and  to  say  with  how  much 
pleasure  I  leai-n  from  you  that  I  had  misunderstood  the  purport  of 
the  expression  in  your  speech  on  the  Burials  Bill,  on  which  I  com- 
mented at  Loughborough.  It  certainly  did  sound  to  me,  when  I 
heard  it,  as  a  sneer  at  consecration,  and  my  mistake  on  this  point 
was  the  more  pardonable  as  it  was  evidently  shared  by  a  consider- 
able number  of  your  hearers  in  the  House.    Their  loud  cheers  and 


86 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


approving  laughter  evidently  showed  that  they  regarded  you  as 
expressing  better  than  they  could  have  done  their  contempt  for  a 
oeieniony,  the  real  nature  of  which  they  had  probably  never  taken 
the  trouble  to  ascertain.  I  need  not  say  how  implicitly,  or  how 
gladly,  I  receive  your  assurance  that  their  praise  and  my  blame — for 
which  I  beg  to  express  my  regret — were  equally  misplaced.  Let 
me  at  the  same  time  thank  you  for  the  personal  kindness  and 
courtesy  of  your  explanation.  As  regards  your  disbelief  in  '  holy 
ground,'  I  share  it  fully,  if  by  this  you  mean,  as  I  conclude  you  do, 
ground  which  has  '  in  it,'  by  virtue  of  its  consecration,  some  infused 
quality  of  holiness,  such  as  constitutes  a  holy  person.  But  no 
Churchman  that  I  know  of  ever  supposed  that  this  was  the  '  virtue 
of  consecration.''  By  the  term  consecration,  we  understand  simply 
the  setting  apart  of  men  or  things  to  holy  uses  or  functions ;  not 
the  making  of  either  the  men  or  the  things  in  themselves  holy.  In 
this  secondary  and  relative  sense  of  the  word,  I  think  that  a  con- 
secrated churchyard  might  fairly  be  called  holy  ground,  though  I 
have  never  heard  it  so  called  by  Churchmen.  Doubtless  such 
belief  in  the  relative  sacredness  of  things  and  places  is  liable  to 
superstitious  abuses  against  which  it  is  weW  that  you  and  others 
should  occasionally  warn  us.  I  doubt,  however,  whether  ridicule 
has  the  power  which  you  attribute  to  it  of  overthrowing  these  or 
any  other  superstitions.  I  cannot  help  thinking  that  on  this  point 
the  effect  has  very  often  been  mistaken  for  the  cause.  Superstitions 
are  successfully  ridiculed  when  they  are  expiring;  they  do  not 
expire  because  they  are  ridiculed.  Be  this,  however,  as  it  may, 
you  will  I  am  sure  agree  ^vith  me,  that  the  use  of  ridicule  when 
dealing  with  things  held  sacred  by  others,  involves,  like  the  use  of 
all  sharp  weapons,  considerable  responsibility  on  those  who  resort 
to  it.  But  to  return  to  the  main  subject  of  your  letter.  I  am 
naturally  anxious  to  make  you  the  fullest  amends  for  my  mistake, 
and  I  am  quite  prepared,  should  you  ^\  ish  it,  to  do  so  publicly^ 
Believe  me,  with  much  respect,  very  truly  yours. 

"  ^V.  C.  Peterborough." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxei.l. 

"  Peterborough,  December  5,  1877. 
"  I  have  just  returned  from  a  day  in  London,  where  I  went  with 
my  wife  furniture  hunting.    I  spent  an  hour  at  the  Athenaeum  and 
was  amused  at  the  interest  taken  by  sundry  clubmen  there  in  my 
skirmish  with  Bright.    I  got  a  dropping  fire  of  thanks  from  clergy 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  87 


and  bishojis,  which  shows  that,  on  the  whole,  the  affair  has  done 
uic  no  harm  and  the  Church  some  httle  good. 

"  To-morrow  I  go  to  Lord  Exeter's  for  two  days,  to  speak  at 
Stamford  Girls'  School,  and  to  meet  Cross,  who  is  also  to  figure 
there.  I  want  to  meet  him  to  hear  his  '  sentiments  '  anent  Tooth, 
Mackonochie  &  Co.  Have  you  seen  Carter's  letter  to  Mackonochie 
in  to-day's  Times  ?    It  is  remarkable  for  two  things : 

"(1)  Carter's  approval  of  the  ritualistic  gew-gaws  Mackonochie 
has  set  up. 

"  (2)  His  plain  condemnation  of  Mackonochie's  illegal  defiance  of 
the  Bishop's  authority,  in  retaining  them  against  his  command." 

"  Peterborough,  Febi-uaiy  4,  1878. 
"  I  see  that  the  clergy  have  been  silly  enough  to  fall  into  Liddon's 
trap  for  them  by  signing  the  clerical  declaration  against  war  for 
Turkey,  which  really  means  the  ritualistic  declaration  of  war  with 
Dizzv  to  revenge  the  P.W.R.  The  clergy  have  just  now  a  strange 
mania  for  signing  declarations.  I  think  I  could  manage  to  get 
three-fourths  of  them  to  sign  a  declaration  against  an  eclipse,  if 
I  could  only  })ersuade  them  that  in  some  obli<[ue  way  it  expressed 
some  party  feeling  which  they  happened  to  be  indulging  in  at  the 
moment. 

"  Howevei',  war  is  prevented,  for  the  present  at  least;  and  though 
England  be  '  isolated '  she  is  still  safe,  and,  what  is  more,  the 
Establishment  has  had  a  few  years  added  to  its  lease.  For  these 
mercies,  no  small  ones,  let  us  be  thankful." 

"  Athen^UM,  February  8,  1878. 

"  I  have  just  done  my  duty  at  the  levee,  and  am  starting  for 
home.  I  must  give  you  my  impressions  of  the  last  week,  as 
gathered  mainly  in  the  gallery  of  the  House  of  Commons. 

"  (1)  The  British  Constitution  is  very  dear  at  the  money.  Free 
institutions  are  becoming  unworkable. 

"  (2)  A  poorer,  pettier,  meaner  scene  than  a  democratic  parlia- 
ment in  a  fury  and  a  funk  alternately  can  hardly  be  imagined. 
Crimination  and  recriminations,  small  personalities,  miserable 
gossip,  anger,  and  faction  disgraced  and  degraded  us  as  a  nation 
for  the  last  five  days.  It  is  Philip  and  the  Athenians  over  again, 
only  with  all  the  oration  on  the  side  of  Philip. 

"  (3)  And  this  is  the  most  serious  fact  of  all ;  the  revolutionary 
party  in  the  Commons  received  its  leader  last  night  in  the  person 
of  W.  E.  Gladstone.  After  Hartington's  declaration  that  he  would 


88 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


no  further  oppose  the  Government,  Gladstone  rose,  pointedly 
declared  that  he  would,  made  an  elaborate  and  most  mischievous 
speech,  attacking  Austria  and  the  Austrian  alliance,  and  finally 
marched  into  the  lobby  with  his  army  of  the  future,  124<  in 
number,  including  all  the  advanced  Liberals  in  the  House !  This 
means  a  bid  for  the  Radical  premiership  !  and  it  is  so  regarded  by 
many  in  the  House.  Lord  Hartington,  I  hear,  does  not  conceal 
his  indignation  ;  and  some  Liberal  meeting  to  consider  the  situation 
is  to  be  held  to-day,  or  on  Monday.  But  no  meeting  can  alter  the 
fact  that,  either  from  ambition  or  from  passion,  or  more  likely  from 
a  union  of  both,  Gladstone  has  taken  the  lead  of  the  ultra-Liberal 
party  in  the  House !  What  bearing  this  will  have  on  coming 
domestic  legislation  it  is  not  difficult  to  foresee.  Disestablishment 
comes  nearer  by  a  great  deal  in  consequence  of  it,  and  moreover 
Disestablishment  by  Gladstone  the  Radical,  and  not  Gladstone  the 
Liberal.    Marry,  '  this  is  miching  mallecho,  and  means  mischief.'' 

"  Athen^um,  Fehritary  13,  1878. 

"  I  have  been  busy,  after  the  fashion  of  Convocation  business,  for 
the  last  two  days,  and  have  actually  found  some  interest  in  it,  spite 
of  the  absorbing  interest  of  public  affairs. 

"  This  morning  we  adopted  a  unanimous  resolution  requesting 
Cantuar  and  Ebor,  to  effect  such  reform  as  to  clerical  representation 
in  Convocation  as  lay  in  their  legal  competence.  Subsequently  in 
private  session  I  had  a  fair  stand  up  fight  with  his  Gi'ace  and 
beat  him !  The  question  was  as  to  the  appointment  of  a  gi-eat 
Standing  Committee  of  both  provinces,  which  he  and  Ebor  had 
agi'eed  last  year  to  constitute,  and  which  Ebor  did  constitute  for 
York,  and  coolly  told  the  York  Convocation  would  be  done  in 
Canterbury.  I  prevented  this  last  year,  thinking  it,  for  sundry 
reasons,  most  mischievous.  To  my  surprise  Cantuar  brought  it  on 
again  and  pressed  it  very  hard.  I  fought  him  inch  by  inch,  and 
though  London  went  with  him,  yet  by  help  of  Norwich  and 
Gloucester  and  Bristol  and  Lincoln  I  carried  my  point  so  far  that 
it  is  dropped  for  the  present.  I  dare  say  I  shall  have  to  fight  it  all 
over  again. 

"  Public  affairs  are  most  critical.  The  air  is  full  of  canards ;  one, 
affirmed  by  many  rather  trustworthy  persons  to-night,  is  that 
Derby  has  resigned !  Certain  it  is  that  a  large  caucus  of  Con- 
servatives have  demanded  stronger  measures  and  less  vacillating 
policy  from  Lord  Beaconsfield.    This  is  the  gossip  of  the  horn-. 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  89 


To-morrow  may  dissipate  it  all,  but  it  shows  at  any  rate  in  what  a 
feverish  state  men's  minds  are  now,  when  everything  seems  possible 
and  few  things  improbable. 

"  I  quite  agree  with  your  opinion,  that  Gladstone''s  alliance  with 
the  extreme  Rads.  hurts  him  and  them  for  the  present ;  but  they  are 
the  party  of  the  future,  and  they  know  their  own  minds,  which  is 
more  than  can  be  said  for  the  moderate  politicians  just  now  on 
either  side  of  the  House.  'Thim  is  my  sintimints.'  Time  will 
tell  whether  they  are  wise  or  foolish. 

"I  breakfasted  with  Lord  Beauchamp  this  morning  and  with 
sundry  M.P.s.  My  patronage  efforts  are  producing  good  fruit  in 
the  House  of  Commons.  The  patrons  and  clerical  agents  will  live 
to  wish  they  had  taken  my  Bill." 

"  Athen^um,  February  i6,  1S78. 

"  I  ought  to  be  at  this  moment  (9  o'clock  p.m.)  preparing  my 
sermon  for  St.  Paid's  to-morrow  night,  the  said  sermon  being  by  no 
means  so  advanced  as  it  ought  to  be ;  but  somehow  I  cannot  settle 
down  to  it,  partly,  I  suppose,  because  my  head  is  full  of  the 
Eastern,  the  Burials,  and  the  Convocation  questions,  partly,  I  fear, 
because  I  am  losing  my  power  of  concentrating  thought  and  memory 
upon  any  great  effort :  and  this,  I  fear,  is  a  sign  of  decaying  mental 
force  such  as,  I  suspect,  comes  to  all  preachers  after  fifty.  Parlia- 
mentary speakers  keep  their  forces  far  longer  because  of  the  incessant 
variety  and  engrossing  and  irritating  interest  of  the.  haute  politique ; 
but  I  confess  that  though  the  interest  of  oxu-  great  themes  does  not 
lose  itself  as  I  grow  older,  yet  somehow  the  interest  in  preaching, 
in  addressing  men  from  the  pulpit,  declines  year  after  year.  I 
believe  and  hope  that  this  is  physical  and  not  moral  decline ;  but 
anvhow  it  means  this,  that  I  am  Mriting  to  you  now  instead  of 
working  at  my  sermon. 

"  Did  I  tell  you  that  I  dined  on  Tuesday  last  at  the  Metaphysical 
Society  ?  Loi-d  Selborne,  my  assailant  in  the  House  of  Lords  of  last 
year,  was  in  the  chair,  and  after  a  slight  shyness  at  meeting  me 
grew  chatty  and  civil.  Mark  Pattison,  essayist  and  reviewer,  read 
the  paper  for  discussion.  Imagine  the  mummy  of  an  opium-eater 
resto]"ed  to  life  and  dressed  in  the  dinner  dress  of  the  nineteenth 
century  ;  that  is  M.  Patt  ison,  Hec  tor  of  Lincoln  College,  freethinker 
and  free  writer,  but  certainly  not  free  speaker.  He  read  in  a  dreary 
way  a  queer  paper,  the  object  of  which  was  to  prove  the  impossi- 
bility of  dogma  from  the  indefiniteness  of  words.  He  listened  in 
silence  to  our  criticisms,  uttered  a  few  sepulchral  words  in  reply,  and 


90 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


then  seemed  to  vanish  like  a  sceptical  ghost.  It  was  really  very 
strange,  and  savoured  to  me  greatly  of  opium.  Next  him  sat  Ward, 
of  Tractarian  memory,  now  a  Romanist  layman,  very  solid  and 
John  Bull  like,  hut  very  ahle  and  metaphysical.  Then  Tennyson, 
with  long  hlack  hair  and  with  a  white  clay  pipe  between  his 
lips,  silent  on  the  discussion  and  dull  before  it.  Then  Martineau 
the  Unitarian,  brother  of  Harriet  jMartineau,  elegant  and  refined 
and  scholar!  v.  Then  Harrison,  the  Conitist,  who  argued  stoutly 
for  dognin  against  Pattison !  Then  Lord  F.  Russell,  silent.  Then 
Mivart,  a  Roman  Catholic  naturalist  and  anti-Darwinian,  very  ac- 
complishetl  and  thoughtful.  Then  Professor  Clifford,  elaborately 
courteous,  composed  and  dull.  Altogether  the  scene  was  vei-y 
curious,  and  the  discussion  disappointing.  I  had  some  interesting- 
talk  with  Selborne  on  Church  matters. 

"  In  Convocation  we  have  made  decided  steps  towards  reform  of 
it.  and  also  towards  a  modus  vivendi  between  Parliament  and  Con- 
vocation. 

"  I  nearly  carried  the  resolution  of  the  Lower  House  in  favour  of 
allowing  cope  with  permission  of  bishops,  and  forbidding'  vestments. 
This  was,  at  first,  accepted  by  nearly  all  as  a  wise  eirenicon. 
Ultimately,  however,  London's  dread  of  London  Rits.  and  Norwicli's 
wise  caution,  and  A.  Cantuar's  intense  dislike  of  cope,  and  of  Con- 
vocation too,  so  divided  the  House  that  I  withdrew  my  motion  for 
this  Session.  Lincoln,  however,  will  take  it  up,  and  possibly  carry 
it  in  the  next. 

"  The  Burials  debate  was,  by  all  assents,  very  tame  and  languid ; 
at  one  time  the  House  was  nearly  counted  out.  I  suspect  the  real 
reason  for  this  was  the  certainty  on  both  sides  that  nothing  \\  ould 
be  done  in  this  Session,  or  in  this  Parliament. 

"  Political  nezos  there  is  none ;  canards  abound.  I  suspect  the 
real  truth  is  that  we  have  been  done,  and  that  having  no  trust- 
worthy allies  we  must  grin  and  bear  it,  and  wait  for  a  shuffle  and 
new  deal  a  few  years  hence ;  as  Russia  did  when  she  lost  the  game 
twenty  years  ago. 

"  I  hear  that  our  sending  up  the  fleet  at  last  has  greatly  delighted 
the  Russians ;  Schouvaloff  says  so  at  least.  Plis  observation  is, '  (Ja 
nous  vaut  un  milliard.''  I  can  imagine  his  saying  and  thinking  so. 
If  we  had  kept  it  up  when  we  sent  it  first,  it  might  have  pre\  entcd 
the  occupation  of  Constantinople,  now  it  excuses  it. 

"  I  stay  in  town  until  Wednesday  night  for  sundry  engagements, 
ijiter  alia  for  the  cross-examination  on  Tuesday  of  the  secretary 


IS77-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  91 


for  the  Permissive  Bill  before  the  Committee  on  IntenipcrHiico.  I 
owe  him  a  clay  in  harvest,  and  I  mean  to  pay  it. 

"  Now  you  have  had  a  dish  of  gossip,  and  I  must  go  to  my 
unlucky  sermon." 

"  Athen^um,  Febi'uaty  iS,  1878. 

"  I  preached  at  St.  PauPs  to  near  6000  souls  last  night — text, 
Luke  xvii.  37 — on  which  I  did  not  preach  an  anti-Turco  sermon, 
pointing  to  Turkey  as  the  carcase,  but  a  sermon  to  show  that 
wherever  there  is  Trrw^a,  there  will  be  the  atrot ;  and  that,  therefore, 
instead  of  judging  Turkey  or  Russia  we  had  better  look  at  home. 

"  It  is  a  cm'ious  proof  of  the  soreness  and  tension  of  even  great 
men's  minds  just  now,  that  Lord  Salisbury,  whose  sister-in-law  had 
heard  the  sermon,  when  she  told  him  the  text,  said,  '  The  carcase, 
of  course,  was  Turkey.' 

"  I  should  not  be  surprised  to  find  some  ignorant  reporter  making 
a  political  sermon  for  me  in  the  papers,  and  compelling  me  to  set 
myself  right  with  the  public." 

"  Peterborough,  March  4,  1878. 

"  So  peace  is  signed  at  last.  Time  for  it,  for  the  sake  of  English 
decency  and  self-respect. 

"  Can  anything  be  imagined  more  odious  and  ridiculous  at  the 
same  time  than  the  scene  in  H\  de  Park  last  Sunday  ?  A  Christian 
clergyman  standing  side  by  side  on  a  public  platform  with  the  most 
obscene  and  foul-mouthed  atheist  in  England,  to  harangue  a  mob 
of  London  workmen,  on  Sunday,  respecting  foreign  politics  of  which 
nine-tenths  of  them  knew  and  cared  for  perhaps  a  little  more  than 
they  did  of  and  for  soap  and  water.  And  then  another  band  of 
un  H  ashed  patriots  smashing  the  thick  heads  of  the  aforesaid  as  an 
expression  of  free  enlightened  public  opinion.  And  all  this  while. 
Parliament,  which  is  sujjposed  to  represent  the  nation,  is  sitting  ; 
and  the  said  Parliament  quite  ready  to  quote  on  either  side  the 
savings  and  doings  of  these  rival  mobs  as  the  '  voice  of  the  country.' 
It  makes  one  long  to  emigrate  to  Siberia  or  Dahomey,  where,  if 
there  be  a  bad  Go\ernment,  there  is  at  least  a  Government  that 
knows  its  own  mind,  and  does  not  lose  its  head  once  a  week,  though 
it  does  make  some  of  its  subjects  occasionally  lose  theirs  for  in- 
sufficient reasons. 

"  Surely  of  all  governments  that  by  hysterics  is  the  worst,  and 
England  is  being  more  and  more  governed  by  the  hysteria  of  half- 
educated  men  and  women. 

"  The  aristocratic  oligarchy  of  the  last  centurv  M'as  selfish  and 


92 


AKCHBISHOP  MA  GEE  chap,  xiv 


short-sighted  as  regards  domestic  policy  ;  but  it  was  cool,  far-seeing, 
and  prompt,  as  regards  foreign  policy. 

"  The  boorish  voter  who  sustained  that  aristocracy  and  squirearchy 
was  dull  and  impassive,  and  open  to  bribery  and  beer ;  but  he  was 
stolid  and  bovine,  and  never  got  into  a  fury  except  against  the 
Pope.  But  your  modern,  half-taught,  newspaper-reading,  platform- 
haunting,  discussion-club  frequenter,  conceited,  excitable,  nervous 
product  of  modern  town  artisan  life,  is  a  most  dangerous  animal. 
He  loves  rant  and  cant  and  fustian,  and  loves  too  the  power  for  the 
masses  that  all  this  rant  and  cant  is  aiming  at,  and  he  seems  to  be 
rapidly  becoming  the  great  ruling  power  in  England.  Well,  you 
and  I  are  in  our  fifty-seventh  years.  Let  our  children  look  to  it. 
But  the  England  of  thirty  years  hence,  if  Dr.  Gumming  will  let  the 
world  last  so  long,  will  surely  be  the  nastiest  residence  conceivable 
for  any  one,  save  infidel  prigs  and  unsexed  women.'" 

"  House  of  Lords, 

"  March  12,  1878. 

"  Thanks  for  yoiu:  letter  and  enclosure.  I  got  them  in 
Northampton  just  before  starting  for  this  place,  whei*e  I  am 
listening  to  evidence  about  Scotch  whisky  drinking.  I  return 
home  to-night. 

"  We  had  an  overflowino"  congreo-ation  at  All  Saints''  last  nioht, 
but  it  was  evidently  of  a  kind  not  prepared  to  go  very  deep  in  the 
question  of  Christian  evidences.  It  largely  consisted  of  middle- 
class  folk,  one-half  of  them  women ;  excellent  people  all  of  them, 
but  I  felt  as  I  was  speaking  to  them  the  dread  that  I  might  be 
l^utting  into  their  minds  difficulties  they  had  never  heard  of,  in 
order  to  get  them  out  again  very  imperfectly,  perhaps,  by  my 
arguments.  You  had  no  loss  in  not  coming  in  to  hear  it,  as  it  was 
only  an  attempt,  and,  I  fear,  an  unsuccessf'id  one,  at  popularising 
one  of  my  old  Donnellans.  The  only  thing  new  in  it  was  an 
attempt  to  show  the  value  of  miracles — or,  rather,  of  a  miraculous 
revelation — in  establishing  a  basiti  for  morality  by  revealing  facts 
in  our  nature  and  respecting  God  and  His  government  which  justify 
our  belief  in  our  responsibility,  and  also  by  intensifying  all  motives 
to  morality  by  its  revelation  of  a  future  life.'" 

"  Peterborough,  April  15,  1878. 
"  Your  letter  reached  me  just  on  my  return  from  my  confirmation 
toiu-.    I  managed  to  scramble  through  that,  together  with  three 
churchyard  consecrations  antl  one  church  reopening,  in  ten  days; 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  93 


but  all  the  Avliile  I  was  very  seedy  and  very  much  fatigued  and  out 
of  sorts.  I  am  not  yet  well,  though  mending.  I  have  a  nasty 
cough,  which  clings  to  me  spite  of  fine  weather ;  but,  at  any  rate, 
I  have  a  chance  now  of  getting  rid  of  it,  as  I  have  not  twice  a  day 
to  face  processions  in  east  winds  and  drafty  chancels,  to  say  nothing 
of  incessant  fatigue,  mental  and  bodily. 

"  I  do  not  go  over  to  Chiist  Church  reopening ;  the  Archbishop 
of  Dublin  asked  me,  but  I  have  a  great  function  to  attend  in 
Rutland  just  at  that  time  and  cannot  postpone  it.  H.  Jellett  is  to 
be  one  of  the  preachers. 

"  I  am  rather  tempted  to  go  to  town  to-morrow  to  fight  Lord 
Rosebery,  who  is  turning  his  attention  from  racing  to  the  Church, 
and  moving  a  resolution  against  the  Bishoprics  Bill ;  but  I  am  too 
tired,  too  seedy,  and  too  sick  of  all  Chm-ch  politics  to  worry 
mvself  about  it.  Let  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbmy  and  some  of 
the  younger  bishops  fight  it  out. 

"  I  am  thoroughly  sick  of  episcopal  life  in  Parliament,  where  we 
are  hated  by  the  Peers  as  a  set  of  -parvenus  whom  they  would  gladly 
rid  themselves  of  if  they  dared,  and  only  allowed  on  sufferance  to 
speak  now  and  then  on  Church  questions  after  a  timid  and 
respectful  sort. 

I  wonder  who  will  be  Dizzy's  choice  to  fill  Lichfield's  place.  I 
grieve  personally  for  the  departure  of  the  good  and  great  man  who 
is  gone,  but  he  ought  never  to  have  left  New  Zealand;  his 
episcopate  in  Lichfield  was  not  a  success.    Whose  is 

"  The  stars  in  their  courses  are  fighting  against  the  Established 
Church.  We  have  om*  backs  against  a  falling  wall,  and  can  only 
wr'iggle  as  one  stone  after  another  in  the  tottering  fabric  galls  our 
weary  shoulders.  We  cannot  raise  up  the  wall,  or  stand  up  straight 
and  clear  away  from  it.  Our  predecessors  basked  under  it  and  ate 
fruit  off  it ;  our  successors  will  build  up  a  Church  out  of  its  ruins. 
We  are  only  crushed  by  it,  and  that  more  and  more  year  after  year. 

"  As  to  the  political  situation,  I  begin  to  believe  in  war.  Russia 
has  so  much  to  gain  by  it,  and  has  been  so  far  committed  diplo- 
matically by  the  San  Stefano  treaty,  that  she  may  resolve  on  risking 
much  rather  than  on  certainly  losing  much  of  the  treaty.  We,  on 
the  other  hand,  cannot  recede  from  om-  position,  and  Germany  is 
not  to  be  trusted  as  a  mediator.  She  would  be  almost  equally  well 
pleased  at  our  beating  Russia  or  Russia  beating  us ;  in  either  case 
she  comes  out  the  strongest  power  in  Europe,  with  all  her  reserves  in 
hand  ready  to  seize  on  Holland  if  Russia  beat  us,  and  to  beat  down 


94 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


France  if  we  beat  Russia,  the  only  dangerous  ally  of  France.  At 
any  rate,  the  English  are  in  the  midst  of  these  imperial  rogues, 
like  a  country  bumpkin  at  a  fair  amongst  a  set  of  thimble-riggers  ; 
they  will  cheat  him  if  they  can,  and  hustle  him  out  of  the  tent 
with  his  hat  over  his  eyes  if  he  finds  them  out. 

"  War  (at  home)  means  a  temjiorary  triumph  to  the  Conservatives, 
then  angry  tax-payers,  a  Liberal  peace  INIinistrv,  and  then  Dis- 
establishment. Take  it  how  you  will,  the  outlook  is  not  a 
pleasant  one. 

"You  see  I  am  not,  at  any  rate,  in  a  very  pleasant  mood  just 
now.  Send  me  my  '  Priest  in  Absolution,'  carefully  sealed  up,  to 
comfort  me. — Ever  yom-s  affectionately  and  disgustedly, 

"  W.  C.  PETERBOROUGir."" 
"  Peterborough,  jfidy  7,  1878. 

"  I  have  treated  you  shabbily  in  the  way  of  letters.  I  meant  to 
have  sent  you  a  Pan- Anglican  journal  from  day  to  day ;  but  as  I 
never  got  back  to  Fulham,  where  I  was  staying,  until  just  time  to 
dress  for  dinner,  and  got  to  bed  late  and  tired  and  just  able  to 
Avrite  necessary  and  pressing  letters,  I  never  could  find  time  for  a 
long  letter  of  gossip  to  you  such  as  I  ought  to  have  sent  you.  I 
will  try  and  give  you  to-morrow  my  impressions  of  the  whole 
affair,  but  I  may  not  have  time  for  this.  I  leave  for  Farnham 
Castle  early  on  Tuesday,  where,  alas !  I  am  on  a  connnittee  sorely 
against  my  will.  I  return  here  on  Thursday  to  receive  three 
American  bishops  (two  with  wives),  and  also  Nevin,  American 
chaplain  at  Rome.  They  stay  until  Tuesday.  Now,  you  must 
come  and  meet  them ;  I  will  take  no  refusal.  It  will  be  a  great 
help  to  me  in  entertaining  them  (self  first) ;  a  great  pleasure  to 
them,  as  they  must  not  be  asked  only  to  meet  one  another ;  and, 
I  think,  a  pleasure  to  you,  as  they  are  very  interesting  men  in 
many  ways.  Ergo — come.  I  must  not  write  more.  I  am  brimful 
of  I'an-Anglican  and  other  news  for  you ;  but  unless  you  come  here 
and  tap  me  you  will  lose  the  half  of  it. 

"  ^Vrite  by  retm'n  of  post  to  say  you  will  come." 

"  Athen.edm,  July  26,  1878. 

"  While  the  impression  is  fresh  on  my  mind,  let  me  tell  you  of 
the  closing  scenes  of  the  Pan-Anglican — '  nothing  in  its  life  became 
it  like  the  leaving  of  it.'    It  was  very  happy  and  very  solemn. 

"  We  broke  up  last  night  '  in  most  admired  disorder.'  A  certain 
Report  on  Ritualism  and  Confession,  on  which  Cantuar  had  set  his 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  95 


heart,  as  I  told  you,  had  hcoii  very  unfavourably  received.  Ameri- 
can, Scotch,  and  Irish  bishops  rose  one  after  the  other  to  repudiate 
it.  The  Archbishops  of  York  and  Cantuar  advocated  it  strongly, 
almost  angrily.  Everything  portended  a  stormy  close  to  our 
session  to-day.  I  went  down  with  a  heavy  heart,  hating  to  oppose 
the  Archbishop  in  his  sorrow,  and  yet  angry  with  him  for  intro- 
ducing a  subject  which  he  certainly  had  no  right  to  introduce,  and 
resolved  to  oppose  him.  His  opening  speech  was  powerful,  but  not 
conciliatory.  All  looked  black  as  night.  But  when  the  report, 
amended  after  last  nighfs  discussion,  was  read,  the  scene  changed 
as  by  magic.  Much,  if  not  all,  that  was  objected  to  had  vanished, 
and  the  whole  report  bore  tokens  of  an  anxious  desire  to  meet  the 
objections  of  the  Conference.  One  by  one  the  recalcitrants  showed 
signs  of  giving  way  ;  and  at  last  I,  who  had  led  them,  rose  and  gave 
in  my  adhesion,  subject  to  one  or  two  verbal  alterations.  Soon  all 
was  peace,  or  nearly  so ;  and  at  last  a  very  plain  and  strong  con- 
demnation of  ultra-Ritualism  and  the  Confessional  was  carried, 
with  but  two  dissentients,  out  of  more  than  eighty  bishops  !  After 
that  all  went  well,  and  there  was  really  a  marked  spirit  of  self- 
surrender  and  love  that  quite  impressed  us  all  as  seeming  to 
overmaster  us,  and  that  led  us  to  all  but  unanimous  resolve.  I  do 
not  think  it  presumptuous  to  say,  I  certainly  felt,  that  we  were 
being  overruled  for  good.  The  session  lasted  until  seven  in  the 
evening,  marred  a  little  towards  the  end  by  those  crude  and 
unseasonable  proposals  which  always  break  out  at  the  close  of  every 
session  of  public  bodies,  when  crotchets  are  led  out  in  a  kind  of  half 
despair  by  those  who  feel  that  it  is  now  or  never  with  them. 
Lincoln,  as  usual,  was  inopportune  and  mischievous  in  the  most 
saintly  way.  But  it  was  soon  over  with  him,  and  then  came  the 
end.  The  Archbishops  of  York  and  Armagh,  the  Prinms  of  Scot- 
land, and  the  senior  American  bishops  rose  in  succession  to  propose 
thanks  to  the  Archbishop.  Nothing  could  have  been  in  better 
taste,  or  more  really  touching  and  dignified,  than  their  speeches. 
The  Archbishop  was  too  much  moved  to  reply  by  more  than  one 
simple  sentence  of  thanks.  Tlien  came  the  '  Gloria  in  Excelsis,'  sung 
by  the  bishops,  and  then  the  Benediction ;  and  so  we  parted,  not 
all  of  us,  certainly,  to  meet  again  in  this  world,  and  all  of  us 
feeling  that  this  was  so,  and  yet  happy  that  we  had  met. 
"  And  so  ended  the  Pan- Anglican. 

"  To-mon-ow's  service  will  be  its  apotheosis.  To-night  was  its 
peaceful  departure. 


96 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xiv 


"  On  the  whole,  we  have  done  some  good  and  no  harm,  and  that 
is  not  a  bad  epitaph  for  man  or  meeting. 

"  Now  I  must  end  this  epistle,  for  I  have  a  large  arrear  of  letters 
waiting  for  me." 

"Peterborough,  July  31,  1878. 

"  We  are  off  to  Devon  to-morrow. 

"  I  am  satisfied  now,  looking  back  on  the  Avhole  affair,  that  the 
result  of  the  Pan-Anglican  difficulties  has  been  good.  I  held  out 
long  enough  to  secure  the  omission  of  much  that  was  very  debatable 
and  therefore  weak  in  the  resolutions  ;  and  on  that  point,  I  had  a 
large  majority  of  bishops  with  me.  When  these  matters  were 
struck  out,  I  saw  that  the  great  majority  would  go  with  the  Ai'ch- 
bishop,  and  that  if  I  protested,  at  the  last  I  should  find  myself  in 
the  same  boat  with  Bombay,  Colombo,  and  one  or  two  others  '  of 
that  ilk,'  a  position  in  which  I  had  no  wish  to  appear,  and  so  I 
yielded,  and  in  yielding  shut  them  up,  as  I  had  been  their  Trpojxa^oQ. 

"  We  have  now  got  a  clever  and  definite  and  brief  condemnation 
of  the  Ritualists,  which,  as  a  point  of  order,  was  most  irregularly 
introduced,  and  which  is  pessivii  exempli  as  regards  future  con- 
ferences ;  but  which  '  for  the  present  distress '  is,  as  you  say,  most 
weighty  and  valuable.  Now  as  the  next  conference  will  not  be  for 
ten  years,  it  may  perhaps  be  left  to  protect  itself ;  and  meanwhile, 
we  have  got  just  the  right  thing.  By  yielding  too,  I  secured  from 
the  two  Archbishops  their  refusal  to  join  in  a  preposterous  'Ency- 
clic '  which  old  Lincoln  w  as  pressing  upon  us  as  the  panacea  for  all 
our  troubles.  A  heap  of  sweetly  solemn  platitudes,  such  as  he 
alone  can  indite,  and  such  as  he  alone  believes  can  be  of  the  slightest 
use  to  man,  woman  or  child.  Thank  God,  my  declaration  that 
nothing  would  induce  me  to  sign  an  Encyclic  backed  up  as  it  was 
by  other  English  bishops,  secured  us  this ;  and  now,  on  the  whole, 
as  I  have  said,  we  have  come  well  out  of  the  whole  matter.  The 
American  bishops  behaved  admirably  all  through,  showing  a  firm 
determination  not  to  do  anything  which  the  English  bishops  as  a 
body  did  not  wish ;  and  resisting  very  firmly  an  attempt  at 
caticusing-  them  by  the  Archbishop,  which  was  certainly  not 
altogether  fair.  My  opinion  of  these  Americans  is  greatly  raised 
by  the  conference.  They  are,  for  the  most  part,  shrewd,  able,  ready 
and  right-minded  men.  The  Colonials,  on  the  other  hand,  were 
not  nearly  up  to  this  mark.  The  difference  was  marked  and 
instructive.  Altogether,  I  feel  that  I  have  learned  much  from  this 
Pan-Anglican,  and  I  see  too,  that  it  is  really  an  institution  which 


IS77-79     CONFESSION ;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  97 


will  root  itself  and  grow,  and  will,  in  all  human  probability,  exercise 
a  powerful  influence  on  the  future  of  the  Anglican  communion. 
This  is  a  good  deal  to  say  on  the  part  of  one  who  greatly  disliked 
and  dreaded  the  whole  affair  at  the  first. 

"  I  suppose  we  shall  hear  in  a  day  or  two,  as  to  the  Cork  Deanery 
(which  Jellett,  poor  fellow,  will  not  get) ;  and  in  a  week  or  two,  as 
to  this  Deanerv,  which  Perowne,  I  hope,  may  get ;  but  as  to  which 

I  am  in  mortal  dread  that  may  get  it,  or  .    In  either  of 

these  cases,  I  bid  good-bye  to  peace  or  comfort  for  the  rest  of  \\\\ 
(lavs.  Arglc^^,  I  greatly  fear,  has  not  the  ghost  of  a  chance.  Had 
I  been  free  to  act  at  all  in  the  matter,  I  would  have  pushed  for 
him  ;  as  it  is,  I  fear  that  he  has  no  one  else  who  would  ;  and  I  even 
doubt  whether  he  would  greatly  care  to  leave  Barnack,  which  he 
greatly  loves,  for  Peterborough,  which  disagrees  with  his  health." 

"  BucKLAND,  Devon, 

"  August  1 6,  1878. 

"  I  am  onlv  to-dav  beginning  to  face  my  charge.  I  am  disposed 
to  take  your  advice.  But  I  have  a  horrible  tendency  to  try  for 
<  ompleteness  in  what  I  set  about,  and  to  forget  the  TrAeioi;  qfxiav 
-nvToq,  or,  as  the  French  put  it,  that  ''le  mieux  est  Tennetni  du  Men. 
On  the  same  principle,  I  always  buy  twice  as  much  fishing  tackle  as 
I  want,  and  ])ut  twice  too  much  matter  into  my  sermons,  in  a  verv 
wasteful  manner,  instead  of  constructing  handy  '  szvivcls.^  I  wish  I 
had  the  art  of  doing  and  taking  things  easily.  It  is  an  Anglo- 
Saxon  and  not  a  Celtic  gift.  When  the  Irishman  takes  things 
easily,  he  does  not  take  them  at  all !  which  is  a  bull,  but  like  all 
true  bulls,  expresses  a  truth  that  cannot  otherwise  be  expressed. 

This  is  a  charming  place  for  scenery,  but  it  lacks  resources.  I 
have  decided  in  future,  either  for  seaside  or  foreign  travel  for 
vacations.  A\'e  are  too  much  buried  here,  and  apt  to  mope 
accordingly. 

"  I  see  that  the  Bishoprics  Bill  has  passed  the  Connnons,  and  is 
bv  this  time  law.  It  gives  us  all  we  shall  ever  get  in  that  direction, 
and  really  all,  or  nearly  all,  that  we  want. 

"Liverpool,  Newcastle,  Halifax,  and  Southwell,  ai'e  great 
accessions  of  strength,  and  great  reliefs  to  overburdened  dioceses. 
Churchmen  will  do  wisely  now  to  rest  and  be  thankful.  The 
Government  was  not  very  zealous  for  the  Bill,  with  the  exception 
of  Cross,  and  Talbot  who  is  not  in  the  Cabinet.  The  episcopate 
had  to  apply  strong  private  pressure,  as  I  think  I  told  you,  to 

VOL.  II.  G 


98 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


secure  its  being  duly  passed.  But  I  know  that  even  Cross  will  not 
bum  his  fingers  again,  with  what  is  becoming  a  burning  question.'''' 

"  Bdckland  Codrt, 

"September  14,  1878. 

"  I  have  been  too  busy  over  my  destestable  charge  to  reply  ere 
this  to  your  welcome  letter.  The  said  charge  will  be  a  sad  failure. 
It  does  not  in  the  least  please  me ;  and  what  has  not  pleased  a 
man''s  self  in  the  writing,  never  pleases  others  in  the  hearing  or 
reading. 

"I  had  intended  dealing  mainly  with  one  subject,  viz.,  confession. 
But  I  found  this  so  large  and  difficult  a  one,  that  it  would  take  up 
at  least  half  the  charge,  and  not  leave  me  room  for  some  things  I 
wanted  to  say  besides.  I  therefore  dropped  it,  and  took  up,  pro  re 
nata,  some  other  subjects  on  which  I  was  rather  trying  to  say  some- 
thing, than  having  something  to  say.  The  result  is,  I  can  myself 
see,  very  unfortunate.  However  it  must  do  now,  for  I  am  dead 
weary  and  sick  of  it.  I  find  myself  strangely  unequal  to  mental 
work  of  any  kind,  in  a  way  I  never  did  before ;  unable  to  write  a 
sentence  without  changing  it  a  dozen  times,  and  unable,  which  is 
Avorse,  to  shake  off  the  subject  I  have  been  trying  to  wi'ite  on,  and 
passing  sleepless  nights,  with  the  words  or  the  half  thoughts  thev 
try  to  express,  going  round  and  round  in  my  head.  I  do  not  like 
all  this.  It  may  be  the  first  sign  that  I  have  been  living,  mentally 
and  bodily,  too  fast  for  the  last  ten  years ;  or  it  may  be  that  I 
have  not  been  steadily  reading  and  supplving  my  mind  with 
material,  and  that  it  has  been  using  up  itself  in  consequence.  Anv- 
how,  the  immediate  result  m  ill  be,  a  long,  Avordy,  weak  charge, 
which  will  please  no  one  and  ofi'end  manv.    So  much  for  self." 

"  Peterborough,  October  31,  1878. 
"  You  are  certainly  right  as  to  this  being  the  most  successful  of 
niy  charges,  though  /  do  not  think  it  as  good  as  either  of  the  two 
former.  But  just  because  it  has  happened  to  hit  the  public  feeling 
on  certain  questions,  I  have  received  a  far  larger  amount  of  notice, 
public  and  private,  than  on  previous  occasions.  Every  post  brings 
me  letters ;  some  from  furious  Ritualists,  others  from  furious 
Puritans,  and  many,  I  am  thankful  to  say,  from  approving 
IModerates ;  that  show  at  least  that  what  I  said  is  not  yet  silently 
interred.  Lord  Nelson  and  Canon  Carter  are  among  my  corre- 
spondents by  this  day''s  post.  All  of  these  lay  hold  of  my  proposi- 
tions for  a  future  Concordat  of  some  kind  or  other,  and  thank  me 


1877-79     COXFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  99 


for  proposing  it.  I  proposed  the  same  thing  in  my  first  charge, 
and  no  one  noticed  it.  There  is  a  very  fair  critique  in  yesterday's 
Guardian,  so  altogether  I  am  'mickle  the  better' just  now,  in  mind 
and  body." 

"Peterborough,  November  2,  1878. 

"I  send  you  a  Church  Times,  which  you  need  not  return.  It  gives 
a  long  leader  on  my  charge,  which  I  confess  pleases  me  much.  I 
was  afraid  that  I  might  have  made  some  slip  in  fact  or  law  in 
dealing  with  the  thorny  legal  question  of  royal  supremacy  and 
ornaments  rubric.  If  I  had  they  would  have  been  down  upon  me 
at  once.  But  this  article  is  merely  general  abuse,  and  avoids  care- 
fully all  the  gravamina  of  the  charge. 

"  I  have  tried  in  my  letter  to  Canon  Carter,  to  '  draw '  him  on 
the  question  of  the  supremacy,  and  see  what  he  really  acknowledges 
of  it. 

"  I  have  just  been  reading  LlandafTs  charge;  very  learned  and 
able  it  is.  He  goes  partly  over  my  ground,  and  notes  what  I  had 
forgotten,  viz.,  the  words  of  the  first  Canon  1603,  which  binds 
the  clergy  to  '  accept  all  and  singular  laws  and  statutes  made  for 
restoring  to  the  crown  of  this  kingdom  the  ancient  jurisdiction 
over  the  state  ecclesiastical.''  This  binds  all  clergy  notv  to  all  the 
statutes  on  this  subject  of  Henry  and  Elizabeth ;  and  they  are 
sweeping  enough  in  all  conscience  !  This  is  a  stone  I  mean  to  keep 
in  my  sleeve  for  future  use." 

To  Eaul  Nelson. 

"  The  Palace,  Peterborodgh, 

"  November  2,  1878. 

"  jNIy  dear  Lord, — I  have  been  very  busy  in  my  diocese  since  I 
received  your  last  letter,  and  have  not  had  time  until  now  to  thank 
you  for  and  reply  to  it.  I  think  that  I  can  '  grasp  your  position,"' 
and  may  even  claim  credit  for  having  done  so  earlier  than  some 
others ;  for  as  regards  your  first  point — that  '  we  are  in  a  transi- 
tion state  owing  to  altered  relations  between  Church  and  State " — 
I  have  been  insisting  on  this  for  the  last  six  years. 

"  I  noticed  it  in  my  first  charge,  and  again  in  a  speech  in  the 
Lords  on  the  Public  Worship  Regulation,  in  which  I  observed 
*  that  arrangements  which  perfectly  suited  the  sixteenth  century 
would  for  that  very  reason  not  suit  the  nineteenth,'  and  I  have 
again  admitted  this  in  my  late  charge,  and  expressed  hope  for  '  re- 
adjustment.' 


100 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


"  It  is  for  this  very  reason,  however,  that  I  am  the  more  provoked 
with  the  extravagant  lawlessness  of  some  of  the  Ritualists,  because 
it  above  all  other  things  is  hindering  such  'readjustment.''  Everv 
act  of  folly  and  perverseness  on  their  part  is  an  ai'gument  with  the 
average  M.P.  or  elector  against  granting  larger  freedom  to  the 
Church. 

"But,  on  the  other  hand,  may  I  ask,  ha\e  you  fairly  grasped  mfj 
position,  viz.,  that  freedom  to  the  Church  is  one  thing  and  freedom 
to  the  clergy  quite  another  I  am  all  for  giving  larger  freedom 
to  the  Church  to  frame  and  enforce  her  laws.  But  freedom  to  the 
individual  clergyman,  to  do  as  he  pleases,  means  either  tyranny  for 
the  parishioners — if  you  retain  the  present  parochial  system — or 
tvranny  for  the  clergy,  if  you  substitute  for  it  the  Avill  of  the  con- 
gregation. So  far  from  regarding  an  act  of  uniformity  as  a  restraint 
on  the  liberty  of  the  clergy,  I  regard  it  as  their  only  protection 
against  the  congregational  tyranny  of  the  Nonconformists  or  the 
episcopal  tyranny  of  the  Romish  Church. 

"  (2)  I  agree  with  you  in  regretting  the  hard  and  literally  legal 
tone  of  recent  decisions  of  the  courts  in  cases  ecclesiastical.  But  is 
this  not  owing  to  the  fact  that  the  Ritualists  some  years  ago  took 
their  stand  on  the  strict  letter  of  the  law,  and  challenged  the 
bishops  to  the  law  courts  ?  The  result  of  this  has  necessarilv  been 
to  subject  our  rubrics  to  what  they  were  never  intended  for — the 
hard-and-fast  measure  of  literal  Jegality — instead  of  their  being 
treated  according  to  the  broad  directions  of  the  Church,  to  be 
modified  by  "resort  to  the  Ordinary"  as  she  directs.  Surely,  if  men 
will  have  the  letter  of  the  law  and  nothing  but  it,  they  must  take 
the  consequences. 

"  I  deplore  this  as  much  as  you  can  do.  But  we  cannot  undo  the 
past.  AVe  may  indeed  amend  the  laws,  so  as  to  enable  them  to 
stand  this  strain  of  legal  interpretation,  by  making  them  at  once 
broader  and  more  definite.  But  I  fear  that  in  no  other  way  can 
we  now  beat  a  retreat  out  of  the  precincts  of  the  law  courts,  into 
which  the  Ritualists  and  Jiot  the  bishops  have  dragged  the  Church. 

"  (3)  We  bishops  do,  I  honestly  think,  recognise  and  try  to  show 
that  we  recognise,  all  the  good  that  is  in  the  late  'sjiiritual  revival  ^ 
of  which  you  speak.  But  we  are  bound  at  the  same  time  to  point 
out  its  excesses  and  its  dangers ;  and  whenever  we  do  so  we  are  met 
with  a  torrent  of  vituperation  and  insult,  which  I  confess  gives  us 
little  reason  to  believe  that  those  who  indulge  in  it  would  be 
willing  to  be  led  by  us  under  any  possible  circumstances. 


1877-79    COXFESSION;  PAN-AXGLICAN  SYNOD  101 


"I  wish  that  I  could  adopt  your  kindly  simile  of  the  '  restive  high 
spirited  horse  who  only  needs  a  light  hand  on  the  curb.'  Alas  !  I 
am  more  tempted  to  think  of  the  '  mule'  that  must  be  restrained 
'  with  bit  and  bridle  lest  he  fall  upon  you ' ! 

"So  far  from  regarding  the  Ritualists  as  oppressed  by  the  bishops, 
I  must  say  that  they  seem  to  me  the  very  spoilt  children  in  the 
Church's  nm-sery — scratching  and  biting  their  elderly  kindly  nurses 
(the  bishops),  and  trying  (some  of  them)  to  kick  over  the  supper- 
table  and  spill  all  its  contents  on  the  ground,  because  they  cannot 
have  the  cloth  on  it  laid  after  their  fashion,  or  exactly  the  dishes 
on  it  that  they  like. 

"  ^V^e  may  at  least  plead  as  proof  of  our  wish  to  be  fair  that  while 
the  Ritualists  complain  of  our  tyranny  and  one-sidedness,  the  Rock 
and  the  Record  never  cease  to  abuse  us  for  our  treacherous  conni- 
vance with  Ritualism. 

"As  we  cannot  be  at  once  the  treacherous  allies  and  the  cruel 
oppressors  of  the  same  party  in  the  Church,  may  it  not  after  all  be 
the  case  that  we  are  striving  under  cruelly  difficult  circumstances 
to  deal  fairly  by  all  ? 

"After  all,  the  question  is  far  more  as  regards  the  future  than 
the  past.  Crimination  and  recrimination  as  regards  the  past  may 
go  on  for  ever,  and  with  no  result.  The  real  question  is.  What  are 
ice  to  do  next  ? 

"  My  recipe  is — 

"  (1)  Admit  the  fact  that  we  need  reform,  both  in  Church  legisla- 
tion and  Chui'ch  judicature. 

"(2)  Admit  that  our  present  malaise  is  the  result  of  causes  of  long- 
standing and  for  which  no  living  man  is  responsible,  whatever  faults 
may  have  been  committed  on  either  side  under  the  irritation  of 
this  malaise. 

"  (3)  Try  and  remedy  these  causes  by  wise  and  patient  efforts  at 
reform.  The  evils  we  suffer  from  were  not  wrouoht  in  a  day, 
neither  can  they  be  remedied  in  a  day. 

"  (4)  Help  forward  this  reform  by  strengthening  and  developing 
representative  Church  opinion  in  diocesan  synods,  and  conferences, 
and  by  reform  of  Convocation.  So  that  at  last  our  educated  and 
deliberate  utterances  '  of  the  mind  of  the  Church '  may  formulate 
and  obtain  reasonable  '  read j  ustments.' 

"  (5)  In  the  meanwhile,  submission  on  the  part  of  the  clergy,  under 
protest  if  they  will,  to  the  existing  laws  as  interpreted  by  legal 
tribunals — a  submission  which  would  go  further  with  Parliament 


102 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


juid  the  nation  to  obtaining  reform  than  any  amount  of  rebellion 
or  clerical  hysteria  in  the  Church  papers. 

"  In  such  a  cause,  believe  me,  the  clergy  would  not  want  for 
leaders  amongst  the  bishops.  But  so  long  as  they  retain  their 
present  attitude  of  simple  intranslgentes — defying  alike  law, 
episcopal  authority,  persuasive  entreaty,  and  even  connnon  sense, 
and  just  doing  exactly  what  they  like — they  can  only  expect  oppo- 
>ition  and  suspicion  from  the  nation  at  large,  and  guarded  caution 
and  restraint  from  the  bishops. 

"Would  that  milder  and  wiser  counsels  might  prevail  with  them  ! 
If  not,  there  is  nothing  left  but  their  secession  or  om*  general 
disi-uption  ;  but  I  still  hope  for  the  best,  and  my  hope  is  encouraged 
bv  such  letters  as  yours  from  laymen  in  your  position. 

"  The  High  Church  party  can  save  the  Church,  and  they  only.  I 
trust  and  pray  they  may. — Yours,  mv  dear  lord,  most  trulv, 

"  \V.  C.  Peterborough.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"  Brighton,  December  7,  1878. 
"  Carter  replied  to  my  letter,  in  what  I  thought  a  feeble  letter, 
in  the  Times  of  Tuesday  last.  I  rejoined  in  Thursday's  Times. 
He  has  not  appeared  in  sur- rejoinder.  He  has  quite  fallen  into 
uiy  trap,  and  treats  me  as  a  vrjTrtoe  to  be  mistrusted,  and  to  mv 
delight,  introduces  the  QScumenical  Council  theory,  which  is  even 
more  leaky  than  the  Vincentian  rule.  I  brought  out  our  friends 
the  Nestorians  in  my  reply  ;  I  think  to  some  effect.  I  would  send 
vou  the  cuttings,  but  that  I  may  want  them  at  any  moment  to 
refer  to.  I  am  amused  at  your  brother  sending  you  my  first  letter. 
Hutton,  of  the  Spectator,  told  me  he  thought  the  second  quite 
unanswerable.  "  W.  C.  P." 

I  subjoin  the  Bishop's  two  letters  to  the  Times  alluded  to  above ; 
as  the  weakness  and  practical  uselessness  of  the  Vincentian  rule  was 
a  favourite  theological  topic  with  him. 

THE   RULE   OF  FAITH. 

To  the  Editor  of  The  Times. 

November  29,  1878. 

Sir, — As  I  have  always  felt  some  misgivings  as  to  the  sufficiency  of 
the  rule,  "quod  semper,  qitod  iihique,  qitod  ab  omnibus,"  announced  by 
Canon  Carter  as  that  which  decides  for  him  his  belief,  I  avail  myself  of 


1877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  103 


the  opportunity  afforded  by  his  letter  to  you  to  seek  at  his  hands  an 
answer  to  my  difficulties.    These  are  : 

(1)  That  I  have  never  been  able  to  prove  this  rule. 

(2)  That  I  have  never  been  able,  assuming  it  to  be  true,  to  prove 
anything  by  it. 

As  regards  the  proof  of  this  rule,  my  difficulty  lies  in  the  word 
"omnibus."  Who  are  the  "  omites,"  the  "all,"  whose  belief  is  to  rule 
mine  ?  Ai-e  they  "all  "  who  have  ever  professed  and  called  themselves 
Christians?  or  "all"  who  have  been  orthodox  Christians  ? 

If  the  former,  then  the  definition  will  include  all,  or  nearly  all, 
heretics ;  if  the  latter,  then  I  seem  to  myself  to  be  involved  in  the 
vicious  circle  of  first  using  catholicity  as  a  test  of  orthodoxy,  and  then 
using  orthodoxy  as  a  test  of  catholicity.  If  I  seek  a  test  of  orthodoxy, 
it  is  presumably  because  I  cannot,  without  its  aid,  ascertain  what  beliefs 
are  and  what  are  not  orthodox ;  but  if  I  must  decide  this  question  of 
orthodoxy  before  I  can  apply  this  test,  of  what  use  is  this  latter  to  me 
in  deciding  my  belief.''    This  is  my  difficulty  as  to  proving  this  rule. 

As  regards  proving  anything  by  it,  the  same  word  "all "  is  again  my 
great  trouble.  Does  it  mean  the  absolute  and  literal  totality  of  all 
professmg  Christians,  or  even  of  all  orthodox  Christians,  at  all  times,  in 
the  history  of  the  Christian  Church  }  If  it  does,  can  this  literally 
universal  assent  be  produced  for  any  one  Christian  doctrine  } 

But  if  this  be  not  the  meaning  of  the  word  "  all,"  what  does  it  mean  ? 
Does  it  mean  the  great  majority  of  Christians,  or  the  mere  majority  of 
tliem  ?  And  if  it  means  this,  what  reason  have  we  for  holding  that  the 
voice  of  the  majority  of  the  Christian  Church  must  be  always  in  the 
right .''  I  can  understand  the  doctrine  that  the  entire  Christian  Church 
cannot  at  any  given  moment  have  been  in  error,  inasmuch  as  in  that 
case  "the  gates  of  hell"  would  have  "prevailed  against  it;"  but  I 
can  see  in  this  no  promise  that  the  majority  of  the  Church  should 
never  err,  nor  that  the  faith  should  not,  at  any  given  moment,  be  in 
the  possession  of  the  minority,  and  even  of  a  very  small  minority  ;  and 
I  think  that  I  remember  a  certain  saying  about  "  Athanasius  contra 
mnndum,''  which  Canon  Carter  would  probably  admit  has  its  bearing  on 
this  question. 

It  seems  to  me,  therefore,  that  unless  I  am  to  adopt  the  rule  of 
accepting  as  the  truth  whatever  the  majority  of  Christians  believe,  or 
have  always  believed,  I  must,  in  order  to  ap2)ly  this  rule  of  "  quod  ab 
ODinibus,"  ascertain  what  every  individual  Christian  has  always  and  at 
all  times,  in  the  history  of  the  Church,  believed  ;  and  I  confess  that 
the  difficulty  of  ascertaining  this  has  always  seemed  to  me  greatly  to 
detract  from  the  practical  value  of  Canon  Carter's  rule,  even  if  the 
logical  difficulty  of  proving  the  rule  itself  were  overcome.  I  shall  be 
very  glad  if  these  two  difficulties  could  be  removed  from  my  mind  by  a 


104 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIV 


divine  of  Canon  Carter's  ability  and  learning.  I  should  even  then  feel  a 
difficulty  as  to  the  true  meaning  and  effect  of  the  word  "  semper,"  for  a 
solution  of  which  I  might  in  that  case  venture  to  ask  him.  Meanwhile 
I  trust  he  will  kindly  deal  with  those  now  submitted  to  him  by 

A  Perplexed  Inquirer. 

December  5,  187S. 

Sir, — I  have  to  thank  Canon  Carter  for  his  reply  to  my  letter ;  bat 
I  must  say  that^  instead  of  removing  my  difficulties,  he  has  increased 
them  tenfold. 

The  Vincentian  rule  being  "a  definition,"  Canon  Carter  tells  us  "its 
terms  must  be  taken  with  limitations  to  be  suggested  by  the  subject- 
matter."  I  had  thought  that  a  definition  was  that  Avhich  traced  the 
fines  or  limits  of  the  subject  which  it  professed  to  define,  and,  therefore, 
that  if  any  one  of  its  terms  was  indefinite,  it  so  far  failed  as  a  definition  ; 
and  certainly  I  had  always  believed  it  to  be  a  fatal  flaw  in  a  definition 
if  the  subject  to  be  defined  made  part  of  any  one  of  the  terms  used  to 
define  it.  Now,  the  Vincentian  rule  labours,  as  it  seems  to  me,  under 
both  these  defects,  because  the  word  "  oiniies,"  being  indefinite,  we 
need  to  be  told  Avho  are  the  "all "  meant  by  it,  and  because,  when  we 
attempt  to  ascertain  this,  we  are  compelled — if  we  would  not  accej)t 
heterodoxy  as  part  of  our  rule — to  make  this  word  ■'oiiines"  mean  all 
orthodox  Catholics,  and  thereby  to  introduce  into  our  definition  of 
orthodoxy  the  very  term  "orthodox,"  which  it  was  the  object  of  the 
rule  to  define.  This,  I  said,  was  arguing  in  a  vicious  circle.  How 
does  Canon  Carter  meet  this  difficulty  ?  Simjjly  by  doing  that  very 
thing  Avhich  seems  to  me  so  illogical.  I  am  an  inquirer  desiring  to 
know  what  is,  and  what  is  not,  the  CathoUc  faith.  I  am  offered  for 
this  purpose  the  rule  of  Vincentius,  to  be  taken  with  this  "limitation  " 
— that  tlie  "  omnes "  ai-e  all  those  who  have  not  "  put  themselves 
outside  the  pale  of  Catholic  tradition."  But  before  I  know  who  these 
are  I  must  know  what  is  the  true  "  pale  of  Catholic  tradition  " — that 
is  to  say,  I  must  be  able  to  distinguish  between  those  who  truly  and 
those  who  falsely  call  themselves  Catholics.  And  if  I  can  do  this,  and 
must  do  it  before  I  can  use  the  Mncentian  rule,  of  what  use  is  the 
rule  to  me 

But  I  have  this  further  fault  to  find  with  Canon  Carter's  hmitation. 
The  "separatists"  of  whom  he  speaks  (I  called  them  "heretics," 
which  is  not  exactly  the  same  thing)  did  not  for  the  most  part  "put 
themselves  outside  the  pale  of  Catholic  tradition,"  by  which  I  suppose 
Canon  Carter  means  the  visible  Church.  They  were  put  outside  of  it  by 
•hose  who  claimed  to  be  the  only  true  Catholics,  and  who  accordingly 
anathematised,  in  certain  general  councils,  those  who  differed  from 
them.    These  did  not  separate  first  and  then  put  forth  their  opinions 


1877-79    CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  105 


as  those  of  separatists — in  which  case  Canon  Carter's  limitation  would 
have  some  value — but  they  put  forth  their  opinions  while  still  "within 
the  pale  of  Catholic  tradition/'  and  were  afterwards  expelled  for  so 
doing.  This  obviously  raises  the  question  whether  they,  or  those  who 
expelled  them,  were  the  true  Catholics ;  and  so  we  are  brought  back 
again  to  the  original  question — Who  are  the  true  Catholics  ?  or.  Who 
are  the  "  omnes  "  of  the  Vincentian  rule  ? 

Nor  is  this  difficulty  in  the  least  solved  by  Canon  Carter's  reference 
to  GEcumenical  Councils,  for  an  CEcumenical  Council,  according  to  his 
definition,  is  one  whose  decrees  are  confirmed  by  "the  consentient 
voice  of  Catholic  Christendom."  Here,  again,  that  troublesome  word 
"  Catholic  "  or  "  07«rtej  "  intrudes  itself  into  the  Canon's  definition  of 
Catholicity,  and  makes  it  illogical ;  here,  too,  I  must  ask  for  a  definition 
of  the  term  "  consentient  voice."  Is  it  absolutely  and  universally 
consentient,  or  only  partly  or  mainly  so  ?  Thus,  again,  the  old  question 
recurs.  Who  are  the  "  omnes  "  whose  verdict  is  to  decide  the  question 
of  Catholic  faith  .''  Moreover,  if  an  CEcumenical  Council  be,  as  Canon 
Carter  defines  it,  one  whose  decrees  have  been  universally  accepted  by 
Christendom,  it  is  clear  that  until  they  are  so  accejited  they  liave  no 
validity,  but  may  only  be  the  decree  of  one  of  those  general  councils 
which  we  know  "may  err  and  have  eri-ed."  If  so,  those  anathematised 
and  expelled  by  a  genei-al  council  are  perfectly  justified  in  resisting  its 
decrees,  for  they  might  thereby  be  preventing  an  erring  council  from 
becoming  GEcumenical ;  and,  further,  it  is  clear  that,  so  long  as  they  do 
so  resist  them,  the  council  can  never  become  GEcumenical.  May  I, 
then,  ask  Canon  Carter  how,  on  his  pi-inciple,  he  can  ever  pi'ove  the 
council  which  condemned  the  Nestorians  to  be  Oecumenical,  or  the 
Nestorians  to  be  heretics ;  for,  up  to  the  time  of  the  decree  whicli 
anathematised  them,  the  Nestorians  were  "  within  the  pale  of  CathoHc 
tradition,"  and  no  one  had  the  right  to  say  they  were  not  Catholics  ; 
and  after  the  passing  of  this  decree  they  clearly  retained  the  right  to 
the  title  until  the  decree  had  been  accepted  by  the  whole  of  Christen- 
dom. But  to  this  day  the  Nestorians,  who  were  a  part  of  Christendom 
at  the  time  of  passing  this  decree,  reject  it.  Clearly,  therefore,  miless 
might  make  right,  and  all  expulsion  de  facto  is  also  expulsion  de  jure, 
the  Council  of  Ephesus  has  not  yet  vindicated  its  right  to  the  title  of 
CEcumenical,  and  the  Nestorians  have  as  good  a  right  to  the  title  of 
Catholic  as  Canon  Carter  has. 

Strange  to  say.  Canon  Carter  admits  tiiis  difficulty  as  regards  our 
present  divided  Christendom,  which  is  thereby  "  incapacitated,"  it 
would  seem,  from  "speaking  with  one  voice."  How,  may  I  ask,  more 
incapacitated  by  its  divisions  now  than  the  Church  which  Canon  Carter 
calls  the  undivided  one  at  the  time  of  the  Nestorian  schism  If  Canon 
Carter  reply,  "  Because  the  Nestorians  were  heretics,  and  the  Anglican, 


106 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


Greek  and  Roman  Churclies  are  Catliolic,"  that  is,  of  course,  begging 
the  very  question  in  dispute  ;  and  tliat  it  is  begging  it  Canon  Carter 
may  satisfy  himself  by  asking  the  next  Roman  CathoHc  priest  he  meets 
whether  he  thinks  our  claim  to  be  called  Catholics  any  better  than 
that  of  the  Nestorians. 

Lastly,  Canon  Carter  fails  entirely,  as  it  seems  to  me,  to  meet  my 
second  difficulty  as  to  whether  "  omiies"  means  the  literal  universality 
or  only  the  great  majority  of  Christians.  He  admits  that,  practically, 
it  must  mean  the  latter,  and  that,  after  all,  Catholic  consent  is  only 
"more  or  less"  of  the  belief  of  the  "  omnes."  He  fails,  however,  to 
deal  with  the  obvious  inference  that  if  it  be  no  more  than  this  it  cannot 
bind  the  conscience,  inasmuch  as  there  is  no  promise  given  by  our 
Lord  that  the  majority,  "more  or  less,"  of  the  Catholic  Church,  or,  as 
the  Canon  puts  it,  "  the  general  body  of  tlie  Church,"  shall  never  err, 
and  that  therefore  we  have  not  got,  in  this  "more  or  less"  of  Catholic 
consent,  that  absolute  "testimony  of  the  Holy  Spirit"  which  Canon 
Carter  claims  for  it  in  his  first  letter.  Indeed,  Canon  Carter  seems  to 
admit  this  when  he  states  that  "on  certain  questions  trutli  was  first 
seen  by  the  comparatively  few,"  Avho  must  therefore  have  discovered 
the  truth,  not  by  following  but  by  ignoring  the  Vincentian  rule, 
which,  nevertheless,  he  tells  us,  must  now — he  does  not  say  why — • 
absolutely  rule  our  faith. 

To  sum  up,  then,  this  rule  of  Vincentius  as  explained  and  limited  by 
Canon  Carter,  it  comes  to  this :  The  Catholic  faith  is  that  wliich  "  has 
always  and  everywhere  been  held  by  all "  who  have  kept  "within  the 
pale  of  Catholic  tradition,"  and  who  have  expelled  from  that  pale  all 
who  happened  to  differ  from  them  ;  who,  nevertheless,  still  claim  to  be 
as  good  Catholics  as  those  who  expelled  them  ;  and  who,  by  so  doing, 
prevent  the  decree  which  expelled  them  from  ever  acquiring  that 
Catholic  assent  which  is  essential  to  its  acceptance  by  a  true  Catholic ; 
and  the  ''  all  "  who  thus  remain  within  the  Catholic  pale  are  not 
absolutely  all,  but  only  "more  or  less"  of  the  "all,"  and  whenever 
they  have  been  "less"  and  not  "more"  they  have  preserved  the 
Catholic  faith  by  disobeying  the  V  incentian  rule,  which  is  thus  proved 
tf)  be  itself  lacking  in  that  very  element  of  Catholic  assent  which,  we 
are  told,  conditions  the  belief  of  all  Catholics. 

Alas  !  this  leaves  me  more  than  ever         A  Perplexed  Inquirer. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"57  Marine  Parade,  Brighton, 

"  December  ii,  1878. 

"  I  hope  vou  have  got  Carter's  letter  by  this  time.  I  would  send 
you  my  copv,  but  that  I  still  fear  I  may  need  it  to  reply  to ;  though 


,877-79     CONFESSION;  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  107 


if  I  see  no  answer  in  to-morrow's  Times  I  shall  conclude  that  he 
has  thrown  up  the  sponge. 

"  I  was  delighted  to  read  a  savage  notice  of  my  letter  in  the 
ultra-i'itualistic  Church  Rcv'mc.  It  hopes  that  Carter  'will  not  act 
as  a  hodman  in  carrying  bricks  for  his  masked  opponent  to  pick 
holes  in,"  my  arguments  'being  equally  suitable  for  a  Romanist,  an 
infidel,  or  a  sceptic'  So  you  see  I  have  made  '  a  very  pretty  little 
([uarrel  of  it  as  it  stands,'  and  have  develojDed  some  talents  for 
mischief. 

"  I  have  been  reading  Dean  Hook's  life,  by  his  son-in-law — a 
very  poor  jn-oduction  indeed ;  badly  arranged  and  badly  written, 
redeemed  from  dulness  only  by  Hook's  own  letters  and  by  the 
inherent  interest  of  some  of  the  scenes  through  which  he  passed 
and  the  persons  with  wliom  he  was  mixed  up.  Relations  never  should 
write  memoirs.  They  have  no  sense  of  perspective ;  all  comes  for 
them  on  the  front  line,  from  the  hero's  dullest  schoolboy  effusion 
and  smallest  family  gossip  to  his  greatest  words  and  works.  And 
the  result  is  sometimes  ludicrous  and  sometimes  wearisome.  Still, 
the  second  volume  contains  interesting  matter,  especially  as  regai'ds 
Hook's  attitude  to  the  Ritualists  of  his  day  and  his  decided  and 
contemptuous  condemnation  of  themselves  and  their  sayings  ami 
doings. 

"  We  retui'n  on  the  17th,  when  I  shall  be  fifty-seven  years  of 
age,  if  I  live  till  then." 

"  Peterborough,  December  26,  1878. 

"  This  letter  of  affectionate  Christmas  wishes  for  you  and  yours 
should  have  crossed  yours  of  like  tenor  to  me  which  I  have  just 
received ;  but  I  had  sundry  long  diocesan  '  cases '  to  dispose  of  on 
Christmas  Eve,  and  thev  filled  my  mind  and  time  to  the  exclusion 
of  pleasanter  topics.  Most  heartily  do  we  wish  for  you  and  yours 
all  the  blessings  that  this  happy  and  holy  season  is  suggestive  of. 

"  We  are  all  gathered  here  together,  well  and  happy,  and  I  cannot 
but  feel,  as  I  look  at  wife  and  children  grouped  round  the  Christmas 
hearth,  that  I  should  be  the  most  ungrateful  and  discontented  of 
men  if  I  were  to  allow  thoughts  of  further  preferment  to  interfere 
w  ith  the  quiet  content  and  happiness  of  the  present  time. 

"  I  was  gr  eatly  pleased  by  your  approval  of  the  Carter  correspond- 
ence. My  second  letter  was  difficult  to  write  because  I  had  to  write 
in  the  style  of  a  Times  correspondent  and  for  the  average  Times 
reader,  and  be  rather  more  epigrammatic,  therefore,  and  lay  in  my 
style  than  perhaps  quite  suited  the  subject.  I  always  longed  for  an 


108 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIV 


opportunity  of  pelting  old  Vincentius  if  I  could  ever  get  him  into 
the  pillory,  and  I  had  my  will  of  him  at  last." 

"Peterborough,  Januayy  6,  1879. 

"  I  have  had  an  interesting  correspondence  with  Canon  Bright, 
Oxford  Divinity  Professor,  who  has,  like  Carter,  taken  up  my 
suggestion  of  an  amended  ornaments  rubric,  and  is  disposed  to 
move  others  of  his  pai"ty  to  some  action  in  that  direction. 

"  I  have  now  to  set  to  work  to  look  up  evidence  for  the  Com- 
mission on  Benefices  sale ;  also  to  get  ready  sundry  London 
sermons  for  Whitehall  and  elsewhere ;  also  to  arrange  subjects  for 
meeting  of  rural  deans  in  February,  &c.  In  fact,  the  holidays  are 
over  for  me,  or  nearly  so,  and  hard  work  beginning. 

"All  here  join  in  love  and  best  New  Year's  wishes.'" 

"  Peterborough,  January  28,  1879. 

"  The  great  Durham  question  is  solved  at  last.  Lightfoot  is  the 
new  Bishop.  The  appointment  is  in  every  way  an  excellent  one, 
and,  under  the  circumstances,  politically  wise  and  dexterous. 
Dizzy  has  chosen  a  man  against  whom  no  one  can  say  a  word.  A 
great  many  words  would  certainly  have  been  said  against  either 
EUicott  or  myself. 

"And  now,  if  you  want  to  know  how  I  feel  about  it,  I  can 
honestly  say  I  am  surprised  to  find  how  little  I  do  feel  about  it. 
Happily  for  me,  I  am  not  of  a  sanguine  temperament,  and  never, 
from  the  first,  had  serious  expectations  of  the  appointment ;  and 
the  feeling  that  the  matter  is  at  last  decided,  and  all  gossip  and 
speculation  about  it  at  an  end,  is  an  immense  relief.  I  have  only 
to  give  myself  with  renewed  and  undistracted  energy  to  the  work 
which  is  now  obviously  mine  for  life.  And  truly  I  ought  to  do  so 
with  a  grateful  heart  to  the  Giver  of  all  good  for  all  that  I  have 
received  at  His  hands.  I  have  far  more  than  I  deserve,  and  more 
than  I  ever,  in  my  most  ambitious  moments,  desired  or  dreamed  of. 
And  as  regards  comfort  in  my  work,  no  bishop  in  England, 
probably,  has  more  of  it  and  less  of  the  worries  of  these  troublesome 
times  than  I  have.  So  good-bye  to  Durham,  and  enter  again 
Peterborough,  with  all  good-will  and  welcome  imaginable."" 

"  Peterborough,  March  3,  1879. 

"  Eheu  fugacesl 

"  Your  enclosure  brings  back  to  my  mind  our  pleasant  days  on 
the  shores  of  Loch  Inagh  twenty  years  ago. 


1877-79     CONFESSION ■  PAN-ANGLICAN  SYNOD  10» 


"  I  suppose  I  had  my  troubles  and  worries  then  as  now,  but  I 
cannot  recall  them  as  I  can  the  leaping  trout,  and  the  luncheons  on 
the  islands,  and  the  glorious  scenery,  which  I  used  to  enjoy  so 
when  I  was  not  fishing  and  abuse  you  for  enjoying  when  I  was ;  and 
altogether  the  intense  pleasure  of  a  brief  hard-earned  holiday  for 
which  my  wife  and  I  had  to  save  and  calculate  ways  and  means  for 
months  before.  I  suppose  it  all  meant  one  thing  in  one  word, 
'  Youth  ! ''  and  that  does  not  come  again.  '  There  are  no  birds,"  says 
the  Spanish  proverb,  '  in  the  nests  of  last  year.' 

"  For  one  thing,  I  certainly  wrote  a  better  hand  then  than  I  do 
now.  My  '  sintimints '  seem  to  have  been  much  the  same,  judging 
from  this  specimen  of  them." 

"  RowsLEY,  April  ig,  1879. 
"  Oxford's  letter  is  clear,  but  mischievous.  The  bishops  generally, 
and  he  in  particular,  are  trying  for  the  impossible.    They  want  to 
be  free 

"  (1)  Not  to  prosecute  any  clergyman. 
"  (2)  Not  to  let  any  one  else  do  so. 

"  They  may  do  one  or  other,  but  not  both.  A  bishop  may  say, 
*  I  will  govern  my  clergy,  prosecuting  them  if  need  be,  forbearing 
when  I  think  right ' ;  or  he  may  say,  '  I  will  never  prosecute,'  but  in 
that  case  he  must  let  some  one  else  do  so.  The  nation  will  never 
tolerate  absolute  impunity  for  the  clergy.  Now,  the  bishops,  since 
I  have  known  them,  have  taken  up — most  mistakenly,  as  I  think — 
the  position  that  they  will  not  prosecute.  Well  and  good ;  that  is 
an  intelligible  position,  though  a  false  one.  But  if  they  add  to 
this  Oxford's  position,  that  they  will  stop  any  one  else  prosecuting, 
they  will  raise  a  storm  that  may  blow  down  the  Church.  I  greatly 
fear  Oxford's  success  for  this  reason.  The  bishops  abdicated  when 
they  assumed  the  non-prosecuting  position.  They  must  take  the 
consequences  now.  The  laity  are  astride  of  them  and  the  clergy, 
and  they  will  hold  their  place.  Cantuar  likes  this  !  He  said  so  to 
me  lately.  He  is  infatuated  for  laity  and  Parliament,  and  will  one 
day  have  a  rude  awakening. 

"  Fishing  moderate ;  weather  cold.  Health  greatly  improved  by 
air  and  exercise.  "  AV.  C.  P." 


CHAPTER  XV 


NAVVIES'  MISSION;   DAY  OF  HUMILIATION; 
BURIALS  ACT 

OxE  of  the  works  that  marked  the  Bishop's  episcopate  was  the 
mission  to  the  navvies,  begun  in  1876,  which  was  commonly  called 
the  Bishop  of  Peterborough''s  Railway  Mission.  He  was  fortmiate 
enough  to  secure  the  Rev.  D.  W.  Barrett  as  missioner. 

Circumstances  prevented  the  Bishop's  visiting  the  line  till  some 
months  had  elapsed  after  the  actual  opening  of  the  campaign.  The 
following  account  of  his  visit  is  by  the  Rev.  D.  W.  Barrett. 

On  Sunday  he  preached  m  each  of  the  chapels  to  crowded  congrega- 
tions of  railway  folk  of  all  classes  and  types,  from  the  bricklayer's  hod- 
man to  the  educated  engineer.  The  morning  service  at  Wing  was 
sjiecially  noteworthy,  as  a  lay-reader  was  solemnly  a^jpointed,  in  the 
presence  of  the  congregation,  to  work  among  the  men  at  Corby. 
Before  three  o'clock  he  was  at  Seaton.  We  robed  in  one  of  the  neigh- 
bouring huts,  and  went  across  the  field  to  the  chapel,  but  it  was  with 
difficulty  that  we  edged  our  way  through  the  crowded  throng  gathered 
in  the  chapel  sometime  before  the  hour  of  service.  Several  had 
followed  the  Bishop  from  the  other  end  of  the  line  where  he  had 
pleached  in  the  morning,  and  were  even  present  again  at  night. 

In  the  evening  the  Bishop  addressed  the  congregation  at  Glaston, 
where  the  chapel  was  filled  to  excess,  many  people  being  unable  to  get 
in.  As  this  is  the  centre  of  the  Mission,  and  is  commonly  spoken  of 
by  the  men  as  the  "  cathedral,"  and  is  the  most  populous  station,  he 
preached  ^vith  special  reference  to  the  character  of  the  Mission.  At 
all  the  services  large  numbers  of  men  were  present,  and  the  Bishop 
spoke  of  it  as  a  gratifying  fact ;  his  words  specially  addressed  to  the 
voung  men  anxious  to  do  what  was  right  and  to  bear  witness  for  Christ, 
and  yet  surrounded  and  pressed  sore  by  the  temptations  incident  to  the 
life  of  those  living  in  large  numbers  in  huts,  and  engaged  on  jiublic 
works,  will  not  easily  be  forgotten.    He  miglit  have  been  a  navvy 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  111 


himself,  so  graphically  did  he  describe  a  young  navvy's  temptations. 
On  the  following  day,  the  Bishop,  accompanied  by  Mrs.  Magee,  the 
Mission  staff,  and  some  of  the  chief  authorities  on  the  works,  made  an 
excursion  on  the  line  towards  Manton,  in  an  open  truck  drawn  by  an 
engine.  The  various  branches  of  the  works  Avere  inspected,  and  the 
novel  sight  was  witnessed  of  a  bi  shop  going  into  the  tunnel  to  see  and 
talk  to  the  navvy  at  his  work  in  the  bowels  of  the  earth.  He  was  most 
heartily  welcomed  all  along  the  works,  and  man}^  a  rough  hand  grasjied 
his  with  the  feeling  that  he  was  a  friend  who  had  their  best  interests  at 
heart.  On  the  evening  of  the  same  day  he  received  a  deputation  from 
the  men,  bearing  an  address  from  the  representative  members  of  the  con- 
gregation, thanking  him  for  the  active  interest  he  took  in  their  welfare. 

In  1 878  the  Bishop  visited  the  works  at  Corby.  When  it  was  announced 
that  he  would  come  one  Wednesday  afternoon  in  June,  the  men 
assembled  at  five  o'clock  to  the  number  of  about  three  hundred,  in 
their  working  dress.  It  was  a  veiy  striking  sight  to  see  them  being- 
brought  up  literally  in  truck  loads  from  the  different  parts  of  the  line. 
When  the  engine  stopped  they  jumped  out  of  the  waggons  and  ran 
across  the  field  in  which  the  huts  stood,  in  order  to  get  a  good  place  in 
the  chapel,  which  soon  became  so  crowded  that  one  end  had  to  be 
taken  out  in  order  that  all  might  hear,  as  many  were  unable  to  gain 
admission.  It  was  amusing  to  see  the  swiftness  with  which  the  men 
lifted  out  the  window  fi'ames  and  pulled  down  the  end  of  the  chapel 
and  made  the  boarding  answer  for  a  floor  to  the  extended  portion.  The 
Bishop  began  his  address  by  showing  in  what  respects  he  and  his  navvy 
friends  had  veiy  much  in  common,  and  thus  he  not  only  arrested  their 
attention,  but  gained  at  once  their  sympathy  ;  and  then  he  went  on  to 
tell  them  how  their  common  but  higher  aims  might  be  advanced,  and 
their  common  wants  satisfied,  by  bringing  home  most  vividly  the 
cardinal  truths  of  the  Gospel. 

We  have  now  to  give  an  account  of  the  Confirmation. 

Friday,  June  7,  though  a  black  letter  day  in  the  Calendar,  was 
certainly  a  red  one  in  the  history  of  the  Mission,  for  this  made  the 
fourth  visit  of  the  Bishop  to  the  works,  and  was  a  very  solemn  occasion 
in  the  history  of  some  of  the  young  people  whom  we  had  gathered  in. 
The  candidates  from  the  works  numbered  twenty-six,  and  from  the 
village  thirteen.  The  chapel  was  very  full,  a  Confirmation  on  railway 
works  being  quite  an  attractive,  and  I  venture  to  state,  hitherto  an  un- 
paralleled event.  Many  of  the  hut  residents  wondered  what  a  Con- 
firmation was.  I  remember  Avhen  I  gave  a  notice  of  it  one  Sunday 
evening  a  few  weeks  previously,  and  invited  the  unconfirmed  to  join 
the  preparation  classes,  one  young  navvy  came  up  to  me  after  service 
and  asked,  in  sober  earnest,  whether  it  was  "  a  new  sort  of  Penny 
Reading  "  ! 


112 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


We  are  glad  to  be  able  to  state  that  many  of  the  candidates  during 
the  course  of  the  next  few  weeks  presented  themselves  at  the  highest 
of  all  our  Christian  services,  tiie  Holy  Communion. 

A  paragraph  in  the  Guardian  for  July  2,  1879,  gives  an  account 
of  a  presentation  to  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

An  interesting  event  took  place  the  other  day.  It  was  spontane- 
ously suggested  by  one  or  two  of  the  workmen  still  left^  that  it  would 
be  right  that  they  should  acknowledge  by  some  little  gift  what  the 
Bishop  had  been  the  means  of  doing  for  them.  Accordingly  a  collec- 
tion was  made  amongst  the  "  old  hands  "  who  had  been  on  the  work 
some  time,  and  a  small  but  handsomely  bound  Bible  was  sent  to  his 
lordship,  with  a  few  homely  but  sincere  words  of  gratitude  written  on 
a  sheet  of  paper  inside. 

April  28,  1879. 

The  Right  Rev.  Lord  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

Will  you  kindley  except  this  Bible  as  a  token  of  respect  from  a  few 
of  the  old  Hands  left  on  the  Kettering  and  Manton  Railway  as  we 
feel  we  should  like  to  make  some  acknoglement  for  the  great  Intrest 
j  ou  have  taken  in  our  Spiritual  Wellfare. 

We  think  as  Railway  Men  it  tis  a  great  Honour  for  a  Bishop  to 
Come  Amoung  us  all  Much  More  to  take  the  Intrest  you  have  done  we 
all  Sinceley  thank  you  for  having  a  Mission  Amoungest  us  which  we 
hope  will  be  a  blessing  to  Many  of  us  and  we  Sincerley  hope  you  will 
not  reget  for  what  you  have  done. 

Signed  on  behalf  of  the  Congregations  work  man 

S.  H  -. 

H.  P^— . 

One  of  the  men  sent  the  Bishop  a  walking-stick  turned,  with  his 
own  hand,  out  of  the  hickory-wood  staff'  of  one  of  the  pickaxes,  a 
present  quite  unique,  which  the  Bishop  greatly  valued. 

The  Bishop  often  spoke  of  his  visits  to  the  navvies,  and  his 
intercourse  with  them,  as  among  the  happiest  experiences  of  his 
episcopal  work. 

This  was  one  of  the  most  active  periods  of  the  Bishop's  life.  It 
was  wonderful  what  a  variety  of  subjects  he  spoke  and  preached  on, 
and  how  much  thought  and  life  he  threw  into  them  all.  But 
often  when  he  took  most  pains  he  was  scarcely  reported,  and  when 
he  least  expected  his  words  were  more  widely  circulated.  He 
alludes  in  the  next  letter  to  an  anniversary  meeting  of  the  Additional 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  113 


Curates  Society  at  Willis's  Rooms  on  May  19.  The  Bishop  had 
taken  great  pains  with  his  speech,  but  the  celebrity  of  Mr.  Glad- 
stone so  completely  overshadowed  him  that  while  Mr.  Gladstone's 
speech  was  reported  verbatim,  a  few  lines  only  were  devoted  to  the 
Bishop's.  On  May  23,  in  the  same  place,  he  spoke  for  the 
Christian  Evidence  Society.  He  told  me  he  had  never  made  more 
careful  preparation  for  any  speech,  and  thought  he  had  been 
particularly  successful ;  but  his  speech  was  not  reported  at  all. 
The  secretary  of  the  society  when  he  was  recently  applied  to  for  a 
report  wrote : 

There  is  no  record  of  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough's  speech,  except  in 
the  profound  effect  it  had  on  all  who  heard  it.  It  is  to  this  day  quite 
a  common  thing  for  the  clergy.  Nonconformist  ministers,  and  laity, 
who  had  the  good  fortune  to  be  present,  to  refer  to  the  speech  and  to 
deeply  regret  the  absence  of  a  report. 

On  the  previous  Saturday,  May  15,  the  Bishop  presided  at  a 
dinner  for  the  Artists'  Benevolent  Fund.  The  speech  was  one  of 
his  happiest  efforts,  and  for  sparkling  wit  and  endless  resource  it 
could  scarcely  be  surpassed.  On  Monday  morning,  to  his  surprisej 
it  was  published  at  full  length  in  all  the  leading  papers. 

This  season  was  fruitful  in  surprises  of  this  kind.  In  the  end  of 
June  he  had  been  urged  by  Lord  Plunket  to  speak  upon  an  Irish 
Bill  brought  in  by  Lord  Belmore.  He  made  himself  thoroughly 
master  of  the  subject,  and  went  down  to  the  House  of  Lords 
prepared  to  speak  upon  it.  The  Bill  wa.s  favourably  received,  and 
the  Bishop  saw  that  if  put  to  the  vote  at  once,  it  was  sure  to  be 
carried;  whereas  a  long  speech  on  its  behalf  might  have  roused 
opposition.    He  therefore  refrained  from  speaking. 

But  the  strangest  of  all  these  incidents  was  his  going  down  to 
the  House  of  I^ords  on  July  15  to  attend  a  debate  upon  a  Burials 
Bill,  not  knowing  that  a  Bill  for  the  total  prohibition  of  Vivisection 
was  to  come  up  for  second  reading  that  evening. 

Lord  Shaftesbury  made  a  solemn  appeal  to  the  bishops  to 
support  the  Bill  as  a  religious  duty.  Bishop  Magee  looked  round 
to  see  if  any  of  his  episcopal  brethren  would  speak.  When  none 
of  them  rose,  he  got  up  intending  merely  to  explain  briefly 
why  he  could  not  vote  for  the  Bill.  What  he  said  was  received 
with  strong  marks  of  approbation,  and  this  encouraged  him  to 
go  on  as  he  had  thought  much  upon  the  subject.  He  spoke 
for  thirty  or  forty  minutes,  and  when  he  sat  down  was  loudly 

VOL.  a.  H 


114. 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


cheered.  A  large  majority  went  with  him  into  the  lobby  to  vote 
against  the  Bill.  Several  peers  came  up  to  him  and  thanked  him 
for  his  speech  and  said  :  '  We  did  not  know  anything  about  the 
subject,  or  how  we  ought  to  vote,  and  you  told  us  exactly  what 
we  wanted  to  know.' 

Unfortunately  there  is  no  good  report  of  this  speech.  The  best 
that  could  be  had  from  the  newspapers  is  reproduced  in  "  Speeches 
and  Addresses,"  (p.  188),  probably  correct  as  far  as  it  goes,  but 
omitting  many  of  the  arguments  which  the  Bishop  told  me  he  used 
upon  that  occasion. 

His  prediction  that  he  would  be  "  vivisected  "  by  many  for  this 
speech,  and  for  his  defeating  their  Bill,  was  unfortunately  too  well 
fulfilled.  In  the  case  of  "  England  free  or  England  sober  "  he  was 
attacked  chiefly  in  public  speeches  and  in  the  newspapers,  but  in  the 
case  of  his  vivisection  speech  and  action  he  was  assailed  in  numerous 
letters,  which  though  they  broke  no  bones,  were  stinging  and 
worrying.  He  suffered  more  than  any  one  I  ever  knew  from  the 
sting  of  a  midge  or  a  horse-fly  ;  and  I  know  these  letters  produced 
a  similar  effect  and  woiTied  him  much. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxNell. 

"42  Devonshire  Street, 

"  Portland  Place,  May  20,  1879. 

"  We  had  an  enormous  meeting  at  Willis's  Rooms  to  hear  Glad- 
stone. He  was  enthusiastically  received,  and  spoke  well  and  grace- 
fully, but  I  observed  that  the  tone  of  his  speech  was  carefully  all 
through  that  of  an  outside):  He  seemed  to  me  to  guard  himself, 
especially  in  the  closing  sentences,  against  too  closely  identifying 
himself  with  the  Church,  and  even  hinted  at  possible  '  disaster '  in 
the  future  ;  an  ominous  hint  fi'om  a  prophet  so  well  able  to  fulfil 
liis  own  prophecies. 

"  K  you  get  a  Times  of  Monday  you  will  see  certain  speeches  of 
mine  a.t  an  Artists'  Dinner  on  Saturday,  and  a  leader  thereupon 
which  may  amuse  you.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  following  extracts  are  taken  from  the  Times'  report  of  the 
Artists'  Dinner : 

The  chau-man^  in  proposing  the  next  toast^  said  :  "  I  am  not  sure 
what  will  be  said  of  me,  a  man  of  peace,  and  a  member  of  a  peaceful 
profession,  and  by  birth  and  nationality,  as  you  will  please  to  remember, 
averse  from  all  contention,  if  I  venture  to  propose  'The  Army,  the 


iS78-8o     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  115 


Navy,  and  the  Reserve  Forces.'  Still,  will  you  allow  me  to  say  that  it 
is  really  in  my  capacity  as  a  man  of  peace  that  I  offer  this  toast? — because 
being,  as  I  have  said,  natui-ally  averse  from  fighting,  I  have  a  very  gi-eat 
respect  and  admiration  for  those  who  do  my  fighting  for  me.  While 
human  nature  is  what  it  is  there  must  be  some  fighting  done  in  this 
world,  and  I  am  humbly  of  opinion  that  it  is  as  lawful  for  a  nation  to 
defend  itself,  its  rights  and  its  property,  as  it  is  for  an  individual  to  do 
so.  And  I  venture  to  think  that  those  very  peaceful  gentlemen  who 
are  very  anxious  for  the  disbanding  of  our  army  and  the  dismantling  of 
our  navj',  and  who  will  doubtless  to-morrow,  or  the  next  day — for 
Sunday  is  a  day  of  rest — denounce  me  as  a  bishop  who  has  been 
advocating  bloodshed,  might  well  try  a  little  disbanding  and  dis- 
mantling on  their  own  account.  They  might  carry  out  their  own 
principles  to  the  extent  of  taking  the  lock  off  their  area  gate  and 
requesting  the  policeman  on  his  beat  to  ignore  their  house.  I  think 
the  result  would  be  that  having  got  rid  of  the  armed  pi'otector  of 
property  and  life,  which,  after  all,  is  what  our  army  and  our  navy  are, 
the  next  thing  you  would  hear  would  be  that  there  would  be  an  invasion 
of  that  particular  house  in  the  shape  of  the  burglars  ;  and  next  that  the 
owner  of  the  house,  a  late  convert  to  the  principle  of  fighting  in  defence 
of  life,  had  bought  a  revolver ;  and  the  next  thing  would  be  that,  not 
being  very  skilled  in.  the  use  of  deadly  weapons,  he  had  grievously  hurt 
himself  or  some  innocent  member  of  his  family  in  consequence  of  the 
revolver  going  off  by  accident.  I  think  if  we  did  disband  our  army 
and  dismantle  our  nav}-,  the  next  thing  would  be  a  burglarious  invasion 
of  the  country,  and  then  we  should  all  turn  soldiers  in  the  last  resoil, 
bishops  and  clergy  included,  and  some  of  us  not  being  very  skilful 
soldiers,  we  might  hurt  oui'selves  or  somebody  else.  Gentlemen,  I 
prefer  the  army  and  the  navy.  I  believe  that  war  has  its  virtues  as 
well  as  peace.  Within  the  last  few  weeks,  in  places  where  our  forces 
are  engaged  in  defending  the  honour  and  the  possessions  of  Great 
Britain,  we  have  seen  instances  of  the  vii'tues  of  war — of  its  heroism, 
its  discipline,  and  its  sacrifice  of  life  for  the  sake  of  others — that  are 
veiy  noble,  and  that  demand  the  admiration  of  all  of  us.  When  I  read 
of  the  heroism  of  those  two  youths,  Bromhead  and  Chard,  when  I  heard 
of  a  gallant  officer  compelled  to  flee  for  his  life  from  an  overwhelming 
horde  of  savages  stopping  to  help  a  poor  wounded  bandsman  of  his 
regiment,  or  of  a  military  surgeon  stopping  to  bind  up  the  Avounds  of  a 
dying  man,  and  sacrificing  his  life  in  so  doing,  I  was  disposed  to  take 
off  my  hat  to  my  brother  pi*eachers  who  had  preached  a  lesson  of 
heroism  and  courage  and  self-denial  I  should  not  be  ashamed  to  preach 
from  my  pulpit.  In  giving  you  this  toast  permit  me  to  join  with  it  the 
name  of  one  who,  I  am  told,  is  equally  popular  in  his  corps  of  warriors 
and  of  painters,  a  certain  Mr.  Val  Prinsep.    I  am  not  quite  sure 


116 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


whether  Mr.  Prinsep  is  the  same  individual,  or  a  cousin  or  a  bi'other  of 
the  Mr.  Facile  Princeps^  whose  charming  adventures  in  India  we  have 
read.  If  I  am  mistaken,  I  can  only  make  my  best  apologies  by  say- 
ing that  there  is  a  great  deal  of  talent  in  the  family. 

The  chairman  next  proposed  "  Prosperity  to  the  Ai'tists'  General 
Benevolent  Institution."  He  said  :  "  I  hope  you  will  allow  me  to  say, 
although  you  may,  pei'haps,  think  me  rather  presumptuous  in  saying  it, 
that  there  is  at  least  one  I'espect  in  which  you  are  exceedingly  fortunate 
in  your  selection  of  a  chairman,  and  that  is  that  you  possess  to-night 
a  chairman  who,  although  he  greatly  admires  and  greatly  delights  in 
art,  is  entirely  ignorant  of  it.  I  cannot  profess  to  be  an  artist,  nor  yet 
a  connoisseur  in  art — I  am  afraid  I  hai'dly  rise  to  the  dignity  of  an 
amateur.  In  that  respect  I  think  you  are  very  fortunate,  because  you 
have  escaped  a  lecture  upon  art.  My  whole  ideas  of  art  criticism  limit 
themselves  within  the  two  rules  given  a  great  many  years  ago  by  my 
illustrious  countryman.  Goldsmith  ;  and  I  venture  to  say  they  are  two 
rules  by  which,  as  he  then  said,  art  critics  obtain  great  reputation  and 
profit.  I  do  not  go  beyond  them.  '  When  you  are  asked  for  an  opinion 
always  remember  to  do  two  things ;  first  of  all,  to  praise  the  works  of 
Pietro  Perugino  ;  and,  secondly,  to  say  that  the  painting  might  have 
been  better  if  the  artist  had  taken  greater  pains.'  These  rules  are  safe 
and  comprehensive,  and  within  their  limits  I  mean  to  confine  myself 
to-night. 

"  It  is  some  years  since  I  carried  off  from  the  walls  of  your  Academy, 
in  a  moment  of  impulsive  self-gratification,  what  seemed  to  me  a  very 
charming  little  painting.  It  was  by  an  artist  of  no  great  repute.  It 
was  but  a  few  trees  and  a  glimpse  of  a  stream,  and  a  bit  of  sunset, 
taken  on  the  banks  of  the  Thames  ;  but  it  had  an  air  to  me  of  exquisite 
repose  and  peace  and  rest.  And  I  assure  you  that  sometimes  when  I 
am  wearied  with  work,  vexed  perhaps  by  a  correspondence  mth  some 
clergyman  who  is  not  blessed  with  a  sense  of  implicit  obedience  to  his 
bishop,  or  perhaps  by  a  question  of  the  colour  of  some  vestment  worn 
by  one  who  has  an  artistic  eye,  I  come  out  and  look  at  this  picture, 
which  seems  to  me  to  min-or  the  stream  of  life  as  it  draws  peacefully 
towards  its  evening.  There  is  something  in  it  that  rests  and  soothes 
me,  and  if  you  will  believe  me,  at  that  moment  a  curate  might  play 
with  me  with  safety." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Athen^um,  July  15,  1879. 
"  My  adventures  have  been  rather  stirring  of  late,  both  in  Con- 
vocation and  Parliament.  As  regards  the  former  you  have  probably 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  117 


seen  my  letter  to  the  Times  four  days  since  anent  the  neAv  and 
rotten  rubric  on  the  Athanasian  creed.  You  will  see  another  in 
to-morrow's  Times  in  reply  to  Bishop  (Piers)  Claughton  who  has 
poked  his  small  person  into  a  strife  which  he  does  not  understand 
and  is  not  equal  to.  I  think,  from  all  I  can  learn  from  various 
quarters,  that  I  have  knocked  a  hole  in  the  bottom  of  this  prepos- 
terous project.  You  will  probably  see,  ere  this  reaches  you,  that 
we  have  carried  in  the  Lords  what  is  practically  the  Government 
Burials  Bill  of  two  years  ago,  the  two  repentant  Archbishops 
voting  for  it  steadily.  I  refrained  from  speaking  for  it,  as  it  was 
sure  to  pass.  But  to  my  own  great  amazement  I  found  myself 
speaking  for  nearly  half-an-hom*  to-night  on  an  anti-vivisection 
Bill*  of  which  I  had  heard  nothing  until  after  I  had  entered  the 
House.  Shaftesbury,  as  usual,  '  disquieted  me  to  call  me  up.'  His 
appeal  to  scripture  was  so  solemn  and  so  earnest,  and  I  thought  so 
mistaken,  that  I  could  not,  as  a  bishop,  vote  against  him  in 
silence  ;  so,  with  a  sort  of  gasp,  I  started  up  and  spoke — suadente 
diaholo,  as  I  dare  say  the  Eccord  will  say — but  certainly  with  no 
other  or  better  preparation.  To  my  great  surprise,  I  found  that 
what  I  said  was  extremely  well  received  on  both  sides  of  the  House, 
and  I  sat  down  amidst  quite  warm  cheering — for  the  House  of 
Lords.  Of  course  I  shall  be  vivisected  by  all  fanatics  and  strong- 
minded  women  in  England,  for  which  I  care  very  little.  What  is 
really  important  for  me  is,  that  I  have,  I  think,  regained  my 
position  in  the  House,  which  I  always  thought  my  not  very  happy 
speech  on  the  Burials  Bill  had  impaired.  I  am  distinctly  stronger 
there  since  to-night,  or  think  I  am,  which  comes  to  the  same  thing. 
"Enough  of  egotism,  however,  and  good-night." 

To  Canon  Argles. 

"  3  Rue  de  Mer,  Ste.  Adresse, 

"Havre,  August  g,  1879. 

"  I  cannot  express  to  you  the  feelings  of  sorrow  and  affectionate 
sympathy  with  which  we  heard  of  your  terrible  affliction.  I  will 
not  attempt  the  useless  task  of  comforting  you.  All  the  comfort 
and  consolation  that  such  a  grief  admits  of  you  have  in  the 
recollections  of  the  blameless  life  and  the  now  assured  safety  and 
eternal  rest  of  him  who  has  been  taken  from  you.  And  our 
Father  in  heaven  who  has  laid  upon  you  all  this  heavy  cross  will 
know  how  and  when  to  give  you  the  needed  strength  to  bear  iL 
*  See  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  188. 


118 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


Meanwhile  it  is  His  will  that  you  should  sorrow,  and  it  is  not,  I 
am  persuaded,  either  true  friendship  or  true  piety  to  tell  our 
friends  in  their  affliction  not  to  grieve  but  only  to  submit.  But  if 
we  cannot  comfort  our  friends  in  their  affliction  by  any  words  of 
ours,  we  may  pain  them  by  our  silence  and  seeming  want  of 
sympathy.  I  venture,  therefore,  to  intrude  upon  your  sorrow  to 
tell  you  how  deeply  and  truly  we  feel  for  and  with  you  all,  and 
how  earnestly  we  remember  you  in  our  prayers  to  the  God  of  all 
consolation  and  grace,  that  after  3'ou  have  suffered  for  a  while  He 
may  comfort,  strengthen  and  stablish  you  abundantly.  I  trust 
that  ere  this  reaches  you,  the  still  remaining  cause  of  distress  may 
have  been  removed,  and  the  form  you  loved  have  been  restored  to 
you  to  rest  near  the  home  and  the  hearts  that  he  had  helped  to 
make  so  happy. 

"  Once  more  assuring  you  of  our  warmest  and  truest  sympathy, 
believe  me,  my  dear  friend  and  brother,  yours  always  and  most 
truly,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"  Havre,  August  31,  1879. 
"  To-morrow,  if  fine,  we  hope  to  visit  Rouen,  and  some  other 
day  I  mean  to  go  up  in  the  boat  as  far  as  Jumieges  where  the 
ruined  abbey  is  very  fine,  and  come  home  by  Caudebec  and  Yvetot,. 
and  as  I  have  already  seen  Tancarville  (a  very  striking  and  in- 
teresting ruin)  I  shall  then  have  fairly  done  the  Seine.  Charlie  and 
his  tutor  and  I  partly  '  railed '  and  partly  walked  on  Friday  last 
to  the  Chateau  of  Tancarville— sixteen  miles  of  walking  altogether — - 
which  shows  that  I  am  not  yet  quite  effete,  physically  at  least. 
The  chateau  must  have  been  a  noble  one  in  days  past,  and  still  is 
very  striking  and  picturesque,  and  the  valley  and  woods  below  it 
on  the  bank  of  the  Seine  very  charming.  We  have  visited,  besides, 
all  the  little  towns  within  ten  miles  round  this,  including  Monti- 
villiers,  a  very  interesting  little  place  with  old  wooden  houses  of 
the  style  of  Chester,  and  a  Norman  church  in  part  the  very  'moral ' 
of  Castor.  I  '  discoorse '  all  the  cures,  and  get  on  charmingly  with 
them  as  an  '  Irlandais^  which  they  always  assure  me  means  un  bon 
Chretien.  Alas !  I  came  to  grief,  however,  in  consequence,  when 
the  Cure  of  Rouelles  offered  me  holy  Avater  and  I  failed  to  cross 
myself !  His  countenance  fell,  and  he  mentally  evidently  voted  me 
an  impostor. 

"  We  are  all  gi-eatly  enjoying  the  place,  and  the  girls  are  becoming 


187S-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  119 


accomplished  swimmers.  I  bathe,  too,  occasionally,  and  with 
advantage." 

"  Havre,  September  25,  1879. 
"  It  SO  happens  that  the  day  before  I  received  your  letter  sug- 
gesting a  pastoral  on  the  subject  of  harvest  thanksgivings,  I  had 
replied  to  an  inquiry  on  the  subject  from  a  Leicestershire  clergy- 
man very  much  in  the  sense  of  your  letter.  I  told  him  that  it 
seemed  to  me  that  we  ought  not  to  omit  to  thank  God  for  the 
harvest  in  bad  seasons  as  if  we  were  angry  with  Him,  but  that  we 
should  acknowledge  in  bad  or  in  good  seasons  that  the  fruits  of  the 
earth  are  His  gift.  I  suggested  Hab.  iii.  17,  18,  as  affording  the 
true  keynote  of  all  harvest  services.  But  I  advised  nothing  in  the 
way  of  feasting  as  distinguished  from  thanksgiving.  It  had  not 
occurred  to  me,  however,  to  issue  a  pastoral  on  the  subject.  I  have, 
as  a  rule,  a  gi'eat,  perhaps  a  morbid  dislike  to  pastorals.  They  are 
read  and  criticised  by  the  clergy,  who  thereupon  take  each  his  own 
wav,  j ust  as  they  would  have  done  without  a  pastoral.  Further- 
more, a  pastoral  on  this  particular  subject  would  not  be  an  easy 
one  to  compose.  The  question  as  to  general  and  particular  pro- 
vidences, as  to  whether  a  scanty  harvest  in  England  is  or  is  not  a 
chastening  for  special  national  offences — whether,  for  instance, 
England  was  one  whit  more  righteous  in  the  days  of  her  prosperity 
than  in  this  year  of  her  adversity — crop  up  awkwardly  on  such  a 
subject.  I  confess  I  am  more  disposed  to  give  counsel  when  and 
where  it  is  asked  for  by  individuals  than  to  ofler  it  to  the  diocese 
at  large.  On  the  other  hand,  I  feel  the  force  of  what  you  say,  and 
rather  suspect  my  own  personal  dislike  as  a  motive  rather  than  a 
reason  in  my  own  mind  for  silence.  I  will  think  it  over  at  any 
rate.    We  leave  here  to-morro\v  evening,  weather  permitting." 

"  Peterborough,  October  8,  1879. 

"  The  usual  October  epidemic  of  cackling — social,  ecclesiastical, 
and  political — has  set  in  with  even  more  than  its  usual  severity. 
If  we  could  but  have  an  epidemic  of  deaf  mutism  what  a  blessing  it 
would  be !  But  what  with  increased  facilities  of  communication, 
advancing  intelligence  and  civilisation,  enlightened  public  opinion, 
spread  of  education,  telegraphs,  telephones,  and  microphones,  the 
world  is  becoming  unbearable  for  quiet  people  !  " 

"  Balgreen,  Edinburgh,  October  31,  1879. 
"  I  am  resting  here  after  the  '  big  thing'  of  yesterday  ;*  interest- 

*  Consecration  of  Edinburgh  Cathedral. 


120 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


ing  and  striking  in  many  ways  it  was,  but  very  fatiguing,  lasting 
from  11  o'clock  a.m.  to  11.45  p.m.  when  the  last  toast  at  the  public 
<1  inner  was  responded  to,  and  we  got  leave  to  go  to  bed.  Oddly 
enough,  the  only  English  bishop  beside  myself  who  spoke  was 
Durham,  and  very  Avell  he  spoke  too. 

"  The  cathedral  is  a  very  fine  one  inside.  The  outside,  like  all 
Scotfs  buildings,  is  disappointing,  though  you  can  hardly  tell  why. 
]My  sermon  was  alas  !  an  hour  long,  decidedly  bad  taste  on  such  an 
occasion,  but  I  had  not  had  time  to  condense  it,  and  could  not  get 
a  look  at  my  Avatch  while  delivering  it.  The  bishop  and  clergy  in 
the  chancel  heard  not  one  word  of  it.  A  blissful  time  they  must 
have  had  for  that  hour,  and  how  they  must  have  blessed  me  !  The 
speaking  after  the  dinner — a  grand  banquet  by  the  laity  of  Edin- 
burgh to  the  visitors — was  wonderfully  tedious  and  oratorical ; 
the  one  really  admirable  speech,  being  the  only  short  one  too,  was 
made  by  the  Lord  Provost,  a  Presbyterian,  who  acquitted  himself 
of  a  very  delicate  task  with  great  tact  and  dexterity. 

"  To-morrow  I  go  to  visit  old  Lady  Ruthven,  a  wonderful  old 
Scotch  peeress,  aged  ninety,  and  quite  of  the  Dean  Ramsay  style, 
who  asked  me  to  stay  at  her  house  during  my  visit,  and  who  they 
say  is  quite  one  of  the  sights  of  Scotland. 

"Tuesday  I  am  to  be  in  Leicester  consecrating  St.  George's 
chancel.  The  Ruridecanal  Conference,  forty  in  number,  clergy 
and  laity,  have  invited  the  Congress  to  Leicester.  Jacta  est  alea, 
therefore,  and  we  must  play  the  game  out ;  but  I  neither  love  nor 
like  it,  and  I  like  it  all  the  less  for  costing  me  my  American  trip."  * 

"Pe  TERBOROUGH,  Deccmhev  13.  1879- 
"  We  had  yesterday  here  a  very  sensible  and  practical  meeting  of 
the  Diocesan  Sunday  School  Committee  which  gives  promise  of 
good  and  useful  work  for  the  diocese,  so  that  the  close  of  the  year 
shows  a  quiet  and  progressive  diocese,  with  no  troubles  to  carry 
over  to  the  New  Year,  for  which  I  thank  God  and  take  courage. 

"Gladstone  has  at  last  subsided  into  silence.  The  general 
opinion  seems  to  be  that  he  has  helped  himself  and  hurt  his  party. 
He  has  helped  himself  back  into  the  running  for  the  Premiership, 
but  he  has  done  so  by  more  than  ever  committing  himself  to  the 
Radical  programme,  and  so  disorganising  the  Liberals,  whose  Whig- 
section  is  still  powerful  and  still  distrusts  Gk  Istone.    My  own 

*  He  had  accepted  an  invitation  to  go  out  in  1880  to  the  United  States  to 
aitend  the  Convention. 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIAIS  ACT  121 


feeling  is  that  he  is  utterly  unfit  to  rule,  wanting  as  he  is  in 
patience,  self-control  and  broad  common  sense,  without  which  no 
man  can  govern  Englishmen  ;  and  yet  he  is  now  strong  enough  to 
upset  any  Liberal  Ministry  that  should  offend  or  dissatisfy  him.  He 
is  at  this  moment  the  loose  ballast  in  the  ship,  and  no  one  knows 
at  what  moment  or  in  what  direction  it  may  roll  over  and  wreck 
the  vessel. 

"As  regards  the  coming  elections  I  beo'in  to  think  that  the 
Liberals  may  return  to  power,  not  because  of  Gladstone's  speeches 
or  because  of  Beaconsfield's  mistakes,  but  simply  because  the 
Government  are  vmlucky.  With  a  half  educated  democracy  such 
as  England  now  is,  the  one  thing  never  forgiven  in  the  ruler  is  ill- 
success,  and  this  Ministry  is  becoming  unsuccessful  ;  a  disaster  in 
Afghanistan— and  it  looks  very  like  that  just  now — would  be  fatal 
to  it,  more  especially  if  it  comes  just  at  the  time  when  the  Budget 
tells  John  Bull  that  he  must  pay  not  for  success  but  for  failure; 
but  if  a  Liberal  party  come  in  with  a  small  maj  ority,  the  Irish  vote 
commands  the  situation  !  And  that  is  a  pretty  look  out  for  us  all ! 
However,  neither  you  nor  I  will  have  any  share  in  settling  or  un- 
settling these  matters." 

"  Peterborough,  Dec.mher  27,  1S79. 

"  Our  Christmas  Day  was  a  very  happy  one,  all  of  us  gathered 
together  in  health  and  peace,  with  pleasant  recollections  of  the 
past  year  and  cheerful  expectations  for  the  coming  one.  But 
yesterday  we  were  all  a  little  upset  by  a  second  misfortiuie  in  our 
stable.  A  valuable  mare,  a  great  pet  with  us  all,  was  out  exer- 
cising on  the  lawn  when  she  started  at  a  noise  made  by  some  young 
imps  in  the  lane,  fell  heavily  on  her  shoulder,  smashing  the  blade 
across,  and  we  were  obliged  at  once  to  have  her  shot.  The  shooting 
occurred  while  we  were  at  dinner,  and,  contrary  to  my  expectation, 
was  heard  by  us ;  you  may  suppose  that  it  did  not  improve  our 
appetites.  My  poor  wife  and  E.  vanished  from  the  table,  and  I 
confess  that,  vivisectionist  and  brutal  bishop  as  I  am,  I  was  half- 
disposed  to  follow  them.  However,  the  poor  animal  suffei'ed  really 
nothing ;  pain  from  the  fracture  had  not  set  in,  and  the  shot  was 
instantaneous  death.  We  are  thankful,  after  all,  no  human  life 
was  lost  or  imperilled  in  either  of  these  accidents. 

"  You  say  nothing  in  your  letter  as  to  Walgrave  finance.  I  fear 
that  this  weather  is  not  favourable  to  farm-letting- ;  but  I  imaffine 
it  will  not  prove  unfavourable  to  farming  if  only  an  open  spring 
succeed  to  this  early  severity  of  winter.    I  cannot  help  believing 


122 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XV 


still  in  the  ultimate  recoveiy  of  British  agriculture,  though  I  have 
now  and  then  uncomfortable  recollections  of  imperial  Rome  and 
the  wheat  ships  from  Africa  !  Imperium  et  lihcrtas  is  very  fine,  but 
imperium  et  paiipertas  is  unpleasant  to  think  of,  and  in  this  matter 
of  wheat  goes  against  one's  ffi  ain. 

"  This  is  a  long  effusion  about  our  affairs,  drawn  out  by  your 
kind  words  and  the  recollections  they  awake  of  the  times  when  you 
and  I  were  bachelors,  and  I  used  to  discuss  with  you  the  diffi- 
culties that  .  .  .  .  ,  while  we  were  also  discussing  the  roti  of 
'  a  duck  that  would  be  dead,"  accompanied  by  salad  of  oui  own 
making.  Eheii,J'ugaces !  What  salads  of  sweet  and  sour  we  have 
made  and  eaten  since  then  at  life's  banquet !  and  how  many  vacant 
chairs  we  know  of  that  once  were  pleasantlv  filled  all  round  us  ! 
Let  us  pray  that  our  place  at  the  better  feast  be  ready  for  us  and 
we  for  it !  May  you  and  yours  have  and  enjoy  abundantly  all  that 
your  old  affection  prompts  you  to  wish  for  us ;  and  so  with  kindest 
and  warmest  wishes  for  your  happiness  in  this  new  year  that  is 
coming  and  for  many  such,  always  yours  affectionately, 

"  W.  C.  Peterbokough." 

"Palace,  Peterborough, 

"  December  31,  1879. 

"  Please  read  the  enclosed  letter*  of  mine,  addressed  to  the 
Secretary  of  the  Church  of  England  Temperance  Society  in  reph 
to  one  from  them  requesting  us  to  appoint  a  Day  of  Humiliation 
for  Drunkenness,  and  tell  me 

(1)  Whether  you  approve  of  it. 

(2)  Whether  you  approve  of  my  sending  it. 

(3)  Whether  you  approve  of  my  publishing  it. 

The  two  latter  events  cannot,  I  think,  come  off  in  any  case  until 
after  the  bishops'  meeting  on  February  4. 
"  The  facts  of  the  case  are  these— 

"  On  receiving  this  circular  to  the  bishops  I  wrote  the  enclosed, 
which  expresses  mv  '  sintimints '  on  days  of  humiliation  in  general 
and  this  in  particular.  Before  sending  it,  how  ever,  it  occurred  to 
me  to  try  how  soiue  of  my  episcopal  brethren  viewed  the  proposal, 
as,  if  they  viewed  it  as  I  did,  the  thing  would  come  to  naught,  and 
I  need  not  bring  another  hornet's  nest  about  mv  ears  by  once  more 
attacking  fanatics.    Accordingly  I  sent  copies  to  Winchester,  Ely, 

*  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  140. 


1S7S-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT 


12:3 


St.  Albans,  Norwich  and  Lincoln.  I  have  heard  from  the  first  four 
all  approving  of  my  letter ;  Lincoln  has  not  yet  replied.  Ely, 
'  entirely  and  unreservedly  agrees  with  me,""  and  wishes  me  to  pub- 
lish. St.  Albans  is  even  stronger  in  these  two  respects,  declaring 
that  my  publishing  '  will  do  a  great  deal  of  good.'  Winton  agrees 
with  me  cntirelv.  Norwich  '  verv  generally  concurs,'  but  advises 
delay  until  after  bishops'  meeting.  I  have  accordingly  sent  a  copy 
to  Cantuar  asking  him  to  put  the  subject  on  our  agenda  for 
February,  the  effect  of  which  ■s\ould,  of  course,  be  to  prevent  any 
bishop  acting  independently  meanwhile.  I  expect  he  will  do  as  I 
ask  him.  In  that  case  it  is  nearly  certain  there  will  be  no  day  of 
humiliation  proposed  by  bishops,  if  it  were  only  because  a  consider- 
able section  certainly  will  not  join  in  it.  But  if  he  does  not  put  it 
on  the  agenda,  should  I  send  and  publish  it  at  once  ?  or  if  we  decide 
in  February  not  to  have  the  day,  and  leave  it  to  each  bishop  to 
send  his  own  ansAver,  should  I  then  not  only  send  but  publish  this  ? 
The  course  I  should  prefer  and  hope  for  would  be  that  Cantuar 
should  send  a  polite  negative  in  the  name  of  us  all  in  February  ; 
but,  if  he  does  not,  should  I  publish  ?  On  one  point  only  is  my 
mind  made  up,  namely,  not  to  be  guilty  of  the  absurd  hypocrisy  of 
asking  sober  rogues,  liars  and  profligates  to  humiliate  themselves 
on  behalf  of  drunkards.  The  truth  is,  this  proposal  is  meant  for 
a  demonstration  on  the  eve  of  an  election  ;  a  praying  at  the  pub- 
licans, and  is  a  ])art  of  the  hysterical  proceedings  of  the  extremer 
section  of  the  temperance  party ;  and  I  am  not  sure  that  just  now 
they  do  not  need  a  check,  or  rebuff"  at  least,  and  that  this  letter 
might  not,  as  St.  Albans  says,  'do  good,'  and  after  all,  the  fanatics 
could  not  say  worse  to  or  of  me  than  they  ai'e  saying  every  day  in 
the  year.    So  now  give  me  your  candid  mind  on  the  matter." 

From  the  Bishop  of  St.  Albans  to  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

Danbury,  December  30,  1879. 
My  dear  Brother, — I  do  most  fully  agree  with  everything  you  have 
said  in  your  letter,  and  had  expressed  the  very  same  opinions,  not  to 
your  correspondents,  but  to  a  ferocious  man  in  this  neighbourhood. 
My  idea  is  that  the  publication  of  your  letter  would  do  a  very  great 
deal  of  good.  It  is  the  very  ti'uth  and  nothing  else,  and  I  agree  with 
something  which  the  late  Bishop  of  Winchester  said  when  the  reporters 
were  introduced  into  the  Chamber  of  Conj'ahidaiionx,  "  Now,  Bishop  of 
Peterborough,  as  you  are  the  only  man  who  never  says  a  word  too 
much  or  a  word  too  little,  will  you  move  the  resolution  ?  "  to  which 


124 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XV 


\ou,  with  becoming  modesty,  assented,  and  forthwith  did  enunciate 
exactly  what  we  wished  to  say,  unhke  our  chief  when  he  propounded  the 
PubHc  Worship  Regulation  Act  to  the  Lords  in  Parliament  assembled. 
I  say,  publish  the  letter.  It  is  necessary  that  those  good  men  should 
be  taught  whither  their  one  idea  is  carrying  them. 

Many  thanks  for  your  kind  Avishes,  dear  brother.  May  they  be 
realized  to  me  and  to  all  yours. — Ever  yours  affectionately, 

T.  L.  St.  Albans. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxell. 

"  Peterborough,  January  3,  1880. 

"  Since  I  wrote  to  you  I  have  heard  from  Lincoln  and  Cantuar. 
The  former  thinks  my  utterance  '  excellent ' ;  the  latter  '  truly 
good."*  He  is  willing  to  have  it  discussed  by  the  bishops,  if  /  will 
send  round  the  notice.  This  I  do  not  wish  to  do.  Accordingly  I 
consider  myself  now  free  to  act  on  my  own  responsibility,  certain 
of  the  assent  of  Cantuar  and  of  five  other  leading  bishops.  I 
have,  therefore,  this  day,  despatched  my  letter  to  Canon  Ellison, 
Chairman  of  the  Church  of  England  Temperance  Society,  and  a 
copy  of  it  to  the  Guardian.  I  mean  to  try  and  get  it  inserted  in 
the  Pall  Mall  of  Wednesday  evening,  just  after  the  Gnardian — 
if  the  latter  publish  it.  If  both  these  decline,  I  will  try  the 
Times.  Somehow  or  other,  therefore,  it  will  come  out,  and,  I  hope, 
do  good.  But  I  do  wish  that  other  bishops  would  now  and  then 
do  something  of  the  same  kind,  and  not  leave  all  the  belling  of 
the  cats  of  the  day  to  me.  They  are  making  a  great  mistake  for 
their  order  and  for  the  Church  by  this  policy  of  ultra-caution  and 
self-effacement.  Even  the  oracles,  when  they  became  dumb,  were 
no  longer  believed  in  ;  and  if  we  have  the  function  of  guiding- 
opinion  in  the  Church,  we  should  use  it,  not  wrap  it  up  in  a  lawn 
napkin,  lest  at  last  it  be  '  taken  from  us  and  given  to  others.' " 

"Peterborough,  January  5,  1880. 

"  I  send  you  a  fly-leaf  containing  my  letter  anent  the  Bishop  of 
Durham  and  'Free  and  Sober,""  reprinted  from  the  Temperance 
Chronicle,  where  Cust  very  good-naturedly  introduced  it  with  a 
prefatory  letter  of  his  own.  If  I  have  not  made  my  meaning  clear 
noxo  there  is  no  use  in  my  trying  it  again. 

"I  am  just  now  laid  up  with  a  severe  influenza  cold  which  has 
fastened  on  my  chest  and  which  has  kept  me  a  prisoner  for  the  last 
week.  To-day,  after  getting  better,  I  have  had  a  relapse,  and  feel 
very  seedy  and  low.    But  Walker  comforts  me  with  the  assurance 


1S78-80     XAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  125 


that  only  the  wind-pipe  is  affected,  the  lungs  and  bronchial  tubes 
being  quite  clear. 

"  Thicknesse  gave  me  the  other  day  the  first  volume  of  '  Memoirs 
of  Bishop  Wilberforce.'  Distinctly  the  best  biography  that  has 
appeared  within  my  recollection.    It  has  the  rare  merits — 

"(1)  Of  complete  suppression  of  the  author. 

"  (2)  Of  truthful  representation  of  the  subject. 

"(3)  Of  brevity. 

"  (4)  Of  picturesqueness — by  which  I  mean  placing  the  hero  in 
the  centre  of  a  succession  of  pictures  of  his  times  so  that  they  reflect 
light  on  him  and  he  on  them. 

"  (5)  Of  bringing  out  the  inner  life  of  the  man  truly  and  fully, 
vet  without  the  twaddle  of  religious  diaries. 

"  It  is  in  every  way  admirable  and  gi'eatly  raises  Wilberforce  to 
my  mind,  showing  a  deeper  piety  and  a  more  real  honesty  than  the 
world  ever  gave  him  credit  for.  But  some  of  the  letters  are  ter- 
ribly outspoken  as  regards  men  now  living.  One,  for  instance,  as 
regards  Pusey  which  must,  one  would  think,  make  him  wince  ter- 
ribly. His  description  of  the  Tractarian  movement,  and  his  strong 
dissent  from  it,  must  tell  even  now,  and  that  damagingly  to  the 
Ritualists.  I  must  not,  however,  spoil  your  pleasure  in  reading  it 
by  anticipation  of  its  contents. 

"  The  death  of  Ashwell  is  a  serious  loss  to  Ws.  memory  and  to 
our  biogi-aphical  literature.  No  one  can  well  take  up  his  broken 
threads. 

"  I  am  very  tired,  mind  and  body,  so  can  Avrite  no  more." 

"  Peterborough,  Jamiary  23,  18S0. 
"  I  wish  I  could  give  you  a  better  account  of  myself,  but  I  am 
just  where  I  have  been  for  the  last  week.  Walker  gave  me  a 
thorough  overhauling  this  morning,  and  declares  that  there  is  not 
only  no  sign  but  no  suspicion  of  anything  wrong  in  lungs  or  heart. 
Nevertheless,  I  don't  get  well.  My  cough  continues,  and  I  am  at 
times  terribly  weak  and  depressed ;  I  feel  as  if  I  could  now  and  then 
sit  down  and,  more  mulierum,  have  a  '  real  good  cry.'  Under  these 
circumstances  you  may  well  suppose  that  I  am  not  exactly  in  good 
fighting  condition,  and  rather  disposed  to  cry  craven,  even  as 
regards  '  free  and  sober,"  and  the  rest  of  it.  Nevertheless  my  fingers 
did '  itch  so '  yesterday  that  I  draughted  a  reply  to  Ellison,  but  partly 
owing  to  '  Jezebel,  my  wife,'  who  did  not  '  stir  me  up,'  and  partly 
owing  to  my  utter  weariness  of  this  barren  and  personal  strife  with 


126 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


unreasoning  and  unreasonable  fanatics  who  M  ill  have  the  last  word, 
I  had  come  to  your  conclusion  before  receiving  your  letter,  and  have 
accordingly  flung  my  reply  into  the  fire,  where  it  '  went  off 
brilliantly,''  owing  perhaps  to  some  crackers  I  had  put  into  it  for  the 
benefit  of  Farrar  and  his  brethi'en.  How  miserably  small  these 
little  controversies  seem  when  viewed  under  the  influence  of  some 
of  the  great  realities  of  life  ! 

"  I  learned  by  the  same  post  that  brought  me  Ellison's  letter 
news  of  the  sudden  death  of  poor  Allan  Windle,  formerlv  of  the 
Mariners'"  Church,  KingstowTi,  and.  latterly  vicar  of  ^Market 
Rasen,  Lincolnsliire.  He  was  found  dead  in  his  bed.  What 
shadows  we  ai'e,  and  what  shadows  we  pm-sue  ;  and  yet  the 
shadows  are  cast  by  the  unseen  realities,  and  we  must  not 
treat  them  as  shadows  only.  Nevertheless  the  shadows  of  the 
temperance  folk  shall  not  any  longer  disquiet  the  shadow  of  the 
Bishop  of  Peterborough.  Like  a  shadow  of  old,  I  shall  object  to 
their  '  disquieting  me  to  call  me  up,""  and  exercise  my  '  local  option ' 
in  favour  of  silence.  All  the  same  I  think  my  right  reverend 
brethren  a  little  shabby  in  leaving  me  to  bear  the  brunt  of  a  battle 
in  which  thev  are  most  of  them  on  my  side. 

"  The  weather  here  is  gloomy,  foggy,  and  frosty.  ]\Iy  wife  has 
carried  off  the  poor  wee  '  Abbot ''  to-day  to  school.  He  has  departed 
in  high  spirits,  which  I  fear  will  have  evaporated  by  to-morrow,  but 
I  have  no  doubt  that  a  week  hence  he  m  ill  be  happy  enough.'" 

"Hastings,  February  i6,  1880. 
"  I  was  verv  pleased  with  your  account  of  Freddie,  both  physic- 
ally and  professionally.  I  wish  I  could  see  my  May  for  the  next 
four  or  five  years  to  haxdng  my  sons  provided  for.  The  more  I  see 
of  our  modem  English  great  school  and  University  system,  the 
more  I  am  persuaded  that  luiless  for  very  clever  and  energetic 
youths,  it  is  a  great  mistake.  It  is  all  a  system  of  cultivating 
prize  plants,  and  neglecting  the  vegetable  garden  and  ordinary 
annuals. 

"  I  am  just  now  disposed  to  take  '  Iom'  views  of  things,  as  I  am 
iust  o-ettins  out  of  a  fit  of  '  intermittent ''  w  hich  has  assailed  me 

Jo  O 

about  an  hour  ago.  It  is  strange  hoM-  it  clings  to  me,  and  hoM' 
mysteriously  it  seems  to  come  on  for  no  special  reason  of  diet  or 
general  health.  I  begin  to  fear  that  I  may  have  to  get  a  substitute 
for  my  Confirmations,  but  certainly  not  if  I  can  help  it.  The 
weather  here  is  very  uncertain — about  two  days  bad  to  one  good — 


iSyS-So     iXAVVJES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  127 


and  on  the  bad  days  I  cannot  get  out  at  all,  as  they  are  very  stormy 
and  cold. 

"  What  a  capital  appointment  Disraeli  has  made  to  the  Deanery 
of  York.  Cast  is  an  excellent  fellow,  with  good  sense,  good  means, 
good  trmper,  good  manners,  and  good  connections;  he  is  just  the 
man  for  the  post.  I  see  that  the  Conservatives  have  actually 
carried  South wark  by  a  majority  of  fifty-four  over  both  Liberals 
combined.  I  confess  that  this  amazes  me  greatly,  as  a  large  number 
of  electors  have  evidently  abstained  from  voting.  These  democratic 
oscillations  in  all  large  constituencies  must  introduce  a  most  dis- 
turbing and  demoralising  influence  into  English  politics,  and  tend 
greatly  to  strengthen  the  influence  of  crotchet-mongers  of  all  kinds, 
who  will  get  their  pledges  swallowed  ad  libitum  in  the  nervous  un- 
certainty of  candidates  all  round. 

"  Have  you  read  Littledale's  '  Reasons  against  joining  the  Church 
of  Home,'  published  by  S.P.C.K.  ? — uncommonly  clever  and  telling, 
not  only  against  Rome  but  for  the  Ritualists.  Everything,  he 
says,  is  excellent  and  unanswerable  on  all  the  grounds  on  which  he 
attacks  Rome,  but  he  takes  care  not  only  to  omit  many  of  their 
grounds  on  which  the  Reformers  and  Caroline  Divines  attacked 
her,  but  to  hint  that  on  these  grounds  Rome  and  England  do  not 
differ  materially,  e.g:,  not  a  word  on  transubstantiation,  or  on 
auricular  confession,  or  the  Seven  Sacraments,  &c.  It  is  really  a 
stroke  of  genius,  an  ultra-Ritualist  coming  out  in  this  way  as  a 
champion  against  Romanism,  and  doing  his  work  too  so  admirablv 
well. 

"  ^Ve  shall  have  another  anti-episcopal  row  in  the  S.P.G.  on 
the  20th,  when  Denison  moves  the  election  of  Exeter  and 
^Vorcestcr  as  V.P.s.  Perhaps  the  bishops  will  norci  see  that  I  was 
right  when  eighteen  months  ago  I  urged  them  to  put  their  foot 
down  on  these  men  when  they  had  the  chance,  and  had  the  Society 
and  the  Church  with  them.  I  was  then  told  this  was  '  premature 
and  hasty  ' ;  now  they  will  try  to  do  something  of  the  same  kind, 
in  a  far  weaker  case,  and  with  Church  opinion  rather  against  than 
with  them.  When  will  my  episcopal  brethren  learn  that  oppor- 
tunity i.9  bald  behind?  and  when  will  they  give  up  holding  councils 
of  war  which  never  fight  ?  and  when  will  the  Archbishop  of  Canter- 
bury give  up  driving  and  take  to  leading  the  Church  ?  More  and 
more  am  I  convinced  that  the  episcopate  under  his  government  is 
letting  the  Church  drift  on  the  breakers,  when  a  strong  hand  on 
the  helm  might  have  saved  her.    But  I  have  made  this  intennittent 


128 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


moan  of  mine  to  you  often  enough  to  bore  you,  even  thouo-h  it 
relieves  me  to  make  it.  Truly  some  day  the  Right  Rev.  Bench  will 
regret,  with  Mr.  O'Shaughnessy,  that  they  did  not  take  what  was 
offered  them  cold,  instead  of  waiting  for  the  hot  which  never 
came. 

"  So  now  no  more  from  yours  disgustedly  and  intermittently, 

"  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

"  Hastings,  Fehniary  23,  1880. 
"  I  see  they  have  had  their  field  day  at  the  S.P.G.,  and  the  Rits. 
were  defeated.  But  with  what  cost  and  effort !  It  took  two 
archbishops  and  five  bishops  to  do  it !  and  even  then  it  seems  that 
Denison  only  withdrew  his  amendment  because,  forsooth,  the  Bishop 
of  ^Vorcester  had  satisfied  him  by  a  long  correspondence,  which  he 
read  to  the  meeting.  Fancy  the  Bishop  of  Worcester  humbling 
himself  to  Archdeacon  Denison  as  the  condition  of  being  allowed 
to  retain  office  in  the  S.P.G. ! " 

"Peterborough,  April  2,  1880. 

"  You  will  be  glad  to  hear  that  I  returned  here  on  Wednesday 
morning  last,  quite  sound  in  wind  and  limb,  and  reasonably  fit  for 
work.  The  fever  vanished  after  three  days  of  Scotch  air,  but  I  am 
not  quite  at  my  full  working  power.  I  shall,  however,  I  fully  believe, 
be  equal  to  my  coming  Confirmations.  Youi*  news  of  yom*  farm- 
letting  is  very  satisfactory.  I  hope  it  is  an  omen  of  better  times, 
and  that  you  are  now  fairly  round  the  corner.  So,  in  a  very 
diffei'ent  sense,  is  Dizzy.  We  shall  never  see  him  in  power  again. 
What  a  sweeping  defeat  he  is  undergoing !  I  confess  I  never 
anticipated  it.  Gladstone  must  now  be  Premier  unless  he  abso- 
lutely declines,  which  I  am  persuaded  he  will  not.  Everywhere 
that  Whigs  and  Radicals  have  contended  in  the  last  few  days,  the 
Radicals  have  won ;  and  ere  long,  and  certainly  in  the  next  Parlia- 
ment, the  effacement  of  the  old  Whigs  \\  ill  be  complete ;  a  few  may 
turn  Conservative,  the  majority  will  'go  with  their  party,' and  their 
party  will  then  be  Radical,  pure  and  simple,  and  headed  by  Glad- 
stone. Then  comes  the  last  struggle  between  Church  and 
Democracy,  and  there  is  no  doubt  which  will  win.  Bradlaugh 
comes  in  for  Northampton,  supported  by  the  leading  Dissenters,  in 
one  of  whose  chapels  he  actually  was  allowed  or  invited  to  speak 
from  the  pulpit.  This  is  really  horrible,  and  shows  what  Non- 
conformity is  becoming  under  political  influences. 

"  I  have  been  knee-deep,  as  you  may  suppose,  in  diocesan  matters 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  129 


since  my  return.  I  saw  Vaughan  to-day  on  Church  Congress 
matters,  and  the  progranune  of  subjects  is  now  assuming  a  very  safe 
and  practical  shape.  If  we  get  safely  through  the  meeting  on  the 
8th,  I  think  we  may  reckon  oui-  work  more  than  half  done,  and  well 
done  too." 

"  FiNEDON,  April  15,  1880. 

"  I  find  the  clergy  everywhere,  even  the  Liberals,  dismayed  by 
the  coming  events  for  the  Church.  The  Burials  Bill  and  the 
Deceased  Wife's  Sister  Bill  will  prove  wry  morsels  even  for  the 
most  ardent  Ritualists  and  anti-Beaconsfieldists  to  swallow ;  and 
swallow  them  they  M  ill,  before  August  next.  Delightful  too  it  is 
for  me  to  hear  sundry  of  the  clergy  saying  to  me  noia,  '  Do  you  not 
think  we  had  better  close  our  churchyards  and  try  for  cemeteries  ? ' 
Just  as  if  I  had  not  been  in  vain  entreating  them  to  do  this  for  the 
last  seven  years  ;  and  now  when  they  will  not  be  allowed  to  do  it 
by  a  hostile  Home  Secretary,  they  are  waking  up  to  the  import- 
ance of  doing  it.  Truly  the  clergy,  and  bishops  too,  of  our  Church 
ever  since  I  have  known  them  have  made  a  wonderful  ])other  and 
clatter  about  shutting  the  stable  door  of  the  establishment  just 
after  each  steed  has  been  stolen  or  driven  out  of  his  stall. 

"  The  coming  events  are  getting  now  nearly  as  clear  as  Mene  and 
Tekel  were  once  upon  a  time. 

"  For  myself,  I  have  quietly  said  good-bye  to  Parliament  and 
Convocation,  where  I  only  succeed  in  wasting  three  things,  none  of 
which  I  have  too  much  of,  viz.,  time,  money,  and  temper.  Convoca- 
tion is  too  utterly  ridiculous  a  farce  for  me  to  play  in  it  any  longer. 
For  the  last  seven  years  we  bishops  have  been  sitting  in  the  back 
attic  of  the  Church  grandly  discussing  the  papering  of  it,  with  the 
house  on  fire  in  the  kitchen,  and  burglars  breaking  in  at  the  parlour 
windows.  And  for  this  and  other  matters  verily  we  shall  have  our 
reward,  and  that  speedily,  unless  there  be  no  such  thing  as  a 
Nemesis  for  timidity.  There  now !  that  is  off  my  mind,  and  I  feel 
rather  better.  I  have  got  through  my  Confirmations  fairly  well, 
though  they  have  been  unusually  large,  and  the  weather  these  last 
two  days  miserable.  To  day  I  confirmed  340,  and  expect  nearly  as 
many  to-morrow.  So  no  more  until  we  meet  at  the  festive  board 
of  Sir  Charles  Isham.  «  W.  C.  P." 

Before  giving  the  Bishop's  letters  about  the  Burials  Bill  of  1880, 
it  may  be  well  to  insert  a  few  words  of  explanation. 

The  ao;itation  about  a  change  in  the  law  had  been  carried  on 

VOL.  II.  I 


130 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XV 


since  1861,  and  excited  a  great  deal  of  angry  feeling  on  both  sides. 
The  Consex'vatives  had  made  an  unsuccessful  attempt  to  settle  the 
question  in  1877.  Their  Bill  Avould  have  allowed  silent  interments 
in  a  churchyard,  but  even  that  concession  they  subsequently  with- 
drew. The  change  sought  for  in  former  Bills  was  on  this  occasion 
brought  forward  in  the  House  of  Lords  by  Lord  Granville  in  a 
resolution,  and  afterwards  embodied  in  an  amendment  by  Lord 
Harrowby.  He  succeeded  in  carrying  his  amendment  by  a  majority 
of  sixteen.  The  Government  then  withdrew  the  Bill.  Lord 
Harro why's  amendment  and  Lord  Granville's  resolution  alike  gave 
permission  for  any  "  Christian  and  orderly  service  "  beside  the  grave 
in  any  churchyard,  a  provision  which  was  substantially  embodied  in 
the  Bill  which  became  law  three  years  later. 

Archbishop  Tait  proposed  additional  clauses  as  a  concession  to 
the  clergy,  releasing  them  from  their  obligation  to  read  the  full 
Burial  Service  over  all  alike,  and  allowing  alternative  forms  of 
service.  Against  these  proposals  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough  spoke 
with  great  power,  maintaining  that  the  securities  for  a  "  Christian 
and  orderly"  service  were  illusory.  His  speech,  which  embodies 
the  opinions  which  he  held  upon  this  question  to  the  end,  will  be 
found  in  "  Speeches  and  Addresses  "  (p.  177). 

In  1880  the  Liberals  brought  in  and  carried  a  Bill  for  the  settle- 
ment of  the  question  which  led  to  a  painful  divergence  of  opinion 
and  action  between  the  Primate  and  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 
It  will  be  seen  from  the  following  letters  that  the  Bishop  was  much 
influenced  by  the  opinions  of  the  clergy  of  his  own  diocese.  It 
was  the  resolution  of  his  rural  deans  which  induced  him  to  go  up 
to  London  and  speak  upon  the  third  reading  of  the  Bill. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Peterborough,  May  27,  1880. 
"  The  bishops'  meeting  passed  off  in  the  usual  fashion ;  we 
amicably  agreed  to  differ !  Only  Durham  thought  fit  again  to 
attack  me  for  something  I  had  not  said.  I  contented  myself  with 
very  quietly  and  briefly  correcting  his  mistake.  He  really  seems 
to  be  possessed  with  a  mania  for  falling  foul  of  me.  However,  even 
Henricus  could  have  found  no  fault  with  my  demeanour  under,  I 
must  say  for  myself,  some  provocation  and  a  tempting  opportunity 
for  paying  oft'  old  scores.  We  had  the  Bill  (Burials)  before  us.  It 
amazed  me  for  the  apparent  effort  to  deal  gently  with  the  Church. 
It  includes  a  strong  provision  against  anti-Christian  or  disorderly 


187S-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  131 


services,  and  what  the  clergy  will  value  more,  a  legalising  of  all  the 
new  rubrics  and  alternative  services  agreed  to  by  Convocation  last 
year.  If  these  clauses  are  honestly  meant,  and  not  bogus  clauses 
intended  for  deletion  in  the  Commons,  it  is  the  best  Burials  Bill  we 
can  ever  hope  to  get.  I  wish  that  it  may  pass,  though  I  must  pair 
against  it.  Our  real  difficulty  as  bishops  will  be  in  Committee ; 
both  before  the  Bill  goes  to  the  Commons,  and  after  it  returns  to 
the  Lords.  In  the  latter  place  we  have  to  dread  embarrassing 
amendments  from  the  Conservatives ;  in  the  former,  destructive 
amendments  from  the  Radicals  and  Nonconformists.  I  fear  some 
High  Chui'ch  peer  pressing  for  the  fatal  privilege  for  the  clei-gy  of 
refusing  to  bury  any  save  members  of  their  own  Church.  This 
would  be  awkward  for  the  bishops,  who  are  quite  alive  to  the 
dangers  of  it,  while,  on  the  other  hand,  the  Nonconformists  may 
throw  out  the  provision  for  Christian  services,  in  the  Commons,  and 
the  Bill  come  back  in  the  dog  days,  and  the  Government,  sooner 
than  lose  it,  carry  it  so  amended  through  the  Lords.  These  were 
the  two  dangers  I  specially  pressed  on  the  consideration  of  the 
bishops.  A.  C.  Cantuar  is  quite  alive  to  them,  however,  and  his 
voice  will  be  very  potent  in  the  matter.  Only  fancy  Lincoln  and 
Salisbury  pressing  that  we  should  ask  the  Government  for  delay 
that  we  may  consult  the  clergy  in  our  dioceses  !  Could  any  pair  of 
old  women  in  Walgrave  have  been  guilty  of  such  nonsense  !  As  if 
the  opinion  of  the  clergy  was  not  perfectly  well  known  by  this  time, 
and  as  if  the  Government  cared  three  straws  what  it  was. 

"  I  do  not  mean  to  take  any  part  in  the  debate  or  Committee  on 
the  Bill,  leaving  the  affair  to  Cantuar,  whose  child  it  is  in  large 
measure ;  but  I  see,  from  talking  with  sundry  Conservative  peers, 
that  they  are  much  more  disposed  to  reject  the  Bill  now  that  the 
Liberals  are  in  office  than  they  were  three  years  ago  to  reject 
HaiTowbv's  resolutions,  i.e.,  they  are  willing  to  make  a  cat's-paw 
of  the  Church  wherewith  to  scratch  the  Government,  regardless 
what  becomes  of  the  paw  after  the  scratch.  On  these  points,  how- 
ever, Cantuar  may  be  trusted.  It  is  just  in  such  lesser  points  in- 
volving caution  and  cannhicss  that  he  shines.  Altogether  I  think 
the  Bill  will  prove  better  than  I  anticipated,  if  the  Government 
mean  honestly  to  stand  by  it  as  it  is.   But  this  is  a  large  '  if." 

"  I  sat  through  the  Bradlaugh  debate  on  Monday  night.  It  was 
full  of  interest,  and  puts  the  Government  in  a  very  awkward  ffx. 
Some  of  the  most  dexterous  and  damaging  speeches,  against  them 
substantially  though  with  them  formally,  came  from  disappointed 


132 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XV 


expectants  of  high  office  on  their  own  side.  I  hear  on  all  sides  of 
the  discredit  to  Government  for  the  amount  of  humble-pie  they 
have  been  eating  and  have  yet  to  eat.  The  Radicals  are  furious 
and  the  Whigs  ashamed.  All  this,  however,  may  only  drive  Glad- 
stone into  some  more  violent  course." 

"Peterborough,  May  31,  1880. 

"  I  see  in  the  Times  of  to-day  a  formidable  leader  against  the 
concessions  to  the  clergy  in  the  Burials  Bill,  founded  on  a  letter  in 
large  type  from  a  Liberal  Churchman  (Stanley,  I  suspect).  This 
is  a  breeze  from  an  miexpected  quarter,  but  likely  to  prove  strong 
enough  to  blow  the  clerical  clauses  out  of  the  Bill.  Lords  and 
Conunons  are  agreed  in  jealousy  of  anything  remotely  even  ap- 
proaching to  discipline  by  the  clergy  over  the  laity,  which  these 
clauses  amount  to  in  some  de<n"ee.  I  confess  that  I  feel  a  g-rim 
satisfaction  in  the  thought  of  the  Archbishop  fighting,  if  he  will 
fight,  his  Erastian  friends  for  the  privileges  of  the  clergy  !  Let 
him  and  York  fight  it  out !  I  will  not  help  them.  The  quarrel 
will  be  a  pretty  one,  but  I  suspect  that  the  Government  game  is  to 
introduce  these  clauses  to  please  the  clergy,  and  then  after  a  weak 
fight  to  let  them  be  cut  away  to  please  their  own  party.  Of  course 
they  will  be  only  too  well  pleased  if  the  Lords — the  supposed 
friends  of  the  Church — do  this  for  them.  The  end  may  very 
possibly  be  now  that  we  shall  have  Morgan's  Bill  nearly  piu:e  and 
simple.  Practically  this  will  matter  little,  though  I  shall  regret 
the  elimination  from  the  Bill  of  the  national  recognition  of  Christ- 
ianity which  it  now  contains. 

"  I  see  that  the  anti-vivisectors  are  rallying  under  the  leadership 
of  Coleridge  and  Bishop  of  Oxford,  who  are  to  speak  at  a  drawing- 
room  meeting  under  the  presidency  of  Shaftesbury.  I  mean  to  let 
them  alone  in  the  Lords.  I  spoke  once,  and  do  not  want  to  figure 
as  the  fighting  bishop  there  on  eveiy  side.  Indeed,  I  grow  sicker 
daily  of  the  petty  dishonesty  and  spitefulness  of  the  scramble  for 
power  which  we  call  politics  in  England.  I  Avish  to  goodness  I  had 
two  good  trout  streams  handy  so  as  to  employ  my  time  usefully, 
and  enable  me  to  forget  the  dirty  w'aters  in  which  noble  lords  and 
pious  patriots  are  fishing  !  " 

"  Peterborough,  June  24,  1880. 
"  I  received  your  letter  in  the  midst  of  a  very  interesting  and 
successful  rm-al-decanal  gathering  here  yesterday.    It  terminated  in 
a  resolution  on  the  Burials  Bill  against  the  sixteenth  clause,  i.e.,  the 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  133 


Convocation  Burial  Rubrics,  and  it  has  given  me  the  resolution  to 
go  up  and  speak  to-night  on  the  third  reading.  You  will  see  my 
speech  as  soon  as  you  will  see  this,  and  it  will,  I  hope,  explain 
itself.  There  are  some  things  I  wish  to  say,  and  that  is  the  best 
preparation  for  a  speech." 

"  Peterborough,  yune  26,  1880. 

"  Your  letter  finds  me  just  returned  here,  and  at  leisure  to  give 
you  a  full  account  of  some  curious  '  passages  in  the  life "  of  yours 
truly.  At  our  rural-decanal  Conference  I  found  the  rural  deans 
all  keen  that  I  should  put  their  views  before  the  country,  and 
accordingly  I  went  up  and  did  so.  Now  this  was  very  distasteful 
to  Cantuar.  When  I  sat  down,  after  hitting  hard— but  I  really 
think  calmly  and  temperately — at  the  two  lumps  of  sugar  in  the 
Government  dose  for  the  clergy,  he  rose  ....  I  confess  that  I 
boiled  over  at  last,  after  his  twice  refusing  to  accept  my  denials  of 
I'eally  '  monstrous '  misrepresentations  of  his.  The  scene  was  not 
a  dignified  one,  and  exposed  us  to  the  saixasras  of  Beaconsfield  and 
Granville  afterwards. 

"  However,  I  had  in  the  end  the  House  quite  with  me  and 
against  him,  and  so  manv  of  the  peers  volunteered  to  tell  me  aftcr- 
wai-ds,  some  of  whom  were  unknown  personally  to  me. 

"  Late  in  the  evening,  when  all  had  gone  save  myself  (as  I  a\  as 
delayed  conferring  with  Spencer  and  others  on  other  matters)  I 
went  to  unrobe,  and  as  I  was  doing  so,  I  heard  behind  me  the  Pri- 
mate's voice — low  and  pained  evidently — saying,  '  It  would  never 
do  for  two  Christian  prelates  to  part  in  anger.''  I  tiu'ned  and  said 
that  of  course  I  could  not  refuse  his  offered  hand  (which  he  was 
holding  out  to  me),  but  I  must  point  out  to  him  that  he  was  offer- 
ing a  private  reconciliation  after  a  public  wrong,  and  that  I  felt 
some  public  reparation  due  to  me  for  accusations  so  gross  and  in- 
jurious. I  put  this  very  gently;  and  after  a  little  discussion,  in 
which  he  attempted  to  excuse  his  language,  he  promised  to  put 
things  right  in  the  House  by  a  few  words  last  night.  I  need  not 
say  how  fully  I  met  him  there  ;  and  so  we  parted.  He  never  came 
near  the  House,  but  sent  me  a  letter  to  say,  that,  on  reading  the 
papers,  he  saw  that  his  admission  of  '  misapprehension  '  appeared  in 
all,  and  that  it  was,  he  thought,  '  unwise  to  say  any  more.'  I 
replied  respectfully  and  gently,  but  firmly,  that  I  would  not  dispute 
the  wisdom  of  any  course  he  took  ;  but  that  I  must  di'aw  his  atten 
tion  to  two  circumstances: 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


"  First,  that  his  admission  of  misapprehension  was  obviously 
fresh  in  my  mind  when  I  asked  for  more  ; 

"  Secondly,  that  this  misapprehension  had  induced  him  to  use 
utterances  of  a  most  wounding  and  injurious  character,  which  I 
would  gladly  have  seen  qualified,  if  not  withdi'awn  as  publicly  as 
tliey  had  been  made.  I  added  that  I  had  no  wish  now  to  press  for 
this,  and  that  I  could  only  trust  to  time  and  mutual  charity  to 
heal  the  breach  in  a  friendship  of  long  standing,  marked  kindnesses 
on  his  part,  and  memories  on  mine,  that  made  its  temporary  inter- 
ruption, to  me,  exquisitely  painful. 

"  This  course  I  felt  it  due  to  myself,  and  to  my  knowledge  of 
his  character,  to  take.  I  could  not  let  him  think  I  was  satisfied 
when  I  was  not. 

"  Meanwhile,  letters  keep  pouring  in  from  the  clergy,  thanking 
nie  for  my  speech ;  evidently  they  enjoy  seeing  the  Archbishop  hit 
by  any  one  ;  I  do  not,  and  wish  I  had  not  been  the  hitter.  But  I 
reallv  A\as  provoked  past  endurance. 

"  As  regards  ray  position  in  the  House  while  speaking,  rem  acu 
tetig'isti ;  no  one  liked  my  line — neither  Conservatives,  who  secretly 
are  eager  for  the  Bill  to  pass,  nor  Government,  who  want  to  gain 
credit  with  the  clergy  for  concessions.  Selborne,  though  courteous 
personally,  was  furious,  and  so,  as  I  said,  was  the  Archbishop. 
Beaconsfield  was  nasty  and  Granville  lazilij  insolent.  My  own 
belief  is,  that  the  clauses  are  thoroughly  bad  and  mischievous,  and 
fraught  with  burial  scandals  in  the  future  between  clergy  and 
Church  parishioners  ;  and  the  more  they  are  considered  the  more 
they  will  be  found  so.  So  that  if  they  go  out,  I  am  convinced  I 
have  served  the  clergy,  even  if  they  abuse  me  for  so  doing. 

"  My  speech,  of  which  not  more  than  half  is  reported,  told 
heavily  on  the  House,  which  listened  very  attentively,  half  pleased 
and  half  angry  all  through  it. 

"  So  now  you  have  a  really  full,  and,  as  I  think,  a  fair  account 
of  this  curious  and  instructive  scene  in  my  life  and  in  the  politics 
of  the  Burials  Bill.  Tell  me  all  you  think  of  it,  as  fully  and  freely, 
and  especially  as  regards  my  private  action  with  Cantuar." 

"  Peterborough,  Jiuie  27,  1880. 
"  La  nuit  porte  conseil.    I  slept  after  despatching  my  reply  to 
the  Archbishop's  letter,  and  this  quiet  Sunday  evening  suggested 
to  me  thoughts  of  peace.    I  accordingly,  without  waiting  for  his 
re})ly  to  my  yesterday's  letter,  sent  him  bv  this  night's  post  a  few 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  135 

lines  to  say  that  I  did  not  wish  to  maintain  the  position  of  claiming 
rights  or  debts  against  him,  be  they  real  or  assumed ;  that  I  wished 
to  remember  only  past  kindnesses,  trusted  to  his  desire  always  to 
do  me  justice,  &c.  I  hope  I  have  done  right,  at  any  rate  I  feel  as 
if  I  had.  He  is,  after  all,  my  senior  and  superior,  and  has  been  a 
kind  friend,  and  he  made  the  first  advances  to  reconciliation  ; 
furthermore,  a  public  reconciliation  scene  in  the  House  of  Lords 
between  him  and  me  would  have  had  rather  its  comic  side  for 
those  cynical  peers ;  so  that  all  things  considered,  things  arc  better 
as  they  are.  I  am  not  sorry,  however,  that  I  sent  my  former 
letter,  as  I  think  it  will  do  his  Grace  no  harm  to  see  how  great  is 
the  wrong  he  has  done  me,  in  my  eyes  at  least,  and  so  make  him 
more  cautious  in  the  futui'e.  The  two  letters,  thanks  to  London 
non-delivery  on  Sundays,  will  ari'ive  within  a  few  hours  of  each 
other.  I  am  sure  that  you,  who  are  one  of  the  beati  pac'ifici  will 
approve  of  this.  In  fact,  looking  back  over  the  last  eighteen 
months,  I  can  see  that  this  outbreak  has  been  the  result  of  a  slowly 
gathering  state  of  electricity  between  his  Grace  and  myself,  which 
grew  more  and  more  charged  at  each  encounter,  until  at  last  the 
thunderclap  came,  and,  let  us  hope,  has  cleared  the  air. 

"  I  have  offered  Wappenham  to  Burfield,  who  writes  very  grate- 
fully in  reply,  and  is  evidently  rather  disposed  to  take  it.  '  Income 
not  so  much  an  object'  (as  they  say  in  the  advertisements  of  lady 
companions)  'as  a  comfortable  home.'  His  doubt  is,  naturally 
enough  in  these  times,  as  to  security  of  income.  I  shall  hear  from 
him  before  the  end  of  this  wcjk.  I  have  not  yet  found  a  man  for 
Far  Cotton. 

"  I  am  longing  to  hear  your  verdict  on  my  long  letter.  I  see  in 
St.  James'  Gazette — the  new  Pall  Mall — an  article  strongly  up- 
holding my  views  on  the  Convocation  clause." 

To  the  Archbishop  of  Caxteuhury. 

"  Peterborough,  June  27,  1880. 

"  My  dear  Lord  Archbishop, — Since  I  wrote  to  youi-  Grace 
yesterday,  the  night,  which  brings  reflection  and  prayer,  has  passed 
and  I  have  knelt  at  the  holy  table  where  feelings  of  peace  and 
charity  replace  those  of  anger  or  of  self-assertion. 

"  I  feel  that  I  can  no  longer  maintain,  or  even  wish  to  maintain, 
that  position  of  claiming  debts  or  rights,  real  or  assumed,  which 
I  asserted  in  my  letter  of  yesterday.    I  feel  too  that  it  might  be 


136 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


unwise  to  call  again  the  attention  of  the  Peers  to  differences 
between  ministers  of  that  holy  faith,  which  many  of  them  are 
perhaps  already  too  little  disposed  to  preserve. 

"  I  remember  now,  and  M'ish  only  to  remember,  all  that  I  owe  to 
your  Grace  of  kindness  and  courtesy  abundantly  shown  in  the  past, 
and  I  trust  entirely  to  your  Grace\s  desire  to  do  me  justice,  as  regai'ds 
my  motives  and  actions  in  the  time  to  come.  I  will  therefoi'e  ask 
your  Grace  to  accept  instead  of  my  letter  of  yesterday,  this  my 
assurance  of  affectionate  friendship  hereafter  as  heretofore.  Believe 
me,  your  Grace's  very  sincerely,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Peterborough,  June  29,  1S80. 
"You  will  be  glad  to  know  that  I  have  just  received  from  A.  C. 
Cantuar  a  very  kindly  and  handsome  reply  to  my  last  letter  to  him. 
It  is  really  such  a  model  of  a  dignified  apology  that  I  cannot  help 
transcribing  it  for  you  entire.    It  is  as  follows : 

My  dear  Bishop, — Most  heartily  do  I  thank  you  for  j-our  kind  and 
Christian  letter.  In  this  busy  world,  with  so  many  conflicts  of  opinion 
and  duty,  I  feel  I  have  much  to  regret  in  the  manner  in  which  I  do 
what  I  feel  right ;  but  it  is  cheering  to  know  that  in  you  I  have  to 
deal  with  a  friend  who  makes  allowance  for  failures. — Yours  ever, 

A.  C.  C. 

"  So  thus  ends  the  private  sequel  of  our  public  encounter  :  better 
I  now  feel,  than  any  amount  of  public  recantation  and  a  recon- 
ciliation scene,  with  its  amusement  for  the  grinning  world  of  out- 
siders. Cantuar  and  I  have  both  had  our  lesson,  and  learned  it,  I 
hope,  like  good  and  diligent  boys ;  and  we  shall  be  really  th« 
better  friends  hereafter,  whereas  the  public  recantation  would  have 
left  behind  it  a  sting  of  humiliation  on  his  part,  '  a  root  of  bitter- 
ness which  might,  springing  up,  have  troubled  us  ^  hereafter.  Setting 
aside  this  personal  episode,  I  am  satisfied  that  I  did  a  good  stroke 
of  work  on  Thursday  night,  and  that  whether  the  Convocation 
clause  is  retained  or  lost.  If  retained  it  cannot  be  quoted  as  a 
great  boon  to  the  clergy ;  if  lost  its  loss  will  not,  I  think,  now 
wreck  the  Bill. 

"  I  am  rather  amused  at  the  Spectator  accusing  me  in  a  leading 
article  of  having  '  lost  my  courage,''  and  become  '  conventional.''  I 
think  that  the  man  who  goes  down  to  the  House  of  Lords  to  fight 
the  whole  peerage,  and  does  so  for  forty  minutes,  standing  alone 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  137 


befoi'e  a  hostile  and  critical  audience,  does  not  want  for  courage, 
however  he  niav  lack  discretion. 

"  Your  letter  was  very  pleasant  and  encouraging  to  me.  It 
shows  me,  however,  that  as  you  say,  the  real  drift  and  motive  of 
mv  speech  depends  so  much  on  what  is  behind  the  scenes  for  its 
explanation,  that  only  time  can  explain  and  justify  it.  I  fully 
expect  a  snarl  in  the  Guardian,  a  sneer  in  the  Church  Times  and  a 
groan  in  the  Record.  I  am  more  curious  to  see  the  line  taken  by 
the  Nonconformist  and  other  Dissenting  organs,  and,  as  you  say,  I 
shall  probably  be  quoted  in  the  Commons." 

From  the  Bishop  of  Ely,  to  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

Palace,  Ely,  June  28,  1880. 
Mv  DEAR  Bishop, — I  cannot  help  writing  a  line  to  thank  you  for 
■what  you  said  in  the  House  the  other  night. 

"  Christian  "  is,  I  think,  utterly  untenable  and  is  in  some  way  posi- 
tively objectionable  : 

(1)  If  it  is  to  include  Unitarians  and  Quakers,  then  the  incumbent  is 
forced  into  recognising  as  Christians  those  who  deny  the  divinity  of 
Christ  (the  verj'  root  of  Christianity),  and  those  who  refuse  His 
baptism  (His  own  mode  of  initiation  into  His  society). 

(2)  The  policeman  is  a  sufficient  judge  of  an  orclcrli/  service,  but  he 
cannot  judge  as  to  what  is  a  Chi'istian  service.  In  country  parishes 
there  is  no  one  capable  of  doing  this  except  the  parson,  who  thus  again 
is  forced  into  ivatching  what  is  said,  or  ignoring  the  provisions  of  the 
Bill  altogether,  so  far  as  Christian  limitation  is  concerned. 

If  the  Commons  reject  the  term  Christian  I  scarcely  feel  that  I  can 
vote  for  its  re-insertion,  altlioiigli  not  to  do  so  would,  of  coui'se,  place 
bishops  in  an  awlcAvard  position. 

I  have  just  had  a  letter  from  London  in  which  it  is  said  that  the 
town  talk  is  about  the  Archbisho])  and  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough — 
that  the  Archbishop  made  a  mistake  and  was  unfair. — Ever  yours, 

J.  R.  Ely. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Peterborough,  July  16,  iS<So. 
"I  cannot  resist  the  pleasure  of  telling  you  that  I  have  just  read 
an  article  in  the  Church  Qunrtcrlij  strongly  endorsing  my  view  of 
the  '  Convocation "  and  '  Christian  '  clauses  in  the  Burials  Bill,  and 
speaking  of  the  '  undeserved  '  censure  of  me  by  the  Metropolitan. 
I  am  not  at  all  a  favourite  with  the  Church  Quarterly,  so  the 
assent  is  impartial  and  the  more  satisfactory.    But  the  really 


138 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


iuiportant  point  is  that  it  represents  the  views  of  just  that  section 
of  the  Church  which  has  weight  with  Gladstone.  He  will  not  like 
to  find  his  Swpov  a^wpov  rejected  by  the  High  Church  section  of  his 
own  bU])porters.  On  the  whole  I  am  beginning  to  feel  that  my 
speech  will  tell  after  my  row  ^vith  Cantuar  will  have  lost  its  interest. 
I  should  not  be  surprised  now  if  the  Burials  Bill  were  not  canied 
this  session.  I  shall  regret  this,  as  now  that  it  is  inevitable,  the 
sooner  it  passes  the  better.  But  can  anything  be  more  ridiculous 
than  the  Lower  House  of  Convocation  gravely  discussing  alterna- 
tives '  in  the  event  of  the  Bill  not  passing '  and  actually  suggesting 
silent  ser\  ices  for  all !  Is  it  any  wonder  that  Cantuar  despises  as 
he  does  such  an  assembly  as  this  !  I  should  not  be  surprised,  if  the 
Bill  does  come  up  in  August,  to  find  myself  again  taking  part  in 
the  fray.  There  would  now  be  no  risk  of  a  blow  up  between 
Cantuar  and  me,  and  I  confess  I  should  like  to  give  the  measure 
one  parting  and  comj)rehensive  kick.  But  on  the  other  hand, 
there  are  the  trout,  and  if  they  rise  to  the  occasion,  they  may 
probably  prevent  my  doing  so,  and  limit  my  efforts  to  dropping-  a 
Vine  to  the  clergy  of  the  diocese.  Poor  dear  clergy !  what  a  time 
this  is  for  them  between  Burials  Bills,  Deceased  Wife's  Sisters, 
damaged  hay  crops,  and  defaulting  tenants  !  I  do  not  wonder  that 
they  are  hair-sore  all  over  and  ready  for  anything  desperate  against 
Dissenters  and  bishops.  This  Disturbances  Bill  will  go  very  near  to 
evicting  the  Ministry,  or  would  do  so  were  it  not  that  Gladstone 
has  still  his  trump  card  to  play,  a  new  Reform  Bill  and  a  dictator- 
ship afterwards  for  the  term  of  his  natural  life.  Truly  the 
Nemesis  of  the  Chui'ch  on  the  peer  and  tlie  squire  is  nearer  at 
hand  than  some  of  them  imagine.  We  are  oft'  to  Scotland,  please 
God,  on  Tuesday  fortnight." 

"Peterborough,  August  7,  1880. 

"I  have  just  come  down  here  on  my  way  to  Scotland,  for  which 
place  I  start  at  10  p.m.  to-night.  My  family,  who  left  this  last 
night,  are,  I  hope,  safely  resting  there  since  one  o'clock  to-day. 

"  We  had  two  very  remarkable  nights  debating  in  the  Lords,* 
by  far  the  most  striking  and  interesting  of  any  since  the  Irish 
Church  debates  of  twelve  years  ago.  The  peers  mustered  even  in 
greater  force  than  on  that  occasion ;  and,  between  ourselves,  cared 
a  good  deal  more  for  the  subject  in  debate.  Granville  introduced 
the  Bill  in  a  very  dexterous  and  humble  speech,  in  perfect  taste 
and  tone.  Grey  was  able,  but  all  but  inaudible ;  Emly  for  the 
*  On  the  Irish  Land  Bill 


1878-80     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  139 


Bill  in  the  main,  but  severely  criticising'  the  schedules ;  Waveney, 
dull,  conceited  and  boring.  Then  Lansdowne  rose  and  made  the 
speech  of  the  night,  and  almost  of  the  debate  ;  calm,  self-restrained, 
logical,  terse  and  telling ;  a  thorough  House  of  Lords'  speech,  and 
not  too  long.  One  or  two  dii  mino)-um  gentium  followed  in  the 
dinner  hour ;  then  came  IVIai-quis  of  Waterford — a  regular  blunt, 
homely,  sensible,  couutiy  gentleman's  speech,  against  the  Bill. 
Then  followed  Derby,  in  the  most  amazing  speech  I  ever  listened 
to  for  its  utter  oddity.  After  a  preface,  so  full  of  exhortation 
against  landlord  prejudice  as  made  me  sure  he  was  about  to  support 
the  Bill  d  outrance,  he  suddenly  diverged  in  a  most  scorching  and 
destructive  criticism  of  every  one  of  its  provisions,  and  then  wound 
up  by  saying  that  he  would  vote  for  it,  on  the  ground  of  emergency, 
but  onli/  in  the  hope  of  largely  amending  it  in  Committee,  into 
which  Committee  he  of  course  knew  that  it  would  never  get !  His 
speech  alone  would  have  killed  the  Bill  as  dead  as  a  door  nail. 
Salisbury  followed  after  the  fashion  of  Joab  with  Abishai,  smiting 
Derby  cruel  blows  under  the  fifth  rib.  Kimberley  rose  to  reply 
and  thereupon,  as  Bunyan  says,  '  I  went  on  my  way.' 

"  The  next  night  came  on  the  big  guns — Cairns  and  Selborne. 
Cairns  opened  in  a  speech  of  two  hours  and  forty  minutes  ;  calm 
to  coldness,  logical,  forcible,  but  terribly  legal  mitil  towards  the 
end,  when  he  kindled  a  little  in  defence  of  Irish  landlords  threatened 
Avith  starvation.  It  had,  to  me,  the  effect  of  an  exceedingly  able 
Chancery  speech.  But  it  told  terriblij  against  the  Bill,  as  he 
knocked  away  one  after  the  other  all  the  pleas  advanced  for  it  by 
men  whose  utter  ignorance  of  law  and  fact  he  demonstrated  ex 
abundanti.  It  Avas  a  sight  to  see  Selborne  being  ci'animed  for  reply 
by  Granville  beside  him,  and  Forster  and  Neilson  Handcock  behind 
him,  all  busy,  eager  and  nervous ;  and  Granville  evidently  out  of 
sorts,  and  showing  it  now  and  then  by  snappy  interruptions  of 
Cairns  on  small  points.  Cairns  ended  at  the  dinner  hour,  and 
Selborne  rose  to  see  a  rush  of  peers  out  to  dinner,  and  to  address 
half  empty  benches.  His  speech  was  able  and  dignified,  and  to  a 
certain  extent  successful  in  hitting  small  blots  in  Cairns'  speech — • 
but  it  was  no  more.  Somerset  and  Monck  and  Zetland  followed, 
but  I  Avas  dining  and  heard  them  not.  Cranbrook  then  made  one 
of  his  slashing  speeches,  full  of  fire  and  points  well  down  to  the 
level  of  his  audience.  Argyll  followed  in  a  very  fine  speech, 
statesmanlike  and  thoughtful,  evidently  not  greatly  liking  the  Bill, 
and  yet  struggling  hard  to  defend  it  against  quotations  from  his 


140 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XV 


own  writings.  But  what  struck  me  most  in  his  speech  was,  his 
strong  and  reiterated  disclaimer  of  all  purpose  of  tampering  with 
the  Land  Act  of  1870.  This  gave  me  quite  the  idea  of  being 
aimed  at  Gladstone  and  Bright,  quite  as  much  as  for  the  Bill.  It 
was  really  a  'hands  off'  from  a  Whig  landlord  to  his  Radical 
colleague.  Beaconsfield  followed  in  a  heavy  and  laboui'ed  speech, 
with  hardly  anything  of  his  old  fire ;  and  then  came  the  most 
wonderful  division*  I  ever  witnessed — we  streamed  into  the  lobby 

[Unfinished.] 

"  DUNDARROCK,  CaLLENDER,  N.B., 

"  August  8,  i88o. 

"  I  had  written  you  a  long  letter  on  Wednesday  last,  giving  you 
my  impressions  of  the  great  Disturbance  debate  and  division ; 
unfortunately  I  left  a  few  lines  to  finish  with,  unwritten,  went  to 
dinner,  and  forgot  to  complete  my  letter  before  starting  in  the  mail 
for  Scotland,  Ergo,  you  have  lost  a  valuable  piece  of  contemporary 
history. 

"We  are  all  greatly  pleased  with  this  place.  It  combines 
everything  except  good  fishing.  This  enjoyment  is  very  mild 
indeed,  but  it  is  enough  to  give  an  excuse  for  exercise.  I  walked 
up  a  Highland  burn  yesterday  through  one  of  the  prettiest 
Highland  glens  I  have  yet  seen.  From  our  drawing-room  window 
we  command  a  noble  view  of  Ben  Venue — the  Ben  Venue  of  the 
'  Lady  of  the  Lake  ^ — and  we  are  going  to  walk  to-day  to  Loch 
Katrine.  Accessible  hills  and  mountains  all  round  us  are  inviting 
us  up  their  heather-clad  sides.  The  girls  have  a  safe  boat  in  which 
to  paddle  and  perch-fish,  and  a  little  island  on  which  to  tea  and 
picnic.  So,  all  things  considered,  our  lines  have  fallen  on  pleasant 
j)laces,  and  even  the  weather  is,  so  far,  propitious. 

"  It  was  fortunate  for  me  that  I  stayed  on  Thursday  last  in 
town,  as  I  received  at  the  Athenaeum  what  may  prove  the  beginning 
of  a  controversy  with  the  Home  Office  anent  my  consecration — or, 
rather,  non-consecration  of  a  graveyard  at  Irthlingborough.  The 
points  are  too  long  and  legal  for  a  letter.  Suffice  it  to  say  that  I 
declined  to  consecrate,  and  the  Burials  Board,  having  applied  for 
'  advice ''  to  Sir  W.  Harcourt,  he  sent  me  their  letter  with  request 
for  my  '  observations  thereon.''  As  Master  Harcourt  is  not  a 
pleasant  or  safe  customer  to  deal  with,  especially  on  the  Burials 
question,  for  a  bishop,  I  took  the  precaution  to  submit  an  elaborate 

*  231  against,  50  in  favour. 


iSyS-So     NAVVIES'  MISSION;  BURIALS  ACT  141 


case  to  Jeune  before  replying,  and  had  the  satisfaction  of  having 
my  view  of  the  law  confirmed  in  every  particular.  I  then  wrote  a 
very  brief  and  guarded  reply  to  Sir  W.  Harcourt,  out  of  which  I 
do  not  think  he  will  take  much  change,  referring  him  to  certain 
sections  of  the  Act  under  which  I  was  proceeding,  and  pointing  out 
that,  as  the  Burials  Board  at  Irthlingborough  had  not  complied 
A\  ith  the  Act,  observations  from  me  on  their  statement  to  him 
would  be  premature ;  and  there  the  matter  rests  for  the  present.  I 
dare  say  I  shall  hear  more  of  it.  But  was  it  not  lucky  that  I  did 
not  receive  this  communication  here  (as  I  should  have  done  had  I 
left  for  this  on  Tuesday),  four  hundred  miles  away  from  lawyers 
and  books  ?  I  should  either  have  had  to  return  to  London  or  to 
fret  and  wony  through  half  my  vacation.  Now  I  am  sheltered,  for 
the  present  at  least,  from  '  disturbance,'  and  can  plead  at  any  time 
that  I  have  '  acted  under  the  advice  of  eminent  counsel.' 

'  This  is  a  long  yarn  on  a  matter  not  of  great  interest  to  any  one 
but  myself.  But  I  thought  you  might  like — 7nore  Hibernico — to 
be  in  at  the  beginning  of  a  possible  row. 

"  All  join  in  love  and  best  wishes.  "  W.  C.  P." 


CHAPTER  XVI 


LEICESTER  CHURCH  CONGRESS:   CHURCH  REFORM 

The  meeting  of  a  Church  Congress  in  his  diocese  is  an  important 
crisis  in  the  history  of  any  bishop.  At  the  meeting  at  Leicester 
every  care  and  precaution  had  been  taken  to  make  it  a  success ; 
but  what  contributed  more  than  anything  else  to  the  successful 
result  was  the  Bishop's  great  capacity  as  a  chairman.  He  con- 
tributed his  full  share  to  the  speaking  (especially  at  the  working- 
men''s  meeting*),  but  he  was,  if  possible,  more  able  as  a  chairman 
than  even  as  a  speaker.  A  great  demonstration  was  threatened 
against  the  Mexican  bishop,  Riley,  and  it  was  fully  intended  by 
some  to  prevent  his  speaking.  The  Bishop  took  great  pains  to 
ascertain  Bishop  Riley's  history  and  claims,  and,  having  satisfied 
himself  that  there  M  as  no  reason  why  he  should  not  be  heard  as 
well  as  other  appointed  speakers,  he  determined  that  the  programme 
of  the  Congi'ess  should  be  carried  out.  Leaving  the  chair  in  the 
central  hall  to  a  deputy,  he  presided  himself  at  the  sectional  meeting 
where  Bishop  Riley  was  to  speak.  The  result  was  that  no  demon- 
stration took  place,  and  the  peace  of  the  Congi-ess  was  not  disturbed. 
No  doubt,  one  reason  why  the  Bishop  was  so  strong  a  chairman  was 
the  same  which  makes  the  Government  of  a  gi'eat  nation  strong — 
there  is  always  force  in  the  background.  So,  while  conducting  the 
proceedings  of  the  Congress  with  calmness  and  courtesy.  Bishop 
Magee  had  rarely  to  show  openly  his  repressive  powers.  Few  men, 
however  pugnacious,  cared  to  cross  swords  with  so  powerful  an 
antagonist ;  and  without  displaying  the  powers  Avhich  all  knew  M  ere 
there,  he  ruled  a  great  assembly  with  smoothness  and  success. 

Perhaps  the  most  interesting  feature  of  the  Congress  was  an 
address  from  the  Nonconformist  ministers  in  Leicester,  welcoming 
the  Congress  and  expressing  their  sympathy  in  its  discussions,  to 

*  "Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  246. 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


143 


which  the  Bishop  gave  an  admirable  reply.  His  feelings  towards 
the  Nonconformists  are  fully  and  carefully  expressed  in  three 
addresses  given  at  Southampton  Congi-ess  in  1870  ;  on  this  occasion, 
at  Leicester,  in  1880;  and  at  Hull  in  1891. — ["Speeches  and 
Addresses,"  pp.  270-280.] 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Peterborough,  October  4,  1880. 
"  I  must  write  you  a  line  to  tell  you,  what  I  know  will  please 
you,  that  I  have  just  had  a  most  handsome  and  kindly-worded 
letter  of  congratulation  from  Cantuar  upon  the  success  of  the  late 
Congress.  Under  any  circumstances  this  would  have  been  gratifying, 
but  under  those  you  wot  of  it  is  doubly  so,  and  I  cannot  but  think 
that  Cantuar  seized  the  opportunity  of  saying  something  graceful 
and  healing.  I  had  also  a  few  kind  words  of  thanks  and  approval 
from  my  old  Nonconformist  friend.  Dr.  Stoughton." 

From  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbuiiy. 

Addington  Park,  Croydon, 

October  2,  1880. 

My  dear  Bishop, — I  cannot  rise  from  reading  the  account  of  the 
close  of  the  Leicester  Congress  without  congratulating  you  on  the 
success  of  the  meeting. 

At  a  time  when  there  was  naturally  a  good  deal  of  sore  feeling,  it 
required  such  a  chairman  as  presided  to  give  all  a  right  direction ;  and 
I  cannot  doubt  that  the  closing  scene  and  the  words  with  which  you 
began  and  ended  the  meetings  will  have  a  lasting  effect.  I  hope  you 
have  not  suffered  in  health  by  the  exertion. — Ever  sincerely  yours, 

A.  C.  Cantuar. 

The  Lord  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnetx. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"November  11,  1880. 

"  Our  '  East  Anglian '  Episcopal  Conference  held  here  this  year 
has  just  terminated,  and  I  am  able  now  to  see  better  than  I  could 
before  how  the  Burials  Act  is  affecting  episcopal  minds  and  politics. 
Of  the  five  bishops  assembled  here,  three — viz.,  Lincoln,  Ely,  and 
myself — are  absolutely  resolved  not  to  consecrate;  two — viz.,  St. 
Albans  and  Norwich — are  as  strong  the  other  way.  Gloucester 
and  Bristol  sides  with  the  non-consecrating  bishops,  while  Oxford, 


144 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


Rochester,  Winchester,  Carlisle,  and  Exeter  are  for  consecration, 
and  so  I  suspect  are  all  the  rest,  including  the  two  Primates. 

"As  regards  the  tolling  of  the  bell,  opinions  are  more  evenly 
divided,  probably  about  half  being  for  conceding  and  the  other 
half  for  refusing  it.  On  registration  and  Smiday  funerals  we  are, 
I  think,  all  aOTeed  to  recommend  the  one  and  discourage  the  other. 
So  much  for  episcopal  union  !  The  next  point  is  as  to  attendance 
or  non-attendance  at  a  meeting  of  the  bishops  summoned  to 
Lambeth,  for  December  7,  '  to  discuss  the  Bui-ials  Act ' !  To  this 
meeting  the  fom*  non-consecrating  bishops  have  agreed  not  to  go, 
on  the  gi'ound  that,  having  taken  and  announced  om*  com"se  of 
action  on  one  side,  as  other  bishops  have  on  the  opposite  side, 
conference  is  useless,  and  the  appearance  of  it  compromising  and 
dangerous  for  a  minority  so  small  as  ours.  Some  of  us  feel  very 
.strongly,  too,  that  the  episcopate  is  never  taken  fairly  into 
conference  by  the  Primate  in  matters  political,  but  that  arrange- 
ments are  made  by  him  \\  ith  Government  behind  the  scenes  and 
that  we  are  only  called  in  to  register  foregone  conclusions.  So  we 
'  strike,'  and  the  results  will  be  curious.  I,  for  one,  ^vill  not  ])ut 
niv  cards  down  on  the  table  at  Lambeth  for  Sir  W.  Harcourt  to 
see  the  next  dav.  So  think  others  too.  Whether  the  I'esult  will 
be  acquiescence  by  the  Primate  and  Government  in  our  rebellion, 
or  an  attempt  to  coerce  us  into  consecrating,  I  can  hardly  yet 
imagine ;  but  I  suspect  that  in  either  case  a  Bill  to  amend  the 
Bur  ials  Acts  is  pretty  sure  to  be  brought  in  next  session.  The  said 
Acts  are  indeed  a  tangled  mass  of  blundering,  and  refuse,  as  might 
be  expected,  to  fit  in  with  the  hasty  legislation  of  last  year.  I  am 
every  now  and  then  interchanging  letters  with  the  Home  Office 
which  on  my  part  say  as  little  as  possible,  on  Sir  W.''s  part  display 
evidently  a  wish  to  be  nasty  and  yet  an  evident  uncertainty  how 
best  to  be  so.  Altogether  the  outlook  is  interesting,  and  the 
imprisonment  of  fom-  bishops  not  altogether  impossible.  I  will  tell 
you  how  things  go  on  from  time  to  time."' 

From  the  Bishop  of  Ely, 

Palace,  Ely,  November  13. 
Mv  DEAR  Bishop, — Brimel  writes  this  summary  of  the  proceedings. 
"  Lord  Penzance  admonished  Mr.  Dale  to  discontinue  certaua  practices. 
Mr.  Dale  continued  these  practices  and  was  inhibited  from  officiating  for 
three  months.  For  disregarding  this  inhibition  by  officiating  Mr.  Dale 
has  been  imprisoned,  just  as  in  Adlam  v.  Colthuist  Sir  R.  Phillimore 


£8So-83 


CHURCH  liEFORM 


145 


would  have  issued  a  signi/iairil  if  tlic  deteiulant  hail  not  obeyed  the 
monition  issued  by  Dr.  Lushington.  In  that  case  Sir  K.  Pliillimore 
intimated  that  he  had  a  (liscretioii  as  to  issuing  Ihc  significavit  and  the 
P.  W.  ]{.  Act  made  no  change  in  this.  Lord  P.  seems  to  hold  that  he  has 
no  choice  where  the  disobedience  is  avowed  and  persisted  in.  It  is 
true  that  the  benefice  is  vacated  if  a  written  pi'omise  to  obey  the  moni- 
tion is  not  given  within  three  years,  and  so  far  it  is  true  that  if  nothing- 
were  done  to  punish  disobedience  to  the  inhibition  this  disobedience 
would  be  in  effect  punished  by  the  same  process  by  which  non-sub- 
mission to  the  monition  is  punished."  This  confirms  your  view  of  the 
case.  You  will  have  seen  the  Archbishop's  letter  in  to-day's  Times. 
All  seems  to  me  to  point  to  our  addressing  him  as  we  proposed^  and 
publishing  our  letter,  with  his  reply  if  he  permits.  We  should  thus  at 
any  rate  make  known  our  protest  against  the  imprisonment,  which  is 
working  fatally.    In  great  haste. — Ever  yours,  J.  R.  Ely. 

P.S. — That  Lord  P.  need  not  have  granted  the  signi/icavit  is  our 
point  of  remonstrance,  and  this  Sir  R.  Phillimore  seems  to  have  held. 


To  the  BisHOi'  OF  Ei.v. 

"Peterborough,  November  13,  1880. 

"  Mv  DEAR  Bishop, — The  letter  of  the  Friniate  in  this  niovning's 
Times  seems  to  me  so  exactly  to  express  our  view  respecting  the 
imprisonment  of  Mr.  Dale  as  to  make  it,  perhaps,  unnecessary  to 
address  to  him  the  letter  we  had  agreed  upon. 

"  At  any  rate,  it  necessarily  somewhat  modifies  our  communica- 
tion, which  I  have  drafted  accordinglv. 

"  Please  let  me  have  your  opinion  bv  return  of  post, 

"  (1)  Whether  we  should  now  send  any  letter. 

"  (2)  Whether,  if  we  do,  we  should  send  this. 

"Yours  most  truly,  "W.  C.  Peteuborough. 

"  P.S.- — On  the  whole,  I  incline  to  sending  the  letter,  as  tending 
to  strengthen  the  Primate's  hands  in  communicating  with  Lord 
Penzance." 

From  the  Pisuor  oe  Ely. 

Palace,  Ely,  November  15. 
My  dear  Bishop, — .  .  .  .  By  all  means  send  the  letter  you  have 
drafted  at  once  to  the  Primate.  I  have  no  douht  that  it  is  wise  to  do  so. 
I  also  agree  to  pausing  now  with  so  doing,  following  up  the  private 
letter  with  more  public  action  if  the  blunder  is  repeated  bj-  Penzance. 
—Ever  yours,  J.  R.  Ely. 

VOL.  II.  K 


146 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVI 


To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"  Peterborodgh,  November  i8,  1880. 

"  I  write  one  word  in  reply  to  your  letter  anent  the  '  ringing  of 
the  bell.''  This  seems  to  me  nuich  more  important  than  it  does  to 
you.  In  the  first  })lace,  for  the  sake  of  the  clergy.  There  may  be 
cases — and  sometimes  there  certainly  will — in  which  they  would 
not  like  the  bell  to  be  rung,  e.g.,  a  secularist  funeral.  But  to  grant 
it  in  some  cases  and  refuse  it  in  others  is  most  invidious  and  diffi- 
cult, and  even  })ainfid.  If  the  clergy  mean  to  keep  out  of  hot 
water,  they  had  better  adopt  a  broad  principle,  and  either  allow  it 
without  being  asked  for  in  all  cases  or  refuse  beforehand  in  all  cases 
save  Church  funerals.  The  former  alternative  even  you  do  not 
])ropose,  for  you  would  have  '  the  bell  asked  for  in  all  cases."  The 
latter  is,  therefore,  the  only  safe  one. 

"  (2)  As  regards  the  Church. 

"  The  use  of  the  bell  implies  throwing  open  the  belfry,  and  in 
most  cases  the  church.  So  surely  as  vou  allow  this,  you  will  have 
Roman  Catholic  priests  robing-  in  the  church,  and  Dissenters  using 
it  on  wet  days ;  and  so  the  public  mind  gradually  familiarised  to 
the  idea  of  the  national  church  for  national  use  by  all — the  really 
dangerous  side  of  the  Liberation  movement.  I  regard  both  these 
dangers  as  rcullij  scriou.s,  and  you  know  I  have  not  been  a  heated 
alarmist  about  this  Bill.  I  earnestly  hope,  therefore,  that  you  will 
not  grant,  or  advise  others  to  grant,  the  use  of  the  bell. 

"As  regards  another  matter — the  Lambeth  meeting — I  am  more 
than  ever  averse  to  going  to  it,  since  I  have  heard  that  the  Primate, 
in  reply  to  a  letter  from  Lincoln,  telling  him  of  his  refusal  to  con- 
secrate and  sending  him  his  public  letter  setting  forth  his  reasons, 
referred  to  the  coming  meeting  of  bishops  ;  as  if,  forsooth,  that 
was  to  settle  the  question  for  those  of  us  who  had  openly  taken 
our  line  respecting  it.  It  is  clear  that  the  Primate  regards  this 
matter  of  consecration  as  still  an  open  question,  anything  indivi- 
dual bishops  may  have  said  to  the  contrary  notwithstanding.  To 
a  meeting  to  be  held  on  such  a  footing  I  certainly  will  not  go. 

"  (2.  Again)  There  may  be,  and  probably  will  be,  some  attempt  at 
a  pastoral  on  the  subject.  Now,  I  believe  that  it  would  be  posi- 
tively fatal  to  the  little  influence  some  of  us  still  have  with  our 
clergy,  if  we  allowed  our  names  to  appear  conjointly  with  the 
Primate's  and  other  Liberal  bishops'  in  any  document  relating  to 
the  Burials  Bill.    I  should  not  like  to  have  to  say  this  at  the 


I 880-83 


CHURCH 


REFORM 


147 


meeting,  but  say  it  I  must  if  I  go  thei'e  and  it  is  proposed  to  issue 
4uiy  joint  counsels,  even  on  those  points  on  which  we  might  ha})pen 
to  agree. 

"3.  It  is  simply  silly  to  call  bishops  together  to  confer  upon 
united  counsels  when  one-third  of  them  have  already  given  widely 
different  and  opposite  counsels. 

"  This  meeting,  to  be  of  any  real  use,  should  have  been  held  two 
months  ago. 

"  4.  I  will  not  throw  down  my  cards  on  the  table  in  the  middle 
of  the  game  I  am  playing  with  Sir  W.  V.  Harcourt.  The  Primate 
could  not  well  help  telling  him  my  line  of  argument  and  defence ; 
and  I  wish  to  keep  this  in  reserve,  both  as  regards  the  Primate  and 
Sir  W.  too.  I  am  the  imfortunate  person  selected  to  try  the 
Avhole  question  with,  and  I  must  play  a  very  close  and  cautious 
game.  I  do  not  think  that  they  will  proceed  to  extremities 
against  four  bishops;  more  especially  as  their  object,  of  course,  is 
to  present  this  Act  to  the  nation  as  working  quite  smoothly  and 
pleasantly.  But  still  they  ynuy  do  so,  and  I  must  therefore  give 
them  no  point  in  the  game.  My  great  objection  to  the  whole 
thing  is,  that  it  may  cost  me  a  couple  of  hundred  pounds,  which 
I  can  ill  spare.  But  I  am  in  for  that  if  they  go  on,  and  cannot 
now  recede  before  anything  less  than  a  maiidamii.s — whether  I  shall 
vield  to  that,  I  am  not  yet  quite  clear  about.  Legislation,  if  it 
take  place  at  all,  will  doubtless  be  in  the  direction  of  relaxation, 
not  of  greater  stringency.  A  Liberal  Government  compelling  a 
bishop  to  consecrate  by  Act  of  Parliament  would  be  too  absurd, 
jnuch  as  Sir  W.  might  like  it.  Meanwhile,  I  am  observing  a 
'  masterly  inactivity,''  and  saying  and  doing  nothing,  leaving  it  to 
the  other  side  to  '  fire  first.' 

"  Exeter  College,  Oxon, 

"November  29,  1880. 

"  I  have  just  received  your  letter  here,  where  I  have  been  preach- 
ing the  second  of  my  '  select  sermons.  I  have  been  running  '  a- 
muck  against  ultra-Broad  Churchism  and  science  'falsely  so-called,' 
and,  I  am  thankful  to  find,  with  some  effect,  both  of  encouragement 
to  those  who  believe  and  great  wrath  on  the  part  of  those  who  do 
not  believe  in  the  supernatural.  Some  of  these  days  I  may  show 
you  the  said  sermons,  as  reported  in  the  Church  of  ExgJdiul  Pitlp'if, 
and  ask  your  advice  as  to  their  publication — to  which  I  aiii^ 
tempted,  partly  at  least,  in  self-defence  against  the  garbled  records 
of  them  which  the  })enny-a-liners  are  giving;   partly  because  I 


148 


J  RC HE  IS  HOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP,  xvr 


really  think  I  have  got  hold  of  one  or  two  points  which  tcU,  more 
especially  against  the  pet  doctrine  of  the  modern  materialist,  '  the 
scientific  basis  of  ethics/  a  thing  which  seems  to  me  abovit  as 
intelligible  antl  practical  an  idea  as  that  of  the  olfactory  judgment 
of  pictiu'es.  The  eye  of  science  is  as  capable  of  seeing  morality 
as  the  nose  of  the  spectator  is  capable  of  perceiving  pers]^ective. 
Truly  it  is  time  that  some  stand  were  made  here  against  mate- 
rialism on  other  grounds  than  those  of  Catholic  heritage  and  the 
Ileal  Presence.  Oxford  is  fast  dividing  itself,  from  all  I  can  hear, 
into  pietistic  Ritualists  and  anti-clerical  and  anti-Christian  mate- 
rialists— the  latter  the  abler  and  more  fervent  party  of  the  two. 
The  actual  hatred  of  Christianity  and  of  'clericalism'  on  the  part 
of  many  of  the  younger  Fellows  of  colleges  here  is  startling.  A  has 
les  pn  tres  I  is  becoming  quite  a  cry  here ;  and  it  is  a  positive  dis- 
qualification in  any  aspirant  for  office  here  to  be  a  clergyman. 

"  ^^'hat  a  change  from  the  days  A\  hen  Newman  and  his  school 
absorbed  the  intellect  of  Oxford !  and  yet  a  change  which  they 
have  largely  helped  to  effect.  I  always  looked  for  this  reaction  of 
scepticism  against  overstrained  authority  in  religion ;  but  I  hardly 
thought  it  Avould  come  so  soon,  or  be  so  fierce  when  it  came.  And 
yet,  on  the  other  hand,  there  is  much  encouragement  in  the  evident 
seriousness  and  earnestness  of  many  of  the  young  men  now  coming 
up  to  Oxford.  The  number  of  communicants,  for  instance,  in  this 
College  (and  very  probably  in  others)  is  on  the  increase  ;  and  the 
tone,  I  hear,  increasingly  good ;  and  vet  it  is  out  of  these  students 
that  the  materialistic  and  anti-Christian  Fellows  and  professors  are, 
of  course,  jiroduced.  Is  this  because  intellect  is  enlisting  itself  on 
the  side  of  infidelity  and  leaving  only  the  dullards  for  religion  A 
sad  prospect  if  it  is  so  !  Or  are  those  young  Christians  the  crest 
of  another  wave  of  thought  just  rising  ?  It  is  hard  to  say;  but 
profoundly  interesting  to  think  over.  But  how  I  wish  that  there 
were  some  male  intellect  here  to  guide  and  strengthen  these  young 
minds  for  good,  instead  of  the  merely_/?7«/?i?'»r  minds  of  such  monks 
in  petticoats  as  Liddon  and  !  "  W.  C.  P." 

From  the  Bishop  of  Ei.v. 

Oxford,  Novemhcr  iSSo. 
I  am  hearing  on  all  sides  of  your  last  sennon  here  as  most  valuable^ 
Liddon  tiiinks  that  delivered  last  time  was  the  greatest  sermon  he  has. 
ever  heard. 


aS8o-S3 


CHURCH  UEFORM 


149 


To  J.  C.  :\Ia(  Doxxki,l. 

"  Peterborough,  Dcccmhcv  ii,  i8So. 
"  I  send  you  with  this  a  copy  of  my  last  Oxford  sermon.  I  have 
corrected  some  of  the  worst  of  the  reporters'  English,  and  vou 
w  ill,  I  hope,  therefore,  be  able  to  read  it  without  having  your 
teeth  set  on  edge  as  mine  were  bv  the  atrocities  they  made  me 
utter.  I  want  vou  to  tell  me  candidly,  aftei-  you  have  read  it, 
whether  vou  think  it  worth  ])id)lishing.  I  confess  now  to  consider- 
able doubts  on  that  point.  Indeed,  I  doubt  whether  any  extem- 
pore sermon  ought  to  be  published.  Its  force  must  differ  so 
essentiallv  from  that  of  the  written  essay — which  a  ])rinted  sermon 
really  is — that  it  can  never  satisfy  the  reader  ;  just  because  it  did 
satisfy  the  hearer.    However,  give  me  your  '  sintimints.'' 

To  the  Editor  of  the  Cuiardiaii. 

Palace,  Peterborough, 

January  13,  iSSi. 

Sir, — I  observe  in  the  leading  article  of  this  week's  Guardian  a  state- 
ment that  the  Bill  for  the  refomi  of  Church  patronage,  brought  for- 
ward by  me,  "Avas  dropped  after  one  rejection."  Permit  me  to  say, 
tliat  my  Bill  was  not  "  rejected  "  but  was  passed  by  the  House  of  Lords. 
It  Avas  not  brought  forward  in  the  House  of  Commons,  owing  to  cir- 
cumstances over  Avhicli  I  had  no  control.  The  reasons  why  I  did  not 
think  it  desirable  to  reintroduce  it  immediately  in  the  House  of  Lords, 
1  stated  at  some  length  in  your  columns  not  long  ago.  They  wei'e 
briefly  these  : 

That  while  the  Bill  was  fiercely  o])posed  by  those  interested  in  main- 
taining existing  abuses,  it  was  so  languidly  su})ported  by  the  Church  at 
large  that  it  was  clear  that  the  force  was  wanting  which  alone  could 
impel  it  through  Parliament.  I  judged  it  better,  therefore,  to  Avait  the 
rijjening  of  opinion  upon  the  question,  before  again  attemjiting  to 
move  for  Pai-lianientary  action  upon  it.  The  course  of  events  has,  I 
think,  proved  that  I  was  right  iia  this  decision.  Since  then  a  Royal 
Commission  on  the  subject,  of  Avhich  I  Avas  a  member,  has  sat  and  re- 
ported, and  its  recommendations — most  of  them  unanimously  adopted 
— are  considerably  in  advance,  not  only  of  the  provisions  of  my  Bill,  as 
ultimately  amended  by  the  Lords,  but  also  of  the  recommendations  of 
the  Select  Committee  of  their  Lordships'  House  appointed  on  my  motion 
in  1874.  I  may  further  state,  that  so  far  from  being,  as  you  allege, 
"  rebuffed  "  by  a  "rejection"  which  never  occurred,  I  have  procured, 
Avith  the  approval  of  the  episcopate,  the  introduction  of  a  measure  for 


150 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XV! 


the  reform  of  Cluirch  patronage  in  the  House  of  Commons,  of  which  I 
see  tliat  notice  appears  in  the  same  number  of  the  Guardian  in  which 
I  am  reproached  for  neglect  of  this  subject.  If  1  have  not  introduced 
the  measure  in  this  session  in  tlie  Lords,  it  is  because,  in  my  opinion — 
which  is  shared  by  those  best  competent  to  advise  ujion  the  subject — 
the  House  of  Commons  is  the  fittest  place  in  whicli  to  raise  again  the 
question  of  refoiun  of  jiatronage  on  which  the  Lords  have  already  pro- 
nounced their  decision. 

May  I  be  allowed  in  conclusion  to  express  the  hope  that  all  those 
earnest  and  courageous  Church  reformers,  who  did  not  support  my 
efforts  for  reform  six  years  ago,  and  who  have  since  shown  their  zeal  in 
this  cause  solely  by  rebuking  me  for  not  succeeding  when  their  failure 
to  support  me  made  success  impossible,  will  try  a  different  plan  now  ? 
May  I  ask  them,  instead  of  reserving  their  efforts  for  criticism  after 
failure,  to  do  what  they  can  by  petitions  and  in  any  other  way  that 
they  may  think  desirable,  to  promote  the  success  of  the  Bill  on  the 
reform  of  Church  patronage,  which  is  to  be  introduced  in  the  House 
of  Commons  on  the  2nd  of  March  next.''  W.  C.  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxkij.. 

''  Peterborough,  January  22,  1881. 

"  I  see  from  your  letter  just  received  that  you  cannot  have 
received  mine  of  ten  days  ago,  in  which  I  told  you  of  my  bad  knee, 
and  of  my  greater  trouble  in  the  shape  of  defaulting  tenants  and 
loss  of  money,  to  the  tune  of  at  least  ^£^400,  and  possibly  ot'SOO. 

"  Between  these  two  troubles  I  am  not  much  in  the  vein  for 
Convocation.  Nor  have  I  any  great  opinion  of  what  it  can  do,  or 
of  what  I  am  to  do  in  it.  I  am,  however,  loth  to  shrink  from  a 
clear  duty,  however  distasteful  it  may  be ;  and  if  I  could  plainly 
.see  it  my  duty  to  go  up,  I  would.  I  cannot  advocate  unlimited 
concession  to  the  Ritualists,  and  nothing  less  will  satisfy  them ; 
while,  on  the  other  hand,  I  would  be  prepared  to  offer  just  enough 
of  concession  to  enrage  the  Puritans.  Who  was  it  ever  invented 
that  falsest  of  proverbs,  '  In  medio  tutissimus  ibis "  ?  It  seems  to  me 
that  the  man  in  the  middle  is  '  safe '  for  nothing  but  a  kicking  from 
both  sides.  I  have  had,  however,  some  talk  with  Cantuar  and 
others  of  the  bishops  about  the  situation,  and  am  now  correspond- 
ing M-ith  others  about  it.  I  should  like  much  to  have  a  good  long- 
talk  with  you  on  the  whole  matter,  to  clear  my  mind  upon  it. 
When  will  your  party  break  up,  and  allow  of  your  coming  hei'e  for 
a  night  or  two  ? 


t88o-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


151 


To  PuKliEXDARY  GltlKK. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"  January  26,  1881. 

"  Many  thanks  both  for  your  sending  me  your  pamphlet,  and  for 
the  pamphlet  itself.  The  eause  of  reform  of  Chureh  patronage 
wants  all  the  help  it  can  get,  and  yours  is  valuable.  As  regards 
the  contents  of  your  pamphlet,  there  is  only  one  statement  in  it  to 
which  I  could  take  excejjtion,  and  that  is  as  to  matter  of  fact. 
The  Commission  did  not  defend  sale  of  ad\  owsons  on  the  ground 
that  it  secured  variety  of  view  and  freedom  of  opinion  in  the  Church. 
This  was  their  reason  for  defending  existing  var'id'it's  of  patronage, 
e.g.,  private,  collegiate,  episcopal,  Ci'own,  and  so  on ;  but  not  for 
{iC({uiescing  in  .sales  oj" patronage.  I  say  this  with  some  confidence 
as  the  clause  in  question  was  mine,  and  was  borrowed  from  the 
Lords'  Committee  Report,  which  was  mine  also.  The  real  difficulty 
as  to  abolishing  sales  of  advowsons  is,  the  pauper  or  criminous 
patron.  If  an  advowson  becomes  inalienable  it  may  fall  into 
utterly  vmfit  hands,  and  not  be  as  it  now  is  capable  of  rescue  from 
such  ownership  by  sale.  Further  difficulty  arises  from  the  fact  that 
the  bias  of  all  modern  legislation  is  against  the  creation  of  perpetual 
entails.  This  I  found  a  serious  obstacle  in  the  minds  of  members  of 
both  Houses  who  were  well  disposed  to  reform  of  patronage  in 
general.  My  own  feeling,  after  six  years'  experience,  now  is  that 
this  evil  of  traffic  in  livings  is  best  attacked  legislatively,  by  steadily 
icJiittling  it  down  to  smaller  and  smaller  dimensions,  until  at  last 
patrons  may  care  far  less  about  greatly  diminished  privileges,  and 
the  thing  be  finally  abolished  with  comparatively  little  difficulty. 
For  this  reason  I  am  thankful  for  any  instalments  of  reform  px'o- 
curable,  and  if  all  the  recommendations  of  the  Conmiission  were 
carried  out  we  should  gain  a  great  deal  more  in  this  direction  than 
is  apparent  on  the  face  of  them.  Nevertheless,  I  gladly  welcome 
more  thorough-going  proposals  such  as  yours.  They  help  to  turn 
the  flank  of  the  defenders  of  abuses  by  showing  them  that  if  they 
do  not  agree  with  their  adversaries  quickly  worse  is  in  store  for  them. 
I  wish  very  nuich  that  you  would  write  a  letter  to  the  Guardian, 
showing  to  what  extent  the  reconnnendations  of  the  Conmiissioners 
really  go,  and  urging  all  reformers  to  support  at  least  these  even  while 
demanding  or  desiring  more.  What  I  want  just  now  is  support 
from  the  Church  outside  Parliament.  The  Gtiardian,  for  some 
reason  unknown  to  me,  steadily  sneers  at  and  minimises  all  that  I 


152 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


<lo  or  say.  But  independent  support  of  this  Bill  (I  care  nothing  for 
myself)  they  can  hardlv  refuse  to  admit  to  their  columns.  I  want, 
in  short,  to  keep  the  ball  rolling.  Pray  try  and  help  this.  As  the 
time  for  the  introduction  of  the  Bill  by  Mr.  Stanhope  draws  nearer 
I  should  be  most  thankfid  for  petitions  in  its  support,  and  so,  of 
course,  would  he." 

"  Peterborough,  January  29,  1881. 
"I  am  greatly  anuised  by  your  political  corresjiondence  with  Sii- 
W .  La\\son.  You  will  pardon  an  anti-Permissive  Bill  man,  and 
anti-  or  non-Ritualist,  for  saying  that  I  enjoy  it  as  the  Romans 
once  enjoyed  a  battle  between  the  barbarians,  on  the  op]iosite  side 
of  the  river  to  their  encampment.  Sir  AV.  will  not  allow  of  a 
Permissive  Bill  in  favour  of  Ritualism,  and  you  object  to  a 
Maine  law  against  it.  /  am  in  favour  of  a  widely  tolerant  but 
definite  law,  which  will  clearly,  however  liberally,  define  the  limits 
of  Ritual ;  and  not  leave  congregations  at  the  mercy  of  clergy  ; 
nor— what  so  many  of  the  clergy  are  unconsciously  clamouring  ior 
— clergy  at  the  mercy  of  congregations  ;  nor  either  of  these  at  the 
mercy  of  bishops  ;  nor  bishops  at  their  mercy  ;  but  all  alike  bound 
by  clear  and  unmistakable  hnc.  This,  to  my  mind,  the  ornaments 
rubric  is  not,  and  never  will  be  until  it  is  amended,  i.e.,  until  it 
})lainly  says  what  garments  the  clergy  are  to  wear  (I  care  ^•ery  little 
what,  so  they  be  only  defined),  instead  of  sending  a  curate  of  twenty- 
three,  when  robing  for  service,  to  search  through  the  ecclesiastical 
liistory  of  a  hundred  and  thirteen  years  to  know  Mhat  he  is  to 
^vear." 

"Palace,  Peterborough, 

"February  i,  iSSi. 

"  We  are  very  nearly  agreed  as  to  the  best  remedy  for  Church 
troubles.  But  the  drafting  of  a  Bill  to  effect  this  is  yet  a  great 
way  off.  No  such  Bill  would  have  a  chance  of  passing,  unless  it  had 
the  general  support  of  the  Chureli  representatives ;  and  before  that 
can  be  obtained  so  as  to  receive  the  assent  of  the  Church  collective, 
the  representation  must  be  improved. 

"  Reform  of  the  representative  assemblies  of  the  Church  nuist 
precede,  I  now  see,  reform  of  her  rubrical  directions.  This  reform 
is  pi'oceeding  healthily,  I  think,  though  slowly. 

"  Diocesan  representation  is  greatly  strengthening  and  develoj)- 
ing.  I  should  not  hesitate  to  submit  a  question  of  Ritual 
discretion,  for  my  own  guidance,  to  my  Diocesan  Conference  to- 
morrow. 


I880-S3 


CHURCH  REFORM 


153 


"  Reform  of  Convocation  iiiust  conit',  and  that  ltl'  Ion"'.  It 
should  consist  of: 

"  (1)  Larger  basis  of  representation. 

"(2)  Fusion  of  two  houses  in  Canterbury  as  in  York. 

"  (3)  Fusion  of  Canterbury  and  York  ;  or,  at  least,  nuich  closer 
rapproilicmerd. 

"(4)  Abolition  of  old  and  obsolete  modes  of  business,  (^^■.,j£,'v«w/- 
m'lna  and  the  like. 

"  Tlicit,  and  not  till  then,  the  Church  will  acce})t  a  wise  and 
tolerant  rubrical  revision  from  Convocation.  ^Meanwhile,  the 
question  is,  Can  we  keep  the  Church  together  until  then  I  some- 
times doubt  it,  and  that  seriously.  If  it  is  so  held,  it  must  be  by 
the  help  of  an  amount,  both  of  control  and  of  dispensing  power,  on 
the  part  of  the  bisho})s,  which  no  party  seems  disposed  to  grant 
then).    Therefore  I  am  not  sanguine.  "  AV.  C.  P." 

The  conflict  between  the  Hitualists  and  the  Ecclesiastical  Courts 
led  the  Bishop  to  propose  a  Royal  Commission  to  consider  the 
w  hole  question  of  Courts  Ecclesiastical  and  Clergy  Discij)line,  with 
n  truce  on  all  sides  while  awaiting  its  report.  On  December  4, 
1880,  he  wrote  to  the  Bishop  of  Ely,  urging  him  to  connnunicate 
this  idea  to  ~Slv.  Gladstone.  On  IMarch  7,  1881,  the  Archbishop 
of  Canterbury  brought  the  subject  before  the  House  of  Lords,  and 
the  Jtoyal  Connnission  was  appointed. 

To  J.  C.  :\Ia(  DOXXKLL. 

"  Selsdon  Park,  Croydon, 

"February  11,  iSSi. 

"Convocation  is,  thank  Heaven,  over  to-day;  and  I  have  time  to 
.send  you  a  few  notes  as  to  its  history.  You  will  have  seen  from  the 
Guardian  how  the  discussion  in  our  House  began,  upon  a  motion 
by  the  Bishop  of  Lincoln  in  reply  to  certain  petitions  for  '  tolera- 
tion ;  and  you  will  have  seen  how  I  spoke — not  against  toleration, 
but  against  certain  devices  for  effecting  it,  which  I  w  as  particularly 
anxious  to  demolish  early  in  the  day,  so  as  to  shut  men  up  to 
either  amended  rubrics  or  better  courts.  This  I  succeeded  in  doinu" 
effectually.  They  never  turned  up  (igrtin  in  the  whole  of  the 
session. 

"•That  night  I  dined  at  Bishop  of  Ely's,  and  met  the  leaders  of 
the  toleration  memorial.  Church,  Gregory,  and  Lord  Alwyne 
Compton.  "We  tliscussed  the  whole  situation  very  freely.  Gregory, 


154 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


w  ho  is  the  Cleon  of  the  Lower  House,  showed  us  his  motion,  which 
was  for  Ritualist  toleration  under  certain  specified  conditions,  e.g"., 
number  of  complainants,  ike.  I  told  him  that  it  was  impossible  for 
l)ishops  to  accept  or  announce  any  conditions  as  to  the  exercise  of 
their  discretion.  To  do  so  would  be  to  make  it  cease  to  be  discre- 
tion ;  and  besides,  the  bishops  would  not  agree  as  to  these  conditions. 
He  seemed  rather  struck  by  this,  but  made  no  promise  to  alter  his 
motion. 

"  On  ^Vednesday  I  breakfasted  at  Lord  Beauchamp's,  with 
Beresford  Hope,  Nelson,  Chai'les  Wood,  Hutton,  and  sundry 
l)ishops  and  others — a  High  Church  breakfast.  We  again  discussed 
the  situation.  All  are  in  favour  of  the  Royal  Commission,  but 
when  I  broached  my  idea  of  a  truce  on  both  sides  pending  its  report, 
Wood,  for  the  E.C.U.,  totally  scouted  it,  and  would  hear  of  7?o 
ixnnprom'ise.  This  warned  me  not  to  propose  it  in  my  speech  for 
the  Connnission,  as  I  did  not  want  to  have  it  rejected  by  the  High 
Church  organs,  while  I  can  easily  make  it  in  my  own  diocese. 

"  We  had  on  Wednesday  morning  a  meeting  of  the  bishops  of 
both  provinces,  at  which  Lightfoot,  Goodwin,  and  Ryle,  were 
present.  The  last-named  alone  opposed  the  Commission,  but  yielded 
at  last  to  my  representations.  I  did  not  care  to  attend  on  Thurs- 
day morning,  as  the  RoAal  Commission  question  came  on  in  the 
afternoon.  AVinchester  opened  the  discussion  in  an  extra  broad 
and  gushing  speech  enough  to  ruin  the  Commission  in  the  eyes  of 
the  Evangelicals.  Luckily  he  moved  not  for  a  Commission,  but  for 
immediate  legislation.  I  followed  with  my  motion  for  a  Com- 
mission, which  was  unanimously  voted,  with  only  a  few  verbal 
amendments.  To-day  the  Reformandum  of  the  Lower  House  came 
up  to  us,  greatly  improved  and  softened,  asking  onlv  for  avoidance 
of  litigation  '  where  possible,'  and  declining  to  name  any  limits — 
leaving  this  to  us.  To  this  Lincoln's  motion,  asserting  a  general 
discretion  in  bishops,  Mas  adopted  in  reply,  and  so  it  ended.  I 
spoke  a  few  words  on  this,  mainly  referring  to  the  ultra  legal 
attitude  assumed  by  the  Ritualists  while  it  suited  them,  as  con- 
trasted with  their  present  claim  for  '  fatherliness.'' 

"  On  the  whole,  both  in  LTpper  and  Lower  House,  things  went 
fairly  well.  In  the  Lower  House  especially,  there  was  much  less 
ans;er  and  much  more  of  fairness  and  moderation  than  I  had 
expected.  In  the  LTpper  there  was  some  really  able  speaking  and 
much  of  tolerance  expressed.  I  think  the  result  mainly  good  as 
tending  to  calming  men's  minds,  and  as  carrying  with  complete 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


155- 


ussent  of  all  mtu  the  Royal  Commission.  The  Aichbishop  was 
evidently  very  anxious  and  even  nervous.  He  had  prej)ared  a  reply 
to  the  memorialists  which  it  would  have  been  simply  disastrous  to- 
have  adopted,  and  he  ([uietly  shelved  it  for  Lincoln"'s  motion. 

"He  Mound  up  our  debates  ably  and  judiciously  on  the  whole,, 
and  was  evidently  satisfied  with  the  result.  As  regards  my  own 
share  in  these  matters,  I  think  I  have  done  some  good.  But  partly 
owing  to  the  bvu'king  of  my  speech  in  the  Guardian,  and  partly 
because  I  did  not,  owing  to  Wood's  opposition,  broach  my  theory 
of  a  tnice  ad  interim,  I  expect  to  be  misunderstood  and  abused. 
Never  mind,  I  have  done  what  I  wanted  to  do,  and  am  accustomed 
to  abuse.  To-morrow  I  lunch  with  Lord  Overstone,  and  dine  with 
the  Duke  of  Argyll,  and  so  ends  my  week  in  town,  including  my 
half-cure  of  my  knee,  which  is  decidedly  better." 

"Athen.eum,  February  13,  1881. 

"  I  had  a  short  interview  with  Cantuar  yesterday.  He  anticipates 
opposition  from  A\^illiam  of  York.  I  told  him  that  I  thought  this 
not  altogether  to  be  regretted,  as  it  was  possible  for  the  bishops  to 
l)e  too  unanimous  ;  and  that  an  unavailing  protest  from  York  would 
relieve  us  from  the  charge  of  conspiracy.  He  seemed  rather  to  like 
this  idea,  and  will,  at  any  rate,  go  on,  whether  York  approves  or 
no.  It  seems  a  strange  thing,  after  our  last  year's  blow  up,  that  he 
and  I  should  be  confidentially  discussing  together  Church  politics. 
But  in  truth,  his  is  a  in'ry  noble  charactei',  and  (juite  above  the 
pettiness  of  remembering  a  bvgone  quarrel. 

"  There  is  an  article  in  yesterday's  Spectator,  on  Bishops  and  the 
Ritualists,  worth  vour  reading.  It  does  full  justice  to  my  speech, 
and  puts  my  view,  while  differing  from  it,  very  clearly  and  neatlv. 
I  am  specially  thankful  for  this,  after  the  outrageous  travestying 
of  it  by  the  Guardian. 

"I  saw,  this  afternoon,  the  grand  procession  of  the  Radical  chd)s 
and  unions  to  a  monster  meeting  in  Hvde  Park  against  "  coercion."" 
It  was  very  instructive.  The  multitude  of  small,  undersized, 
citizen-like  youths  and  men — some  fierce  and  proud,  some  evi- 
dently half  ashamed  of  the  whole  thing,  some  evidently  regarding- 
it  as  a  jolly  lark — the  tawdry  banners,  the  flashy  mottoes,  the 
dismal  bands,  and  the  utterly  indifferent  spectators — all  combined 
with  the  knowledge  that  the  gathering  would  go  off"  quietly,  and 
have  not  the  least  effect  on  the  mind  of  that  public  which  still 
governs — all  so  unlike  anything  that  could  happen  in  any  country 


156 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVI 


~<:ive  Eiiglaiul ;  all  so  contemptible  noic,  and  yet  all  so  fraught 
w  ith  elements  of  danger  for  the  future — struck  me  greatly.  There 
was  little  or  nothing  of  the  rough  or  the  rouge  in  the  procession, 
and  a  good  deal  evidently  of  honest  faith  in  their  cause.  And  yet 
to  think  that  those  men,  so  ridiculously  ignorant  of  all  the  facts 
oi  the  cause  they  were  enlisting  in,  are  the  governing  class  of 
twenty  years  hence  ;  and  to  think  that  what  brought  them  together 
was  not  love  of  Ireland,  but  hate  of  landowners  and  property 
generally,  gave  food  for  reflection. 

"  I  left  them  and  went  my  way  to  AVestniinster  xVbbev,  where  I 
heard  Stanley  delivering  to  an  innnense  congregation  a  graceful 
and  almost  eloquent  eulogy  on  the  late  Lord  J.  Thynne  who  for 
fifty  years  had  been  Sub-Dean  of  AVestniinster.  It  was  like  all 
Stanley's  sermons,  full  of  elegant  and  graceful  speech — you  can 
hardly  call  it  thought — and  full,  too,  of  allusion  to  facts  and 
)iames  and  circumstances  known  to  his  hearers,  which  riveted  their 
attention  ;  and  yet,  no  one  sentence  in  the  whole  that  bit  or 
burned  itself  into  your  memory.  Nothing  that  made  you  thinli, 
but  only  what  made  you,  somehow,  J'eel  pleased  with  the  preacher 
and  the  subject  and  yourself.  The  Dead  ]\Iarch  in  'Saul,'  j)layed 
on  the  great  organ,  wailing  away  down  the  great  aisles  in  the  twi- 
light, with  its  VOX'  liumana  stop,  that  sounded  like  the  cry  of  a 
human  mourner,  was  more  suggestive  on  the  whole,  and  more 
touching." 

To  PllEliEXUAKY  GlUElt. 

"Peterborough,  March  14,  1881. 

"  Thanks  for  your  letter  in  the  Guanltan,  which  I  saw.  I  quite 
agree  with  your  friend  as  to  the  position  of  the  Kitualists.  If  I 
were  one,  I  certainly  M  ould  not  ask  for  '  toleration.'  Only,  on  the 
other  hand,  if  I  stood  for  '  law,'  I  could  not  complain  if  law  was 
invoked  against  me.  Nor,  further,  would  I  deliberatelv  introduce 
into  my  ritual  practices  which  had  been  condenmed  by  the  court 
which  I  had  myself  declared  entitled  to  my  submission — e.g.,  I 
Mould  not  use  thirty-six  altar-lights,  M  hen  Sir  R.  Phillimore,  in  the 
■C  ourt  of  Arches,  had  decided  that  only  two  were  lawful ;  to  say 
nothing  of  some  scores  of  Roman  usages,  introduced  without  even 
a  shadow  of  jiretext  for  them  in  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer.  If 
the  Ritualists  would  honestly  reduce  their  ritual  to  what  they 
thejnselves  believe  to  be  ordered  by  the  said  book.  M  e  should  be 
nearer  a  solution  of  our  difficulties  than,  I  fear.  Me  shall  ever  be. 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


157 


"  ^Vs  to  Sclborne's  speech — he  is  not  the  Roijdl  Connni.ss'ioit.  I 
hope  it  may  be  a  strono-  and  a  wise  one.    It  is  our  last  chance."' 

To  J.  C.  :\IacDonnell. 

"Peterborough,  April  13,  iSSr. 

"  The  solatium  that  occuiTed  to  yon  as  regards  niy  linancial 
affairs  had  already  occurred  to  nie.  It  is  good,  so  far,  as  you  sav. 
Meanwhile  it  means  a  hole  in  my  year's  income  of  oPSOO,  which,  for 
a  man  who  just  makes  both  ends  meet,  is  something;  and  also  it 
means  the  loss  to  my  family  of  the  arrears  aforesaid.  It  also  means 
an  annual  loss  of  some  ^"75  a  year  by  payments  to  the  Com- 
missioners for  certain  premises  formerly  included  in  my  'estates 
margin,'  but  which  now  I  must  rent  from  them.  However,  all 
things  considered,  I  am  a  great  deal  better  off  than  are  a  great 
many  better  men  than  myself,  and  I  am  very  far  from  repining ;  on 
the  contrary,  I  can  heartily  thank  God  for  my  present  position, 
and  for  His  many  undeserved  mercies  besides. 

"  How  rejoiced  I  am  to  think  you  are  not  now  at  AValgrave  ! 
Had  vou  been  so,  the  next  six  months  would  have  seen  yoK  in  the 
poor-house,  and  inc  in  a  lunatic  asylum  from  sheer  vexation  at 
having  been  the  instrumental  cause  of  your  disastei's. 

"  I  had  a  letter  to-day  from  Sankey,  announcing  his  reception  in 
the  Church  of  Home  !  His  moving  causes  seem  to  have  been  the 
Riley  incident  and  the  placing  of  Vane  Smith  on  the  New  Testament 
Ilevision  Connnittee  !  How  curiously  this  illustrates  the  position 
of  the  extreme  Ritualists  in  our  Church.  Here  is  a  man  who  joins 
the  Church  of  Rome  because  of  certain  faults  in  the  admmlstratiorf, 
of  the  Church  of  England.  Clearly,  therefore,  he  must,  before  he 
joined,  have  been  holding  all  Roman  doctrine;  for  the  acceptance 
of  this  seems  to  have  been  no  hindrance  to  his  desertion  of  his  own 
Church.  How  strangely  the  argument  sounds  to  one  who  reasons, 
as  distinguished  from  one  who  feels  merely.  The  Riley  incident 
was  objectionable;  therefore  transubstantiation  does  not  overthrow 
the  nature  of  a  sacrament !  A  Unitarian  was  allowed  a  place  in 
the  Revision  Connnittee ;  therefore  '  the  Church  of  Rome  has  not 
erred ' ;  or,  therefore  '  invocation  of  saints  is  not  a  fond  thing  vainly 
invented,'  etc. 

"  How  clear  it  is  that  these  men  nuist  have  been  deliberately  or 
unconsciously  at  one  with  Rome  in  all  her  dogmas  before  their 
secession ;  or  that  they  must  have   held  a  theory  of  Church 


158 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVI 


government  which  makes  the  truth  or  falsehood  of  dogma  depend 
entirely  on  the  cjuestion  of  which  is  the  true  Church.  The  latter 
is,  I  really  believe,  the  true  solution.  They  start  with  the  theory. 
There  is  one  true  visible  and  infallible  Church ;  it  is  either  the 
Anglican,  Roman,  or  Greek,  or  all  three  in  (me.  Sooner  or  later 
they  conclude  it  is  not  the  Greek ;  then,  it  is  not  the  Anglican ; 
then,  it  cannot  be  the  three  in  one.  Ergo,  it  is  the  Church  of 
Home— »o  matter  xchat  she  teaches.  This  is  what  comes  of  seeking, 
theologically,  first  the  Chureh  and  then  the  fa'tth.  Chronologically, 
I  suppose,  it  might  be  disputed  which  conies  first;  but  theologically 
and  logically  the  argument  runs  thus : 

"  The  true  Church  does  not  err  in  doctrine. 

"  The  Church  of  Home  has  erred  in  doctrine.    Ergo,  the  Chmx-h 
of  Rome  is  not  the  true  Church. 
"  Their  argument  is  this  : 
"  The  true  Church  cannot  err  in  doctrine. 
"  The  Church  of  Rome  is  the  true  Church. 

"  jEJr^'o, whatever  she  teaches  is  the  true  doctrine;  and  accordingly, 
when  the  time  conies,  they  go  over  to  her,  swallowing  en  route,  as  a 
kind  of  sandwich  on  the  journey.  Immaculate  Conception,  Papal 
Infallibility,  and  sundry  other  'unconsidered  trifles'  which,  until 
the  last  moment,  they  had  felt  a  great  reluctance  to  taste  even. 

"  This  is  the  only  Avay  I  can  account  for  men  whose  honesty  is 
iinimpeachal)le,  remaining  to  the  last  in  our  Church  and  then 
.suddenly  adopting  a  whole  string  of  tenets  which,  up  to  the  moment 
of  their  secession,  they  had  ex-anirno  rejected.  The  w'hole  thing  is 
.a  very  curious  psychological  phenomenon,  which,  however,  does  not 

jnake  my  practical  dealing  with  M  and  his  flock  any  the  easier 

— rather  the  reverse. 

"  Beaconsfield  is,  I  think  and  fear,  dying  by  quarter-inches. 
"\Miat  a  struggle  and  what  a  man  !  And  what  a  real  loss  to  English 
statesmanship  ! " 

"  House  of  Lords,  June  i6,  1881. 

"  I  consider  that  I  have  achieved  a  triumph  of  diplomacy  when 
I  got  Cantuar  to  undertake  to  introduce  the  Queen  Anne's  Bounty 
j3ill,*  which  last  week  he  would  not  hear  of  at  any  price.    I  saw 

*  The  Incumbents'  Loan  Extension  Bill,  of  which  the  inception  and  final 
■success  were  due  almost  solely  to  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  was  a  matter  of 
great  importance  in  relief  of  clergy  distress  in  those  times.  Queen  Anne's 
Bounty  had  given  large  loans  to  many  parishes  for  building  of  vicarages  and 
restoration  of  chancels.    The  instalments  paid  yearly  to  Queen  Anne's  Bounty 


IS80-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


159 


him  to-day,  and  got  him  to  promise  this.  It  is  in  every  way 
better  that  lie  should  do  it  than  I,  and  he  is  welcome  to  the  (ci)8oc 
with  the  clergy  if  he  succeeds. 

"You  will,  I  think,  be  pleased  to  hear  that  he  volunteered  the 
information  that  he  wrote  to  Gladstone  suggesting  my  name  for 
the  Ecclesiastical  Courts  Connnission,  and  that  mine  was  the  only 
episcopal  name  besides  London  that  he  did  suggest.  Gladstone, 
he  says,  took  no  notice  of  the  suggestion.  I  confess  to  being 
greatly  pleased  to  know  this.  I  want  to  think  well  and  feel  kindly 
to  Cantuar,  and  I  should  have  felt  less  so  as  long  as  I  thought  he 
had  '  done "  me  in  this  matter  bv  first  using  and  then  throwing  me 
over. 

"  We  had  a  terrific  squeeze  at  Lord  S.'s  last  night.  The  great 
man  was  verv  gracious  about  mv  little  Bill,  which  I  am  to  show 
him  to-night. 

"  I  hear  that  Gladstone  is  to  make  a  great  speech  to-night  on 
the  state  of  public  affairs  and  the  Land  Bill.  To-morrow  night 
we  are  to  have  a  field  dajj  in  the  House  of  Lords.  Argyll  is  to 
make  a  slashing  attack  on  the  Bill,  followed  bv  Lansdowne,  to  be 
replied  to  by  Carlingford  and  Spencer.  The  debating  power  will 
certainly  be  all  on  one  side.  I  think  myself  that  the  Land  Bill 
s\  ill  move  more  rapidly  now,  owing  to  the  mere  weariness  of  it  in 
men's  minds.  They  are  as  sick  of  it  as  a  man  gets  of  German 
bands  and  odd  volumes  of  stale  novels  by  the  seaside  in  summer. 
Every  one,  Irish  landlords  included,  is  beginning  to  long  to  have  it 
over  and  done  with ;  the  tone  in  the  House  of  Commons  is 
increasingly  this,  and  the  business  is  becoming  tame  in  consequence. 

"  I  must  get  now  into  the  House  of  Connnons  gallery,  for  fear  of 
missing  Gladstone." 

"  22  Onslow  Gardens,  S.W.,  July  6,  18S1. 

"A.  Cantuar  managed  his  little  speech  for  the  Q.  A.  B.  Bill 
adinirahJij.  He  muddled  it  up  so  judiciously  that  no  one  knew 
exactly  what  it  meant.  It  looks,  in  the  report  of  his  speech,  like 
.some  small  matter  of  business  detail  on  behalf  of  Q.  A.  B.  whicli 
no  one  will  care  to  question  If  onhj  the  clergy  will  hold  their 
tongues  about  it ;  but  I  greatly  dread  the  clerical  vacocthes  scrihendl. 

consisted  of  two  parts — viz.,  ist,  a  yearly  repayment  of  principal  ;  and  2nd, 
interest  on  part  of  loan  still  unpaid.  The  Bill  suspended  the  repayments  of 
principal  for  three  years,  during  which  interest  only  was  paid,  and  thus  post- 
poned final  repayment  of  loan  for  three  years.  It  injured  no  one  and  was  a  great 
relief  to  the  impoverished  incumbents. 


160 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


If  they  will  only  write  to  that  tomb  of  the  prophets,  the  GuanJhoi, 
it  will  not  much  matter,  but  if  they  write  to  the  London  dailies  it 
is  all  up  with  us  and  them  too. 

"iVIonk,  the  Radical  member  for  Gloucester,  most  cordially 
takes  charge  of  the  liill  in  the  House  of  Connnons,  and  I  do  not 
now  despair  of  its  passing. 

"  I  dine  with  Cantuar  to-night,  to  meet  Prince  Leo]iold.  He 
(Cantuar)  seems  going  out  of  his  way  to  be  civil  to  me  just 
now,  and  I  greatly  like  him  for  the  good  taste  and  good  feeling  of 
this  course  of  action." 

"  July  20,  1881. 

"Poor  dear  Stanley  died  last  night.  Already/  rumour  is  busy 
appointing  his  successor.  I  have  to  preach  what  must  be  almost 
his  funeral  sermon  on  Sunday  evening:  at  Westminster.  Stran<>e 
that  I  should  have  done  the  same  thing  for  his  wife's,  Lady 
Augusta's,  death  before  the  Queen  !  The  Archbishop  spoke  well 
and  feelingly  to-day,  in  Convocation,  of  his  death  and  life ;  so  did 
Lincoln,  with  much  nobleness  and  generosity  referring  to  their 
dogmatic  differences ;  Gloucester  and  Bristol  said  a  few  words 
referring  to  Stanley's  share  in  the  Revision  Committee ;  and  then 
the  wave  of  business  and  discussion  passed  on  over  his  place,  which 
knows  him  no  more  for  ever !  I  had  a  sincere  regard  for  him.  He 
was  a  very  genuine  and  truthful  man — which  is  rai'e  praise  for  a 
lifelong  courtier — and  was  full  of  tenderness  and  charity.  Every 
one,  of  course,  will  now  praise  him,  especially  those  who  during  his 
lifetime  abused  him  ;  and  then  will  come  the  new  dean,  and  new 
\\  ays,  and  so  on  and  so  forth.  '  ^Vhat  shadows  we  are,  and  what 
shadows  we  pursue  !  *■ 

"  Our  Q.  A.  B.  Bill  was  read  a  second  time  in  the  House  of 
Commons  at  3.30  a.ji.,  ]Monk,  who  has  charge  of  it,  sitting  up  to 
carry  it.  He  is  now  sanguine  of  its  passing ;  but  the  House  of 
Commons  is  a  queer  place,  and  nothing  is  safe  there  just  now. 

"  The  Archbishop  called  me  asitle  to-day,  in  Convocation,  to  beg- 
that  I  would  speak  on  the  Land  Bill  in  the  House  of  Lords.  He 
evidently  tlislikes  the  now  all  but  unbroken  silence  of  our  bench  on 
subjects  not  ecclesiastical,  and  thinks  it  well  that  I  should  break 
it ;  in  fact,  he  said  as  much.  But  whether  I  will  do  it,  or  whether 
it  would  be  wise  for  me  to  do  so,  is  another  question  altogether.  I 
fear  that  I  should  neither  please  nor  help  any  one  by  what  I  should 
.say,  Avhile  I  should  only  expose  myself  to  the  annoyance  of  a  great 
deal  of  abuse  and  misrepresentation.    Tell  me  your  '  sintimints  on 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


161 


this  point.  Salisbury  begs  those  who  cannot  be  present  to  pair, 
but  this  means  really  giving  him  my  proxy  for  every  division,  and 
this  I  am  not  disposed  to  do.  If  only  the  Bill  does  not  come  up 
to  us  until  August  4,  I  shall  be  away  for  Norway,  and  this  would 
be  best  of  all/' 

"  22  Onslow  Gardens,  Ju]y  23,  1881. 

"  Imprimis.  The  Incumbents'  Loan  Extension  Bill  was  read  a 
third  time  in  the  House  of  Commons  last  night,  and  passed  !  It 
has  only  now  to  receive  in  due  course  the  royal  assent !  Noic  we 
may  blow  our  horns  and  light  tar-barrels  to  our  hearts'  content. 
Monk,  who  had  charge  of  the  Bill,  though  a  Radical,  deserves  every 
credit  for  the  skill  with  which  he  steered  it  through  the  House. 
It  was  slightly  in  danger  on  the  second  reading — of  course  an  Irish 
irreconcilable  attacked  it,  but  was  quietly  soothed  down  by  one  or 
two  friendly  members — and  by  dint  of  earwigging  all  manner  of 
men  we  succeeded  in  preventing  its  being  blocked." 

"  House  of  Lords,  July  26,  1881. 
"  We  had  a  remarkable  ceremony  in  Westminster  Abbey  yester- 
day,* not  for  its  impressiveness  as  a  ceremony — -in  that  respect  it 
was  feeble  and  ill-managed— but  for  the  strikingly  representative 
character  of  those  assembled  there.  The  reading  out  of  the 
names  of  those  gathered  in  the  Jerusalem  Chamber  was  a  piece  of 
English  history ! 

"  P.S. — A  really  axtyful  congregation  on  Sunday  evening, f  and  a 
better  sermon  than  was  expected  hy  we." 

"Peterborough,  October  25,  1881. 
"  I  have  j  ust  returned  from  R.,  where  we  had  a  dismal  day.  The 
incumbent,  an  elderly,  easy-going,  old  country  Evangelical,  calmly 
discharged  himself  of  all  responsibility  for  all  the  pi'oceedings  of 
the  day.  He  neither  arranged  procession,  services,  officiating 
clergy,  nor  anything  else.  He  was  to  have  been  instituted,  but 
nfever  sent  his  address  to  Gates,  so  no  institution  deed  reached  him  ! 
He  had  not  even  chosen  the  lessons  for  to-day's  service  !  The 
church  was  ice  cold  and  damp  as  a  bog,  not  even  a  piece  of  carpet 
to  shield  our  feet  in  the  chancel  from  the  damp  flags.  I  saved 
dear  old  Fearon's  life  by  pulling  his  chair  out  two  feet  from  a 
dripping  wall,  and  getting  Bennie  to  put  a  cushion  under  his  feet. 
*  Dean  Stanley's  funeral.  t  In  Westminster  Abbey. 

VOL.  II.  ■ 


162 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


Altogether  I  have  never  in  my  thirteen  years'  experience  of  dio- 
cesan oddities  seen  anything  like  this.  I  am  shivering  and  sneezing 
still. 

"  Gladstone  is  making  an  axcful  mess  of  his  Irish  policy.  His 
appeal  for  moral  support  to  the  Irish  landlords  is  his  last  and 
worst  mistake  ;  cowardly  and  cruel  it  was  obviously,  but  also  un- 
.statesinanlikc  and  feeble,  giving  a  party  complexion  to  what  ought 
to  be  the  passionless  and  impartial  action  of  the  State  on  behalf  of 
law  and  order. 

Archbishop  Croke's  letter,  I  hear,  is  the  really  effective  blow  to 
the  Land  League.  The  Roman  Catholic  Church  evidently  thinks 
enough  has  been  got  out  of  Parnell  and  company  for  the  present, 
and  accordingly  '  hands  them  over  to  the  secular  arm.' 

"  I  go  to  Oxford  on  Saturday  to  preach  my  University  sermon 
on  Sunday.    The  said  sermon  is  only  sketched  as  yet. 

"  I  am  very  tired,  very  disgusted,  very  shivery,  very  seedy,  and 
very  truly  and  ever  affectionately  yours,  "  W.  C.  P." 

"  Peterborough,  November  15,  1881. 
"I  am  just  now,  apropos  of  your  references  to  Green's  imprison- 
ment and  its  effect  on  the  minds  of  the  clergy,  greatly  vexed  at  an 
outburst  of  this  kind  at  Northampton. 

The  W.M.C.E.  Society,  i.e.,  the  extremest  party  organisation 
on  the  ritualistic  side,  has  just  held  its  annual  festival  in  St.  Lau- 
rence's schoolroom,  and  subsequently  in  St.  Laurence's  Church  ; 
Charles  Powell,  the  violent  secretary,  being  the  chief  speaker,  and 
Bishop  Jcnner  the  preacher.  All  the  clergy  of  St.  Laurence  and 
St.  Sepulchre  attended,  as  did  also  some  of  the  country  clergy. 
You  may  imagine  the  style  of  speaking.  Green's  imprisonment 
was,  of  course,  made  much  of.  As  regards  that  I  should  not  care. 
The  clergy  have  a  good  right  to  be  indignant,  and  if  they  had  held 
a  meeting;  amonjist  themselves  or  addressed  me  aoainst  it  I  should 
have  been  rather  pleased  than  otherwise  ;  but  the  thing  that  vexes 
me  is  the  holdins;  of  the  annual  festival  of  this  ultra-ritualistic 
faction  in  one  of  the  new  Church  Extension  churches ;  thereby 
seriously  injuring  the  cause  of  church  extension,  and  greatly 
weakening  my  hands  in  Northampton  and  the  diocese  in  working 
for  it.  It  is  also  a  public  rejection  of  my  advice  to  the  clergy  in 
Northampton  to  avoid,  just  now  at  least,  all  party  demonstrations. 
I  am  altogether  much  disheai'tened  by  this  event,  and  hardly  know 
how  to  deal  with  it.    I  will  not  act  hastily,  but  these  clergy  must 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


163 


be  given  to  understand  in  some  way  that  they  must  choose  between 
Bishop  Jenner  and  mc." 

To  the  Rev.  Lewis  H.  Loyd. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough,  November  16,  1881. 
"  Dear  ]\Ir.  Loyd, — I  observe,  in  the  report  of  the  festival  of 
the  Chui'ch  of  England  Working  Men's  Society,  recently  held  in 
vour  church,  that  the  preacher  on  that  occasion  was  Bishop  Jenner. 
Had  I  been  aware  of  Bishop  Jenner's  intention  to  preach  in  a 
church  in  this  diocese,  I  should  have  felt  it  my  duty  to  refuse  my  con- 
sent to  his  so  doing,  on  the  ground  of  his  membership  in  the 
Society  of  the  Holy  Cross.  I  have  never,  since  the  passing  of  a 
vote  of  censure  on  the  publications  of  this  society  by  both  Houses 
of  the  Convocation  of  the  Province  of  Canterbury  and  since  ac- 
quainting mvself  with  its  rules  of  membership,  knowingly  allowed 
any  one  of  its  members  to  appear  in  this  diocese  as  preacher.  I 
feel  it  due  to  you  that  I  should  inform  you  of  this,  as  it  is  possible 
that  on  some  future  occasion  Bishop  Jenner  may  be  proposed  to 
you  as  a  preacher  in  your  church.  There  is  much,  besides,  con- 
nected with  this  festival  both  as  regards  the  language  indulged  in 
by  some  of  the  speakers  at  it,  and  as  regards  its  too  probable  effect 
upon  the  peace  and  the  progress  of  the  Church  in  Northampton, 
which  has  caused  me  pain  and  anxiety.  I  do  not,  however,  desire 
to  dwell  upon  these  matters  in  writing  to  vou,  because  I  am  scru- 
pulously desirous  of  respecting  the  freedom  of  action  of  the  clergy 
of  my  diocese,  even  when  such  action  least  commends  itself  to  my 
own  judgment.  I  can  only  hope  and  pray  that  my  anticipations 
of  evil  in  the  future,  as  the  result  of  the  recent  proceedings,  may 
not  be  realised,  and  that  what  apjicars  to  me  an  untoward  event 
may  be  over-ruled  for  the  good  of  those  great  interests  which  T 
know  you  have  at  heart  as  much  as  any  man  can  have.  But  with 
respect  to  the  one  point  on  which  I  am  writing  to  you,  I  ha^■e  felt 
it,  as  I  have  said,  due  to  you  to  inform  you  of  my  rule,  and  I  am  sure 
that  having  done  so  I  may  confidently  reckon  upon  your  observance 
of  it. — Believe  me,  yours  most  truly,      "  W.  C.  Peteubouough.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Athen^um  Club,  Pall  Mall, 

"  November  18,  18S1. 

"  Things  look  ugly  in  Northampton  just  now.  I  wrote  a  very 
cautious  and  kindly  worded  letter  to  Loyd  respecting  Bishop 


164 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvi 


Jcnner''s  preaching  in  his  church,  he  (Jenner)  being  a  S.H.C.  man, 
and  I  having  decided  not  to  allow  such  to  preach  in  this  diocese. 
At  tlie  close  of  my  letter  I  very  guardedlv  and  very  kindly  expressed 
my  fears  of  the  result  of  this  affair  on  Church  Extension  in  North- 
ampton, adding  that  the  proceedings  had  caused  me  'pain  and 
anxiety.'  He  replied  in  unexceptionable  terms  to  the j^r^^  part  of 
my  letter  and  took  no  notice  of  the  latter.  This  means  assertion 
of  perfect  liberty  of  action  in  the  future.  I  agree  with  you  that 
I  nuist  not  be  in  a  hurry  to  act,  but  in  some  Avay  I  must  take  my 
line,  and  mischief  will  be  afoot  no  matter  how  I  take  it. 

"  I  do  not  take  your  view  as  to  Bishop  Jenner 's  action.  Bishops 
owe  courtesy  and  comity  to  each  other.  No  diocesan  bishop  ever 
enters  another's  diocese  without  informing  him.  Jenuer  is,  of 
course,  in  one  sense  only  a  beneficed  clergyman,  in  another  he  is 
only  a  bishop.  It  was  in  the  latter  capacity  that  he  invaded  my 
diocese  to  make  its  government  more  difficult  for  me.  High 
Churchmen  might  have  remembered  the  early  canons  against 
'  Episcopi  Vagantes.''  But  High  Churchmen  resort  to  primitive 
antiquity  as  to  a  co-operative  store,  for  what  they  happen  to  want 
and  can  carrij  home ;  the  rest  of  the  goods  they  do  not  care  for." 

"Peterborough,  November  21,  1881. 

"  As  I  should  like  to  keep  you  au  courant  as  to  the  Northampton 
affair  I  enclose  you  a  copy  of  my  letter  to  Loyd  and  his  reply. 
Please  return  these  to  me  by  next  post,  and  guai'd  them  as  the 
apple  of  your  eye.  I  have  no  other  copies,  and  I  may  have  to 
publish,  or  see  published,  these. 

"  At  present  I  do  not  think  this  very  probable  as  yet.  Loyd, 
though  very  wrong-headed,  is  decidedly  a  gentleman,  and  is,  I 
believe,  fairly  loyal  to  me  personally.  I  do  not  think  that  he 
wishes  to  make  a  '  blowing  horn,'  as  we  would  say  in  Ireland,  of 
this  matter,  and  certainly  I  do  not ;  it  may,  therefore,  blow  over 
without  a  newspaper  quarrel.  But,  on  the  other  hand,  I  must 
show  him  and  Thornton  and  the  Northampton  clergy  generally 
that  in  matters  of  public  Church  polity  afi'ecting  the  interests  of 
the  Church  in  Northampton  they  must  either  follow  my  guidance 
or  I  must  cease  to  attempt  to  lead.  If  they  suppose  that  I  mean 
to  lead  them  in  the  direction  in  which  they  choose  to  drive  me  they 
are  slightly  mistaken. 

"  My  only  fear  is  that  my  letter  to  Loyd  is  too  delicately  worded. 
I  ought  to  have  told  him  more  distinctly  what  I  thought  as  to  the 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


165 


effect  of  his  proceedings  on  Church  Extension  in  Northampton  ;  but 
I  expected  some  reply  from  him  which  would  have  given  a  further 
opening  for  this." 

"  Peterborough,  November  21,  18S1. 
"  I  sent  off  my  letter  in  too  great  haste  to  notice  one  or  two 
points  in  j  ours. 

"  I  do  not  care  two  straws  for  Holy  Cross  men  and  their  attacks. 
They  '  ain't  got  no  friends '  to  speak  of ;  and  if  they  had  I  have 
too  clear  a  case  to  mind  their  objurgations  much.  I  have  already 
stopped  two  of  them  in  past  years,  and  I  have  forbidden  Mason 
to  nominate  one  of  them  to  me  as  curate. 

"The  point  on  which  I  mean  to  stand  is  this  :  Party  strife  just 
now  in  Northampton  is  obviously  mischievous  to  the  Church.  All 
the  clergy  there  know  that  this  is  my  view.  The  Church  Asso- 
ciation and  Chm'ch  Union  have  respected  my  wishes  and  avoided 
holding  meetings  in  Northampton.  Certain  of  the  clergy  have 
publicly  set  my  commands  at  nought,  and  in  defiance  of  them 
held  an  extreme  party  meeting,  and  they  have  done  this  in  a  Church 
Extension  church,  i.e.,  in  the  most  mischievous  form  possible. 
Naturally,  I  for  the  present  withdraw  from  the  Church  Extension 
movement  until  I  see  whether  this  line  of  conduct  is  to  be  per- 
severed in.  If  it  is  I  cannot  appeal  to  the  county  for  funds  for  new 
churches  in  Northampton,  and  I  cannot  co-operate  with  or  lead  in 
public  matters  the  recalcitrant  clergy.    Q.  E.  D." 

"  Barnack,  November  27,  1881. 
"  You  will  be  interested,  I  am  sure,  in  hearing  how  things  went 
at  Northampton  during  my  visit  there.  I  got  to  Wales'  on  Wed- 
nesday evening  and  held  a  regular  council  of  war  with  him  and 
Thicknesse  as  to  my  course  on  Thm-sday.  I  found  them  both  very 
strongly  in  favour  of  my  going  to  the  Church  Extension  meeting 
and  saying  my  say  there  on  the  subject  of  recent  proceedings. 
They  urged  that  whereas  my  absence  might  be  misconstrued  in 
various  directions,  my  presence,  accompanied  by  plain  speech,  could 
not  at  any  rate  be  misunderstood.  Also,  that  there  was  danger  of 
reprisals  from  the  Evangelicals  if  I  did  not  say  something  which 
might  satisfy  them.  Also,  that  the  loyal  High  Church  clergy  who 
had  stayed  away  from  Loyd's  meeting,  had  a  claim  for  support 
from  me.  All  these  reasons  seemed  weighty,  though  I  felt  there 
were  risks  on  the  other  side,  especially  the  risk  of  reply  and  debate 
at  the  meeting,  which  might  end  heaven  knew  how  or  where. 


166 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVI 


Still  I  thought  it  safer  to  act  as  advised  in  such  a  matter.  Accord- 
ingly, I  went,  and  having  dismissed  the  reporters,  delivered  myself 
in  very  carefully  guai'dcd  language.  I  disclaimed  any  intention  of 
'  censure,'  and  only  claimed  to  define  my  own  position  as  regards 
Church  Extension  and  Church  Extension  churches.  I  stated  this 
very  much  on  the  lines  suggested  in  your  letter,  and  doing  it  as 
kindly  and  tenderly  towards  the  clergy  concerned  as  I  knew  how ; 
giving  a  side  blow  or  two  at  Bishop  Jenner,  which  was  well  received. 
I  Avas  listened  to  in  breathless  silence,  and  then  I  closed  by  saying 
that  this  '  was  my  godly  admonition,""  that  I  wished  for  no  debate, 
and  then  I  gave  the  Benediction.  At  any  rate  I  now  feel  sure  that 
come  what  may  I  have  done  the  right  thing,  and  I  can  therefore 
now  patiently  await  events.''' 

"  Peterborodgh,  December  i,  1881. 
"Let  me  say  how  pleased  I  am  to  find  that  mv  mode  of  dealing 
with  the  Northampton  crisis  meets  your  approval.  It  was  indeed 
very  critical  steering;  you  may  judge  how  much  so  when  I  tell  you 
that  I  had  yesterday  an  interview  with  Loyd,  at  his  request,  which 
he  sought  in  order  to  tender  me  his  resignation  of  St.  Laurence,  if 
I  thought  his  resigning  would  be  for  the  good  of  the  Church  in 
Northampton. 

"  I  had,  as  you  may  suppose,  a  long  and  unreserved  discussion 
of  the  whole  situation  with  Loyd,  and  it  ended  in  his  withdrawing 
all  idea  of  resignation,  and  promising  to  disconnect  his  schoolroom 
and  church  in  future  from  the  C.E.W.M.  He  behaved,  I  am 
bound  to  say,  all  through  like  a  gentleman,  and  was  perfectly 
honest  and  straightforward. 

"  We  parted  excellent  friends  with  a  mutual  agreement  that  in 
future  we  should  always  see  one  another  on  any  point  of  difference, 
and  not  write.  On  the  whole  I  think  I  have  done  right  in  building 
this  bridge  of  gold  for  a  flying  foe. 

"  (1)  I  have  obtained  a  clear  public  vit-tory. 

"  (2)  I  have  obtained  private  submissions  and  effected  separate 
treaties  with  some  of  the  belligerent  powers. 

"  (3)  I  have  clearly  defined  my  future  position  in  Northampton. 

"  (4)  I  have  prevented  threatened  reprisals  from  the  Evangelicals. 

"  (5)  I  have,  I  trust,  relieved  Loyd  from,  or  at  any  rate  enabled 
him  to  resist,  any  future  pressure  from  the  extreme  section  of  his 
own  people. 

"  Of  course  the  future  is  uncertain,  and  may  prove  troublous  at 
any  moment ;  but  on  the  whole  I  do  trust  that  so  far  I  have  done 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


167 


riglit.  Truly,  as  you  say,  it  has  been  a  very  critical  matter,  and  is 
a  painful  illustration  of  the  explosive  condition  of  the  Chui'ch  at 
this  moment.  Oh,  how  weary  I  am  of  it  all !  Weary  of  trying  to 
restrain  the  follies  of  some  of  the  clergy ;  weary,  too,  of  trying  to 
see  my  own  way  in  a  great  crisis  of  the  Church  of  England. 

"To  keep  your  head  cool  while  others  are  losing  theirs,  and 
your  own  heart  is  hot  with  vexation  and  anxiety ;  that  is  the 
present  task  of  an  English  bishop — not  the  easier  when  the  English 
bishop  is  an  Irish  man. 

"  iVIanchester  has,  I  fear,  made  a  mistake ;  though  Wood  on  the 
one  side,  and  the  Evangelicals  on  the  other,  are  doing  their  best 
to  help  him  out  of  it.  The  latter  have  nobly  come  to  his  rescue, 
after  the  manner  of  Balaam  together  with  a  judicious  imitation  of 
his  ass. 

"  I  wish  I  could  go  to  you.  I  want  change  and  rest,  but  many 
things  concur  to  prevent  it.'' 

"Peterborough,  December  13,  1881. 
"  I  think  I  see  faint  signs  of  a  turn  of  the  tide  in  Ireland.  Sub- 
Commissioners  are  evidently  recovering  fi'om  their  first  intoxication, 
sobered  by  red  herrings  and  soda  water  administered  them  freely 
in  the  English  papers.  Landlords  are  plucking  up  heart.  The 
English  subscriptions  will  affect  the  imagination  of  the  Irish 
tenants,  and  IVIinisters  are  evidently  afraid  for  '  tenure "  if  they 
cannot  meet  Parliament  with  some  better  news  from  Ireland.  All 
these  hopeful  symptoms  may  of  course  be  succeeded  by  as  many 
unfavourable  ones,  for  the  Irish  fever  is  a  terribly  clinging  and  un- 
certain disease  and  runs  no  regular  course,  to  say  nothing  of  the 
fact  that  the  patient  is  being  treated  just  now  by  a  set  of  the  most 
ignorant  and  rash  quacks  that  ever  committed  homicide,  while  her 
so-called  friends  are  administering  large  doses  of  Irish  whisky  and 
keeping  the  room  at  a  tremendous  temperature.  Still  there  is  a 
chance,  one  in  a  thousand,  from  the  native  vigour  of  the  patient, 
who  has  certainly  survived  a  good  deal  of  bad  treatment  in  past 
years  and  may  survive  even  Gladstone  and  Parnell." 

"  Peterboroogh,  December  18,  18S1. 
*'  I  return  you  ReichePs  letter.*    Its  contents  in  no  way  surprise 
me  nor  Farrar.    He  knows  some  of  the  pai'ties  named  by  Reichel, 

*  The  letter  described  a  meeting  at  Oxford,  in  which  a  measure  was  strongly 
advocated  for  freeing  the  parochial  clergy  from  all  doctrinal  restraint  except  that 
of  a  parochial  council. 


168 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvi 


while  I  have  been  expecting  the  growth  of  such  a  party  in  our 
Church  for  some  time  back  ;  indeed  I  prophesied  it  in  my  second 
charge  as  the  certain  reaction  in  the  Church  and  Universities 
against  the  extravagancy  of  the  High  Church  faction.  I  do  not 
think  that  the  new  school  Avill  effect  much  legislatively  for  the 
success  of  their  views.  If  they  did  they  would  bring  the  establish- 
ment about  our  ears  and  cure  their  own  mischief  in  that  Avay.  An 
Established  Church  Avhose  ministers  need  believe  nothing,  provided 
that  they  sa?/  a)Hl  do  whatever  a  pansectarian  committee  of  their 
parishioners  bid  them,  would  be  too  great  an  absurdity  for  the 
nation  to  endure.  But  I  do  dread  the  sapping  spread  of  vmbelief 
under  the  outer  forms  of  om*  Church.  These  provide  imperfectly, 
as  we  have  seen,  against  Romanism,  but  against  Scepticism  hardly 
at  all,  for  the  same  reason  that  the  laws  of  Sparta  did  not  provide 
against  parricide — they  did  not  contemplate  its  existence. 

"  You  may  deal  with  a  man  who  teaches  transubstantiation  or 
purgatory,  but  how  are  )  ou  to  deal  with  a  man  who  will  say  any- 
thhig  provided  he  may  secretly  believe  nothing  ? 

"  This  Crypto-deism  will  spread,  I  fear,  largely  in  the  next  ten 
or  twenty  years.  Of  course  the  Oxford  influence  in  the  Church 
will  be  strong,  as  it  always  has  been,  and  the  young  men  from 
Oxford  will,  ere  long,  shew  this  new  bias  ;  unless  indeed  it  incline 
them  altogether  away  from  the  ministry  ;  in  which  case  we  shall 
have  it  peopled  with  narrow,  small-minded  and  bitter  sacerdotalists; 
the  men  of  ability  and  culture  going  over  to  unbelief.  This  is 
perhaps,  after  all,  the  more  probable  alternative.  It  is  hard  to 
say  which  is  worse  for  the  Church  or  the  nation. 

"  I  have  j  ust  come  from  the  Ordination  service  ;  a  very  pleasing 
one  upon  the  M'hole.  The  men  all  fairly  intelligent  and  all  devout. 
Thicknesse  gave  us  a  really  good  and  useful  sermon  on  the 
blossoming  of  Aaron's  rod — a  text  I  never  heard  applied  to  the 
ordaining  of  ministers  before,  but  which  fits  it  very  well ;  only  the 
idea  of  what  a  number  of  sticlis  there  are  in  our  ministry  that  never 
blossom  would  keep  occurring  to  my  mind. 

"  As  to  my  memoir,  I  dare  say  it  will  be  too  long  as  it  is.  No- 
body reads  memoirs  of  any  but  great  or  queer  men,  or  of  course 
great  murderers.  But  as  I  do  not,  I  think,  belong  to  any  of  these 
categories,  I  am  only  anxious  that  no  very  great  misstatement  should 
appear  in  the  memoir,  and  this  your  authoi'ship  secures  me  against. 

"  Thank  you  for  your  birthday  congratulations.  It  is  hard  to 
realise  that  one  is  growing  so  very  old  when  mind  and  almost  body 


IS80-S3 


CHURCH  REFORM 


169 


feel  young  still ;  but  doubtless  the  bodily  infirmities  will  come  ere 
long  to  remind  us  that  it  is  time  to  make  room  for  younger  men. 
Happy  if,  as  we  go,  we  can  feel  that  we  have  done  in  some  measure 
our  appointed  work,  and  left  them  at  least  not  a  misleading  or  a 
bad  example." 

"BuRGHLEY  House,  Stamford, 

"January  10,  1S82. 

"  You  will  think  me  seized  with  a  cacoeihes  scribendi,  I  have  been 
writing  to  you  so  often  of  late  ;  but  I  sent  you  this  morning  rather 
an  interesting  production  of  Voysey's.  He  sent  it  to  me  with  a 
dangei'ously  civil  letter,  desiring  to  know  if  he  had  in  any  way 
'  misunderstood  mv  M  ords.'  I  rather  feared  that  this  might  be  a 
trap  for  an  answer  to  be  published,  so  I  marked  my  reply  '  private,"" 
and  then  told  him,  after  thanking  him  for  the  courteous  tone  of 
his  criticism,  that  I  thought  he  had  misunderstood  my  use  of  the 
words  '  restoration '  and  '  deliverances,''  which  he  says  that  I  had 
adopted  in  order  to  avoid  the  words  '  Atonement  and  Salvation."' 
I  told  him  that  I  had  only  not  used  those  latter  words  because 
thev  did  not  come  within  the  scope  of  my  argument,  which  dealt 
with  the  need  and  the  fact  of  '  restoration '  and  not  with  the 
method  or  conditions  of  it,  and  that  in  an  argument  of  this  nature 
the  introduction  of  the  term  atonement  would  have  been  illogical 
and  irrelevant.  I  added  that  so  far  from  disbelieving,  I  entirely 
believed  the  Pauline  theory  of  Redemption  which  /  held  to  be  not 
only  inspired  but  philosophically  true.  I  did  not  choose  that  he 
should  assume  or  possibly  say  that  I  did  not  hold  with  St.  Paul, 
and  on  the  other  hand,  I  did  not  like  either  to  have  a  controversy 
with  him  or  to  be  so  discourteous  as  not  to  reply  to  so  civil  a 
critique  as  his,  accompanied  too  by  a  very  civil  letter.  Tell  me 
whether  you  think  I  have  done  right His  sermon  is,  of  course, 
shallow,  and  his  objection  to  the  Fall  being  called  a  Biblical 
theory  would  apply  with  still  greater  force  to  the  same  epithet 
being  applied  to  the  doctrine  of  immortality,  in  which  he  believes, 
and  which  I  suppose  he  would  call  a  Bible  doctrine.  But  I  did  not 
care  to  discuss  this  or  anything  else  with  him,  and  so  stuck  closely 
to  the  explantd'ion,  not  defence,  of  my  own  words.  Only  imagine 
the  same  man  by  the  same  post  sending  me  another  sermon 
urging  such  a  reform  of  the  Church  as  would  re-admit  him 
and  the  like  of  him,  as  the  desirable  and  only  desirable  alternative 
to  Disestablishment !  Truly  it  may  come  to  that  yet,  but  not  just 
at  present.    But  mark  my  \\  ords ;  reform  of  that  kind  and  not 


170 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


Disestablishment  will  be  the  game  of  the  Chuichs  enemies  in 
Parliament.  They  will  strive  to  fix  on  us  such  an  Egyptian  bondage 
of  Erastianism  and  Latitudinai'ianisni  as  shall  force  us  to  cry  out 
for  Separation;  and  then,  as  in  like  cases  matrimonial, the  husband 
xvill  Jceep  tlie  dorcry.  See  if  what  I  am  saying  will  not  come  true, 
and  see  too  if  the  really  dangerous  symptom  of  its  coming  true  be 
not  relaxation  of  the  marriage  laws.  This  is  the  point  on  which 
Church  and  State  can  be  most  rapidly  brought  into  serious  collision. 
AVhenever  the  State  treats,  and  requires  the  Church  to  treat,  as 
mai'ried,  those  whom  the  Church  declares  to  be  not  married  or 
marriageable,  then  will  come  a  strain  that  will  snap,  or  go  near 
snapping,  the  links  that  bind  Church  and  State.  Talking  to  Sir 
S.  Xorthcote  has,  you  see,  sot  me  oft"  on  State  questions.  He  anti- 
cipates a  most  carious  and  exciting  session,  especially  the  early 
part  of  it.  The  great  difficultv  of  Government,  he  heai-s,  is  just 
now  whether  to  release  or  not  to  release  the  parliamentary  suspects. 
Either  alternative  is  obviously  dangerous,  especially  with  men  who 
cannot  be  bound  by  anv  honourable  understanding. 

"This  is  a  terribly  long  letter,  but  mv  pen  runs  on  when  I  am 
not  writing  official  letters,  revenging  itself  for  the  caution  and 
brevity  of  these." 

"  Peterborough,  January  14,  1882. 
"  I  had  heard  of  your  loss  the  day  before  yesterday,  in  a  letter 
from  H.  Jellett,  and  was  just  thinking  of  writing  to  you  when 
your  letter  arrived.  I  can  well  imagine  the  event  to  have  been  a  sad 
though  not  a  painful  one.  The  peaceful  passing  away  of  those  we 
love,  in  extreme  old  age,  has  none  of  the  agony  of  the  sudden 
wrench  that  snatches  away  some  dear  one  in  youth  or  even  maturer 
age.  But  the  most  beautiful  and  natural  of  sunsets  is  still  a  sun- 
set, and  the  shadows  that  follow  it  are  chill  and  depressing.  I 
begin  to  feel  too  the  peculiar  sadness  that  the  death  of  much  older 
relatives  brino;s  to  those  who  are  enterino-  themselves  on  old  age. 
When  I  see  all  those  whom  I  remember  once,  middle-aged  men  and 
women,  younger  by  many  years  than  I  am  now,  all  passed  and 
gone,  I  feel  somehow  as  if  light  was  going  out  of  life  very  fast. 
There  are  so  few  living  Avith  whom  one  can  recall  the  past  and 
<Trow  youno'  again  in  recalling;  it.  We  are  the  o-eneration  that  is 
])assing  away.  Your  good  mother's  life  was  truly  a  patient  and 
(juiet  waiting  for  the  last  summons,  and  has  its  lesson  of  encourage- 
)nent  and  hope  for  those  who  follow  her.  But  it  must  be  a  great 
break  with  all  the  past  for  you.  We  arc  all  just  now  ailing  rather, 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


171 


and  low.  I  am  laid  up  the  last  two  days  with  heavy  influenza 
cold.  Willie  has  returned  to  Edinburgh,  not  by  any  means  as 
strong  as  we  could  Avish  him  to  be,  while  our  monetary  matters, 
though  not  severely  straitened,  have  proved  more  so  than  we 
reckoned  for,  and  enough  to  check  all  Christmas  amusements.  So 
vou  see  this  New  Year  does  not  break  brightly  for  either  of  us. 
Let  us  hope  and  trust  that  it  may  have  brighter  days  ere  its  close 
in  store  for  us." 

"  Peterborough,  January  23,  1S82. 

"  Your  letter  reaches  me  as  I  am  packing  up  for  a  trip  to  Edin- 
burgh to  try  and  shake  off  my  third  attack  of  marsh  fever.  I  have 
been  suspecting  for  the  last  few  days  that  this  was  what  my  cold 
was  turning  to,  and  now  I  am  sure  of  it.  These  marsh  fogs  in 
which  we  have  been  enveloped  for  the  last  fortnight  carry,  I  am 
persuaded,  fever  germs  in  them,  which  are  for  ever  returning  into 
this  poor  house  of  theirs  and  body  of  mine,  from  which  they  have 
been  cast  out,  and  truly  the  last  state  of  this  man  seems  always  to 
be  worse  than  the  former.  I  am  very  seedy,  and  only  hope  now 
that  this  change  may  set  me  up  sufficiently  to  do  some  work  in  the 
Leicester  mission.  Nothing  short  of  positive  prohibition  by  my 
dt)ctor  shall  keep  me  away  from  the  mission,  and  hardly  even  that. 
As  it  is,  I  must  be  aAvay  during  part  of  the  mission  week,  as  A. 
Cantuar  has  summoned  me  to  Uvo  bishops'"  meetings  for  that  week, 
and  the  business  of  these  is  such  that  I  feel  it  a  paramount  duty  to 
be  there  to  say  my  say. 

"  I\Iy  wife  is,  thank  God,  much  better,  but  she  has  had  the 
severest  attax'k  of  dyspepsia  that  I  have  yet  seen  her  suffering  from. 
Willie  too  is  better,  so  that  there  are  grains  of  sugar  in  my  cup  of 
bitters  just  now,  one  of  these  being  a  cheque  for  eighteen  guineas 
from  Good  Words  for  my  sermon.  This  will  just  meet  my  expenses 
of  the  fever  journey,  and  truly  I  needed  this  help;  we  have  never 
been  so  hard  up  since  our  marriage  as  at  this  moment.  From 
various  causes  my  losses  amount  now  to  nearly  £QOQ,  and  this  to  a 
man  who  has  no  private  means  and  who  can  seldom  do  more  than 
make  both  ends  meet  each  year,  is  a  heavy  pull  to  meet.  So 
altogether  1882  does  not  break  brightly  for  us  any  more  than  it 
does  for  a  great  many  better  people.  However,  I  am  not  going  to 
sit  down  like  Job  and  call  upon  you  to  play  Elihu  for  me,  or  even 
to  sit  down  beside  me  like  the  other  three  and  hold  your  tonmie  ; 
rather  let  us  both  say  with  Job :  '  Have  I  received  good  at  the 
hand  of  the  Lord  and  shall  I  not  also  i-eceive  evil  ? ' 


172 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


"  I  am  meditating  seriously  giving  no  formal  charge  this  year. 
I  have  said  more  than  once  all  I  have  to  say  on  Chui-ch  topics,  and 
a  good  deal  more  than  any  one  heeds  or  remembers.  I  have  nothing 
new  to  say,  and  if  I  had,  no  one  would  regard  it.  ^Vhy  should  I 
kill  myself  preparing  the  corpse  of  a  charge  for  silent  interment 
in  an  unread  pamphlet  ?  The  clergy  have,  generally  speaking, 
gone  mad  about  candle  ends  and  strips  of  sarcenet,  and  the  laity 
are  busy  hunting  and  shooting,  and  they  will  neither  of  them  listen 
to  the  voice  of  any  charmer,  charm  he  never  so  wisely.  My  notion 
therefore  is,  at  present  at  least,  not  to  deliver  myself  of  a  laboured 
charge,  but  instead  of  this  to  hold  a  real  visitation,  i.e.,  a  court 
of  enquiry  at  a  good  many  centres,  spending  a  day  or  two  at  each, 
inviting  the  lay  representatives  of  each  section  visited  to  be  present, 
giving  the  statistics  of  diocesan  work,  and  holding  a  quasi  conference 
on  some  diocesan  subject  afterwards,  and  so  getting  rid  too  of  the 
niaiseries  of  a  visitation  dinner  with  its  dull  and  uni'eal  speeches 
in  which  we  toast  the  Queen  and  '  the  eminent  prelate  who  so  ably 
presides  over  this  diocese.' 

" '  Thim  is  my  sintimints,'  partly  perhaps  prompted  by  fen 
fever  and  quinine,  but  also  entertained  for  some  time  before  the 
said  fever  '  arrived  here  for  the  season.'' 

"  Tell  me  what  you  think  of  this  idea." 

To  Mi-s.  Magee. 

"  London,  February  i6,  1S82. 
" .  .  .  .  We  have  been  canvassing  and  caballing  in  Upper  and 
Lower  House  of  Convocation  very  busily,  and  the  result  was  that 
all  of  a  sudden  I  found  myself  moving  and  carrying  in  the  Upper 
House  a  great  resolution  on  ^Ir.  Green's  case.  I  carried  it  bv 
sixteen  to  two  votes,  and  was  thanked  by  smidry  bishops  for  it  and 
for  my  speech." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"Stoke  Dry,  April  29,  1882. 

"  Here  we  are,  the  missus,  my  three  daughters  and  I,  in  our 
nest,  not  particularly  Avell  feathered,  but  elevated  and  wholesome, 
and  we  are  on  the  whole  jolly.  But  surely  the  place  was  ill-named 
'  dry.'  It  has  rained  pretty  steadily  since  om-  arrival,  and  to-day 
we  have  a  soaking  drizzle  blown  along  by  a  cold  north-easter, 
making  everything  '  moist  and  unpleasant,'  as  Mr.  ^Mantalini 
would  have  said.    The  place  however  will  evidently  suit  our  pur- 


I8S0-S3 


CHURCH  REFORM 


173 


pose.  It  will  hold  us,  after  a  fashion ;  it  is  evidently  airy  and 
M  holesonie  and  retired,  and  I  find  it  already  very  central  for  dio- 
cesan work.  I  have  made  two  Confirmation  circuits  from  it,  return- 
ing to  sleep  each  night,  and  I  feel  after  nine  confirmations  this 
week  less  tired  than  I  have  often  done  after  four.  I  do  not  mean 
to  leave  this  quiet  Patmos  for  the  useless  Avorry  of  the  bishops' 
meeting  on  Tuesday.  I  have  said  niy  say,  in  writing  to  the  Arch- 
bishop, pointing  out  what  seem  to  me  essential  conditions  to  the 
introduction  of  his  Bill*  and  important  amendments  in  it.  Of  the 
former,  there  are  tico,  namely,  consulting  with  Convocation,  which 
meets  on  the  11th  inst.,  and  an  absolute  pledge  of  energetic  support 
from  Gladstone  in  the  House  of  Commons.  Of  the  latter  three : 
1.  The  omission  of  the  power  to  stop  a  suit.  2.  The  giving  the 
clerk  an  appeal  from  the  bishop's  monition  to  the  bishops  of  the 
Province.  3.  The  substituting  of  suspension  for  three  years  ah 
officio  et  henejicio  for  deprivation  as  the  first  penalty  for  disobedience 
of  monition.  Reserving  deprivation  as  the  ultimate  penalty  if 
suspension  be  disregarded.  My  support  is  conditional  on  these 
points.  I  am  free,  therefore,  to  oppose  or  amend  the  Bill  in  the 
House  of  Lords  if  these  ai'e  not  conceded,  and  all  things  considered 
this  seems  to  me  the  safest  position  for  me  to  take.  If  I  thought 
I  could  do  any  good  by  going  up,  I  would  not  think  of  safety  for 
mvself.  But  as  I  am  sure  I  can  do  no  good  I  stay  away  and  reserve 
mvself  for  the  row  in  the  Lords." 

"  AxHEN.iEUM  Club,  Pall  Mall, 

"June  II,  1882. 

"  By  the  time  this  reaches  you  probably  you  will  have  read  a 
more  or  less  accurate  report  of  a  speech  on  the  Deceased  Wife's 
Sister  Bill  by  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough.  I  had  resolved,  as  you 
know,  that  '  oxen  and  cart  ropes '  should  not  draw  a  speech  out  of 
me  on  this  occasion,  and  I  had  told  Beauchamp  so.  To  make  quite 
sure  that  I  should  not  be  tempted  to  speak  on  it  I  came  in  late, 
just  as  Dalhousie  was  finishing  his  speech  in  favour  of  it.  I  sat 
quite  quiet  and  harmless  during  a  very  quiet  sensible  speech  against 
it  from  Lord  Balfour,  who  moved  its  rejection.  When  he  sat 
down,  for  my  sins  up  got  Lord  Waterford,  who  talked  such  non- 
sense, and  exposed  his  flank  so  temptingly,  that  I  could  not  with- 
stand the  temptation,  and  yielding  to  my  irritation  at  a  bad  argu- 
ment, which  affects  me  as  a  false  note  does  you,  I  got  on  my  feet 
hardly  knowing  what  I  was  going  to  say.  As  I  rose,  so  did  Hough- 
*  Imprisonment  for  Contumacy  Bill. 


174 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


ton,  and  there  was  a  general  call  for  me !  After  that  1  could  not 
sit  down,  and  so,  with  a  great  'thrimblin  at  me  heart,'  as  the 
Irishman  used  to  say,  I  plunged  into  an  impromptu  speech.  I  was 
very  well  received  and  cheered  as  I  went  on,  and  much  helped  by 
some  insolent  lauLyhter  from  Lords  Granville  and  Kimberley,  on 
whom  I  turned  round  and  laid  into  them  until  they  stopped  laugh- 
ing and  Lord  Granville  began  to  take  notes.  Then  I  went  on  to 
compare  the  action  of  this  Bill  on  sistei's-in-law  (who  were  to  cease 
to  be  such  in  order  that  they  might  care  for  the  children)  to  that 
•of  Irish  landlords  to  their  tenants  ;  I  said  they  were  to  be  '  evicted 
as  sisters-in-law,  but  put  in  as  caretakers.''  To  my  horror  the 
Lords  went  into  convulsions  all  round,  and  though  they  cheered 
loudly  I  was  vexed  with  myself  for  the  witticism  which  made  them 
do  so.  It  rose  to  my  mouth  like  a  loose  cork  to  the  top  of  a 
bottle,  and  I  could  not  get  on  with  the  pouring  out  of  my  speech 
until  it  popped  out.  Setting  this  aside  I  think  I  did  fairly  well, 
^md  numbers  of  the  Lords  congratulated  and  thanked  me  for  my 
iipeech.  The  Prince  of  Wales  took  it  very  good-naturedly.  He 
told  me  as  he  passed  out  to  the  division  that  he  '  liked  my  speech 
at  Leicester  a  great  deal  better  "*  and  '  had  rather  have  heard  me 
make  that  over  again.'  * 

"  Altogether,  considering  that  I  spoke  impromptu,  I  got  toler- 
ably well  out  of  it,  but  I  fully  expect  to  be  abused  in  the  Guardian 
and  Record  for  '  levity ' ;  and  by  many  of  the  clergy  for  throwing 
over  Leviticus.  My  fate  is  to  be  too  good  for  the  bad  folk  and 
not  good  enough  for  the  good  ones,  and  to  be  abused  by  both. 
However,  when  I  get  a  determination  of  speech  to  the  head,  nothing 
but  speaking  will  relieve  me,  and  I  speak  accordingly,  good  or 
evil,  as  the  case  may  be.  I  am  too  old  to  change  my  nature,  and 
must  take  the  consequences  accordingly. 

"To-morrow  I  go  to  Lambeth  with  Exeter  and  Ely,  to  bully 
A.  C.  Cantuar  about  his  Cathedi'al  Bill  which  he  has  put  down  for 
second  reading  to-morrow  night,  without  any  previous  consultation 
with  the  bishops.    At  twelve  o'clock  I  am  to  see  my  quare  impedit 

clerk,  and  try  to  bully  him  into  withdrawing  from  H  ;  and  at 

three  o'clock  I  am  to  make  a  speech  at  the  Mansion  House  in  favour 
of  higher  education  of  women.  I  had  rather  be  planting  geraniums 
at  Stoke  Dry  than  doing  any  one  of  these  things.  But  anyhow 
they  cannot  say  that  I  come  up  to  town  to  idle.  I  am  not 
meditans  but  agitans!''' 

*  At  opening  of  the  Abbey  Park  by  the  Prince,  May  30,  1882. 


1880-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


175 


"  rETERBOROUGH,  Jwie  I3,  18S2. 

"  I  went  to  Lambeth  to-dav,  with  Exeter  and  Ely,  to  induce 
Cantuar  to  put  oft' the  second  reading  of  his  Cathedral  Bill.  We 
saw  his  secretary,  Davidson,  a  very  excellent  and  sensible  fellow, 
Cantuar  being  at  Addington  ;  and  on  my  going  down  to  the  House 
to-night  Cantuar  himself  assured  me  that  he  had  done  as  we  wished. 
He  is  not  and  does  not  look  well.  He  has  greatly  aged  in  face  and 
gait  and  flushes  heavily  at  times,  indication  of  weakness,  but  he  is 
'  all  there  '  nevertheless,  and  particularly  kind  and  gracious  to  me. 
I  am  greatly '  uplifted,'  as  the  Scotch  say,  by  the  comments  and 
congratulations  I  receive  from  the  peers  on  my  speech  of  last  night. 
As  they  come  both  from  friends  and  foes  of  the  Bill,  I  sup])ose  I 
may  accept  them  as  sincere.  Caims  and  Shaftesbury  were  both 
warm  in  their  congratulations,  and  on  the  other  hand,  so  was  Lord 
Dunsany,  a  very  sensible  and  moderate  advocate  of  the  Bill,  who 
told  me  he  was  about  replving  to  me  when  the  debate  was  prema- 
turely cut  short  by  Selborne  proposing  the  question.  It  seems  that 
my  poor  little  7not  about  '  eviction  '  and  '  caretakers  has  immensely 
tickled  the  peers,  and  as  it  is  not  yet  abused  in  any  of  the  papers, 
I  am  coming  off  in  respect  of  it  better  than  I  had  anticipated." 

To  Bishop  Mitchixson. 

"  89  Onslow  Gardens,  South  Kensington, 

"June  15,  1882. 

"  My  dear  Bishop —  ....  I  doubt  the  Spirituality  coming  to 
any  agreement  on  the  point  vou  refer  to.  Some  of  them,  eg:, 
Llandaff'and  Winchester,  still  cling  to  Leviticus  ;  I  and  others  give 
u])  Leviticus  and  would  find  our  ethics  of  mai'riage  and  its  funda- 
mental law  in  our  Lord's  words  on  the  subject,  not  in  those  of 
Moses.  The  real  difficulty  in  the  scripture  argument  is  that  as 
regards  the  Old  Testament  teaching  it  is  matter  of  interjj/rtafioii, 
as  regards  the  New,  of  iiifererwc,  and  on  neither  can  you  rest  Icffi.s- 
Icit'ion. 

"  As  regards  the  line  the  clergy  are  to  take  when  the  Bill  be- 
comes law,  as  it  soon  must,  that  is  another  matter.  On  this  I 
should  hope  we  might  be  agreed,  though  even  this  is  doubtful. 
The  question  will  practically  arise,  not  as  regards  marrying  the 
widower  and  sister-in-law  (this  is  not  to  be  required  of  the  clergy), 
but  as  regards  admitting  them  when  married,  to  the  Holy  Commu- 
nion. With  my  views  I  could  do  this,  but  for  those  who  regard 
such  marriages  as  '  other  than  God  s  word  doth  allow,'  I  hardly  see 


176 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE  chap,  xvi 


how  tlicy  could  do  so,  or  advise  others  to  do  so  ;  and  if  they  can- 
not, tliere  arises  a  most  formidable  dispute  between  Church  and 
State  on  a  point  infinitely  more  critical  than  Green''s  imprisonment. 

"  The  position  seems  to  me  fraught  with  more  serious  and  im- 
mediate difficulty  than  most  persons  seem  yet  to  anticipate. — Yours 
ever  most  truly,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough."" 

To  Mrs.  Magee. 

"North  Harris,  N.B., 

"  August  22,  1882. 

"  On  Sunday  evening  I  held  a  service  in  the  hotel  at  Tarbert  for 
guests  and  neighbours  at  eight  o'clock,  and  the  Free  Kirk  minister 
and  his  flock  attended.  He  was  duly  introduced  to  me  and  offered 
me  his  church  for  next  Sunday  to  address  his  people.  I  mentally 
thanked  Heaven  that  I  was  able  to  say  that  this  was  impossible  as 
I  was  going  to  Stornoway  on  Friday.  Fancy  my  getting  into  the 
Church  Times  as  the  Presbyterianising  and  Erastian  bishop  who 
patronised  a  Scotch  schism  ! 

"  On  Monday  I  started  for  Loch  Scoroot,  one  of  Sir  E.  Scotfs 
private  preserved  lakes.  A  drive  of  seven  miles  along  a  most  pic- 
turesque but  awfully  up  and  down  road  along  the  seacoast  and  a 
walk  of  two  miles  brought  me  to  a  little  lake  in  Sir  E.  Scott's  deer- 
forest,  where  I  fished  for  thi"ee  hours  in  torrents  of  rain  and  storms 
of  wind.  Unable  to  endure  this  any  longer  I  left  it  three  hours 
before  the  time  appointed  for  my  trap  to  meet  me.  In  consequence, 
I  walked  home  nearly  nine  Scotch  miles  in  the  roughest  rain  and 
wind  I  ever  encountered.  To-day  I  visited  another  loch  of  Sir  E. 
Scott's,  he  providing  me  with  gillies  and  ponies, 

"  I  have  ridden  twelve  miles  to-day  on  a  rough  Harris  pony,  and 
feel  very  comfortable  after  it.  I  had  a  good  day's  fishing,  nineteen 
sea-trout  weighing  twenty  pounds,  and  I  rode  on  here  to  Sir  E, 
Scott's,  where  I  am  staying  the  night.  His  castle  is  a  very  pic- 
tm-esque  residence,  situated  on  the  edge  of  the  sea  into  which 
look  the  dining-room  windows.  In  the  rear  stretches  away  for 
miles  a  grand  deer  forest  (a  deev  forest  has,  you  know,  no  trees ;  only 
mountains  and  rocks),  while  on  the  right-hand  side  a  salmon  river 
tumbles  into  the  sea.  The  sea  views  on  the  road  here  were  charm- 
ing, grand  and  wild,  and  yet  land-locked  and  peaceful  looking.  I 
am  to  have  two  more  days  in  this  preserved  loch,  and  really,  I  shall 
get  quite  intoxicated  with  fishing.  I  must  tell  you — apropos  of 
fishing — rather  a  pretty  thing  of  the  guests  at  the  Tarbert  Hotel. 


18S0-83 


CHURCH  liEFORM 


177 


There  are  but  three  small  loehs  attached  to  the  hotel,  and  the 
angling  guests  are  told  off  on  certain  fishing  beats,  each  follow  ing 
the  other,  and  rising  like  seats  at  a  tabic  dlwte  from  the  worst  to 
the  best.  Well,  the  innkeeper  informed  me  yesterday  that  the 
"  uests  had  unanimously  voted  that  I  should  at  once  have  the  best 
of  the  beats  !  That,  knowing  as  I  do  the  keenness  and  the  jealousy 
of  anglers,  is  to  me  rcallv  a  most  striking  proof  of  goodwill  to  my 
ordei',  or  myself,  or  both,  I  have  ever  encountered." 

"  Stornoway,  August  25,  1882. 
"  I  had  a  long  and  lather  fatiguing  joiu-nev  to-day  from  Tarbert 
to  this  place — thirt\  -six  n)iles  Scotch.  But  the  tlay  was  fine,  and 
the  scenery  for  the  greater  part  of  the  way  fine,  and  for  the  first 
ten  miles  extremely  fine.  This  country  reminds  me  greatly  of  the 
county  of  Donegal  in  its  wildest  ])arts.  The  same  long  sea  bays, 
wild  headlands,  up  and  down  winding  roads ;  moorland  and 
heather  and  peat  stacks  all  round,  and  the  peasantry  just  the  very 
dittos  of  the  Donegal  cottars ;  the  men  small  dark  Celts,  the 
women  with  the  red  shawls  and  handkerchiefs  for  bonnets,  and  bare- 
footed all  of  them,  and  carrying  turf  creels  to  and  from  the  bogs. 
If  I  had  slept  through  my  journey  and  woke  up  I  should  have  saitl 
that  I  was  back  again  in  Donegal  or  Connemara.  I  go  on  board 
the  steamer  to-night  at  eleven  o'clock  p.m.  to  sleep,  as  she  starts 
for  Ullapool  at  5  a.m.  to-morrow." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"  Great  Houghton, 

"  October  26,  1882. 

"Here  I  am,  alive  and  fairly  well,  after  my  Kettei-ing  storm, 
and  also  after  my  Northam})ton  visitation  of  to-day. 

"  But,  oh  !  to  think  of  all  the  kettles  of  fish  I  found  awaiting- 
me  on  opening  my  budget  of  letters  here. 

"  Imprimis — a  J'luious  letter  of  four  pages  from  Coverley,  the 
S.H.C.  man  whom  I  excluded  from  AVoodford  Mission.  The 
Church  Times  and  Church  Rcvicxo  together  were,  as  the  Americans 
say,  only  '  the  smallest  part  of  a  circumstance '  compared  to  it. 
Only  imagine  his  telling  me  '  that  if  he  had  been  a  member  of  the 
Order  of  Spree  Buffaloes,  or  had  graduated  at  Newmarket,  or  had 
led  his  life  on  anti-Blue  Ribbon  principles,  he  did  not  doubt  for  a 
moment  that  I  would  have  held  him  fit  for  a  mission  in  any  part 
of  my  diocese.'    He  wound  up  as  usual  by  a  threat  of  publishing 


178 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHA?.  XVI 


said  letter,  togetlier  with  my  reply.  I  sincerely  hope  he  mav.  IMv 
reply  consisted  of  five  lines,  thanking  him  for  removing  completely, 
so  far  as  he  was  concerned,  the  feelings  of  regret  and  reluctance 
with  which  I  refused  the  request  of  my  much  esteemed  friend  and 
brother,  Mr.  Smythe,  for  my  permission  to  his  officiating  as  mis- 
sioner  in  his  parish.  The  amount  of  change  which  he  will  get  out 
of  that  answer  will  hardly  leave  him  a  large  margin  for  his  private 
charities. 

"  Secundo.  A  letter  from  Rohinson,  of  St.  Peter's,  Leicester, 
enclosing  a  bill  of  two  sermons  to  be  preached  by  a  Rev.  F.  Win- 
slow,  Vicar  of  St.  Leonard's-on-Sea ;  one  in  the  morning,  in  the 
Baptist  Hall,  in  Robinson's  parish ;  the  other  in  the  evening,  at 
Christ  Church,  Leicester,  on  Simday  next.  Forthwith,  I  have  to 
inform  Mr.  Winslow,  that  imless  I  hear  from  him  before  Sunday 
that  he  relinquishes  his  intention  of  ])reaching  in  the  Melbourne 
Hall,  I  prohibit  his  preaching  at  Christ  Church ;  and  also  to  the 
same  efl'ect  to  Isaacs ;  and  also  to  Robinson.  As  I  fully  expect 
defiance,  I  am  sending  Grav  Avith  a  formal  inhibition  to  Leicester, 
on  Saturday  next,  with  directions  to  serve  it  on  Winslow  at  Christ 
Church,  in  person,  if  it  prove  necessary  to  do  so. 

"  Tli'irdly.  A  tremendous  letter  from  Secretary  of  Lords  Day 
Rest  Society,  asking  explanation  of  my  Lutterworth  obser\ations 
on  Sunday  opening  of  village  reading-rooms, 

"  Pretty  well,  this,  for  one  day.  The  last  is  likely  to  prove  the 
most  troublesome.  I  have  oft'ended  another  fanaticism,  and  nuist 
expect  to  be  stung  to  death  by  its  hordes  of  midges  accordingly. 
I  have  written  to  the  secretary,  stating  what  I  really  did  say  ; 
which  was  somewhat  misreported  ;  but  entering  into  no  defence  of 
it — nor  shall  I  do  so.  There  is  no  use  in  arguing  with  a  man  who 
is  hired  to  argue  for  a  '  cause.'' 

"  Correspondence  No.  2,  with  Isaacs  and  Winslow,  I  rather 
enjoy.  My  inhibition  of  Winslow  will  just  balance  neatly  my 
inhibition  of  the  S.H.C.  man,  besides  gratifying  all  the  Leicester 
clergy. 

"  Correspondence  No.  1  I  trust  may  be  published  ;  but  I  fear 
that  some  discreet  friend  of  Coverley's  ma\'  prevent  it.  In  that 
case,  if  he  says  anything  about  me  in  the  H.C.  papers,  I  shall 
probably  publish  his  letter  and  mine.  I  sent  it  and  a  copy  of  my 
rejjly  to  Smythe,  requesting  its  return.  When  I  get  it  back  you 
bhall  see  both. 

"  Just  now,  however,  my  hands  seem  2)retty  full." 


iSSo-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


179 


"  Peterborough,  November  4,  1882. 

"  IMy  diocesan  kettles  of  fish  have  all  duly  boiled  over,  and  in 
most  cases  with  the  effect  of  putting  out  the  fire. 

"(1)  AA^inslow  and  Isaacs  struck  at  07ice,the  latter  to  my  amaze- 
ment telling  me  that  '  he  did  not  see  how  I  could  have  acted  other- 
wise than  I  did.'  The  Dissenting  minister  of  ]\Iel bourne  Hall  wrote 
to  the  Times  and  got  a  corner  in  the  Supplement  for  his  pains. 

"  (2)  The  S.H.C.  man,  Coverley,  sends  me  an  ample  and  really 
gentlemanlike  apologv  for  his  former  letter,  to  which  I  have  I'eplied 
in  the  same  spirit.    So  '  that  settles  that.' 

"I  am  called  a  'bishop  militant,''  I  see,  in  Ptmch,  who,  by  the 
wav,  commends  me  highly,  but,  if  people  only  knew  how  I  labour 
for  peace,  they  might  change  my  title. 

"  There  is  a  column  of  praise  for  my  new  mode  of  visitation  iia 
the  Church  Times. 

"  All  this  is  a  terribly  egotistical  letter,  but  friendship  is,  I 
suppose,  like  love,  Vegoisme  d  deux.'''' 

"  Peterborough,  November  21,  18S2. 

"  I  returned  yesterday  from  London,  whither  I  had  travelled 
from  Edinburgh  on  Saturday,  partly  in  order  to  meet  Gladstone  at 
dinner  with  Malcolm  Maccoll,  Lord  Strathmore,  and  a  few  others. 
The  temptation  to  a  man  like  me,  who  likes  to  find  himself  in  queer 
company,  Mas  irresistible.  So  I  went,  and  greatly  enjoyed  my  talk 
with  AV.  E.  G.,  next  whom  I  sat  and  whose  encyclopaedic  informa- 
tion and  far-reaching  memory  perfectly  amazed  me.  We  talked, 
as  you  may  suppose,  no  politics.  But  I  got  his  views  very  fj-ankly 
given  on  one  or  two  religious  and  ecclesiastical  questions  whidi 
were  very  interesting  but  too  long  for  this  letter.  I  had  dined  the 
night  before  in  Edinburgh  with  the  College  of  Surgeons,  and 
travelled  from  Edinburgh  to  London  for  the  Gladstone  banquet. 

"  I  found  all  well  here,  thank  God." 

"  Peterborough,  December  9,  1882. 
"I  attended  the  Primate's  funeral  yesterday.  It  was  a  very 
touching  scene — touching  for  its  quiet  and  cheerful  solemnity.  I 
really  think  no  better  word  than  cheerful  could  be  used  to  describe 
the  whole  character  of  the  proceedings.  The  cofiin,  without  a  pall, 
thick  covered  with  flowers  ;  the  church  decorated  as  for  a  harvest 
festival  ;  the  hymns  almost  joyful  in  their  tone  ;  and  altogether 
hopeful  and  triumphant;  all  breathed  just  that  spirit  of  Christian 
resignation  and  thankfulness  which  the  close  of  the  brave,  nianh  , 


180 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


chastened  life  of  the  man  we  Avere  following  to  his  rest  should 
suggest.  His  daughters,  who  were  present  all  through,  behaved 
beautifully  ;  no  noisy  sorrow  or  excitement ;  hardly  any  weeping 
even  ;  but  a  quiet,  patient,  restrained  grief  that  was  very  touching. 
The  servants,  who  carried  the  coffin,  were  all  of  them  honestlv 
weeping,  a  sure  sign  of  what  the  Archbishop  was  in  his  domestic 
life.  The  gathering  at  Addington  was  representative,  though  less^ 
so  than  that  in  the  Jerusalem  Chamber  for  Stanley's  funeral. 
There  were  fewer  bishops  than  I  had  expected.  But  the  weather 
kept  away  the  aged  and  infirm,  who  are  numerous  amongst  us 
now."" 

To  the  Rev.  Aubrey  Townsend. 

"  Peterborough,  December  lo,  1882. 
"  Your  pleasant  and  affectionate  letter  was  as  welcome  to  me 
as  such  tokens  of  long  friendship  and  recallings  of  old  times  must 
always  be.  It  is  indeed  an  anxious  time,  this,  for  those  who  care 
for  Church  and  State,  while  Ave  wait  to  see  who  is  to  be  given  us 
as  our  ruler  in  the  Church  and  our  leader  and  spokesman  in 
our  dealings  with  the  State.  I  think  there  can  be  little  doubt 
that  our  new  Primate  will  be  either  ^A'^inchester,  Durham,  or 
Truro.  The  first  would  be  eminently  the  fittest,  and  to  the 
bishops  as  Avell  as  clergy  the  most  generally  acceptable.  Hi.> 
only  drawback  is  his  age.  The  second  would  command  at  the 
moment  of  his  appointment  much  popular  acceptance,  which  I  fear 
he  would  in  some  respects  disappoint.  The  third  would  perhaps., 
all  things  considered,  age  especially,  prove  the  best  for  the  Church. 
He  Avould  certainly  unite  and  lead  the  episcopate  better  than  the 
second.  A  foux'th — not  a  bishop — has  been  named.  Dean  Church, 
of  St.  Paul's ;  in  many  respects  admirable ;  but  to  move  him  over 
the  heads  of  all  the  bishops  would  be  a  very  strong  step,  though  it 
has  been  taken  before  now,  i.e.,  Tillotson.  For  myself,  I  feel  thr 
comfort  and  peace  of  mind  of  a  man  who  looks  on  a  competition 
in  which  he  can  possibly  have  no  share  or  personal  interest  what- 
ever. As  regards  the  future,  I  do  not  envy  the  man  who  will  be 
seated  in  the  chair  of  Augustine  in  these  times.  The  winds  blow 
keen  round  it  and  the  rains  fall  heavy  on  it  just  now  ;  and  he  mav 
be  a  thankful  man  if  when  his  occupancy  draws  to  a  close  he  can 
say,  I  have  done  nothing  to  hasten  the  fall  thereof.  I  attended 
the  funeral  of  the  late  Primate  at  Addington  ;  a  very  touching 
and  beautiful  scene  it  was,  just  such  as  befitted  the  memory  of  such 


IS80-83 


CHURCH  REFORM 


181 


a  man.  I  was  greatly  struck  by  the  singing  of  Ne\vinan''s  hymn, 
'  Kindly  Light,''  in  the  course  of  the  service,  to  think  of  the  time 
when  Mr.  Tait,  then  a  Balliol  Fellow,  denounced  as  one  of  the  four 
tutors  the  teaching  of  Mr.  Newman  ;  and  then  to  hear  the  hynni 
of  Cardinal  Newman  sung  over  the  body  of  Archbishop  Tait. 
What  a  world  of  English  Church  history  lies  between  the  two 
events  !  It  will,  I  am  sure,  please  you  to  know  that  a  week  before 
the  Primate  died  I  received  from  him,  in  reply  to  a  few  words  of 
farewell  from  myself,  a  message  of  '  affectionate  thanks  with  liis 
blessing.''  Remembering,  as  you  probably  do,  our  one  public  and 
painful  collision,  and  remembering,  as  I  do,  the  several  and  not 
rare  occasions  in  which  I,  almost  alone  of  the  bishops,  ventured  to 
differ  from  and  oppose  hin)  in  private  conference,  this  farewell  from 
him  to  me  is  touching  and  to  be  remembered.  He  never  could 
endure  opposition  well ;  but  on  the  other  hand  he  never  bore 
malice.  He  was  a  good  man,  and  in  some  respects  a  great  one, 
and  yet  just  now  we  need  a  different  stamp  of  man  for  our  chief; 
one  who  will  conciliate  the  clergy  as  much  as  Tait  did  the  la'itji, 
without  alienating  the  latter.  Harold  Browne  would  do  this 
perfectly.  I  still  hope  and  pray  that  we  may  get  him.  All  of  us 
under  this  roof  are,  thank  God,  well,  and  doing  fairly  well,  and  my 
iliocesan  work  is  progressing  in  the  main  satisfactorily,  in  some 
respects  hopefully,  and,  thank  God's  guiding  grace  and  mercy,  peace- 
fully;  a  pleasant  Christmas  thought. — Ever,  my  dear  Townsend, 
vours  affectionately,  "  W,  C.  Petebbohough. 

"  This  day  week  I  shall,  if  I  live,  be  sixty-one.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Peterborough,  Dccemher  21,  1S82. 

"This  afternoon  the  third  volume  of  AVilberforce's  Life  aiTi\cd 
here — a  present  from  Thicknesse.  You  may  suppose  how  eagerly 
I  cut  it  open  at  the  chapter  on  the  Irish  Church.  You  will,  I  think, 
be  glad  to  hear  that  the  reading  of  it  greatly  relieved  my  mind. 
It  contains  Wilberforce''s  notes  of  two  conferences  of  bishops  on  the 
Irish  Church  Bill,  in  both  of  which  he  reports  me — luckily  for  me 
— at  considerable  length,  and,  as  well  as  I  remember,  fairly.  It 
comes  out  quite  clearly  from  his  report :  * 

"  (1)  That  I  conditioned  my  action  on  that  of  the  Irish  bishops. 

*  See  p.  2og,  vol.  i. 


182 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


ciiAr.  XVI 


If  thev  aorccxl  to  surrender  I  would  do  so.  If  they  would  insist  on 
fio-htino-  I  would  fioht. 

"  (2)  That  I  pointed  out  the  dangers  to  the  Irish  Church  of 
resistance  to  the  end ;  and  deprecated  it  on  these  grounds,  i.e.,  in 
short,  that  I  would  fight  against  the  Bill  if  called  on  to  do  so, 
though  contrary  to  my  better  judgment.  This  seems  to  me  quite 
a  straightforward  and  sim})le  position,  and  one  that  quite  exonerates 
me  from  R.  Wilbcrforce's  unfair  imputation,  which,  after  all,  is 
only  his  opinion.  S.  Wilberforce  says  nothing  against  me  there  or 
anywhere  else  in  the  volume.  What  his  notes  do  7iot  say,  and  what 
I  cannot  say  now,  is  what  he  and  I  knew  perfectly  well  at  the  time, 
viz.,  that  if  the  Irish  Church  had  even  then  negotiated  through  the 
English  bishojis,  she  would  have  got  the  Ulster  glebes  probably — • 
certainly  much  better  terms  than  she  ultimately  obtained.  To  this, 
neither  he  nor  I  could  allude  in  our  speeches  ;  and  consequently  I 
am  represented  as  counselling  acceptance  of  the  Bill  in  second 
reading,  and  amending  in  Parliament  in  Connnittee,  whereas 
what  he  and  I  both  Mere  contemplating  was  acceptance  of  dis- 
c.itahlishmcnt,  and  making  terms  as  to  disendowment,  before  the 
Bill  came  vip  for  second  reading  in  the  Lords.  However,  this, 
though  important  to  a  full  clearing  of  my  position  as  regards  my 
jmlgment,  is  not  needed  for  my  exculpation  as  regards  honesty ;  and 
that  is  all  I  care  about — or  at  least  is  what  I  care  about  most. 
My  position  comes  out  exactly  as  I  described  it  to  you  yesterday, 
as  that  of  an  officer  who,  in  a  council  of  war,  recommends  surrender 
on  good  terms,  believing  the  fort  untenable  ;  but  at  the  same  time 
declares  that,  if  out-voted  by  the  no-surrender  party,  he  will  fight 
to  the  last,  and  accordingly  does  so.  As  to  R.  "Wilberforce's 
sneer  about  '  principles  of  the  Bill  being  attacked  by  me  in  my 
speech,"'  it  will  be  easy  to  show,  if  necessary,  that  this  was  just  what 
my  speech  did  not  do,  and  for  not  doing  which,  it  and  I  were 
severely  blamed  at  the  time.  Oddly  enough,  S.  Wilberforce  gives 
a  ^'ery  meagre  accoimt  of  his  own  speeches  at  these  conferences  if, 
that  is  to  say,  his  notes  are  Jidly  given  by  R.  Wilberforce — 
which  I  greatly  doubt.  If  I  have  sinned,  I  am  made  to  sin  in 
goodlv  company.  The  Bishop  of  Derry  '  agrees  with  me,"  so  docs 
London  (Jackson),  and  in  the  main,  Limerick ;  so  also,  says  S. 
Wilberforce,  do  Richmond,  Carnarvon,  Nelson,  and  sundry  other 
great  folk,  and  great  opponents,  afterwards,  of  the  Irish  Church 
Bill.  So,  all  things  considered,  I  have  been  more  frightened  than 
hurt  and  am  looking  forward  to  a  good  nighfs  sleep  to-night. 


I8S0-S3 


CHURCH  HEFORM 


1815 


which  I  may  now  confess  to  you  was  more  than  I  had  last  night. 
I  have  hastily  skimmed  this  thiid  volume.  It  is  decidedly  less 
interesting  than  the  previous  ones.  For  instance,  it  omits  entirely 
the  Southampton  Church  Congress,  where  S.  Wiiberforce,  in  some 
respects,  greatly  distinguished  himself.  A  very  interesting  and 
very  unfair  quotation  is  given  of  the  opinions  of  Todd,  exjiressed 
to  S.  Oxon  on  each  and  all  of  the  then  Irish  bishops.  But  how 
cruelly  unjust  to  give  the  views  of  a  narrow  and  soured  man,  as 
Todd  was  even  then,  on  men,  some  of  whom  are  still  living,  others 
hardlv  cold  in  their  graves.  The  most  astounding,  however,  of  all 
astounding  things  in  this  astounding  book  is  R.  Wilberforce's  calm 
statement  in  the  Preface,  that  the  passages  relating  to  Dean  of 
^^'indsor  and  Pusey  '  wcve  in  print  before  their  deaths.'  This  is  not 
indiscretion  but  impudence.  The  concluding  pages  of  the  volume, 
including  the  description,  or  rather  the  mention,  of  the  funeral  at 
Petworth,  are  verv  poor  and  muddled  up.  Indeed,  the  whole  of 
the  three  concluding  years  of  his  life,  as  given  in  the  Memoir,  are 
scantv  and  scrappy.  Altogether  this  volume  is  an  unsuccessful 
attempt  to  glorify  S.  Wiiberforce  by  making  him  the  hero  of  every 
bishops'"  meeting  and  conference,  and  the  guiding  spirit  which, 
during  Taifs  primacy,  he  never  was ;  and  this  is  attempted : 
"  (1)  By  setting  him  up. 

"  (2)  By  pulling  all  others  down,  save  Gladstone,  who,  of  course, 
figures  always  as  jjraising  hhn. 

"  These  are  first  impressions.  I  will  read  the  volume  through 
carefully,  now  that  the  'divine  rage  of  my  hunger''  is  appeased  by 
those  mouthfuls  of  gossip  relating  to  myself.'" 

"  Peterborough,  December  23,  1882. 
"  To-day''s  Spectator  notices  \^'^ilberforce''s  Life  in  a  paragraph 
and  also  in  a  leading  article,  in  both  condemning  the  '  indiscretions'' 
of  the  editor ;  in  the  latter  noticing,  cn  -passant,  my  share  in  the 
Episcopal  Conference  on  the  Irish  Church  Bill,  but  in  no  way 
blaming  it — rather  the  contrary.  It  quotes  a  delicious  criticism  of 
J.  Cork  on  my  Congress  Sermon  at  Dublin,  '  that  it  had  not 
Gospel  enough  in  it  to  save  a  tom-titS  I  would  not  have  lost  that 
for  the  world,  and  consider  it  cheaply  purchased  by  the  possibility 
of  a  row  with  R.  Wiiberforce.  The  more  I  see  of  the  Life  the 
more  I  feel  its  spitefulness  of  selection  of  puhlicanda ;  and  the 
more  I  feel  that  in  the  long  run  it  will  not  seriously  hurt  any  one 
mentioned  in  it." 


184- 


JliCIJBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XVI 


"  Stoke  Dry,  January  i6,  1883. 
"  I  am  greatly  pleased  to  get  your  verdict  on  my  share  in  the 
Irish  Church  records  of  Bishop  Wilberforce.  You  have  exactly 
hit  the  difference  between  his  line  and  mine.  I  was  willing  to 
compromise  if  the  Irish  bishops  thought  it  good  for  the  Irish 
Church.  He  was  anxious  to  do  so,  whether  the  Irish  bishops 
wished  it  or  not,  because  he  hated  the  Irish  Church  and  loved  S. 
Wilberforce.  Here  was  the  point  at  which  we  fell  apart,  my 
good  genius  enabling  me  to  see  this  and  to  escape  the  snare  he  set 
tor  me  then.  «  W.  C.  P." 


CHAPTER  XVII 


VISIT  TO  SPAIN;  ILLNESS;  SPEECH  ON  DIS- 
ESTABLISHMENT 

Thk  following  letters  show  how  anxious  and  sympathetic  the 
Bishop  was  for  those  of  whose  clerical  work  he  had  formed  a  high 
opinion. 

To  the  Rev.  Caxon  Watson. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"  Jaiiuaiy  6,  1883. 

"  Dear  Canon  Watson, — I  am  truly  sorry  to  hear  your  account 
of  Mr.  Disney.  Anything  I  can  do  to  promote  his  health  or 
comfort,  I  will  gladly  do.  I  should  grieve  to  lose  from  this  diocese 
so  valuable  and  so  devoted  a  parish  priest ;  and  I  would  that  I  had 
at  my  disposal  any  living  worthy  of  his  acceptance,  and  could  so  at 
once  relieve  him  from  the  toils  and  anxieties  of  Hinckley.  Un- 
happily, livings  do  not  fall  vacant  just  at  the  moment  that  patrons 
desire  to  have  one  at  their  disposal.  As  regards  his  contemplated 
absence  for  a  year,  I  think  it,  under  the  circumstances  you  describe, 
his  only  wise  course  ;  and  I  readily  sanction  it  in  anticipation.  A 
year's  complete  rest  may,  and  I  trust  will,  completely  set  him  up 
again ;  and,  in  the  course  of  that  time,  possibly  something  might 
tm-n  up  in  this  diocese  which  might  set  him  ft-ee  from  his  present 
trying  post.  I  shall  be  happy  to  see  him  here  on  any  day  in  next 
week  that  he  cares  to  come  and  see  me.  But  I  do  not  need  an 
interview  to  induce  me  to  consent  to  any  arrangement  which  can 
reasonably  help  him  in  his  present  great  strait. — Believe  me,  yours 
very  truly,  "  W.  C.  PjiTBiiBOROUGH." 

The  Bishop,  beside  writing  as  above  to  his  rural  dean,  sent  a 
message  advising  Mr.  Disney  to  leave  his  parish  for  a  time  and  take 
complete  rest.    To  this  message  ]\'Ir.  Disney  wrote  in  reply  that  he 


186 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


could  not  leave  his  work,  adding  "that  if  a  soldier  of  the  Queen 
remained  at  a  difficult  post  until  death,  he  would  be  regarded  as 
having  only  done  his  duty  ;  and  that  he  did  not  see  it  should  be 
otherwise  with  a  soldier  of  Christ."" 
To  this  the  Bishop  replied  as  follows : 

To  the  Rev.  W.  H.  Disxey. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"January  13,  1883. 

"  Dear  Mr.  Disney, — I  have  no  hesitation  whatever  in  saying 
to  you  that,  in  my  judgment,  your  duty  not  only  to  yourself  and  to 
vour  family  but  to  your  parish  is  to  leave  Hinckley  for  at  least 
one  year. 

"  I  quite  feel  with  you  that  if  it  were  a  question  between  your 
duty  to  your  parish  and  your  own  health  or  interests  j-ou  could 
not,  as  a  good  soldier  of  Christ,  do  otherwise  than  stay  at  your  post. 
Ikit  it  seems  to  me  clear  that  in  leaving  Hinckley  now  for  a  time 
you  are  doing  what  is  best  for  the  parish. 

This  will,  I  hope,  relieve  your  mind  from  all  scruples  on  the 
score  of  duty.  A  good  soldier  stays  at  his  post  until  his  com- 
manding officer  orders  him  to  retreat.  To  refuse  to  retreat  when 
ordered  is  as  unsoldierly  as  it  is  to  run  away  when  ordered  to  stay. 

In  this  case  it  seems  to  me  that  you  ought  to  do,  as  I'egards  your 
health,  what  your  doctor  bids  you ;  and  as  regards  your  parish 
what  vour  bishop  bids  vou  do.  If  I  had  the  legal  power  I  would 
settle  the  question  for  you  bv  mlnh'it'ing  you.  If  I  had  the  oppor- 
tunity I  would  settle  it  for  you  by  placing  you  in  a  small  country 
parish  ;  but  as  at  this  moment  I  can  do  neither  of  these  things,  all 
that  I  can  do  is,  so  far  as  I  am  concerned,  to  make  your  path  as 
straight  for  you  as  I  can. 

"  I  trust  I  have  now  done  what  is  most  essential  in  such  a  case 
as  yours,  namely,  relieved  you  from  the  painful  strain  of  deliberating 
and  deciding  when  what  you  really  want  is  brain  rest,  and  that 
completelv  and  at  once. 

"  I  want  to  keep  you  in  mv  diocese  and  to  have  you  there  in 
good  health,  so  do  try  to  believe  that  the  judgment  and  wishes  of 
your  bishop,  as  well  as  those  of  your  doctor,  point  all  in  one  way, 
and  that  the  wav  of  God's  providence  for  you  at  this  moment. — 
Believe  me,  most  truly  and  gratefully  yours, 

"  W.  C.  Peterborougk." 


IS83-8S        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMEXT  187 


Mr.  Disncv  followed  the  BishojVs  advice  and  took  a  voyage  to 
Australia.  Duiing  the  Bishop's  illness  in  the  summer  he  heard 
that  a  parish,  which  he  thought  woidd  suit  Mr.  Disney,  was  likely 
to  fall  vacant.  He  was  greatly  trouhled  about  this,  as  Mr.  Disney 
was  far  away  and  could  not  be  collated  to  a  living;  and  he  felt 
that  his  own  life  was  very  precarious.  The  vacancy,  however,  did 
not  occur  till  Mr.  Disney  had  returned.  The  Bishop  was  then 
Miffering  from  the  severe  relapse  which  made  him  again  fear  that 
he  might  not  live.  He  called  me  to  his  bedside,  told  me  to  get 
the  necessary  papers  ready,  and  to  collate  Mr.  Disney  as  soon  as  I 
could.  Two  days  after  he  became  rector  of  Winwick ;  and  I  can 
scarcely  describe  the  comfort  and  relief  it  gave  to  the  Bishop  to 
feel  that  the  appointment  was  completed,  and  could  not  be  affected 
by  his  own  illness  or  death. 

To  the  Rev.  Aubrey  Towxsend. 

"Peterborough,  February  5,  1883. 

"  Dear  Towxsend, — It  was  a  great  pleasure  to  me  to  read  your 
kind  and  encouraging  letter.  The  papers,  as  usual,  magnified  my 
ailments,  but  I  have  been  a  good  deal  out  of  sorts  since  the 
beginning  of  this  year.  Fen  fever  of  a  month's  duration  weakened 
me  considerably,  and  a  chill  caught  in  travelling  brought  on  an 
attack  of  ervsipelas  in  the  head  and  face.  This  is  not  a  thing  to 
be  trifled  with,  and  I  accordingly  had  to  keep  the  house  for  some 
days.  I  am  now  decidedly  on  the  mend.  To  complete  my  cure  I 
mean  to  start  for  the  South  of  Europe  together  with  two  of  my 
daughters,  who  have  also  been  somewhat  out  of  health,  in  the  last 
week  of  this  month.  I  calculate  on  being  absent  some  six  weeks 
or  two  months  so  as  thoroughly  to  re-establish  mvself  and  them ; 
and  I  purpose  revisiting  some  of  my  old  haunts  in  Spain.  I  trust 
that  this  will  set  me  up  for  some  years  to  come.  The  malaria  of 
this  place,  however,  is  at  times  very  trying,  and  I  do  not  get 
acclimatised  to  it. 

"I  am  greatly  pleased  by  what  you  say  as  to  my  letter  on 
j)rayers  for  the  dead.  I  was  not  entirely  satisfied  with  it  myself, 
as  it  seemed  to  me  not  sufficientiv  full  and  clear  as  to  the  reason 
w  hy  our  Church  had  disused  such  prayers ;  namelv,  as  things  of 
which  '  the  abuse  had  been  so  great  that  it  could  not  be  taken 
away,  the  thing  itself  remaining,"  as  she  says  of  the  things  she  has 
disused.  I  was  not,  however,  prepared  for  the  amount  of  accept- 
ance my  utterance  has  received,  nor  for  the  small  amount  of  denun- 


188 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


ciation  it  has  brought  upon  nie.  Ten  years  ago  there  would  ha\e 
been  an  indignation  meeting  in  Leicester  to  denounce  me  for  it. 

"  I  have  looked  up  your  very  important  reference  to  the  Pnrcs 
Pr'ivatae,  and  find  no  less  than  three  Collects  for  the  dead,  and 
stronger  too  than  I  had  claimed  license  for,  actually  praying  for 
^  pardon  ' ! 

"  Pray  send  me  the  extract  from  John  Wesley  that  you  refer  to, 
and  anything  else  on  the  literature  of  the  subject  that  you  mav 
^•hance  to  come  across ;  I  may  have  yet  to  defend  my  letter  and 
should  like  to  be  forearmed. 

"  Tell  your  friend  Mr.  Hellier  how  much  his  approval  has 
gratified  me.  It  is  the  approval  of  moderate  men,  such  as  he  is, 
that  I  covet ;  and  it  is  the  approval  of  exti'eme  men  that  I  dread. 

"  I  am  amused  to  hear  of  my  '  being  thought  of  for  Canterbury  ' ; 
about  as  likely  as  my  being  thought  of  for  Grand  jNIikado  of  Japan, 
and  really  I  think  I  should  prefer  the  latter  appointment ;  I  should, 
at  least,  know  less  of  its  anxieties  and  dangers  beforehand  than  I 
do  of  the  other.  Yours  ever  affectionately, 

"  W.  C.  Peterbobougii.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

"Stoke  Dry,  February  7,  1S83. 

*'  I  heard  from  an  old  and  very  evangelical  clerical  friend,  Tow  n- 
send,  lately,  expressing  his  entire  approval  of  my  utterance  on 
prayer  for  the  dead ;  and  telling  me  that  the  President  of  some 
Wesleyan  college,  whom  he  speaks  of  as  a  man  of  learning  and 
moderation,  had  written  to  him  warmly  to  the  same  effect.  He 
referred  me  to  the  Prcces  Privatcc  of  Queen  Elizabeth  1559 — i.e., 
not  her  prayers,  but  published  with  her  authority — in  which  I 
found  three  Collects  containing  very  strong  prayers  for  dead.  I 
have  also  found  in  Bishop  Cosin  some  very  strong  and  clear  state- 
ments on  the  same  side,  so  that  I  am  furnished  with  some  fresh 
ammunition  for  any  attack  requiring  notice. 

"  The  whole  subject  is  curiously  interesting.  I  imagine  its  true 
histoiy  to  be  that  of  the  borrowing  and  baptmug  by  Christianity 
of  Jewish  and  Pagan  customs  at  a  very  early  date.  Certainly 
there  are  traces  of  it  as  a  custom  recognised  early  in  the  third 
century.  Whether  it  ought  ever  to  have  been  sanctioned  is 
another  question.  Judging  by  tlie  results  in  development  of 
doctrine  one  would  say  '  No ' ;  and  yet  what  an  unspeakable 
comfort  and  refreshment  to  mourners  on  earth  was  lost  to  us  when 


,883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTARLLSIIMENT 


\S9 


we  were  entirely  deprived  of  it.  It  is  so  natural,  so  entirely  inno- 
cent, it  does  bring  those  who  arc  gone  so  near  again,  it  does  so 
I'ealise  for  us  the  oneness  of  the  great  kingdom  of  Christ  in  alli 
time  and  place  that  I,  for  one,  have  always  lamented  its  loss,  and' 
had  one  grudge  the  more  at  the  Church  of  Rome  for  so  spotting- 
that  part  of  the  robe  of  worship  with  the  flesh  that  we  had  to 
tear  it  all  away.  By  the  way,  in  reading  up  Augustine  on  the 
.subject,  I  came  upon  one  of  his  fine  sayings  which  you  may  like  tO' 
know.  Speaking  of  the  hojjes  of  the  Christian  as  not  bounded  by 
this  life,  but  lying  largely  in  the  next,  he  says  Fiitura  provlncit  qin 
rcsurrex'it.  That  seems  to  me  very  grand.  The  idea  of  resuriec- 
tion  as  the  promise  and  germ  of  all  the  future  was  never  better  or 
more  tersely  put." 

To  Bishop  Mitchinson. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  February  22,  1883. 

"  I  have  a  great  fear  of  ordaining  ill-qualified  men.  I  have  seen 
the  results  in  more  than  one  case.  The  men  either  remain  curates- 
all  their  lives — and  a  sexagenarian  curate  with  possibly  sevei* 
children  is  a  melancholy  sight  and  discreditable  to  us — or  they  get 
]>arishes  for  the  conduct  of  which  they  are  totally  unfit,  and  where 
they  do  mischief  in  many  ways.  The  fact  is  that  our  English 
parochial  system  greatly  limits  our  choice  of  men.  In  Dissent  or 
in  Romanism  third  class  men  can  easily  be  drafted  oft'  to  thircE' 
class  places  in  the  one,  or  to  monastic  institutions  in  the  other;, 
with  us  it  is  dift'erent,  and  must  be  so  until  we  can  create,  if  we 
ever  do  so,  places  or  offices  yielding  income  side  by  side  with  the 
])arishes  in  which  we  want  a  special  order  of  men.  I  quite  feel  the 
pinch  of  each  particular  case  as  it  arises,  but  I  also  feel  that  the 
only  safe  way  of  dealing  with  these  is  on  general  principles. 

"I  quite  feel  the  force  of  all  you  say  as  to  institution  ;  the  point 
you  make  as  to  your  acting  in  Leicester  as  Fearon's  deputy  not 
mine  had  not  occurred  to  me,  but  it  is  quite  just.  I  think  your 
suggestion  that  I  should  institute  in  my  chapel  and  let  the  Arch- 
deacons induct,  gives  the  best  solution  for  the  present  of  the 
difficulty.  I  will  arrange,  until  my  return,  that  any  institution 
occuiTing  during  my  ab.sence  be  taken,  as  often  hitherto,  by  my 
Commissary  the  Canon  in  residence.  On  my  return  I  will  institute 
j)ersonally  at  Peterborough  and  in  my  absence  let  the  Commissary 
on  the  spot  act  as  before. 

"  I  hear  most  encouraging  reports  from  Northampton  of  the  late 


190 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP,  xvn 


mission  there,  for  which  Laus  Deo.  But  the  work  has  revealed 
more  clearly  than  ever  our  sad  want  of  men  to  carry  it  on.  We 
want  at  least  half  a  dozen  more  clergy  there,  and  a  dozen  active 
lay  woi'kers  and  half  a  dozen  temporary  churches.  How  greatly 
the  Church  has  suffered  by  the  dissolution  of  her  monastic  orders, 
though  they  too  had  inflicted  grievous  mischief  on  her  before  their 
destruction.  But  I  should  like  to  see  a  score  or  two  of  Ang-licau 
and  Protestant  monks,  if  such  a  composite  creation  could  exist,  at 
work  in  Northampton  and  Leicester  and  our  other  large  towns. 
"  I  go  to  Peterborough  to-aiorrow  and  to  Spain  on  28th  inst." 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxeix. 

'•  EuROPA  Hotel,  New  Mole  Parade, 

"  Gibraltar,  Monday,  March  5,  1883. 

"  It  occurs  to  me  that  you  may  not  be  unwilling  to  hear  of  our 
safe  arrival  here,  after  the  pains  and  perils  of  the  Bay. 

"  I  fear  that  our  visit  to  these  parts  is  about  three  weeks  too 
early.  It  is  blowing  a  Levanter,  and  miserably  chilly  and  east- 
windy  ;  but  this  may  change  in  a  day  or  two.  If  so,  we  meditate  a 
run  to  Tangier — only  three  hours'  steaming — just  to  say  we  have 
been  in  Africa. 

"  We  are  not  likely  to  be  dull  here  anyhow.  Civil  Engineers, 
Royal  Engineers,  majors  of  Artillery,  etc.,  all  calling  and  placing 
themselves  at  our  disposition  for  seeing  the  Rock  to  advantage. 

"  Thursday  next  I  dine  at  the  Engineer  mess,  where  I  dined  on 
the  very  same  day  of  week  and  month  thirtv-three  years  ago ! 

"  I  feel  delightfully  lazy  and  ignorant.  I  do  not  know  whether 
No.  1  is  caught,  or  Gladstone  returned,  or  Bradlaugh  affirmed,  or 
the  Deceased  Wife's  Sister  triumphant ;  nor  do  I  '  care  for  any  of 
these  things.'  The  '  Greeks,'  my  clergy,  may  beat  '  Sosthenes,' 
Bishop  Mitchinson,  until  my  return,  and  welcome.  I  am  very  jolly 
and  youi-s  affectionately,  "  W.  C.  P." 

"  Hotel  de  los  Siete  Suelos, 

"Alhambra,  Granada, 

"  Easter  Day,  1883. 

*'  You  have  not,  I  hope,  forgotten  the  guide  of  your  early  youth, 
your  Mavor's  Spelling  Book,  with  its  three  stories  at  the  end  of  it 
for  the  instruction  and  warning  of  good  boys  and  girls.  If  you 
have  not,  you  remember  the  fate  of  a  sadly  wicked  little  boy  wlio 
said  '  Don't  care '  in  3xiswer  to  every  warning  from  older  and  better 


1883-S5         ILLNESS;  DLSESTABLLSHMENT 

folk.  He  ended  his  career  bv  bein<;'  eaten  uji  by  lions  on  the  coast  of 
Africa,  where  he  had  landetl  in  one  of  his  defiant  moods.  Such 
ini2;ht  have  been  my  fate  if  landing  on  the  coast  of  Africa  in  a 
don't-care  state  of  mind  could  have  ensured  it. 

"  We  have  lately  left  Tangier,  where  we  spent  a  most  interesting 
and  healthful  ten  days  ;  it  made  no  ])art  of  our  original  progrannne, 
but  E.  longed  so  to  see  'Africa'  that  I,  nothing  loth,  set  off 
there  in  a  little  tug-boat  from  Gibraltar  on  the  10th  inst.,  and 
arrived  there  after  a  capital  passage  of  four  hours.  You  cannot 
imagine  any  change  so  startling  and  so  complete  as  leaving 
Gibraltar,  which  is  simply  AVapping  and  Woolwich  gone  south, 
and  landing  at  Tangier,  which  is  simply  Genesis  and  the  Arabian 
Nights  uniting  in  a  picnic  on  the  sea-shore  of  the  Mediterranean. 
The  town  is  purely  and  entirely  Eastern — far  more  so  than  Algiers, 
which  is  largely  French.  The  population  is  Moorish  and  Jewish, 
the  houses  Moorish  entirely,  the  streets  narrow  unpaved  lanes,  the 
shops  hutches  in  which  sit  !Moors  cross-legged,  the  market-place 
filled  with  donkeys,  camels,  ^Moorish  peasants,  Jew  pedlars, 
hnprovisatoi-i,  story-tellers,  water-carriers,  etc.,  all  exactly  as  if 
Haroun  Alraschid  was  waiting  for  you  round  each  corner.  I  met 
at  the  landing-place  all  the  patriarchs,  and  all  the  characters  of 
the  Arabian  Nights.  Joseph  and  his  brethren  fought  for  my 
hio-o-ao-e;  Mesrour  the  black  eunuch  made  a  CTab  at  our  wrai)s ; 
jNIethuselah,  who  was  old  enough  to  have  known  better,  snatched 
at  my  umbrella;  Moses  sat  in  the  gate,  calm  and  stately,  in  his 
capacity  of  custom-house  officer.  Beggars  of  all  colours,  save  white, 
begged  in  Arabic ;  donkeys  and  camels  wandered  about  pro- 
miscuously; and  we  stood,  delighted  and  amused  beyond  measure, 
under  the  guardianship  of  the  iiiter})reter  from  the  capital  French 
hotel,  where  we  presently  found  ourselves  lodged,  high  up  above 
the  town,  remote  from  smells  and  in  excellent  air.  We  spent,  as 
I  said,  a  most  enjoyable  ten  days;  saw  all  the  sights  of  the  place 
(thanks  to  the  kindness  of  our  Ambassador,  Sir  John  Hay), 
including  a  Jewish  wedding,  a  visit  to  the  Moorish  Governor's 
palace,  and,  for  my  daughters,  a  visit  to  a  ^Moorish  harem,  where 
they  sat  cross-legged  and  drank  tea  and  ate  sweetmeats  for  a  cou})le 
of  hours.  The  air,  the  change,  and  the  amusement  wrought 
AN  ondcrs  for  E.  and  me,  and  we  \\  ere  right  sorry  to  leave  it.  A\'e 
had,  however,  to  come  away  last  Tuesday,  as  the  only  good  boat 
leaves  bi-monthly.  We  got  to  ^Malaga,  my  old  quarters  of  thirty- 
five  years  ago,  on  Wednesday  last,  ^\  hen,  by  a  strange  coincidence. 


192 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


I  was  given  my  old  bed-room  !  WTiat  a  long  portion  of  my  life 
rose  up  before  me  that  night !  Next  day  we  left  for  this  place  by 
rail,  travelling  through  some  of  the  wildest  and  sternest  mountain 
scenery  I  ever  remember  to  have  seen ;  and  here  we  are  in  a  hotel 
built  into  the  very  walls  of  the  Alhambra!  We  spent  yesterday 
morning  there ;  E.  and  H.  enchanted,  and  I  almost  so  once 
again. 

"There  is  no  use  trying  to  describe  the  Alhambra  to  one  who 
has  not  seen  it.  No  description  gives  you  any  idea  of  it.  It  is, 
like  Oxford  and  Venice,  an  unique  thing  in  the  world,  and  cannot, 
therefore,  be  pictured  by  comparisons.  We  mean  to  stay  here  one 
week  and  then  start  for  Cordova,  then  to  Seville,  and  then  home  as 
we  best  may  via  Madrid.  Our  only  drawback,  and  that  is  a 
serious  one,  is  and  has  been  the  weather ;  we  have  not  had  five 
(juite  fine  days  since  we  left  home,  and  most  of  the  rest  very  bad 
ones;  however,  we  ai-e  fairly  jolly  imder  trying  cii'cumstances,  and 
hope  for  brighter  days.  "  W.  C.  P. 

"  P.S.— Where  is  Peterborough  ?  " 

"Peterborough,  May  lo,  1883. 
.  .  .  The  canonry,  not  being  a  benefice,  is  now  actually 
vacant  by  my  acceptance  of  ^Vestcott's  resignation.  Had  it  been 
a  benefice,  it  would  have  needed  a  formal  act  of  resignation  before 
a  notary  public.  Now,  will  you  take  it  ?  I  do  earnestly  trust  you 
will.  Your  doing  so  will  be  an  immense  pleasure  and  comfort  to 
me.  I  really  feel,  in  my  old  age,  entitled  to  a  few  luxuries,  and 
amonost  them  I  reckon  the  having;  near  me  an  old  friend.  I  have 
been,  all  through  my  episcopate,  much,  and  at  times  painfully, 
isolated,  and  often  envied  my  English  brother  bishops  as  I  saw 
them  one  and  all  supplied  Avith  some  Aaron  or  Hur  in  the  shape  of 
old  school  or  class  fellow  who  could  hold  up  their  hands.    I  really 

want  you  for  this  

"  I  must  attach  to  it  (the  canonry)  an  examining  chaplaincv. 
But  this  will,  I  hope,  not  be  regarded  by  you  as  too  onerous  a 
(;ondition,  helped  as  you  will  be  by  FaiTar  and  Jellett.  I  see  no 
reason  why  you  should  not  undertake  the  office,  and  a  great  many 
why  you  should ;  so  pray  tahe  it,  and  oblige  lastingly  yours  ever 
affectionately,  "W.  C.  P. 

"P.S. — You  Avill  see  that  the  circumstances  require  a  speedy 
decision  ;  but  you  really  must  say  yes," 


18S3-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  193 


"Peterborough,  June  i,  1883. 
"  I  went  to  town  last  night,  intending  to  fire  off  a  speech  in  the 
House  of  Lords  in  reply  to  Bright's  attack  on  bishops  apropos  of 
Deceased  Wife's  Sister  Bill,  and  his  indecent  introduction  of  the 
Queen's  name  into  the  dispute.  On  consultation,  however,  with 
Cairns  and  Salisbury,  I  held  my  tongue.  They  thought  that 
Brighfs  talk  hurt  no  one,  while  attacking  him  might  lose  us  a 
Liberal  vote  or  two.  The  world  has,  therefore,  lost  a  valuable 
oration,  and  I  am  saved  a  pelting  in  the  Liberal  papers." 

"Peterborough,  Jtine  3,  1883. 

"  I  have  almost  decided  on  a  speech  on  the  Cathedral  Statutes 
Bill,  which  I  think  a  very  bad  one,  and  which  comes  on  on  Tuesday 
evening  next.  But  cui  bono  ?  Is  it  worth  while  speaking  in  the 
House  of  Lords  on  any  subject You  would  say  '  Yes,'  perhaps  ; 
if  you  were  as  tired  of  the  House  of  Lords,  and  withal  as  pessi- 
mistically lazy  as  I  am,  you  would  say  '  No.' 

"  I  saw  Perowne  to-day  in  Cathedral ;  he  is  radiant  as  to  my 
promise  to  help  at  his  meetings  for  Cathedral.  Argles  tells  me 
that  Pearson,  your  architect,  was  here  all  yesterday.  He  is  dead 
for  the  Benedictine  choir,  but  says  that  tower  and  repairs  will  cost 
0^20,000 ! " 

"Athen^um  Club,  Pall  Mall,  S.W. 

"  June  5,  1883. 

"  I  have  '  gone  and  been  and  done  it.'  For  nearly  forty-five 
minutes  in  the  House  of  Lords  to-night  I  have  been  '  unpacking 
my  heart '  on  the  position  and  treatment  of  the  Church  of  England 
in  Parliament  by  all  and  sundry.  It  was  '  all  along '  of  the  Cathe- 
dral Statutes  Bill  brought  in  by  Carlisle,*  about  which  Bill  I  do 
not  care  two  pins,  and  which,  moreover,  will  never  become  law. 
But  its  introduction  in  the  House  gave  me  the  opportunity  I  have 
long  desired  to  say  my  mind  about  the  manner  in  which  all 
Governments  treat  the  Church  of  England  just  now  ;  and  also  as 
to  the  unfair  suppression  by  Dissenters  in  the  House  of  Commons 
of  all  Church  legislation.  I  said  a  few  words  against  the  Bill,  but 
I  mainly  harped  on  the  general  question.-]-  The  result  was,  as  you 
may  suppose,  every  speaker  was  down  upon  me,  from  Granville  to 
the  Bishop  of  Carlisle.  I  rather  enjoyed  the  fun  of  the  thing, 
though  I  fear  that,  more  meo,  I  made  a  leetle  too  much  fim  in  my 
speech.    You  will  see  about  half  of  the  latter  in  the  Times,  and,  I 

*  Bishop  Harvey  Goodwin.  f  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,'  p.  igi. 

VOL.  «  N 


194-  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvii 

have  no  doubt,  see  an  awful  leader  on  my  speech.  But  what  is  life 
worth  if  one  may  not  occasionally  have  a  little  fling  ? — and  I  had  it 
to-night  to  my  hearfs  content.  What  really  pleased  me  in  the 
matter  was  to  find  that  I  could  still  spcal^  and  malic  the  Lords 
listen.  Latterly  I  have  funked  speaking  there  from  the  impression 
that  my  powers  of  speech  (Avhatever  they  may  be)  were  going.  To 
my  delight  I  found  that  I  could  say  in  each  sentence  exactly  what 
I  wanted  to  say,  and  that  is  the  real  test  of  speaking.  The  House 
was  extremely  thin,  and  it  was  like  speaking  in  an  exhausted 
receiver,  but  I  held  out  to  the  end.  How  I  shall  catch  it  now  in 
all  the  papers  !  High,  Low,  Broad,  WTiig  and  Tory  and  Radical, 
and  also  all  Nonconformist ;  that  is  if  business  of  other  kind  is 
slack  enough  (as  I  fear  it  is  j  ust  now)  to  allow  of  their  going  in  at 
me.  But  what  an  immortal  thing  is  himibug !  Every  bishop 
there  declared  his  belief  in  the  fairness  and  good-will  of  the  House 
of  Commons  to  the  Church  ;  and  every  one  of  them  knew  well  to 
the  contrary.  I  think,  however,  that  I  did  speak  some  goodly 
doctrine  and  '  wholesome  for  these  times,"  nevertheless,  and  I  shall 
be  pelted  accordingly. 

"  I  am  glad  you  are  coming  in  to  residence  on  Saturday.  I 
return  home  to-morrow  and  do  not  leave  till  Monday  for  Deceased 
Wife's  Sister,  who  is  going,  I  fear,  to  carry  the  day.  Like  the 
importunate  widow,  'by  her  continual  coming  she  hath  wearied 
us." 

"  Cantuar  spoke  to-night  moderately,  sweetly  and  well ;  though 
against  me,  I  was  glad  to  hear  him.  "  W.  C.  P." 

I  went  to  Peterborough  as  Canon  residentiary  in  June,  and  as 
the  Bishop  was  still  residing  at  the  Palace,  we  enjoyed  continual 
personal  intercourse.  He  seemed  in  more  than  usual  health  and 
vigour  of  mind ;  and  we  all  regarded  him  as  thoroughly  renovated 
by  his  Spanish  trip,  and  never  dreamed  of  the  dangerous  break- 
down that  was  so  near  at  hand,  and  ^  hich  made  a  gap  of  nearly 
a  year  in  his  public  life. 

On  June  28  and  29  he  held  his  usual  annual  meeting,  at  the 
Palace,  of  his  archdeacons,  rural  deans,  and  other  diocesan  officers, 
and  then  went  to  London. 

On  the  evening  of  Wednesday,  July  4,  he  rejoined  his  family  at 
Stoke  Dry.  That  night  he  was  taken  ill,  and  the  next  day  he 
called  in  Mr.  Duke  (of  Great  Easton),  and  soon  afterwards  sent 
for  his  old  friend  and  medical  adviser,  in  Peterborough,  Dr.  Walker. 


:SS3-85         ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  195 


His  illness  developed  into  an  acute  attack  of  peritonitis,  and  before 
many  days  his  life  was  despaired  of. 

On  Saturday,  July  28,  I  administered  the  Holy  Communion  to 
him  and  his  family.  We  all  believed  then,  and  he  believed  him- 
self, that  he  was  dying.  His  mind  was  clear  and  his  voice  strong 
as  usual,  and  when  he  grasped  my  hand  he  said,  "  Farewell,  my 
brother — my  more  than  brother  " ;  precious  words,  never  to  be  for- 
gotten by  me,  till  we  meet  again. 

The  next  evening,  when  they  were  watching  his  bedside,  his  wife 
perceived  a  faint  return  of  colour.  Slight  as  it  was  it  inspired  her 
with  hope,  and  it  proved  to  be  the  first  symptom  of  recovery,  the 
first  sign  that  the  tide  of  life,  Avhich  seemed  to  have  ebbed  for  ever, 
was  beginning  to  flow  again. 

Slowly  but  steadily  he  began  to  recover,  and  on  September  27 
he  was  brought  back  in  an  invalid  carriage  to  Peterborough. 

Dui'ing  this  trying  and  often  painful  illness  no  one  heard  from 
him  a  murmur  or  an  impatient  word,  and  he  was  always  full  of 
consideration  for  others,  e.g.,  on  a  wet  day  giving  directions  to  send 
a  covered  carriage  for  Dr.  Walker. 

When  he  was  convalescent  I  heard  him  more  than  once  say,  "  I 
had  both  feet  in  the  grave,  and  God  brought  me  up  out  of  it 
again." 

It  was  a  strange  contrast,  the  way  in  which  he  deliberately 
prepared  for  what  he  and  all  regarded  as  inevitable  death  with  the 
manner  in  which  eight  years  later  he  passed  away  contrary  to  the 
expectations  of  his  family  and  friends.  We  might  apply  to  him 
the  words  of  the  poet — 

IV e  thought  him  dying  when  he  slept. 
And  sleeping  when  he  died. 

In  this  case  God  c  ertainly  heard  and  answered  the  prayers  of  His 
Church,  and  added  nearly  eight  years  to  his  life  and  more  than 
seven  years  of  active  public  usefulness. 

And  now  let  me  say  a  few  words  upon  a  more  delicate  subject. 
I  have  a  great  horror  of  the  unfeeling  way  in  which  many  intrude 
into  the  chamber  of  sickness  and  of  death,  and  report  detached 
sayings,  and  pass  crude  and  partial  judgments  upon  the  characters 
of  the  sufferers.  Yet,  as  a  biographer,  I  feel  it  is  my  duty  not  to 
be  quite  silent  in  such  a  case.  I  had  been  in  constant  attendance 
upon  him  during  all  the  worst  and  most  hopeless  phases  of  his 
illness.    He  made  me  on  almost  every  visit,  when  his  illness  per- 


196 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


mitted,  read  with  him  the  Confession  in  our  Communion  Service, 
and  pronoimce  the  Absolution  in  that  service.  At  times  he  un- 
burdened his  mind  to  me,  and  always  spoke  in  full  expectation 
that  his  end  was  very  near.  The  one  striking  point  on  all  such 
occasions  was  the  sensitiveness  of  his  conscience  and  his  deep  con- 
viction of  sinfulness,  notwithstanding  the  absence  of  anything  that 
would  to  the  outside  spectator  seem  to  warrant  such  a  conscious- 
ness. He  was  just  the  opposite  of  the  iron,  immovable  man  for 
whom,  in  his  firm  discharge  of  duty,  he  was  often  mistaken.  One 
of  his  most  ardent  wishes  was  that  he  should  die  at  peace  with 
all  men. 

He  Avas  conscious  that  he  had  deeply  offended  three  persons,  of 
whose  high  character  and  good  intentions  there  could  be  no  doubt ; 
and  though  he  still  believed  that  in  the  main  he  was  right  in  the 
points  of  difference  between  them,  he  took  no  refuge  in  this  plea, 
but  made  me  write  to  them,  himself  dictating  the  substance  of  the 
letters,  and  craving  their  forgiveness  for  any  word  or  act  of  which 
he  had  been  guilty,  inconsistent  with  charity. 

His  sense  of  sinfulness  only  deepened  his  faith  in  Christ.  He 
turned  from  the  prospect  within  to  rest  in  Him  who  was  perfect. 
But  he  dreaded  doing  or  saying  anything  unworthy  of  his  Chris- 
tian profession  and  his  high  office.  One  day,  when  I  used  in  our 
prayers  the  Avords  of  the  Burial  Service,  "  Suffer  us  not  at  our  last 
hour  for  any  pains  of  death  to  fall  from  Thee,"  he  dwelt  upon  these 
words  and  said,  "  How  often  have  I  read  those  words,  and  yet  I 
never  felt  their  full  meaning  till  now." 

The  first  letter  written  after  his  convalescence  was  the  following 
to  his  friend  Henry  Jellett,  who  had  hurried  over  from  Ireland  in 
July  to  visit  him  at  Stoke  Dry,  when  his  illness  had  assumed  such 
an  alarming  character : 

To  Rev.  H.  Jellett. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  September  8,  1883. 
**  Dearest  old  Friend, — Yom-  last  letter  was  a  real  '  time  of 
refreshment  to  me  from  the  Lord.'  It  did  so  comfort  and  lift  me 
up.  Truly  it  is  so  hard  for  us  to  believe  in  the  real  joy  in  heaven 
over  the  returning  sinner,  that  the  joy  of  earthly  friends  over  the 
restored  sufferer  is  a  help  to  us  to  realise  it.  I  cannot  but  humbly 
hope  that  God  has  still  some  work  for  me  to  do  for  Him  in  this 
world,  and  that  He  is  fitting  me  for  it  by  chastening.  At  any  rate 
there  is  a  prayer  of  St.  Augustine's  always  in  my  ears  that  should 


,883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  197 


include  all  I  dare  to  ask,  '  Hie  me  ccede,  modo  ibi  parcas ' !  You 
will  be  glad  to  hear  that  the  doctors  report  me  as  making  decided 
though  slow  progress.  I  have  got  on  to  solid  meat  twice  a  day, 
and  get  moved  about  occasionally  in  a  kind  of  tricycle  chair  of  a 
very  luxurious  kind.  Thank  dear  Minna  for  her  kind  and  pleasant 
letter.  This  is  my  first  holograph  letter  since  I  took  ill.  I  cannot 
make  it  a  long  one.  God  bless  you,  dearest  friend. — Yours  ever 
lovingly,  "W.  C.  P." 

But  the  hopes  of  his  complete  recovery  were  to  receive  a  rude 
shock.  On  October  20  there  came  another  relapse.  It  proved  a 
very  severe  and  anxious  illness;  but,  happily,  after  about  three 
weeks  it  took  a  more  favourable  turn,  and  on  November  12  he  was 
able  to  come  downstairs  again.  But  his  hopes  of  returning  to 
active  work  seemed  now  indefinitely  postponed.  He  took  his  first 
change  early  in  December,  in  a  visit  to  his  friend  Canon  Argles,  at 
Barnack,  which  was  within  an  easy  drive  of  Peterborough.  He 
returned  home  on  his  sixty-second  birthday,  December  17,  1883, 
and  on  Christmas  Day  returned  public  thanks  in  the  cathedral  for 
his  recovery. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Peterborough,  Christmas  Day,  December  1SS3. 
"  Many  happy  returns  of  this  happy  time  to  you  and  yours,  my 
dear  MacDonnell.  You  may  well  suppose  what  a  happy  and  a  thank- 
ful Christmastide  it  is  to  us  here.  To-day,  for  the  first  time  for 
the  last  six  months,  I  received  the  Holy  Communion  in  the  cathedi'al, 
and  all  my  family  with  me.  lb  was  a  solemn  joy  to  do  so.  God 
grant  me  grace  to  give  myself  to  Him  in  fuller  and  tx'uer  sacrifice 
henceforth  in  the  doing  of  whatever  work  He  has  still  for  me  to  do. 
Your  account  of  the  ordination  was  very  satisfactory.  I  had  a  few 
lines  to  the  same  effect  this  morning  from  Bishop  Mitchinson. 
We  go,  please  God,  to  Woi-thing  to-morrow  week.  My  address 
there  will  be.  Beach  House,  Worthing.  To  which  address  write  me 
710  letters  on  business  that  you  can  avoid.  Meanwhile,  with  all  best 
Christmas  and  New  Year's  wishes  for  you  and  your  wife  from  me 
and  mine,  ever  yours  affectionately,       "  W.  C.  Peterborough.''' 

From  F.  B.  Meyer. 

5  Lincoln  Street,  Leicester. 
My  Lord, — I  am  a  Nonconformist  minister,  one  of  the  seven  tliat 
had  the  honour  to  present  you  witli  the  address  of  welcome  at  the 


198 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


Leicester  Church  Congress.  I  naturally  regard  questions  of  Church 
polity  from  a  very  different  standpoint  to  that  occupied  by  yourself ; 
but  I  do  feel  smcerely  and  heartily  glad  that  it  has  pleased  our 
heavenly  Father  to  restore  you  to  some  measure  of  health  after  your 
severe  and  long-continued  illness.  On  more  than  one  occasion  I  led 
my  congregation  at  Melbourne  Hall  in  earnest  prayer  for  your  recovery 
and  for  the  support  and  comfort  of  those  dearest  to  you.  I  for  one 
believe  that  every  part  of  Christ's  Church  gains  by  the  strength  of 
ever}'  other  part ;  and  we  can  ill  afford  to  lose  such  an  earnest  main- 
tainer  of  our  common  faith  as  you  have  been  in  these  days  of  encroach- 
ing infidelity.  I  hope  you  will  not  think  that  I  am  intruding  or  taking 
a  liberty.  I  have  written  just  what  I  feel.  Hoping  that  you  may  long 
be  sjjared,  I  remain^  yours  respectfully,  F.  B.  Meyer. 

To  the  Lord  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Beach  House,  Worthing, 

'^January  6,  1884. 

"  I  think  you  will  like  to  hear  how  we  fared  on  our  journey  here, 
and  how  Ave  are  getting  on  since  our  arrivaL  I  had  a  most  pros- 
perous journey,  weather  good,  and  very  little  fatigue.  We  stayed 
one  night  in  London,  and  I  called  on  Andrew  Clark  cn  route  next 
dav.  He  declared  himself  surprised  at  my  appearance,  a.nd  said 
that  but  for  my  leanness  he  Avould  not  have  thought  me  looking  at 
all  the  invalid.  In  talking  over  my  illness  he  told  me  that  in  all 
his  long  and  extensive  practice  he  had  never  seen  a  man  so  near 
death  who  recovered  as  I  did.  He  attributes  my  recovery  mainly 
to  brain  and  nerve  power,  the  heart  he  said  being  distressingly  weak. 
He  advises  some  mental  effort  ere  long  as  tending  to  complete 
restoration — not  business  but  compositionsvxiimg  or  speaking  of 
some  sort. 

"  My  wife  and  I  got  here  on  Thursday  night,  the  rest  of  the 
family  having  preceded  us  the  day  before.  AVe  were  agreeably 
svu'prised  by  the  size  of  the  house  and  the  attractiveness  of  the 
place.  It  is  quite  the  best  house  in  Worthing,  standing  in  its  own 
grounds,  and  with  only  the  lawn  and  a  low  sea  wall  between  us  and 
the  sea.  The  weather  until  to-day  was  foggy  and  depressing.  To- 
day the  sun  is  shining  brightly,  and  it  is  almost  May.  Oui-  only 
drawback  as  yet  is  my  poor  dear  wife's  health.  She  has  had  now 
nearly  a  fortnight,  off"  and  on,  of  her  terrible  migraine,  which  she 
cannot  yet  shake  off".  The  fact  is  she  is  only  now  feeling  fully  the 
reaction  after  the  long  and  cruel  strain  on  mind  and  body  of  the 


1883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  199 


last  six  months.  I  trust,  however,  that  the  perfect  quiet  and  rest 
of  this  place  will  ere  long  set  her  up  again.  Each  post  brings  me 
about  a  dozen  of  replies  from  the  clergy  to  my  pastoral,  all  of  them 
of  a  most  affectionate  and  filial  kind. 

"I  think  of  making  my  first  re-entrance  into  public  life  by 
attending,  just  for  one  afternoon,  the  bishops'  meeting  at  Lambeth 
on  February  11,  next.  I  should  like  to  see  how  my  brethren  fare, 
'  and  to  take  their  pledges.' " 

"Beach  House,  Worthing, 

"  Fehmary  17,  1884. 

"This  is  not  about  the  diocese,  wor  about  ordinations.  It  is 
about  sermons,  namely,  my  own.  I  have  had  some  thought  of 
spending  my  enforced  leisure  here  in  collecting  and  correcting 
some  of  the  many  printed  sermons  of  mine  that  are  floating  about 
the  country,  and  publishing  them  in  one  volume.  They  are  most 
of  them  printed  from  reporter's  notes  of  my  extempore  utterances 
— and  verv  imperfect  and  incorrect,  for  the  most  part,  these  reports 
are.  Still,  I  think  that  with  pains  I  might  make  something 
respectable  out  of  them  ;  and  perhaps  tm-n  an  honest  penny  by 
them,  which,  for  a  man  who  is  nearly  dfi'lSOO  the  wrong  side  of 
his  accounts,  is  a  consideration.  Hitherto  the  piratical  publishers 
have  made  all  the  pennies ;  and  I  feel  a  little  like  the  fat  sailor, 
who,  when  the  shipwrecked  crew,  of  whom  he  was  one,  proposed 
cutting  slices  off  his  fatter  parts,  made  no  objection  to  this,  but 
jjlcaded  the  reasonableness  of  his  being  allowed  tlw  first  slice  for 
himself'. 

"  I  have,  however,  after  reading  over  some  of  these  sermons,  a 
great  doubt  as  to  whether  they  are  worth  publishing.  A  spoken 
sermon  seldom  reads  well.  It  cannot  and  ought  not  to  be  as  full 
of  matter,  or  as  flowing  in  diction,  as  the  written  one  ;  and  I  fear 
that  the  disjecta  membra  of  mine  that  I  can  rescue  from  the 
reporters  will  prove,  even  when  clothed  by  me  as  decentiv  as 
possible,  rather  thin  and  shabby  aff'airs.  I  want  you,  like  a  really 
honest  Gil  Bias,  to  deal  with  your  Archbishop  of  Malaga  in  the 
way  of  candid  critic.  You  need  not  fear  my  vanity  being  woimded 
by  anything  you  say,  for  I  do  really  and  honestly  doubt  if  any 
one  ever  has  a  worse  opinion  of  my  discom'ses  than  I  have  myself 
after  I  have  delivered  them.  So,  if  vou  are  willing,  I  will  first 
collect  what  I  think  may  make  a  decent  octavo  volume,  and  then 
send  the  collection  to  you  ;  and  I  want  you  to  tell  me : 

"(1)  Ai'e  the  ideas  of  the  sermons  worth  giving  to  the  world? 


200 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  (2)  Can  tliey  be  so  recast  in  some  cases,  improved  and  polished 
in  others,  as  to  pass  muster  with  the  critics  ? — who  may  possibly  like 
to  cat  up  a  bishop  if  he  gives  them  the  chance.  I  think  of  calling 
them  either  Occasional  Sermons  or  Sermons  preached  on  Special 
Occasions ;  and  I  think  of  publishing  the  best  of  these,  e.g., 
Norwich,  Dublin,  St.  Paul's,  &c.  I  am  not  very  keen  on  the 
business.  But  my  wife  '  is  stirring  me  up,'  like  a  worthy  and 
excellent  Jezebel  as  she  is ;  and  the  idea  of  ^6*50  from  some 
publisher,  which  woukl  just  buy  me  a  nice  gold  watch  and  chain,* 
does  rise  sweetly  before  my  imagination.    So  tell  me 

"  First,  what  you  think  of  this  idea  ? 

"  Secondly,  will  you  be  my  Gil  Bias  in  the  way  I  suggest  ?  " 

"  Worthing,  February  28,  1884. 

"I  have  just  returned  from  a  most  pleasant  and  entertaining  visit 
to  Burgon  and  his  cathedral.  He  was  in  great  force  and  at  his 
best — hospitable,  affectionate,  anecdotic  and  amusing  in  the  last 
degree.  The  Bishop  was  from  home,  but  we  saw  his  house  and 
grounds,  both  old  and  interesting ;  the  cathedral  small  but  very 
good  for  its  size,  and  with  some  good  monuments,  and  also  some 
tablets  of  Flaxman — the  latter  very  pretty,  with  the  prettiness  of 
Flaxman,  and  no  more. 

"  I  suppose  that  about  this  time  Graham's  battle  with  Osman 
Digma  is  over,  and  that  we  have  killed  a  hecatomb  of  Arab 
savages,  with  M  hom  we  are  not  at  war,  and  lost  too  many  English 
soldiers  (if  we  have  lost  only  one)  in  a  wi'etched  attempt  to  retrieve 
the  prestige  of  the  Liberal  Ministry.  Oh  for  an  hour  of  Palmers- 
ton,  or  even  of  Beaconsfield !  But  we  are  governed  now  not  by 
Statesmen,  but  by  politicians.    AVorse  luck  for  us  ! " 

"Worthing,  March  29,  1884. 
"I  write  in  haste,  just  starting  for  town.  What  sad  news  of 
Duke  of  Albany  !  I  shall  have  to  make  some  allusion  to  the  event 
in  my  sermon  to-morrow.  How  strange  it  is,  that  this  should  be 
the  fourth  occasion  whew  I  have  suddenly  been  called  on  thus  to 
interpolate  in  a  sermon  of  mine,  preached  either  before  royalty  or 
ill  a  royal  peculiar — the  Emperor  of  Russia,  Lady  A.  Stanley,  her 
husband,  and  now  Prince  Leopold.    I  am  becoming  a  death  beU!"" 

*  His  watch  and  chain  had  been  stolen  from  him  in  his  visit  to  Spain.  The 
wives  and  daughters  of  the  clergy  surprised  him  on  his  return  to  Peterborough 
by  presenting  him  with  a  gold  watch  to  replace  that  which  he  had  lost. 


1 883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  201 


"  Garlant's  Hotel,  Suffolk  Strf.et, 

"March  31,  1884. 

"  You  may  like  to  know  how  we  have  fared  in  our  London  visit. 
It  has  succeeded  beyond  my  expectations  in  effecting  exactly  what 
I  wanted,  without  undue  strain  on  health  and  strength. 

"  The  death  of  the  Duke  of  Albany,  requiring,  as  it  did,  some 
sentences  of  obituary  notice  to  be  suddenly  woven  into  my  sermon, 
proved  a  troublesome  addition  to  my  preparation,  and  compelled 
me  to  sit  up  late  and  sleep  little  on  Saturday  night.  The  sermon 
on  Sunday  took  a  good  deal  out  of  me.  I  was  nervous  and  anxious 
and  full  of  thoughts  as  to  past  ten  months,  since  I  had  last  preached. 
However,  all  tell  me  that  I  showed  no  signs  of  this.  I  caught  no 
cold,  and  only  suffered  a  second  sleepless  night.  This  evening  I 
went  to  the  House  of  Lords  to  hear  the  speeches  of  Granville  and 
Salisbury  in  moving  and  seconding  the  votes  of  condolence  on  Duke 
of  Albany's  death.  Granville  was  below  the  occasion ;  Salisbmy 
fairly  equal  to  it ;  neither  at  all  rose  to  it.  But  the  House  of 
Lords  is  not  an  assembly  where  rising  to  occasions  is  easy.  Govern- 
ment were  afterwards  sharply  assailed  by  Salisbury  on  Egyjjtian 
affairs.  But  Granville  maintained  an  absolute  and  almost  a  sullen 
silence.  Government  are  evidently  at  their  wits'  end,  and  do  not 
know  what  to  say.  Gordon  may  cost  them  their  places  yet.  I 
hear  that  a  dissolution  is  generally  expected  in  June.  I  was  quite 
sm'prised  and  overcome  by  my  kind  reception  by  the  peers.  More 
than  a  score  of  them,  some  quite  unknown  to  me,  came  to  welcome 
me  back,  and  say  kind  things  on  my  return." 

"  Beach  House,  Worthing, 

"  May  4,  1884. 

"  We  hope  to  leave  this  to-morrow — my  wife  and  family  for  Peter- 
borough, I  for  London,  where  I  mean  to  stay  the  night,  to  see 
Hassard  on  Monday  about  mv  '  case '  against  the  Ecclesiastical 
Commissioners. 

"  Not  that  I  expect  anything  w  ill  come  out  in  my  favour.  Cor- 
porations of  all  kinds  sooner  or  later  set  up  a  branch  office  on  the 
road  between  Jerusalem  and  Joicho,  and  compel  their  unfortunate 
victims  to  do  business  with  them  there. 

"  We  are  all  of  us  sorry  to  leave  this  quiet  peaceful  sunny  little 
place  which  has  done  me  such  a  world  of  good. 

"  I  hear  frequently  now  from  Pownall  and  am  much  struck  by 
the  quiet  good  sense  and  terseness  of  his  letters.  He  writes  better 
than  he  speaks. 


202 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvii 


"  I  wish  his  bishop  could  do  the  same  ! 

"  The  writing  in  of  scrappy  bits  into  my  detestable  sermons  has 
been  a  sore  thorn  in  the  flesh  to  me ;  and  spite  of  all  my  attempts  at 
altering  their  dress  and  complexion,  there  is  a  teixible  family  like- 
ness pervading  all  these  children  of  mine. 

"  However,  as  regards  the  purchasers  of  the  volume,  I  can  only 
say  \\  hat  old  Fay,  my  predecessor  in  St.  Thomas'  curacy,  used  to 
when  he  was  told  that  the  congregation  could  not  hear  him,  '  I 
protest,  sir,  that  is  their  affair,''  " 

"Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"May  II,  1884. 

"  We  came  out  to  this,  our  Patmos,  yesterday,  and  found  it  all 
in  very  nice  order.  The  weather  yesterday  and  to-day  summer- 
like. It  will  be  a  long  time  ere  we  take  up  residence  in  the  palace 
again. 

"  You  may  suppose  what  I  felt  on  returning  to  the  scene  of  my 
long  sufferings  and  all  but  death.  It  was  a  solemn  and  I  trust  not 
unprofitable  moment  for  me  as  I  looked  round  the  room,  and  on 
the  bed  where  I  had  lain  between  death  and  life  and  had  taken 
leave  of  my  childaen.  I  hardly  realised,  until  my  return  here,  all 
that  had  passed  then  and  since.  Walker  saw  and  overhauled  me 
on  Friday  last,  and  reports  me  '  perfectly  sound,'  though  still  re- 
quiring watchfulness  as  to  diet  and  work. 

"  We  had  a  great  sensation  on  Friday  at  Peterborough  in  the 
Infirmary  fire.  No  one  happily  was  hui't,  but  it  was  a  naiTow 
escape  for  the  patients.  "  W.  C.  P.*" 

June  26,  1884. 

My  Lord^ —  ....  You  will  be  pleased  to  learn  that  amongst  the 
many  who  had  been  much  concerned  about  you  during  your  long  and 
trying  illness  there  was  in  my  ])arish  a  poor  widow  who  lifted  up  her 
heart  to  God  on  your  behalf,  and  who  believes  that  owing  to  her  inter- 
cessions you  have  been  given  back  to  your  friends  and  diocese.  In  the 
course  of  conversation  she  told  me  that  very  soon  after  your  appoint- 
ment to  the  See  of  Peterborough  you  preached  at  St.  Paul's  Cathedral, 
London.  She  attended  that  service  in  a  most  depressed  state  of  inind. 
Trials  and  bereavements  had  made  her  inconsolable,  spite  of  all  efforts 
to  comfort  her ;  but  your  sermon  liad  the  desired  effect ;  it  came  liome 
to  her  heart  with  power,  so  much  so  that  she  left  the  church  as  if  she 
had  never  been  troubled  at  all,  and  from  that  day  to  this  she  has  been 
able  to  live  in  faith  and  to  walk  trustfully.  To  this  day  she  remembers 
both  text  and  subject  very  gratefully,  and  will  I  daresay  to  tlie  end  of 


1883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  203 


lier  life.  She  added,  "  I  prayed.  Oh  Lord,  may  it  please  Thee  to 
restore  the  good  Bishop  of  Peterborough  that  he  may  be  able  to  give 
snch  comfort  to  many  others  as  he  has  been  instrumental  m  giving  to 
me.    Do  answer  my  supplication,  for  Jesus  Christ's  sake." 

Such  were  Mrs.   's  expressed  sentiments ;  and  I  thought  you 

might  like  to  hear  about  them. — I  remain,  my  lord,  yours  very  truly, 

VV.   L.  ROSEDALE. 

«  Laus  Deo  !  "  W.  C.  P." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"  September  2,  1884. 

"  I  have  just  received  an  ample  peccavi  from  T  . 

"  I  have,  of  course,  accepted  it  without  any  '  criticisms.''  I  always 
do  so  in  like  cases. 

"  My  maxims  in  governing  are,  1st,  never  hit  if  you  can  avoid 
it ;  2nd,  when  you  do  hit,  smash  ;  3rd,  when  the  smashed  man 
admits  that  he  is  smashed,  then  apply  the  plaster  of  forgiveness 
and  civility. 

"  I  find  that  the  first  rule  prevents  many  quarrels.  The  second 
secures  victory  when  you  do  fight,  and  teiTifies  other  possible  com- 
batants.   The  third  secures  peace  after  war. 

"  AVe  are  enjoying  this  little  Zoar  of  ours  greatly.  The  junior 
members  of  the  family  have  caught  the  lawn  tennis  fever  of  these 
parts  in  a  very  acute  form,  and  either  are  giving  or  going  to  tennis 
parties  everv  dav  in  the  week. 

"  I  am  gradually  getting  into  harness  again,  preaching  here  and 
there  (quietly  and  tentatively  and  none  the  worse  for  it  as  yet. 

"  If  only  I  can  stand  the  winter  here  I  shall  do  well,  physically 
and  financially. 

"  I  see  that  Isbister  announces  a  second  thousand  of  the  sermons 
as  '  now  readv  ' ! 

"  This  looks  healthy  and  is  more  than  I  had  anticipated." 

"  Stoke  Dry,  October  i,  1884. 
"  Keep  the  enclosed  as  the  ajjple  of  your  eye.    I  have  but  this 
one  copy.    I  am  asking  for  more,  but  do  not  know  if  I  can  get 
them. 

"You  will  see  that  the  special  subjects  on  the  papers  are  for 
1886.  But  this  is  in  order  to  allow  of  all  the  bishops  coming  into 
line  by  that  date. 

"  We,  of  course,  can  have  the  same  subjects  in  1885. 


204 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  I  see  that  the  whole  episcopate  have  adopted  the  scheme  ex- 
cepting Sodor  and  Man. 

"  I  regard  this  as  one  of  the  greatest  successes  of  niy  life.  Ten 
years  ago  I  started  the  idea  with  Westcott  in  my  study  and  I  have 
been  pressing  it  on  steadily  ever  since. 

"  I  see  I  have  omitted  to  notice  that  Oxford  stands  out  still. 
The  Don  prejudices  are  almost  invincible  in  Oxford. 

"  But  practically  the  episcopate  are  agreed,  and  the  advantages 
of  the  scheme  will  ere  long  be  so  apparent  that  none  will  wish  to 
break  it  up,  provided  the  chaplains  and  heads  of  theological  col- 
leges do  not  try  to  improve  it  and  worry  the  bishops  with  fads.  If 
they  do,  there  will  be  a  speedy  end  of  the  whole  thing. 

"  w.  c.  p." 

The  following  bishops  agreed  to  the  subjoined  arrangements 
respecting  ordination  examinations  : 

The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  the  Archbishop  of  Yoi'k,  the  Bishops 
of  London,  Dm-ham,  Winchester,  Norwich,  Bangor,  Gloucester  and 
Bristol,  St.  Albans,  Hereford,  Peterborough,  Lincoln,  Salisbury,  Carlisle, 
Exeter,  Bath  and  Wells,  Manchester,  Chichester,  St.  Asaph,  Ely,  St. 
David's,  Rochester,  Lichfield,  Liverpool,  Newcastle,  Truro,  Llandaff, 
Chester,  Southwell,  Ripon. 

ARRANGEMENTS. 

1.  That  the  same  Special  Subjects  for  Examination  be  required  from 

Candidates  for  Deacon's  Orders  in  the  Old  Testament,  New 
Testament,  Ecclesiastical  History,  and  Latin. 

2.  That  the  General  Subjects  of  the  Bishop's  Examination  be — 

(a)  The  Contents  of  the  Bible  ; 

(6)  The  Creeds  and  XXXIX.  Articles  (Histoiy,  Text,  and 

Subject-matter) ; 
(c)  The  Prayer  Book  (History  and  Contents). 

3.  That  the  Special  Subjects  for  each  year's  Examination  be  agreed 

upon  by  a  Joint  Committee,  consisting  of  four  Bishops  (the 
Bishops  of  Durham,  Winchester,  Gloucester  and  Bristol,  and 
Chester)  and  foiu-  Members  of  the  Council  of  Management  of 
the  Preliminarv'  Examination. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Stoke  Dry,  October  28,  1884. 
"  I  spent  a  very  interesting  and  on  the  \\  hole  a  very  encouraging 
time  in  Northampton.    I  preachctl  t\^'ice — once  on  Sunday  at  the 


1883-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLLSHMENT  205 


dedication  of  St.  Crispin's,  and  once  on  Sunday  at  St.  Sepulchre's, 
It  certainly  was  a  great  fact  to  see  250  hond-fide  Northampton 
shoemakers  filling  neax'ly  half  the  new  church  ;  and  to  have  pointed 
out  to  me  chiu'chwai'dens  and  committee-men,  zealous  Churchmen 
and  communicants,  who  two  years  ago  were  fierce  Bradlaughites 
and  infidels. 

"  I  talked  with  one  of  these.  I  shall  not  easily  forget  the  quiet 
earnestness  and  modesty  of  the  man,  nor  the  way  he  spoke  of  his 
conversion  through  hearing  a  sermon  on  '  the  Prodigal  Son.'  It 
was  '  that,'  he  said,  '  that  did  it.'  I  felt  at  the  moment  what  a 
divine  unending  power  there  is  in  that  great  word  of  Christ.  How 
mightier  than  all  our  words  and  deeds  !  How  often  in  the  world's 
history  has  that  word,  "  I  will  arise  and  go  to  my  Father,"  moved 
hearts  that  nothing  else  could  move 

"  I  had  the  opportunity  of  a  long  and  full  discussion  with 
Thornton  as  to  the  future  ritual  of  St.  Crispin's  and  St.  Sepulchre's. 
It  was  thoroughly  straightforward  on  his  part,  and  quite  satisfactory 
in  its  conclusion.  He  has  much  pressuie  to  resist  from  his  own 
side,  and  much  attack  and  denunciation  to  endure  from  the  other. 

"  Not  one  of  the  ultra-evangelical  clergy  came  to  the  opening  of 
St.  Crispin's,  and  I  have  been  attacked  by  both  clergy  and  laity  of 
that  partv  about  the  doctrine  and  ritual  of  St.  Sepulchre's.  I  have 
taken  no  notice  of  the  attacks,  but  have  quietly  made  a  concordat 
with  Thornton  as  regards  the  things  complained  of,  and  told  him 
that  so  long  as  he  keeps  within  this  I  will  uphold  him. 

"  I  am  none  the  worse  for  my  work  at  Northampton,  and  have 
now  a  three  weeks'  rest  before  the  Northampton  confirmation. 
Monday  next  I  go  to  Addington  to  stay  with  the  Archbishop 
until  Thursday ;  Monday  week  to  the  episcopal  caucus  at  Danbury. 
You  and  your  missus  must  come  to  us  after  these  wanderings  are 
over.  "  W.  C.  P. 

"  P.S. — I  picked  up  last  week  a  mot  of  mine  which  I  had  for- 
gotten and  which  may  amuse  you. 

"  Wales  declares  that  on  one  occasion  when  travelling  with  me, 
he  remarked  that  my  robes  were  getting  soiled.  To  which  I 
replied :  '  Well,  it  is  a  comfort  that  I  have  my  laundress  (lawn 
dress)  with  me  ! ' 

*' Score  me  one  for  that." 

"  Stoke  Dry,  December  13,  1884. 
"  When  we  meet  on  Wednesday,  the  17th,  I  shall  have  on  that 
day  entered  on  my  64th  year. 


206 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvn 


"  Who  would  have  thought  this  possible  last  year  ! 
"  God's  mercy,  both  in  chastening  and  in  healing,  has  been  very 
great. 

"  How  small,  in  the  presence  of  last  year''s  memories,  seem  our 
pi'esent  troubles  and  contentions ! 

"  God  give  us  all  grace  to  remember  that  it  is  the  '  unseen 
things '  that  are  eternal,  and  these  visible  and  tangible  cares  and 
wonies  temporary  only  !  *'  W.  C.  P." 

To  Rev,  A.  F.  Ayxward. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"December  21,  1884. 

"  I  have  no  hesitation  in  giving  you  my  j  udgment  in  the  affir- 
mative as  regards  the  return  to  the  practice  of  Evening  Communion 
in  your  church ;  and  strongly  and  decidedly  in  the  negative  as 
regards  the  use  of  unfermented  wine  in  the  Holy  Communion  on 
any  occasion.  The  former  is  a  question  of  expediency  ;  the  latter 
a  question  of  principle.  Evening  Communions  are  not,  I  think,  at 
all  desirable,  and  are  rarely  if  ever  really  necessary.  But  where  they 
have  been  the  practice,  and  where  estrangement  from  the  Communion 
might  be  the  result  of  abolishing  them,  I  see  no  such  sinfulness  or 
illegality  in  them  as  should  prevent  their  continuance,  at  least  until 
you  should  have  taught  your  people  to  prefer  the  better  way. 

"  As  regards  the  use  of  unfermented  Avine  in  the  Eucharist,  the 
case  is  entirely  different.  Its  use  is,  in  my  judgment,  illegal,  the 
Church  commanding  '  wine ''  and  not  syrup  to  be  used.  It  is  at 
any  rate  contrary  to  the  practice  of  the  Catholic  Church  for  eighteen 
centuries,  and  there  is  no  plea  of  expediency  to  excuse  it.  The  onlv 
possible  plea  advanced  for  it  (and  it  is  a  Aveak  one)  is  the  case  of 
one  who  is  in  danger  of  I'elapsing  into  intemperance,  if  he  even  in 
communicating  taste  or  smell  fermented  liquor.  Even  in  such  a 
case  I  hold  that  such  a  one  should  refrain  from  communicating, 
accepting  this  loss  of  privilege  as  God's  punishment  and  chastening 
for  his  sin,  and  comforting  himself  with  the  teaching  of  our  Church 
that  he  who  being  unable  to  participate  for  any  reason  does  by  faith 
and  in  his  heart  feed  on  Christ,  does  receive  the  benefit  of  His 
Passion.  But  the  case  you  describe  has  not  even  this  weak  plea  for 
it.  It  arises  simply  from  the  false  opinion  entertained  by  Good 
Templars  that  any  partaking  of  fermented  liquor  is  sin.  Those 
who  hold  this  opinion  are  not  diseased  by  intemperance  but  misled 
by  fanaticism. 


1 883-85        ILLNESS;  DLSESTABLISHMENT 


207 


"  To  administer  to  these  the  Holy  Communion  otherwise  than 
Christ  hath  commanded,  is  not  to  strain  Christian  charity  out  of 
pity  for  the  weak,  it  is  to  pervert  a  Christian  ordinance  out  of  weak 
concession  to  the  heretical  opinions  of  those  who  regard  themselves 
as  strong  and  sounder  in  faith  than  the  Church  and  their  pastor. 
I  should  add  that  this  practice  of  using  non-fermented  wine  in  the 
Eucharist  has  been  recently  condemned  by  the  Upper  House,  and 
if  I  remember  rightly,  by  the  Lower  House  also,  of  Convocation  of 
this  province.  I  therefore  do  not  hesitate  to  advise,  but  further  to 
direct  you,  to  discontinue  it.  I  am  also  clearly  of  opinion  that  this 
should  be  done  openly,  and  not  in  any  way  in  disguise  or  conceal- 
ment, either  of  the  fact  or  of  your  reason  for  it. — Very  faithfully 
yom-s,  "  W.  C.  Petebbokough." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  December  28,  1884. 

"  .  .  .  .  This  is  the  result  of  my  staying  from  church  this  after- 
noon, instead  of  going  again  to  hear  the  dismal  repetition  of 
stalest  Evangelicalism  from  an  old  Rip  Van  Winkle  kind  of  curate 
whom  Thompson  has  picked  up  as  his  locum  tenens  here. 

"  Really  I  had  not  supposed  that  such  a  sermon  could  be  preached 
by  any  man  in  these  days. 

"  Listening  to  it  took  me  back  some  forty-five  years  of  life,  to 
the  times  when  such  '  preaching  of  the  Gospel  was  the  rule  ;  and 
yet  it  did  not  sound  dreary  then.  Because,  I  suppose,  as  all  men 
nearly  held  those  doctrines  then,  a  considerable  number  of  clever 
men  preached  them  and  put  life  into  them. 

"  But  to  hear  them  now — from  a  dull,  elderly,  pompous  old 
man — seems  like  listening  to  a  spinet  played  by  an  elderly  lady, 
and  sung  to  with  quaverings  that  make  you  sad  to  think  how  she 
and  her  instrument  were  once  young  and  voted  charming. 

"I  misbehave  myself  di-eadfuUy  under  it,  my  wife  tells  me, 
sighing  audibly,  fidgeting,  groaning. 

"  All  very  unepiscopal,  and  I  fear  harassing  to  the  worthy  old 
gentleman. 

"  Judge  from  all  this  what  cheerful  Sundays  we  enjoy  here. 

"  I  am  not  progressing  much  and  fear  I  may  have  much  suffering 
before  me — though  Walker  declares  no  danger. 

"  But  life  becomes  a  burden  under  the  presence  of  a  constant 
ailment,  and  one  too,  which  tends  so  lai'gely  to  deprive  you  of  the 
power  and  pleasure  of  active  existence. 


208 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  I  tremble  at  the  thoughts  of  next  year's  confirmation  toui-  for 
instance ! 

"  However,  God's  will  be  done.  In  this  as  in  all  things  else. 
He  knows  best.    Yours  ever  affectionately,  if  not  cheerfully, 

"  W.  C.  P." 

"  Stoke  Dry.  Fehntaiy  22,  1885. 

"  You  will  receive  by  Saturday  next  a  copy  of  a  letter  of  mine  to 
the  Archdeacon  resj^ecting  prayer  in  churches  for  troops  in  Afiica. 

"  I  could  not  stand  the  prayer  set  forth  by  the  Upper  House  of 
Convocation. 

"  It  asks  God  to  take  into  His  hands  '  the  cause '  for  which  oar 
Queen  and  country  send  out  our  troops.  If  He  knows  what  that 
'  cause '  is,  I  do  not ;  or  at  least  so  far  as  I  can  guess  at  it,  it  seems 
one  which  I  should  not  care  to  ask  Him  to  take  into  His  hands, 
lest  I  should  be  imprecating  punishment  instead  of  asking  a 
blessing. 

"  To  me  the  whole  of  our  Egyptian  warfare  seems  the  most 
causeless  and  unrighteous  war  we  ever  engaged  in. 

"  I  never  could  see  what  right  we  had  to  attack  Ai-abi,  who  had 
as  good  a  right,  and  far  stronger  provocation,  to  rebel  than  ever 
had  our  pets  Mazzini  and  Garibaldi.  And  as  to  the  safety  of  the 
Suez  Canal,  he  never  thi'eatened  it  and  would  have  been  only  too 
glad  to  have  covenanted  with  us  for  its  safety. 

"  As  to  the  succeeding  battles  and  campaigns  they  seem  to  me 
to  have  had  but  one  object,  the  keeping  of  the  Ministry  in  place; 
for  which  I  am  not  disposed  to  thank  or  entreat  God. 

"  At  any  rate,  while  many  think  as  I  do,  the  introduction  of 
debateable  matter  into  united  prayer  seems  obviously  undesirable. 
The  whole  of  the  prayer,  too,  seems  balder  and  flabbier  even  than  oiu- 
occasional  prayers  are.  It  stuck  too  much  in  my  throat  to  recom- 
mend it  to  the  clergy  who,  however,  will  doubtless  do  in  this  as  in 
other  matters  pretty  much  as  they  please. 

"  They  have  a  large  variety  of  prayers  from  which  to  choose. 
Among  the  rest  a  prayer  by  the  Bishop  of  Rochester  which 
describes  the  Mohammedan  Arabs  as  heathen ! 

"I  have  not  attempted  to  compose  a  prayer,  and  have  recom- 
mended simply  the  usual  form  of  commendation  before  Litany  and 
*  all  sorts  and  conditions  of  men '  with  special  mention  of  sick, 
wounded,  and  mourners  who  are,  oddly  enough,  omitted  from  the 
Archbishop's  prayer.  **  W,  C.  P." 


IS53-S5         ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT 


209 


To  Bishop  Mitc  iiinson. 

"  SroKE  Dry,  Fchruavy  23,  1885. 

"  ]\Iy  dear  Bishop, — I  trust  you  will  not  think  me  ungracious 
or  ungrateful,  when  I  say  that  I  really  cannot  change  the  decision 
I  have  come  to  in  the  two  confirmation  cases  in  question. 

"  It  would  be  pessimi  exempli  in  the  diocese  if,  after  formally  and 
finally  declining  a  request  and  assigning  at  length  what  seemed  to 
me  sufficient  reasons  for  so  doing,  I  were  to  recall  my  refusal 
merely  because  you  were  kindly  willing  to  undertake  the  labour  of 
the  change. 

"  If  it  had  been  only,  or  at  all,  on  the  ground  of  its  laborious- 
ness  I  had  declined  to  make  it,  your  offer  would,  of  course,  cover 
all  difficulty ;  but  this  is  not  so. 

"  I  have  declined  both  requests  on  principle  and  advisedly. 

"  Mr.  's  demand  is  simply  preposterous. 

"  Its  principle  is  that  no  confirmation  should  be  held  at  two 
miles  distance  from  any  parish  church.  As  most  parish  churches 
are  not  that  distance  from  each  other  his  demand  simply  amounts 
to  the  holding  of  confirmations  in  nearly  every  one  of  the  parish 
churches  in  the  diocese. 

"As  there  are  540  of  them  and  only  365  days  in  the  year,  it 
docs  not  need  much  knowledge  of  arithmetic  to  work  out  a  quod  est 
absurdmn. 

"As  regards  your  three  pleas  for  him,  (1)  Confirmations  have 

not  always  been  held  at   ;  on  one  if  not  two  occasions  they 

have  been  held  elsewhere. 

"  (2)  He  is  '  new  to  his  parish '  and  ought  therefore  to  have  waited 
a  little  before  proposing  to  alter  the  arrangements  made  by  the 
bishop  of  it,  after  seventeen  years'  experience. 

"  (3)  '  Thirty-five  candidates '  can,  I  hope,  most  of  them  walk  two 
miles,  and  if  they  cannot  conduct  themselves  decently  on  the  wav 
they  had  better  not  come  at  all. 

"I  may  add,  that  I  conferred  on  Friday  last  with  the  thi-ee 
archdeacons,  and  their  verdict  was  that  his  demand  was  '  quite  un- 
reasonable ' ;  and  that,  as  far  as  they  knew,  the  supply  of  Confirma- 
tion centres  in  the  diocese  was  ample. 

"  As  regards  the  general  question,  I  quite  feel  with  you  that  the 
increased  zeal  for  confirmations  on  the  part  of  the  clergy  is  hopeful 
and  to  be  encouraged.  I  may  add,  that  I  have  largely  stimulated 
and  encouraged  it  already 

VOL.  II.  o 


210 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  I  have  repeatedly  held  supplemental  confirmations  when 
reasonably  requested,  and  that  not  for  thirty-five  but  three  candi- 
dates, and  even  for  one. 

"  But  there  is  a  limit  on  both  sides  of  the  question,  and  if  the 
old  distances  were,  as  they  certainly  were,  mischievous,  the  modern 
rapprochements  are  sometimes  needless  and  unreasonable,  e.g.,  the 
Bishop  of  Lichfield  tells  me,  that  he  has  considerably  diminished 
the  number  of  Bishop  Selwyn's  centres,  with  the  effect  of  increasing 
the  number  of  candidates. 

"  I  fully  sympathise  with  the  earnestness  of  the  good  clergy  in 
this  matter.  But  their  zeal  is  not  always  tempered  by  knowledge, 
nor  by  consideration  for  the  many  and  m-gent  claims  on  the  time 
and  strength  of  bishops.  And  there,  is  besides,  amongst  even  the 
best  of  them,  a  good  deal  of  '  godly  jealousy '  and  rivalry  as  regards 
the  choice  for  centres  of  other  parishes  than  their  own. 

"As  regards  the  future  I  am  perfectly  ready  to  consider  and 
reconsider  any  general  plan  for  confirmations  proposed  to  me. 

"  The  present  one  of  a  three  to  four  miles  radius  has  been  more 
than  once  discussed,  both  with  rural  deans  and  archdeacons,  and 
approved  of. 

"All  that  I  am  fixed  in  is  my  resolve  not  to  subject  the  list 
once  announced  to  the  perfectly  endless  criticisms  of  individual 
incumbents,  who  must  learn  that  they,  as  well  as  their  bishops, 
must  make  some  sacrifice  for  the  general  good  of  the  diocese." 

"Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"August  17,  1885. 

"  My  dear  Bishop,  — I  do  not  think  there  is  any  action  that 
I  can  lawfully  take  as  regards  either  of  the  letters  you  enclose  me. 

"  As  regards  the  suffragan  question,  I  am,  as  I  have  said,  quite 
willing  to  submit  a  proposal  to  the  Government. 

"  There  are,  however,  two  difficulties  in  the  way,  one  for  Govern- 
ment, the  other  for  you  to  consider. 

"  The  first  is  the  construction  of  the  Act  of  Henry  VIII.,  which, 
as  I  read  it,  provides  for  the  consecration  of  Suffragan  Bishops,  and 
therefore  would  seem  to  be  inapplicable  to  the  case  of  an  already 
consecrated  bishop.  This  is,  however,  for  the  law  advisers  of  the 
Crown  to  decide  upon. 

"  The  second,  and  much  more  serious  difficulty  is  this  :  I  must 
according  to  the  Act  submit  two  names  to  the  Crown  for  selection. 

"  Now  it  is  possible  that  the  Crown  might  select  not  yourself  but 


1S83-85        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT 


211 


the  other  person  whose  name  I  had  submitted  together  with 
yours. 

"  In  that  case  you  w  ould  not  be  suffragan  and  there  would  be 
a  suffi-agan  holding  a  position  above  yours,  to  say  nothing  of  the 
superfluity  of  bishops  thus  created. 

"  Nor  could  I,  nor  indeed  ought  I,  to  avoid  this  risk,  name  as 
my  second  possible  suffi-agan  a  bogus  personage  whom  I  thouglit 
the  Crown  would  not  select. 

"  Even  supposing  this  permissible  as  a  device,  it  might  turn  out 
that  the  Crown  might  either  bond  Jide  select  the  less  desii-able 
number  two,  or,  seeing  through  my  device,  refuse  to  appoint 
either. 

"  I  confess  to  dreading  the  leaving,  as  I  must  leave,  to  the 
unfettered  choice  of  the  Crown,  the  appointment  of  a  possible 
suffi-agan  other  than  the  one  I  wish  for. 

"  This  difficulty,  however,  concerns  you  far  more  than  it  does  me. 

"  Forasmuch  as  the  result  of  such  a  selection  to  me  would  be, 
at  the  worst,  the  appointment  of  a  suffi-agan  more  or  less  eligible, 
but  still  eligible ;  whereas  for  you,  the  result  would  be  an  awkward 
complication,  with  a  good  deal  of  the  personal  element  introduced 
into  it. 

"  If,  on  carefully  weighing  this  latter  difficulty,  you  are  prepared 
to  run  this  risk,  I  have  personally  no  objection  to  putting  the 
mutter  before  the  proper  authorities. 

"  But  I  should,  in  your  place,  think  more  than  once  before 
deciding  on  such  a  step. 

"The  case  is  quite  different  from  that  of  a  diocese  in  which 
there  is  (at  the  tin)e  of  the  request  for  a  suffi-agan)  no  assistant- 
bishop. 

"  In  that  case  the  diocesan  bishop  sends  up  the  names  of  two 
men,  eitlier  of  whom  would  suit  him  well. 

"  But  in  your  case  I  send  up  two  names,  one  of  whom  I  wish  for, 
and  who  wishes  it  himself,  and  the  other  whom  I  do  not  particularly 
wish  for,  and  who  could  only  be  appointed  by  passing  over  you. 

"  Pray  think  this  over,  or  better  still  come  and  talk  it  over  with 
me,  before  I  take  what  may  prove  an  irrevocable  step." 

"  Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"  August  24,  1885. 

"  My  dear  Bishop, — I  am  now  at  liberty  to  write  to  you  on  the 
subject  of  Evening  Communion  which  you  tell  me  is  desired  by  some 
of  your  parishioners. 


212 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  Our  views  respecting  such  an  institution  are,  I  expect,  verv  much 
the  same. 

"  I  do  not,  as  many  of  our  rather  High  Church  brethren  do,  re- 
gard it  as  sinful  or  as  forbidden  by  the  Church  CathoHc. 

"  But  I  do  regard  it  as  very  undesirable  and  only  to  be  consented 
to  under  urgent  and  proved  necessity. 

"  It  seems  to  me  objectionable  mainly  on  the  ground  that  it  is  a 
lowering  of  the  ordinance,  not  to  meet  the  needs  but  to  gi'atify  the 
slothildness  of  communicants. 

"  There  is  really  no  reason  but  sloth  why  men  should  not  com- 
municate either  at  morning  or  early  celebration,  and  to  give  them 
an  evening  one  is  simply  religion  made  easy  by  taking  the  cross  out 
of  that  religious  life  which  of  all  others  should  suo-o-est  the  thouffht 
of  self-sacrifice. 

"  Possibly  something  might  be  urged  for  it  on  behalf  of  over- 
wrought artisans  in  our  great  towns  ;  but  surely  nothing  on  behalf 
of  the  dwellers  in  country  villages,  who  would  any  day  of  the  ^\■Qek 
rise  at  day  dawn  and  travel  ten  miles  to  a  market  if  thev  hoped 
thereby  to  make  tenpcnce. 

"  If  such  men  will  not  come  to  the  Holy  Communion  unless  it 
is  given  them  in  the  evening  or  afternoon,  they  are  better  awa\- 
from  it. 

"Afternoon  Communion  is,  moreover,  more  objectionable  than 
evening,  inasmuch  as  it  comes  immediately  after  the  Sundav  diimer 
of  the  country  folk,  and  is  therefore  likely  to  be  somnolent  if  not 
crapulent. 

"  For  these  reasons  I  strongly  dislike  it  and  discourage  it. 
"  But  I  have  never  seen  my  way  to  prohibiting  it. 
"  I  leave  the  question  to  the  judgment  of  the  individual  pastor 
in  each  case. 

"  In  your  case  the  additional  ground  for  caution  is  that  your 
episcopal  office  and  position  would  certainly  have  weight  and  vogue 
with  those  who  might  be  glad  of  such  an  excuse  for  their  own  self- 
indulgence. — Yours  most  truly,  "       C.  PEXEiiiiOROuGH.'" 

To  the  Editor  of  the  Times. 

Stoke  Dry,  September  7,  1S85. 
Sir, — I  am  just  now  receiving  a  great  many  lettere  with  reference  to 
a  supposed  recent  pastoral  of  mine  on  Church  defence.    These  are,  as 
may  well  be  supposed^  of  very  various  kinds,  and  deal  with  a  large 
variety  of  topics.     They  are  laudatory,  argumentative,  inquisiti\e^ 


1S83-8S        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  213 


didactic,  sarcastic,  and  occasionally  abusive,  and  they  ask  my  opinion 
uj)on  nearly  every  possible  question  of  Church  history,  ritual,  doctrine, 
and  practice.  As  I  really  have  not  the  leisure  for  letter  writing  wliich 
some  of  my  correspondents,  to  judge  from  the  length  of  their  commu- 
nications, evidently  enjoy,  I  ask  your  permission  to  inform  them,  one 
and  all — from  the  earnest  Churchman  who  heartily  thanks  me  for  my 
pastoral  to  the  still  more  earnest  anti-Churchman  who  denounces  me 
as  a  "highly-paid  drone,"  "an  enemy  of  Christianity,"  and  "a  Judas 
who  ought  to  go  to  his  own  place  " — that  I  have  not  recently  issued  any 
pastoral  on  the  subject  to  which  they  refei".  The  paragraph  which  has 
been  so  entitled  is  an  extract  from  a  lecture  of  mine  on  the  voluntary 
system,  published  some  twenty-five  years  ago,  and  which  extract  some 
one,  who  thinks  better  of  it  than  some  of  my  critics  do,  seems  to  have 
thought  it  worth  his  while  to  republish  in  the  newspapers.  Under 
these  circumstances,  my  correspondents,  friendly  and  otherwise,  will,  I 
trust,  j)ardon  me  for  not  replying  severally  to  their  respective  letters, 
and  for  contenting  myself  with  this  general  acknowledgment  of  having 
received  them,  and  with  thanking  the  writers  for  the  attention  they 
have  bestowed  upon  my  words.  W.  C.  Peterborough. 

Tu  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  Uppingham, 

"September  21,  1885. 

"  I  am  glad  that  you  are  having  so  pleasant  a  vacation. 

"IMine  has  come  to  an  end  at  last.  After  gradually  getting 
into  harness  again  by  sundry  sermons  in  the  country  churches 
all  round  here,  I  fairly  broke  ground  at  the  old  pace  in  Leicester 
last  week.  I  preached  at  a  church  consecration  and  took  the  com- 
munion service,  spoke  at  a  public  luncheon,  and  presided  at  a 
public  meeting,  all  in  one  da}' ;  and  I  was  not  a  hair  the  worse 
for  it  all. 

"  This  week  I  take  a  harvest  sei'\  ice  at  Nassington,  next  week  I 
induct  Pitts  at  Loughborough,  and  the  day  after  lay  the  founda- 
tion stone  of  a  new  church  at  Belgrave. 

"  And  so  on  and  on,  until  the  Conference  ;  and  then  sundry  more 
works,  including  your  little  pound  of  flesh  at  Misterton. 

"  So  you  see  I  am  taking  a  regular  '  header  '  into  the  diocese  once 
more. 

"  I  am  glad  you  liked  my  letter  to  the  Times.  I  was  fairly  womed 
into  writing  it.  I  did  not  say  in  it  what  I  am  sorely  tempted  now 
and  then  to  say,  that  a  good  many  persons  are  of  opinion  that  it  is 
the  special  duty  of  bishops  to  sit  in  their  studies  with  the,  windows 


214 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CMAP.  XVII 


open,  in  order  that  every  ass  in  the  country  may  put  in  his  head 
tliere  and  bray ! 

"  Apropos  of  Conferences,  I  have  asked  the  Dean  to  open  the  sub- 
ject of  DisestabHshment. 

"I wish  that  on  the  same  subject  you  would  say  a  few  words,  as 
to  the  effect  of  DisestabHshment  on  the  Irish  Church,  and  us  to 
the  difference  between  the  terms  given  then,  and  those  now  proposed 
for  us  by  the  Liberationists. 

"  I  shall  find  my  share  of  the  question  very  difficult.  I  must  lead 
on  it,  yet  I  cannot  do  so  at  sufficient  length  to  constitute  a  real 
manifesto  for  the  Church  or  the  diocese ;  and  compression  is  dan- 
gerous when  every  word  is  sure  to  be  severely  criticised. 

"  However,  I  must  do  my  best.  The  portrait  is  to  be  on  an  easel 
on  the  platform  to  be  unveiled  at  the  proper  moment  by  the  hands 
of  the  Chancellor.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  Bishop  held  his  Diocesan  Conference  in  Peterborough  on 
October  14, 1885.  We  all  looked  forward  to  a  stirring  address  from 
the  President,  as  the  question  of  Disestablishment  had  come  to  the 
front  again.  But  the  thorough  and  exhaustive  treatment  of  the 
subject  which  it  received  surpassed  our  expectations. 

I  give  the  following  extracts : 

I  ask.  Why  am  I  to  place  unlimited  confidence  in  a  majority  }  Are 
majorities  always  in  the  right Have  they  never  in  times  past  been 
in  the  wrong  Have  minorities  never  been  in  the  right  ?  Is  it  so  in 
private  life  Are  the  majority  of  each  man's  acquaintance  here  persons 
in  whom  he  reposes  unlimited  confidence,  and  if  not,  why  must  it  be 
so  in  public  life  For  my  part,  I  am  unable  to  trust  implicitly  in 
the  purifying  and  elevating  influences  of  the  multiplication  table,  or  to 
believe  in  the  infallibility  of  the  odd  man. 

And  this  much  more  I  will  say  for  them  (tlie  people)  and  that  sin- 
cerely, that  I  have  far  more  trust  in  their  honesty  and  justice  than  I 
have  in  the  honesty  and  justice  of  many  who  are  just  now  posing  as 
their  only  true  friends  and  advisers.  King  Demos  has  come  of  age, 
and  is  being  crowned.  I  believe  him  to  be  a  youthful  monarch  of 
much  promise,  with  the  best  intentions,  generous  in  the  main,  kindly 
and  honest.  But  I  see  him,  like  other  youthful  monarchs,  already 
surrounded  by  a  crowd  of  fawning  and  flattering  courtiers,  offering  for 
their  own  ends  to  indulge  all  his  desires,  to  minister  to  all  his  passions, 
and  assuring  him,  as  courtiers  have  done  before,  that  he  is  the  best, 
the  wisest,  the  noblest  of  all  monarchs.    Nay,  I  see  his  court  aheady 


1883-85         ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT 


215 


so  fully  completed  th.it  he  is  provided  even  with  court  chaplains  as 
cringeing  and  obsequious  as  court  chaplains  have  been  of  old,  and  who 
are  just  now  busy  preparing  for  his  use  a  new  edition  of  the  old  Church 
catechism  in  which  he  shall  read  that  his  duty  to  his  neighbour  is  to 
covet  and  desire  other  men's  goods,  and  not  to  keeji  his  tongue  from 
lying. 

I  rcmemberj  if  others  have  forgotten,  the  history  of  the  disestablish- 
ment of  the  Irish  Church.  I  remember  how  the  scruples  of  many 
were  quieted  by  assurances  (not,  I  am  bound  to  say,  from  the  author 
of  the  measure,  but  from  many  of  its  advocates),  that  if  only  its  prin- 
ciple were  adopted  there  was  room  for  any  amount  of  concession  and 
compromise  as  to  its  details  ;  and  I  remember  how,  when  its  principle 
was  adopted,  the  concessions  and  the  compromises  were  sent  upon  a 
journey  to  Jupiter.  As  it  was  then,  so  will  it  be  again,  and  so  our 
assailants  are  telling  us  with  a  frankly  cynical  candour.  Mr.  Gladstone 
in  his  recent  utterance  on  this  subject,  Avhich,  if  it  has  all  the  solemnity 
and  impressiveness  has  also,  I  venture  to  think,  a  little  of  the  ambi- 
guity of  the  ancient  oracle,  tells  us  that  if  ever  it  is  effected,  it  will  be 
with  a  large  regard  to  equity  and  liberality. 

Well,  I  turn  to  the  programme  of  those  who,  if  ever  it  is  done,  will 
have  the  doing  of  it,  and  I  find  that  they  give  by  anticipation  a  flat 
denial  to  Mr.  Gladstone's  projihecy.  They  say  that  disestablishment 
is  to  be  effected  on  the  principle  of  "justice  to  the  nation  and  not 
generosity  to  the  Church,"  and,  certainly,  they  are  as  good  as  their 
word.    Whether  there  is  or  is  not  equity  in  their  proposals,  liberality 

there  is  none,  and  they  themselves  disclaim  it  — "  S2)eeches  and 

Addresses,"  p.  32. 

A  striking  testimony  was  given  at  the  conclusion  of  the  speech 
by  a  clergyman  near  me  who,  turning  rountl  to  his  neighbour,  said, 
"  That  was  the  blast  of  a  trumpet."' 

The  Bishop's  portrait,  which  had  been  painted  by  Mr.  Frank 
Holl,  was  unveiled  subsequently  by  Lord  John  Manners,  and  an 
address  was  presented  by  the  Rev.  W.  Wales,  chancellor  of  the 
diocese,  who  stated  that  the  portrait  and  the  address  were  the  out- 
come of  the  joy  felt  in  the  diocese  at  his  lordship's  recovery  from  his 
long  illness. 

From  the  Bisnop  of  IVIanchestkr  (FiiASEn). 

Manchester,  October  15,  1885. 
My  dear  Bishop  of  Peterdorough, —  I  have  just  had  read  to  me  by 
my  wife,  in  whose  mouth  no  syllable  was  lost  or  had  less  than  its  due 


216 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


weight  given  to  it,  your  splendid  "Apologia  Ecclesiae  Anglicanae."  I 
thank  God  for  having  given  you  power  to  utter  it.  Laid  by  as  I  am 
and  forbidden  to  take  part  in  any  active  conflict,  it  nevertheless  de- 
lights me  to  hear  such  a  trumpet-call. 

I  cannot  say  how  angry  I  feel  with  those  so-called  statesmen  and 
leaders,  who  tell  tlic  peojile  "  Let  us  know  what  you  wish,  and  we  will 
do  it !  "  No  attempt  is  made  to  lead  or  to  guide  ;  and  the  "  drift  of 
things  "  is  to  overwhelm  reason,  conscience,  conviction,  everything. 
Admirable  is  what  you  said  about  "  unlimited  trust  in  the  people," 
about  the  "  flatterers  of  Demos,"  and  all  else  on  that  point. 

Do  pull  your  Thucydides  down  from  the  shelf  and  read  that  splendid 
passage  in  which  the  historian  contrasts  the  statesmanship  of  Pericles 
with  the  demagogy  of  those  tliat  came  after  him  (Lib.  IL  c.  65). 

O  that  Churchmen  would  turn  away  their  thoughts  from  idle  con- 
troversy to  measures  of  real  reform,  to  remove  all  preventible  or  reme- 
diable scandals,  which  make  her  defence  even  to  her  most  loyal  sons  so 
difficult  ! 

But  you  have  sounded  a  note  which  ought  to  be  a  rallying  one  to  us 
all. — Ever  yours,  admiringly,  J.  Manchester. 

From  tJie  Right  Hon.  W.  E.  Gladstone. 

Hawakden  Castle,  Chester, 

October  24,  1S85. 

RIy  dear  Lord  Bishop, — In  your  address  on  Disestablishment  you 
have  treated  me  with  a  just  indulgence.  If  the  distinction  may  be 
drawn,  I  think  my  statement  is  not  ambiguous  but  incomplete.  It  also 
appears  to  me  that  a  complete  statement  would  have  been  out  of  place, 
setting  aside  other  considerations,  from  one  who  has  no  more  expec- 
tation of  being  himself  called  upon  to  try  the  Church  of  England  on 
the  question  of  establishment  than  of  being  called  on  to  take  a  personal 
jjart  in  determining  the  question  of  the  monarchy. 

How  very  sad  are  these  sudden  episcopal  deaths  !  Bishop  Eraser 
will  be  much  and  justly  lamented  in  many  ways  by  Manchester.  And 
Bishop  Woodford  had  so  far  as  I  know  fulfilled  right  well  all  the  favour- 
able anticipations  formed  of  his  devotion  and  his  wisdom. — I  remain, 
respectfully  and  faithfully  yours,  W.  E.  Gladstone. 

The  Lord  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  IVIacDonnell. 

"  Peterborough,  Decemler  z,  1885. 
"  This  election  contest  is  demoralising  every  one.    Gray,  instead 
of  till l< in":  diocesan  business  talks  election  and  I  listen  to  him  ! 


1SS3-S5        ILLNESS;  DISESTABLISHMENT  217 


]My  calculation,  which  please  keep  to  refer  to  after  the  event,  is  as 
follows. 

"Liberal  majority  over  Conservatives  alone,  G6.  Liberal  mino- 
rity against  Conservatives  and  Nationalists,  14.  Liberal  and 
Nationalists  majority  over  Conservatives  146. 

"  This  makes  Parnell  king,  whichever  way  the  elections  go  in 
England  !  He  can  unseat  the  Conservatives  and  seat  the  Liberals, 
whenever  he  pleases. 

"This  means  Irish  revolution  first,  and  then  an  embittered 
struggle  between  the  revolutionary  and  conservative  forces  in 
England  and  Scotland,  the  revolution  winning  and  being  merci- 
less after  the  bitterness  of  the  fight. 

"  I  give  the  Church  of  England  two  Parliaments  to  live  through. 

"  This  one  now  coming,  in  which  she  will  be  merely  worried  and 
humiliated. 

"  The  next,  in  which  she  will  be  assailed  and  disestablished  in  the 
Commons. 

"  The  third,  in  which  the  Peers  will  give  way,  and  the  thing  is 
done. 

"  The  Parliaments,  too,  will  be  short-lived  and  stoi'my.  Glad- 
stone's retirement  will  bring  this  one  to  a  close. 

"  The  second  will  dissolve  on  the  Church  question  early. 

"  The  third  will  settle  it ;  say  ten  years  for  all  this. 

"  Now,  please  put  this  letter  by,  and  let  us  read  it,  if  spared,  ten 
years  hence,  on  the  Lake  of  Como  whither  ^ve  shall  have  gone  to 
spend  our  few  remaining  disestablished  years." 

'To  Peebendary  GuiEii. 

"  Peterborocgh,  December  5,  1885. 

"  One  word  only  of  explanation.  I  had  carefully  read  your  able 
paper  at  the  Plymouth  Congress,  and  was  quite  aware  that  you 
advocate  the  direct  veto  on  the  liquor  traffic. 

"  But  this  is  not  M'hat  the  C.E.T.S.  advocate  in  their  resolution, 
what  you  would  have  us  bishops  oppose. 

"  If  I  understand  them  and  it  rightly,  they  go  for  the  vesting  of 
licensing  power  in  some  body  elected  by  ratepayers.  This  I  think 
worse  of  than  I  do  of  your  Permissive  Bill ;  and  I  prefer  a  Maine 
liquor  Bill  to  either. 

"  The  Permissive  Bill  would  at  least  be  free  from  the  taint  of 
political  corruption  that  cleaves  to  all  proposals  for  elective  licens- 
ing bodies,  in  any  and  every  shape  or  form. 


218 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVII 


"  Politics  in  England  mean,  more  and  more,  bribery  and  intimi- 
dation. Bribery  of  whole  classes  instead  of,  as  of  old,  individual 
voters,  and  intimidation  of  classes  likewise  by  larger  classes,  and 
both  of  these  in  the  interest  of  ambitious  and  unprincipled  dema- 
ffoffues. 

"  For  this  reason  I  dread  and  detest  this  idea  of  handing  over 
social  power,  i.e.,  power  over  the  liberties  and  happiness  of  indivi- 
duals, to  boards  of  every  sort,  from  parish  vestries  up  to  or  down 
to  that  most  blatant  and  factious  of  all  vestries,  the  House  of 
Commons.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Peterborough,  December  25,  1885. 
"  Our  Christmas  letters  of  good  wishes  ought  to  have  crossed 
each  other.  But  yesterday  I  was  travelling  in  from  Stoke,  and  all 
the  afternoon  busy  with  arrears  of  correspondence,  and  so  let  the 
])ost  go  out  before  I  could  write  on  anything  but  business.  You 
do  not  need,  however,  the  exact  arrival  of  '  good  words '  from  me 
to  assure  you  of  the  good  wishes  and  hearty  affection  of  me  and 
mine  for  you  and  yours.  May  you  have  many  and  very  happy  re- 
turns of  these  blessed  seasons,  all  of  you  !  Truly,  as  you  say,  at  our 
time  of  life  we  cannot  expect  cloudless  anniversaries.  They  bring 
us  gi-ave  memories  and  some  anxieties,  and  always  the  sense  of 
shortening  days  and  the  approaching  close.  And  yet  we  would  not 
willingly  miss  the  bitter  sweet  of  them,  the  sweets  far  outnumber- 
ing as  they  do  the  bitters.  Truly  it  is  a  marvel  to  me  to  find  my- 
self after  my  two  years  of  illness  where  and  what  I  am.  God  give 
me  grace  to  do  well  and  wisely  what  w  ork  He  has  still  for  me  to 
accomplish.  "  W.  C.  P." 


CHAPTER  XVIII 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE  BILL;  CHURCH  CONGRESS, 
MANCHESTER 

To  J.  C.  MacDokxell. 

"  Peterborough,  January  4,  1886. 
"  The  article  on  oaths  is  out  in  the  Contemporary,  and  has  ah-eady 
been  honoiu-ed  by  a  leader  in  the  Daily  Ncxcs. 

"Fair  enough  a  leader  from  the  Daily  Ncics  point  of  view, 
which  is  not  of  course  mine. 

"  I  am  glad  to  see  that  it  specially  notes,  with  displeasure,  my 
rap  at  Bradlaugh,  which  Farrar  wanted  me  to  omit,  and  which  I 
more  than  ever  feel  was  needed  in  any  article  on  the  subject  coming 
from  me. 

"  I  am  now  working  at  my  House  of  Lords  speech  on  Patronage, 
to  fit  it  for  an  article  for  the  National  Review. 

"  I  met  the  editor  at  Addington  last  week,  and  arranged  this 
with  him. 

"  We  had  a  very  interesting,  and  to  my  mind  very  instructive, 
episcopal  caucus  there.  The  details  are  quite  too  long  for  a  letter, 
but  I  may  say  that  I  found  all  my  brethren  there  present  exactly 
of  my  mind  as  to  Church  reform. 

"  The  caucus  consisted  of  the  two  Archbishops,  London,  Dur- 
ham, Carlisle,  and  myself — quite  strong  enough  a  cast  to  ensure  om* 
leading  the  episcopate  in  the  right  path  when  we  meet.  We 
worked  hard  at  a  Pati'onage  Bill,  and  it  was  curious  for  ine  to  find 
my  seed  sown  eleven  years  ago  '  bearing  fruit clause  after  clause, 
in  the  forthcoming  Bill,  '  after  many  days.'' 

"  But  this  was  really  in  the  minds  of  all  of  us  only  a  minor 
part  of  what  lay  before  us.  That  was,  we  all  agreed,  an  episcopal 
manifesto  on  Church  reform  to  be  followed  by  episcopal  action  in 
Parliament,  either  by  one  comprehensive  Bill,  or,  as  I  suggested, 
failing  this,  by  a  set  of  resolutions. 

"  We  are  to  meet  again  ere  long,  and  I  hope  good  may  come  of  it." 


220 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


"  Peterborodgii,  January  6,  1886. 

"  I  return  you  Salmon's  interesting  letter.  It  hits,  as  he  always 
does,  the  nail  exactly  on  the  head.  The  extinction  of  the  loyalist 
minority  in  Ireland  is  the  aim  of  the  Irish  and  Irish- American 
revolutionists.  The  extinction  of  the  Protestant  minority  is  the 
aim  of  the  Irish  priesthood. 

"  As  these  two  minorities  ai-e  one  and  the  same,  the  pi'iests  and 
the  revolutionists  are  for  the  present  united. 

"  When  their  aims  are  accomplished  by  the  aid  of  rival  English 
factions,  the  revolutionists  and  Irish- Americans  will  oust  the 
priests,  and  there  will  be  an  Ii'ish  Republic. 

"  ]\Ieanwhile,  there  will  be  much  plunder  and  outrage,  and 
ultimately  a  good  deal  of  cutting  of  throats  in  our  blessed  country. 

"  The  English  Government  or  Governments  will  continue  putting 
up  Irish  loyalists  to  auction,  as  they  are  putting  up  land  for  sale,  in 
small  lots,  a  little  at  a  time,  until  there  is  either  nothing  more  to  sell 
or  no  one  to  bid.  Then  they  will  retire  from  the  scene  and  '  wash 
their  hands  of  Ireland,'  and  very  dirty  hands  they  will  have  to  wash. 

"  I  wish  that  Salmon  could  be  persuaded  to  write  his  views  to  the 
Times;  no  man  could  do  it  better;  and  a  letter  of  his  just  now, 
after  Sir  J.  Stephen's  and  Lord  Grey's,  would  tell  immensely. 

"  As  to  ordination  matters,  '  what  have  I  to  say  to  these  ? '  Let 
you  and  Farrar  and  Jellett  '  divide  the  land.'  I  give  you  carte 
blanche  amongst  you. 

"  j\Iy  article*  is  causing  some  ferment.  I  enclose  you  a  cutting 
received  this  morning.  It  is  a  specimen  of  the  '  misconception '  I 
anticijDated  when  writing  it.  Nevertheless,  I  am  satisfied  I  was 
right  in  doing  so.  My  article  takes  some  of  the  sting  out  of  the 
certain  Affirmation  Bill  of  next  Session. 

"  It  cainiot  now  be  claimed  as  an  anti-Church  triumph  pure  and 
simple;  and  this  was  my  main  object  in  writing  it. 

"I  hear  from  Newell  that  I  have  'converted  him.' 

"  Others  write  warmly  approving.  I  shall  be  pelted  for  a  while 
and  then  praised.    I  care  little  for  either. 

"  I  am  growing  very  indifferent  to  the  opinions  of  men.  As  life 
grows  shorter  we  think  less  of  our  fellow  travellers,  and  more  of  the 
end  of  the  joui-ney." 

"Peterborough,  January  16,  1886. 
"  The  enclosed,  like  all  Salmon  writes  or  says,  is  excellent. 
"  How  often  have  I  said  to  you  and  others  what  he  says  of 

*  On  Oaths. 


I8S6-SS 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


221 


the  English  infatuation  in  regarding  the  British  Constitution  asau 
absohite  pill  for  earthquakes  all  over  the  world. 

"  But  Englishmen  are  so  very  English,  which  is  quite  as  bad  as 
Irishmen  being  so  '  vewy  Hirhli.'''' 

"  I  am  writing  in  haste,  going  out  to  snatch  a  walk  while  it  is 
fine. 

"  I  have  just  been  planning  a  new  church  and  parish  for  Peter- 
borough, at  the  end  of  Park  Road,  taking  in  sections  of  St.  Mai-k's, 
St.  PauFs,  St.  Mary's,  and  Paston ;  we  have  got  .£'1200  in  promises 
already  for  it,  dPSOO  more  will  give  us  as  much  of  a  church  as  will 
cany  endowment  from  the  commissioners,  so  this  looks  healthy. 

"  I  go  to  town  next  week  to  see  a  strange  sight — a  Queen  opening 
a  Republican  Parliament." 

"  FuLHAM  Palace,  S.W., 

"February  lo,  1886. 

You  see  from  the  above  address  that  I  have  received  hospi- 
tality from  my  brother  of  London.  He  drove  me  out  here  this 
evening  through  a  dense  cold  London  fog,  which  has  now  lasted 
two  days. 

"  ^^'e  half  expected  an  adventure  on  the  \\'ay,  inasmuch  as  a 
message  had  been  sent  in  the  afternoon  from  the  police  to  say  that 
'  the  unemployed '  were  wrecking  shops  in  the  Waterloo  Road  hard 
by,  and  to  advise  the  locking  of  Lambeth  gates. 

"  However,  the  police  or  the  fog,  or  both,  had  dispersed  the 
rioters  before  we  started,  and  we  had  a  perfectly  peaceful  journey. 
I  have  spent  two  weary  days  hammering  out  Church  Patronage 
Bills  and  other  reforms  all  day  long,  in  a  small  committee,  consist- 
ing of  the  two  Archbishops,  London,  Durham,  Carlisle,  and 
mvself.  The  Church  Patronage  Bill  was  fairly  licked  into  shape, 
and  I  think  into  good  shape. 

"  But  as  to  the  other  reforms  we  are  widely  at  variance. 

"  The  Archbishop  of  York  was  the  most  conservative,  the  Bishop 
of  London  the  most  revolutionary,  while  Dmham,  Carlisle,  and  I 
took  positions  more  or  less  to  either  side,  but  mainly  in  the  middle. 
It  was  curious  to  see  how  the  question  of  disestablishment  at  every 
turn  in  the  discussion  seemed  to  break  in,  and  sway  to  and  fro, 
according  as  the  speaker  did  or  did  not  believe  it  imminent. 

"  I  strongly  m'ged  the  dealing  with  all  Chm'ch  reform  solely  on 
its  own  merits,  and  without  any  oblique  reference  to  Disestablish- 
ment and  Disendowmcnt,  and  this  was  the  conclusion  to  which 
ultimately  we  all  came. 


522  ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE  chap,  xvm 

"  But  as  to  what  the  reforms  should  be,  and  when  they  should 
be  introduced  and  how,  we  were  very  much  at  sea. 

"  To-morrow  the  episcopate  meets  in  conclave  to  say,  doubtless, 
a  vast  deal,  to  agree  as  little,  and  ultimately  to  do  less.  This  at 
least  has  been  the  result  of  every  bishops'  meeting  I  have  yet 
attended. 

"  The  fact  is  the  bishops  are  too  able  a  body  of  men  ever  to 
agree  much. 

"  Every  man  can  pick  some  hole  in  every  other  man's  proposal, 
and  does  it  too,  as  a  matter  of  conscience  and  principle,  so  that  at 
last  every  plan  gets  like  a  sieve  and  holds  no  water. 

"  I  am  very,  very  weary  of  the  whole  thing,  and  wished  myself 
a  thousand  times  home  again  with  my  microscope,  where  magni- 
fying small  things  is  less  hurtful  than  in  bishops'  speeches. 

"London  is  talking  of  only  two  things  just  now — what  the  rioters 
have  done,  and  what  Gladstone  is  going  to  do ;  and  they  think  a 
good  deal  more  of  the  former  than  the  latter. 

"  A  shop  front  or  a  club  window  in  London  is  so  much  larger 
and  nearer  an  object  than  a  boycotted  landlord  or  muidered  tenant 
in  Ireland.  Even  a  Parliament  in  College  Green  affrights  the 
cockney  less  than  a  mob  in  Bond  Street. 

"  For  which  blindness  they  will  be  punished  ere  long  by  having 
both.  "  W.  C.  P." 

To  the  Bishop  of  Wixchester. 
"  Please  no  ansxcer  to  tins ! 

"  Athen^dm  Cldb,  February  17,  1886. 

"  My  dear  Brother, — I  know  you  must  not  be  troubled  with 
business.  But  your  doctors  have  not  forbidden  gossip  about 
business.  So  I  venture  to  send  you  a  few  lines  to  tell  you  '  how 
your  brethren  are  faring'  in  council. 

"  And  rirst,  let  me  say  how  universal  and  sincere  were  the  regrets 
at  your  absence,  and  how  earnest  and  affectionate  the  wishes  for  your 
speedy  restoration  to  us.  Youi*  letter  on  the  subject  of  Parochial 
Councils  was  read  by  the  Archbishop,  and  exactly  hit  as  well  as 
guided  the  tone  of  general  feeling  on  the  subject. 

"  Om'  whole  course  on  Church  reform  is,  I  think,  now  in  a  wise 
and  safe  groove.  Practically  it  amounts  to  this,  that  we  adopt  the 
four  points  of  the  Cambridge  Memorial  in  principle,  but  with 
cautions  and  qualifications  as  to  details ;  and  this  is,  I  think,  all 
that  could  be  desired. 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


"  The  opening  of  the  House  of  Laymen  was  a  really  interesting 
and  even  impi-essive  sight. 

"The  Archbishop's  speech  was  able,  dignified,  and  dexterous. 
Altogether  the  best  thing  I  have  yet  heard  from  him. 

"  I  attended  at  his  request  the  House  of  Laymen  to-day,  to 
explain  the  provisions  of  the  Church  Patronage  Bill,  and  had  the 
])leasure,  or  otherwise,  of  a  very  severe  cross-examination  by  able 
men  in  the  presence  of  reporters  on  some  ticklish  subjects.  I  hope 
I  did  no  harm  at  any  rate. 

"  My  impression  of  the  assembly  was  that  it  was  dangerously 
conservative,  and  on  points  of  detail  very  ill-informed. 

"  I  expect  the  result  of  their  deliberations  will  be  to  minimise 
our  Bill,  with  the  effect  of  the  bishops  posing  as  advanced  reformers 
and  the  laity  as  obstructives.    So  much  the  better  for  the  bishops. 

"  To-morrow  we  hope  to  finish  our  report  on  Church  Reform. 

"  The  rest  is  '  leather  and  prunella.' 

"  Gloucester  and  Bristol  proved  himself  handy,  dextei'ous  and 
good  tempered  as  ever ;  Oxford  sensible  but  obstinate ;  Exeter 
•sensible  and  brief ;  Truro  good  and  gushing ;  London  able  and 
honest,  and  your  unworthy  brother  of  Peterborough  bitter  and 
sarcastic,  and  occasionally  jocose,  more  suo,  vel  suadente  diabolo  ! ' 

"  However,  all  is,  I  think,  going  well  and  safely,  and  that  is  the 
great  matter. 

"  How  I  wish  we  could  have  had  your  mitis  sapientia  to  smooth 
rough  places  and  make  crooked  ones  plain. 

"  Most  heartily  do  I,  as  do  all  your  episcopal  brethren,  pray  as 
well  as  wish  for  your  complete  recovery.  How  strange  that  / 
should  thus  be  writing  to  you — I  whose  death  two  years  ago  you 
must  have  been  hourly  expecting  to  hear  of !  So  does  om-  Father 
in  heaven  order  for  us,  even  as  He  will,  and  orders  ever  lovingly 
and  well. 

"May  He  be  with  you  while  you  are  passing  through  this,  I 
trust  and  pray,  passing  cloud. — Youi-s  ever  affectionately, 

"  W.  C.  Petekborough.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxeix. 

"  Athenaeum  Club,  February  17,  1886. 
"  I  am  '  dead  bate '  after  two  very  weary  days  Convocational  and 
other  work,  coming  after  four  days  of  Episcopal  Conference  the 
week  before. 


224 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP,  xvm 


"  Still,  I  must  send  you  a  few  impressions  of  what  has  passed  and 
is  pas'^ing. 

"  Wc  met,  as  I  think  I  told  you,  at  Lambeth  last  week,  an 
assembly  of  the  whole  episcopate,  to  consider  twenty- three  subjects, 
of  which  we  considered  Jive  '. 

"  However,  these  five  were  important,  and  were  effectually  dealt 
with.  We  spent  a  Avhole  day  over  Church  patronage,  and  the 
greater  part  of  the  next  on  Church  reform  generally.  I  left  before 
the  other  subjects  were  discussed. 

"  On  Tuesday  last,  in  Convocation,  Gloucester  and  Bristol  brought 
in  Church  reform,  with  special  reference  to  recent  memorials,  and  I 
followed  in  a  speech  fairly  reported  in  the  Guardian. 

"  After  a  brief  discussion,  Gloucester  and  Bristol's  motion  for  a 
committee  of  the  whole  House  to  consider  memorials  was  agreed  to. 

"  Thereupon  the  Ai'chbishop  and  some  twelve  of  the  bishops,  all 
in  our  Convocation  robes,  adjourned  to  the  House  of  Laymen, 
which  his  Grace  opened  in  a  really  effective,  dexterous,  and  dignified 
speech. 

"  The  whole  scene  was  impressive  and  deeply  interesting. 

"  Eighteen  peers,  seventeen  members  of  Parliament,  and  sundry 
eminent  commoners  were  gathered  there  to  discuss  with  bishops 
and  clergy — or,  rather,  alongside  of  us — Church  questions. 

'•'  It  was  really  a  bit,  and  may  prove  an  important  bit,  of  Chiu'ch 
history,  at  which  I  was  very  glad  to  have  been  present. 

"  After  the  conclusion  of  Convocation,  Gloucester  and  Bristol  and 
I  came  here  to  draft  a  report  on  Church  reform  for  the  committee 
of  the  whole  House  to-day. 

"We  agreed  on  the  heads,  and  he  put  them  in  shape,  and  we 
have  been  all  day  debating  them.  They  amount  practically  to  the 
adoption  of  the  Cambridge  Memorial  with  some  setting  and 
adorning. 

"  At  2.30  I  attended,  by  the  Archbishop's  request,  at  the  House 
of  Laymen,  to  explain  the  provisions  of  the  Church  Patronage  Bill. 

"  Between  my  statements  and  their  cross-examination  of  me,  I 
spent  a  rather  anxious  hour,  in  which  I  hope  I  said  nothing  amiss, 
but  in  which  I  was  subject  to  a  very  severe  heckling-  from  all  sides. 

"My  impression  of  the  assembly  was  that  it  is  dangei-oiislij 
conservative,  and  on  points  of  detail  very  ill-informed. 

"I  greatly  doubt  their  assenting  to  abolition  of  sales  of 
advowsons. 

"But  if  they  do  not,  we   bishops   shall  pose  as  advanced 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


refbriners,  and  the  C'luirch  laity  as  obstructives  ;  aiul  this  will  not  be 
a  l)ad  position  for  us  to  occupy. 

"  To-morrow  I  have  a  meeting  at  the  Ecclesiastical  C'onnnissioners"' 
on  their  illegal  pew-rentings,  on  which  I  expect  to  be  defeated ;  and 
in  the  afternoon  we  shall  finish  the  re])ort  on  Church  reform.  As 
(tU  mv  main  })oints  are  already  acce])ted,  I  am  content  with  it. 
Altogether  I  am  glad  I  came  vip,  but  shall  be  doubly  glad  to  get 
down  again.'" 

"  g.  A.  B.,  February  i8,  1886. 

"  I  keep  you  au  coiirmit  with  events  ecclesiastical  at  this  interest- 
ing moment  in  Church  history. 

"I  attended  the  Ecclesiastical  Commission  this  morning,  and 
carried  bv  unanimous  vote  mv  resolution  on  pew-rent  scales,  of 
which  I  talked  to  vou  when  last  we  met. 

"  The  Commissioners  have  resolved  '  that  no  scale  of  pew-rents 
be  hereafter  authorised  by  the  Ecclesiastical  Commissioners  except 
those  under  which  one-half  of  the  sittings  are  left  free  and  as^ 
favourably  situated  as  those  which  are  rented.'' 

"  This  is  really  a  great  advance  on  past  rules,  and  a  real  reform 
{juietly  achieved. 

"  It  relieves  me,  too,  from  all  necessity  for  any  attack  on  the 
Ecclesiastical  Commissioners  in  the  House  of  Lords. 

"I  told  the  Commissioners,  accordingly,  after  thev  had  passed 
mv  resolution,  that  they  had  carried  out  Sir  E.  Henderson''s  police 
regulations,  and  had  '  muzzled  a  dug\  as  I  should  not  now  harl\:  in 
the  House  of  Eords  ! 

"  So — solutls  r'lsit  tdhulis — I  departed,  greatly  relieved  in  mind, 
and  feeling  that  honestly  I  had  '  done  the  State  some  service.'' 

"  ^^^e  are  now  hammering  away  at  our  reply  to  the  Reform 
IMeniorials,  and  on  the  crucial  question  of  parochial  councils  with 
statutory  powers. 

"  Dear  me  !  How  I  feel,  as  I  get  older,  '  quantum  est  in  rchu.s 
Jnn/ian'i-s-  Inaiw'' ;  and  yet,  without  enduring  all  this  inanity  and 
conciliating  it,  no  ])rogress  can  be  made.  Yet  I  find  it  so  hard  to 
conceal  my  contempt  for  little  things  and  little  men  that  I  fear  I 
often  offend  the  latter. 

"Anyhow,  if  I  were  ambitious  of  pi-oniinence  in  Church  affairs, 
I  am  getting  enough  of  it  on  all  sides,  both  friendly  antl  un- 
friendly. 

"  It  is,  I  may  say  to  i/(n(,  some  comfort  and  encouragement  to 
me  to  think  and  hope  that,  if  I  have  been  raised  up  from  the  edge 

VOL.  H.  p 


226 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


of  the  grave,  it  is  beciiuse  the  Master  has  still  some  work  for  me  to 
<lo.    May  He  give  me  grace  and  strength  to  do  it ! 

"So  now  again  I  turn  to  my  duty  of  listening  without  groaning. 

"  W.  C.  P." 

From  tJtc  Bishop  ok  Wixchestku. 

"  Farnham  Castle,  Surrey, 

"February  20,  1886. 
Mv  DEAR  Brotiiku, — It  was  so  good  of  you  to  write  such  a  pleasant 
letter  to  me. 

It  came  just  when  I  was  dej)ressed  by  reading  an  unkind  criticism  on 
■A  production  of  mine,  which  may  be  veiy  unworthy,  but  which  was 
certainly  treated  iniworthily.  Being  in  a  low  state  physically,  I  felt  it 
more,  and  your  letter  quite  set  me  up.  I  have  read  in  Times  and 
(hiardidn  most  of  the  Convocation  work,  and  especially  your  own 
.sayings,  but  your  summary  of  the  ])roceedings  has  thrown  a  pleasant 
light  on  all. 

It  is  rather  a  misfortune  that  the  House  of  Laymen  is  so  very  conser- 
vative, politically  as  well  as  ecclesiastically  :  but  it  is  good  that  the 
bishops  should  come  out  in  the  fuller  relief,  as  anxious  to  sweep  away 
cobwebs. 

Your  picture  of  yourself  is  not  very  flattering,  but  you  know  that 
we  should  not  value  your  wisdom  the  more  if  it  were  to  lose  its  wit. 

I  should  miss  terribly  what  you  are  pleased  to  call  j^our  sarcasm,  if 
you  soared  always  on  angel's  wings  and  made  us  forget  that  we  were 
fellow  mortals. 

How  much  I  value  your  kind  words  and  prayers. 

It  is  indeed  a  comfort  to  know  that  you  have  thrown  off  your  terrible 
malady  ;  never,  I  hope,  to  renew  it. 

You  have  been  much  and  constantly  in  my  prayers  ever  since  that 
trying  time.    I  trust  that  God  has  granted  you  to  the  prayers  of  many. 

I  do  not  know  where  to  direct  this,  but  Peterborough  is  safe. — Ever, 
my  dear  brother,  affectionally  and  gratefully  yours, 

E.  H.  WiNTON. 

All  here  would  unite  in  kind  love  to  all  of  you  if  they  knew  I  was 
writing.    I  am^obliged  to  write  by  stealth. 

To  J.  C.  ^NIacDonxell. 

"Peterborough,  February  22,  1886. 
"  Convocation  is  over  and  done  for  this  time.    And  it  has  done 
what  I  really  cared  about— namely,  laid  down  the  lines  for  Church 
reform.    When  that  reform  may  come  is  another  question. 


1 886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


007 


"My  own  belief  is  that  it  will  not  come  until  we  have  obtained 
leave  from  Parliament  to  refimn  ourselves;  and  that  this  will  not 
be  (^ranted  to  the  bishops  and  clergy  in  Convocation  alone  is  (juite 
<.'ertain. 

"  Amalgamation  of  the  two  provinces  and  uniting  with  them  a 
lay  representation  is  the  .s'uic  qua  non  of  all  c(mcessions  of  Home 
Rule  to  the  Chui'ch. 

"But  this  must  grorc,  and  cannot  be  mamifacturcd.  I  dislike 
and  dread  all  paper  constitutions. 

"  I  hope  you  will  approve,  in  the  main,  of  our  episcopal  manifesto 
on  reform.  It  is  almost  entirelv  the  work  of  Gloucester  and  Bristol 
and  your  humble  servant.  It  is  not  so  strong  as  it  ought  to  have 
been  against  legal  parochial  councils.  But  where  many  minds  have 
to  be  deferred  to,  you  must  sacrifice  strength  and  precision  to  unity. 

"  I  began  here  yesterday  a  series  of  sermonettes  at  the  afternoon 
cathedral  service,  to  continue  until  Easter;  subject — The  Church 
Catechism.  The  first  qud  congregation,  at  any  rate,  was  a  decided 
success." 

"Athen.^um  Club,  Pall  Mall, 

"  March  16,  1886. 

"  Here  am  I,  alive  and  well,  after  a  journey  in  the  snow  and  a 
speech  in  the  frosty  atmosphere  of  the  Lords.*  As  regards  the 
latter  and  its  results,  I  am  fairlv  satisfied  ;  and  that,  ijou  know,  is  a 
good  deal  for  me  to  say.  I  think  I  said  all,  or  nearly  all,  I  wanted 
to  say,  and  nearly  as  I  meant  to  say  it. 

"  As  usual,  however,  /  joked,  .mculente  diaboh) — or,  rather, 
■suadente  higetiio — but  really  and  mainly  in  order  to  get  the  Lords 
to  listen  to  me.  At  first  they  were  very  indifferent  and  talkative, 
evidently  caring  little  about  the  subject,  and  looking  on  it  as  a 
bishop's  craze  and  a  bore.  By  degrees,  however,  I  got  them  to 
laugh  first,  then  to  listen,  and  at  last  to  agree  largely  with  me. 

"  I  spoke  for  exactly  an  hour,  and  sat  down  with  a  fair  amount 
(for  the  Lords)  of  ap})lause. 

"Then  up  rose  Grimthorpe — cool,  able,  sarcastic,  and  con- 
temptuous— making  mincemeat  of  the  '  free  and  open '  and  their 
law,  but  evidently  })ut  out  a  good  deal  by  finding  that  I  was  not 
their  mouthpiece,  and  evidently  having  expected  a  different  line 
from  that  taken  in  my  speech. 

"  However,  his  speech  evidently  took  greatly  with  the  Lords,  and 
I  thought  all  was  up  with  the  Bill  and  with  me. 

•  Parish  Churches  Bill,  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  204. 

i 


228 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVI 11 


"  Then  Nelson  made  a  feeble  extreme  speech,  \\hich  rather  hurt 
than  helped  me.  Next  Granville  rose  and  suggested  withdrawal  of 
the  Bill ! 

"  I  thought  then  all  was  over,  when,  to  my  surprise,  up  got 
Selborne  and  strongly  supported  the  Bill,  while,  viore  sua, 
pharisaically  rebuking  both  me  and  Grinithorpe.  For  that, 
ho\\  ever,  I  cared  little.  The  Bill,  I  thought,  is  now  safe.  Then 
comes  the  Lord  Chancellor,  danniing  it  with  faint  praise  and 
making  a  division  much  more  dangerous ;  then  I  poked  up  Cantuar 
to  recommend  a  second  reading  and  Select  Committee,  which 
Cranbrook  approved  of  and  I  assented  to,  and  so,  as  old  Bunvaiv 
says,  '  I  went  niv  way." 

"  The  upshot  of  it  all  is  that  I  have  escaped  the  discredit  and  the 
Church  the  injury  of  the  rejection  of  the  Bill,  and  that  pewdom 
has  got  a  decided  shake,  and  the  M'ise  and  moderate  reform  of  pew 
abuses  has  decidedly  advanced. 

"Of  course,  on  the  other  hand,  I  incur  the  wrath  of  the  'free 
and  open,"  whom  I  fairly  flung  over,  and  without  flinging  o\er 
Mhoni  I  would  never  have  carried  the  second  reading.  For  that, 
however,  I  also  care  little ;  and  so,  on  the  whole,  bar  the  jokes,  I 
am  satisfied.  And,  '  after  all,'  there  was  no  very  great  harm  in  the 
jokes,  and,  after  all,  a  man  is  himself  and  cannot  help  being  him- 
self— and  so  there  is  an  end  of  the  matter,  and  I  am  fairly  well 
out  of  it. 

"  I  must  stay  in  town  now  to  go  with  Cantuar  to  A\^indsor  on 
Friday  to  present  the  Convocation  address  to  the  Queen. 

"  He  wants  me  to  stay  for  Thurlow's  motion  on  the  Sunday 
opening  of  museums.  But  that  I  will  not  do,  for  fear  lest  I  should 
yotey?;?'  it !  and,  at  any  rate,  because  I  cannot  speak  against  it. 

"  The  Queen  wants  me  to  preach  to  her  on  April  4.  So  I  nnist 
put  oft'  my  Peterboi'ough  confirmations  on  that  day  and  do  as  she 
Avishes. 

"I  am  keeping  fairly  well,  spite  of  this  ever-recurrent  niid-Avinter. 
"  But  it  is,  as  you  say,  very  lowering. 

"  I  had  a  wonderful  evening  with  the  microscope  last  night, 
old  ]\Ir.  Fitch,  a  friend  of  Statham's,  having  brought  over  his."' 

"  Athen^um  Club,  March  i8,  i886, 
"  Since  writing  to  you  on  Tuesday  night  I  have  been  busy 
makiu"'  all  the  arranoements  for  the   Select   Committee  on  my 
Bill,  and  have  got  a  very  good  one,  though,  I  fear,  rather  a  hostile 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


229 


one.  The  rule  of  the  House  is  tliat  the  mover  of  a  committee 
submits  his  hst  lirst  to  the  leaders  on  both  sides  and  then  gets 
all  the  parties  named  to  consent  to  act.  So  after  getting  up  my 
list  carefully  I  submitted  it  to  the  whips  on  both  sides.  It  is  very 
amusing  work,  and  quite  after  my  own  heart — manipulating  lords. 
It  is  a  Diocesan  Conference  Committee  in  excelsis,  and  it  needs  tact 
and  i  nun ense  deference,  and  now  and  then  the  lubrication  of  a  joke, 
and  so  I  managed  nearly  ^\•hat  I  wanted.  I  was  surprised  in  the 
process  to  find  how  many  peers  were  in  favour  of  my  Bill  and  would 
have  voted  for  it  had  it  gone  to  a  division,  and  I  may  say  how 
many  expressed  approval  of  my  speech. 

"  To  my  amazement,  Kimberley  came  and  sat  down  beside  me 
quite  promiscuous  and  pleasant,  and  told  good  pew  stories  and 
others  for  a  quarter  of  an  hour. 

"  I  said  a  few  words  in  Committee  to-night  on  the  Lunatics  Bill. 

"As  that  is  a  subject  of  which  I  know  something,  what  I  said 
was  well  received.  Altogether,  I  may  say  it  to  you,  I  have  got 
back  to  my  old  place  in  the  House  of  Loi'ds,  and  perhaps  to  a  little 
more. 

"  This  is  a  vain-glorious  confession  one  would  not  make  to  every 
one.  But  I  may  make  it  to  you  who  know,  I  hope,  that  though 
I  am  not,  I  fear,  abounding  in  charity,  yet  I  do  not  '  vaunt 
nivself." 

"  To-moiTow  I  go  to  address  the  Queen  at  AVindsor.  I  have 
paired  to-night  against  Thurlow's  Museum  Opening  motion. 

"  Cantuar  was  urgent  with  me  to  stay  and  vote  ;  but  I  coidd  not 
stay  and  vote  without  speaking,  and  I  would  not  like  to  speak  on 
such  a  subject  unless  carefully  prepared." 

"Peterborough,  Apyil  i8.  1886. 

"  You  see  that  my  prophecy  is  coming  true.  G.  O.  M.  will  carrv 
his  Repeal  Bill  by  sacrificing  the  Land  Bill,  and  with  it  the  land- 
lords, whom  he  hates,  and  also  by  retaining  the  Irish  contingent  in 
Westminster,  whom  Chamberlain  and  the  Radicals  love,  for  the 
sake  of  their  help  in  plundering  landlords  in  England. 

"These  two  concessions,  plus  three  acres  and  cow,  and  down 
with  the  Lords,  will  carry  as  cruel,  as  cowardly  and  as  reckless  a 
measure  as  ever  was  proposed  in  any  legislature. 

"  It  is  the  old  story — Irish  interests  sacrificed  for  English  political 
necessities.    Qiialis  ah  hiccpto. 


230 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CIIAP.  XVIII 


"  I  am  sick  of  the  whole  subject — too  sick  to  speak  on  it.  I 
could  not  trust  myself. 

"  I  must  get  away,  A\  ith  E.  for  my  excuse  for  a  sea  voyage.  .  . 

"Peterborough,  May  i^,  1886. 

"  I  will  turn  Freddie  off"  on  June  1. 

"  I  write  in  great  haste  as  my  rural  deans  came  at  three  o'clock 
and  my  hands  are  very  full. 

"  You  have  seen,  of  course,  Gladstone's  thoroughl}'  immoral  and 
thoroughly  mischievous  manisfesto. 

"  You  see,  as  I  prophesied,  he  throws  over  the  Irish  landlords, 
and  that  on  the  false  pretence  that  they  have  not  done  what  if 
they  had  done  it  M  ould  have  been  an  act  of  unparalleled  baseness, 
namely,  accepted  a  measure  mischievous  for  their  country  on  condi- 
tions of  their  interests  being  secured. 

"  Of  course,  this  is  not  his  true  reason.  That  is,  that  the  sacri- 
fice of  the  landlords  is  essential  to  the  passing  of  the  Home  Rule 
Bill. 

"  How  shameful,  too,  the  hounding  of  class  against  class  in 
England  in  order  to  gain  the  agricultural  labourers'  vote. 

"  Is  it  not,  just  what  I  foretold  you,  ruin  for  Ireland,  effected  by 
the  help  of  revolution  in  England  ? 

"  I  had  some  interesting  conversations  on  Saturday  night  at  the 
Academy  dinner  with  various  men  of  note,  and  I  have  a  letter  from 
one  to  show  you  when  Ave  meet.    But  all  this  will  keep  until  then. 

"  I  e;o  to  Stoke  for  a  w  eek's  rest  to-morrow."" 

"Athen^um  Club,  June  8,  18S6. 
"  I  lay  down  my  mantle  of  prophet  and  admit  myself  fallible 
as  other  folk.  Up  to  twelve  o'clock  last  night  I  gave  the  G.  O.  M. 
a  majority  of  four,  and  so  did  many  another  man.  No  one  seems 
to  have  dreamed  of  a  majority  of  thirty  against  him.  It  is  crush- 
ing for  the  present.  What  the  election  will  bring  forth  no  man 
can  foretell. 

"•  But  G.  O.  M.  goes  to  the  country  with  a  sadly  damaged 
prestige,  and  with  the  multitude  this  counts  for  much.  This  club 
last  night  witnessed  after  its  quiet  fashion  to  the  intensity  of  the 
political  excitement.  It  was  empty.  At  one  time  I  was  the  only 
guest  in  its  halls.  All  had  gone  to  the  House  of  Commons  either 
to  vote  or  to  wait  in  the  lobbies  to  hear  the  result  of  the  division. 
This  morning  it  was  a  sight  to  see  men  as  they  came  in,  rush  to 
the  papers,  read  hurriedly  the  announcement  '  Defeat  of  Govern- 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


231 


nicnt,''  and  then  go  about  exclaiming,  '  Bravo  ! '  and  '  Thank  God  ! ' 
and  this  is  the  staid  and  sober  Athenaenm  ! 

"  I  am  picking  up  interesting  scraps  of  news  from  the  battle- 
fiekl  given  me  by  various  combatants,  amongst  others  by  Tre- 
vclvan,  M'ho  tokl  me  that  every  man  who  promised  to  vote  against 
the  Bill  did  so,  and  e\  ery  waverer  who  reserved  his  judgment  voted 
for  it. 

"  He  gratified  me  much  by  telling  me  that  my  point  about  the 
importance  of  going  to  the  country  with  a  single  issue  was  the  one 
which  had  weighed  most  with  him  all  along.  He  added,  that  had 
it  been  otherwise  we  should  probably  have  seen  the  abolition  of 
the  House  of  Lords. 

"  The  general  opinion  of  Gladstone's  speech  was  that  it  M  as  not 
one  of  his  best — too  rhetorical,  and  evidently  made  in  fear  and 
dread  of  Parnell. 

"  The  speech  of  the  latter,  cool  and  conciliatory  in  manner,  M  as 
regarded  as  aimed,  in  Jhct,  at  Gladstone  ;  to  M  arn  him  against 
further  concessions,  and  to  insist  on  Irish  Executive  and  including 
Ulster. 

"  It  is  curious  to  get  those  apercus  upon  speeches  by  those  who 
heard  them,  and  M'ho  know  how  to  hear  hctxceen  the  words. 

"  I  must  not  write  more  now  as  I  am  off  to  dress  for  dinner  at 
Lambeth.  To-morrow  I  go  to  the  Isle  of  Wight,  to  stay  until 
IMonday  morning,  and  to  leave  behind  me,  I  hope,  my  fen  fever. 
This  is  already  much  better.  Last  night  it  seemed  to  come  to  a 
crisis.    At  least,  I  hope  so." 

"  FuLHAM  Palace,  S.W., 

"June  21,  i886. 

"  I  got  to  the  House  at  five  o'clock  and  found  it  very  full,  a  large 
whi})  having  been  raised  on  the  Conservative  side  against  Tim 
Healy's  Election  Expenses  Bill.  To  my  dismay,  I  found  myself 
the  sole  bishop  in  the  House  and  no  less  than  four  ecclesiastical 
Bills  coming  in. 

"Most  of  these  had  been  unexpectedly  hurried  up  Irom  the 
Commons,  and  one  of  them,  the  Extraordinary  Tithe  Bill,  a  very 
important  one,  having  arrived  in  the  House  of  Lords  only  at  two 
o'clock  to-day,  after  material  amendments  on  third  reading  in 
the  House  of  Commons  on  Friday  night  last. 

"Aston  from  Q.A.B.  was  raging  in  the  lobby,  and  sent  for  me 
to  oppose  the  Bill — I  who  have  not  a  hop-pole  in  my  diocese  and 
know  nothing  of  the  question.    The  Archbishop  M'as  expected  but 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


liad  not  come.  What  I  could  do  I  did.  I  got  hold  of  Lord 
Sudley,and  got  him  to  undertake  that  Government  would  announce 
the  Q.A.B.'s  objections  should  be  considered,  and  if  found  insuper- 
able the  Bill  should  not  be  pressed  further.  To  my  great  relief, 
at  six  o'clock  the  Archbishop  appeared,  and  then  we  held  a  con- 
ference with  Selborne  and  Cranbrook  in  the  Archbishops'  waiting- 
room  and  agreed  on  the  course  to  be  taken.  I  then  saw  W.  H. 
Smith  as  to  the  Westminster  Bill. 

"  He  assented  to  my  amendment,  which  is  that  '  all  rej)airs  and 
restorations  are  to  be  approved  by  the  Ecclesiastical  Commis- 
sioners,'' and  this  he  undertakes  shall  pass  in  the  House  of 
Conunons. 

"  Then  came  a  Shop-hours  Bill  which  bishops  were  expected  to 
support ;  and  then  a  Q.A.B.  Bill  for  relieving  clergy  from  instal- 
ments. All  these  the  Archbishop  and  I  saw  through  safely ;  he 
s])eaking,  I  holding  my  tongue,  but  waiting  to  help  if  needed. 

"  The  flight  of  the  Bills,  some  Jortij  in  number,  Avas  like  a  driven 
pack  of  grouse  late  in  the  season.  So  laws  are  made  for  this  nmch- 
onduring  and  little  understanding  nation. 

"To-morrow  at  12.30  I  go  to  the  Home  Office  to  confer  with 
Sudley  and  Aston  and  others  as  to  the  Tithe  Bill. 

"  So  you  see  I  have  found  some,  or  someone  else  has,  work  for  my 
'  idle  hands  '  to  do.  I  dined  at  Lambeth  and  drove  out  here  in  a 
cab,  arriving  at  11  p.ji. 

"  Fen  fever  in  abeyance  for  the  present."" 

To  Mrs.  jNLvgke. 

"FuLHAM  Palace,  SAV., 

"June  22,  i886. 

"  The  bishops  met  this  morning  and  I  got  their  agreement  to 
certain  amendments  which  the  Bishop  of  London  and  I  took  down 
to  the  Home  Office,  where  we  met  the  Radical  and  Conservative 
House  of  Connnons  supjiorters  of  the  Bill,  the  Q.A.B.  representa- 
tives, etc.  We  fought  our  points  for  two  hom-s,  and  carried  every 
one  of  them.  The  Radical  man  was  fierce  but  honest,  the  Con- 
servative civil  but  treacherous.  Bishop  of  London  dogged,  Peter- 
borough elaborately  civil  and  polite,  and  the  othei-s  after  their 
manner.  Bishop  of  London  says  that  the  more  disgusted  I  A\  as  the 
more  civil  I  became,  and  that  he  enjoyed  my  laboured  politeness 
and  gentleness  immensely. 

"  However,  we  got  all  that  was  possible  for  the  poor  dear  clergy, 


1 886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


233 


who  will  be  sorely  hit  by  the  Bill  and  who  of  course  will  denounce 
the  bishops  for  betraying  them. 

"  Then  came  the  Westminster  Restoration  Bill  in  the  House  of 
Lords,  on  which  I  carried  an  amendment,  which,  with  my  speech, 
you  will  have  seen  in  the  Times. 

"What  I  said  was  very  well  received  and  carried  unanimously. 

"  Then  I  drove  out  here  to  dinner,  at  7.30,  having  worked  for 
eight  hours. 

"  To-morrow  I  wind  up  m\  Parish  Churches  Committee,  and 
in  the  evening  dine  at  Lambeth.    Then  I  have  two  days'  rest. 

"  I  am  somewhat  better.  This  work  and  excitement  is  curing 
the  fen  fever. 

"I  enjoy  my  visit  here  much,  and  am  generally  jolly." 
To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  35  Great  Cumberland  Place, 

"Hyde  Park,  W.,  June  23,  1S86. 

"I  have  just  arrived  here  on  a  visit,  until  Satui'day  next,  to  my 
brother  of  Gloucester  and  Bristol.  I  left  Fulham  this  morning  for 
the  House  of  Lords,  where  I  finished  oft'  the  business  of  the  Select 
Committee  of  the  Parish  Churches  Bill. 

"  The  dissolution  has  cut  our  labom's  short ;  to  begin  or  not  to 
begin  de  novo  in  the  new  Parliament. 

"  At  three  o'clock  the  House  met  to  rush  sundry  bills  through, 
including  the  Westminster  and  Tithes  Bills.  I  attended  to  see 
them  through,  and  thereby  got  into  a  speech  unpremeditated  as 
usual. 

"  Lord  Salisbury,  apropos  of  a  Temperance  Bill,  thought  proper 
to  chaff'  the  '  Right  Reverend  Bench,"  who  really  had  nothing  to 
do  M'ith  it ;  and  ask  us  '  to  make  up  our  minds  as  to  whether  it 
^\  as  wrong  to  drink  beer ' ! 

"  This  was  too  much  for  me  to  stand  and  I  accordingly  replied 
to  his  lordship  a  little  in  his  own  line ;  and  then  went  on  to  say  a 
few  words  on  the  general  question  of  legislation  for  morals,  which 
to  my  surprise  were  extremely  well  received  by  the  House. 

"  Of  course  I  shall  be  savagely  attacked  for  them  by  the  teeto- 
tallers.   But  for  this  I  really  care  nothing. 

"  I  i-eally  think  that  I  have  strengthened  my  position  in  the 
House  in  the  last  three  days,  and  that  too  in  a  manner  in  which  I 
could  not,  as  it  were,  help  it.  Circumstances  seemed  to  force  on 
me  the  part  I  took,  and  I  think  that  no  one  blames  me  for  it. 


234 


"  I  saw  Dean  Bradley  this  morning,  and  lie  entirely  assents  to 
and  approves  of  my  amendment  to  the  Westminster  Bill.  He 
thinks  it  will  not  hinder  and  mav  even  help  its  passage  through 
the  Commons. 

"  I  dined  to-night  at  Lambeth,  '  Festival  of  sons  of  the  clergy,' 
Lord  Mayor,  sheriffs  and  sundry  notables,  turtle,  whitebait, 
venison  and  speeches  as  usual. 

"  It  was  the  Archbishop's  wedding  day,  so  we  glorified  his  Grace 
and  Mrs.  Benson. 

"  The  ceremony  was  altogether  quaint  and  old-world,  and  worth 
seeing  for  once. 

"I  am  free  and  easy  now  for  three  days.  Next  week  I  open 
a  church  at  Leicester." 

"  Stoke  Drv,  July  3,  1886. 
"  I  agree  with  you  as  to  J.  Bright's  speech. 

"  I  had  noted  the  Cook  tourist  epigram  and  also  the  almost 
equally  good  one  upon  the  proposal  to  have  the  Irish  M.P.s 
coming  and  going  at  Westminster  as  '  intermittent  Irish  fever  in 
the  House  of  Commons.' 

"  But  the  new  electorate  will  not  appreciate  these  hits.  They 
are  beyond  and  below  J.  B.  Such  is  the  Nemesis  of  the  advanced 
politician.  He  is  sure  to  be  distanced  by  the  moi'e  advanced,  and 
finds  himself  at  last  sti'andetl  on  the  bank,  while  the  muddy  stream 
flows  past  him. 

"  J.  B.  is  now  half  a  Conservative — Gladstone  half  a  Republican. 

"  W.  C.  P." 

The  following  letter  from  Mr.  Bright  to  the  Bishop  shows  how 
these  two  men,  so  strongly  opposed  upon  other  questions,  agreed 
upon  this  one. 

From  the  Right  Hon.  Johx  Bright. 

"  One  Ash,  Rochdale, 

"August  i-j,  1886. 

My  DEAR  Bishop  of  Peterborough, — I  ought  to  have  written  to  you 
two  months  ago,  but  my  correspondence  has  been  a  great  burden,  and 
I  have  put  many  letters  aside  for  a  time. 

But  now  I  wish  to  thank  you  for  your  most  friendly  letter  referring 
to  the  course  I  have  taken  on  the  Irish  question.  I  have  not  been 
moved  by  fears  as  to  the  breaking  iq)  of  tlie  Empire,  or  as  the  cITeet 
the  proposed  measure  might  have  upon  Great  Britain.    I  have  acted 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


935 


from  my  continued  sympathy  with  Ireland^  and  in  view  of  the  true 
interests  of  Ireland. 

I  am  quite  sure  the  whole  Irish  people^  North  and  South  alike,  can 
be  and  will  be  more  justly  governed  from  Westminster  than  by  or  from 
any  Pai'liament  in  Dublin  ;  and  nothing  seems  to  me  more  shocking 
than  the  scheme  of  handing  over  the  loyal  portion  of  the  five  millions 
of  the  Irish  population,  being  in  number,  I  believe,  at  least  two  millions, 
to  the  government  of  the  men  who  have  disturbed  and  demoralised 
Ireland  during  the  last  seven  3  ears. 

The  active  men  of  the  Pamellite  conspiracy  are  rebels  ;  and  I  believe 
that  now  if  England  were  at  war  with  France  they  would  do  what 
Wolfe  Tone  and  others  did  ninety  years  ago,  invite  the  French  to 
invade  Ireland  to  save  that  countiy  from  Great  Britain,  and  to  establish 
an  Irish  Republic.  I  have  no  faith  in  their  conversion  or  their  promises, 
and  I  M  ill  not  trust  any  portion  of  my  countrymen  to  their  sense  of 
justice,  or  to  their  honour.  As  to  the  justice,  nothing  can  be  foreseen, 
but  I  hope  a  resolute  Government  may  do  something  to  preserve  order, 
and  that  a  continued  disposition  to  give  all  to  Ireland  that  justice 
requires  may  improve  the  temper  of  her  people. 

I  hope  we  may  see  no  more  of  measures  of  capitulation,  such  as  the 
constituencies  of  Great  Britain  have  recently,  and  so  emphatically, 
condemned. 

Your  letter  gave  me  much  pleasure,  and  I  thank  you  for  it. 
Believe  me  very  sincerely  yours,  John  Bright. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  Athen.tum,  July  8,  i886. 

"  I  dined  last  night  with  the  doctors,  some  200  strong,  imder 
Sir  J.  Paget's  presidency  (Jubilee  of  Medical  Benevolent  Fund). 

'•  He  had  the  Bishop  of  London  and  Cardinal  Manning  on  his 
right  and  me  on  his  left.  They  both  responded  for  the  toast  of  the 
Church.  How  Manning  must  have  grinned  inwardly  at  such  a 
junction  !  London  spoke  honestly  and  cleverly,  Manning  elegantly 
and  neatly  and  with  much  unction.  Your  humble  servant  was 
given  the  Army,  Navy  and  Reserve  Forces  !  and  that  at  a  moment's 
notice  ;  not  a  very  hopeful  subject  for  an  episcopal  speech. 

"  I  got  through  it  as  well  as  I  could,  and  had  the  pleasure  of 
seeing  one  mild  little  jokelet  of  mine  murdered  in  the  Standard 
report  of  to-day. 

"  I  had  said  that  of  the  three  forces,  my  only  interest  was  in 
the  navy,  inasmuch  as  bishops  in  governing  their  dioceses  Avere 
often  'at  sea.'    The  Standard  printed  it  that  the  Church  was  a 


236 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


ix'scrved  force  because  she  A\  as  '  esteemed ' !  If  they  had  even 
made  me  say  steamed  it  would  have  had  a  nautical  flavour. 

"  Sir  J.  Lister  in  returning  thanks  for  some  toast  said  something 
civil  about  'Irish  eloquence''  and  then  to  my  amazement  dashed 
into  a  '  sentiment '  as  he  called  it ;  '  may  that  island  never  be 
separated  from  us  but  its  union  always  maintained,''  which  the 
audience  cheered  lustily  and  unanimously,  for  a  minute  at  least. 

July  9.  I  broke  this  off  last  night  to  go  and  d^ne  with  Justice 
Bowcn  and  Hutton.  I  found  there  besides  Hutton,  Lowell  the 
American  ^Minister,  and  Mahaffy  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  and 
an  Englishman  named  Morison  Avith  a  handsome  and  clever  wife 
and  ditto  sister-in-law.  We  had  a  very  pleasant  party ;  Mahaft'y 
very  amusing,  Lowell  dry  and  quaint  and  cool,  a  Home  Ruler, 
not  because  he  believes  in  it  as  wise  or  good,  but  because  it  must 
come,  this  being  the  nineteenth  century  and  strong  and  resolute 
government  impossible  under  our  democratic  institutions. 

"We  soon  by  common  consent  abandoned  the  Irish  question  and 
took  to  literature  and  stories — Irish,  American  and  English,  and 
enjoyed  ourselves  much. 

"  I  have  just  seen  the  telegram  announcing  the  rejection  of 
Trevelyan  ! 

"  Hartington''s  seat  is  very  shaky  too.  How  curious  it  will  be  if 
the  thi'ee  leaders  of  Liberal  Unionism  fall  in  the  conflict,  and  the 
rank  and  file  nevertheless  win  ! 

"  It  will  have  been  the  soldiers'  battle.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  foUowino-  letter  refers  to  a  small  book  on  the  Atonement 
written  for  a  series  entitled,  "  Helps  to  Belief." 

"Stoke  Dry,  Atigi'si  13,  1886. 
"  Could  you  find  and  send  me  by  passenger  train, 
"(1)  Your  own  Donnellan  '  Lectures  on  the  Atonement;'' 
"  (2)  Hagenback's  '  History  of  Doctrine ;'' 

"(3)  That  volume  of  Dormers  'Person  of  Christ which  deals 

with  the  Atonement.!^ 

"  This,  you  see,  implies  that  I  am  really  setting  to  work. 

"  I  have  taken  for  my  text,  or  theme  rather,  St.  John's  statement 

of  the  Atonement,  1  John  ii.  (1-2). 

"  It  seems  to  me  to  put  the  Avhole  doctrine,  scientifically,  thus : 
"  (1)  It  affirms  the  existence  of  sin.    '  If  we  say  we  have  no  sin.'' 
"  (2)  It  aflirms  conditional  forgiveness.    '  If  we  confess  onr  sins/ 


1886-88  CHURCH  PATRONAGE  237 


"  (3)  It  affirms  that  in  order  to  this  conditional  forgiveness  there 
was  needed  the  removal  of  an  obstacle  to  remission  of  sin.  '  He 
is  the  propitiation  for  our  sins.'' 

"  Forgiveness  of  the  penitent  is  then  made  possible  by  Christ,  who 
is  our  propitiation. 

"This  seems  to  me  the  Biblical  doctrine  of  the  forgiveness  of 
sins.  And  this  threefold  statement  traverses  three  objections  to 
the  doctrine. 

"  (1)  The  denial  that  there  is  any  such  thing  as  sin.  This  is  the 
objection  of  the  Materialist  and  Necessitarian. 

"  (2)  The  denial  that,  if  there  be  such  a  thing  as  sin,  thei^e  can 
be  any  forgiveness  for  it. 

"This  is  F.  Newman's  objection,  in  'The  Soul,' based  on  the 
uniformity  of  law  and  the  certainty  of  its  penalties  in  the  moral  as 
in  the  phvsical  world. 

"  (3)  The  denial  (granting  sin  and  forgiveness)  of  any  need  for 
anything  more  than  penitence  on  the  part  of  the  sinner  in  order  to 
forgiveness. 

"  This  is  the  Deistic  or  Socinian  objection. 

"The  first  two  objections  are  on  the  ground  of  the  scientific 
impossibility  of  any  doctrine  of  sin  and  forgiveness. 

"  The  third  is  on  the  ground  of  the  superfluity  of  any  propitiation, 
and  also  of  the  injustice  of  the  jiopular  theory  of  the  Atonement 
as  required  by  the  justice  of  God. 

"  In  dealing  with  these  objections,  I  meet  the  first  by  the  fact  of 
the  human  conscience  and  also  by  the  argument  that  at  any  rate 
they  must  admit  that  man  Ifs  out  of  harmony  ro'ith  late  and  that 
this  must  be  remedied  in  order  to  his  happiness,  i.e.,  '  sin,'  or  what 
we  call  sin,  '  is  the  transgression  of  law,'  and  the  result  of  this  is 
})enalty. 

"  (2)  I  meet  the  second  by  admitting  fully  the  invariableness  and 
universality  of  moral  law  and  its  penalties,  and  therefore  the  im- 
possibility of  remission  of  penalties  even  to  the  penitent  in  any 
system  of  moral  government. 

"  I  grant,  nay  insist,  that  nature,  apart  from  revelation,  reveals 
an  unforgiving  God,  or  system  ;  and  therefore  I  argue  it  needs  a 
revelation  to  assure  forgiveness  and  a  ?niracle  to  eft'ect  it,  remission 
of  penaltv  being  as  much  a  miracle  in  the  moral  world  as  raising 
the  dead  in  the  phvsical. 

"  (3)  I  meet  the  objection  that  propitiation  is  su])erfluous  by 
referring  number  three  objector  to  number  two,  and  by  asking  how 


^38 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEK 


CHAP.  XVIII 


iindev  a  system  of  moral  government  there  is  room  for  forgiveness; 
and  as  to  objections  on  the  ground  of  injustice,  I  throw  over  the 
popular  forensic  explanation  of  atonement  as  an  explanation  only, 
and  as  one  we  are  in  no  way  concerned  to  defend.  All  we  are 
bound  to  maintain  is  that  reason  and  Scripture  both  declare  that 
there  is  an  obstacle  in  the  way  of  remission  of  sin  o)i  tlie  side  of 
■God,  and  that  Christ  has  removed  this  not  merely  by  His  death  but 
by  His  incarnate  life  and  work. 

"  Lastly  I  would  touch  lightly  and  tentativelv  on  the  idea  of 
humanity  being  in  Christ  as  in  Adam,  and  on  the  idea  of  a  neio 
.deporture  for  the  race  in  His  new  life  out  of  death,  and  also  on  the 
mediatorial  work  and  office  of  Christ.  '  ^Ve  have  an  advocate 
Avith  the  Father.' 

"  Now  read  this  over  kindly  a  second  time,  and  tell  me  what  you 
think  of  it  all.  "  "  W.  C.  P." 

In  the  autumn  of  1886  the  Bishoj)  paid  a  visit  to  Ireland,  and  it 
Avas  on  this  occasion  that  he  revisited  his  old  school  at  Kilkenny 
(Chapter  I.).  While  visiting  his  old  friend  Dr.  Jellett  at  Ahinagh 
Kectory  he  was  taken  ill  and  had  to  return  to  Dublin  for  medical 
advice.  His  ailment  was,  if  not  very  dangerous,  of  a  most  dis- 
tressing character.  The  following  letter  shows  how  completely  it 
upset  all  his  plans.  Before  it  reached  me  at  Peterborough  ]VIrs. 
Magee  had  joined  him  in  Dublin,  and  after  a  short  time  she 
Ijrought  him  home  a  convalescent  but  still  very  weak. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxkli.. 

"  Shelbourne  Hotel,  Dublin, 

"  Siptcinber  26,  1886. 

"  You  have  pi'obably  heard  by  this  time  of  what  our  Killarney 
trip  has  ended  in — a  had  attack  of  gouty  inflannnation  in  the  glands 
of  the  mouth  and  the  tongue  which  has  confined  me  to  my  room 
here  for  four  days,  and  is  likely  to  do  so  for  twice  as  many  more. 

"  I  have  not  been  so  ill,  nor  suffered  so  much,  since  my  great  ill- 
ness. I  have  put  myself  under  your  namesake.  Dr.  R.  MacDonnell, 
a  man  of  great  repute  and  an  old  accpiaintance.  He  tells  me  that 
there  is  no  cause  for  uneasiness,  that  I  have  no  constitutional  symp- 
toms whatever.  Pulse  and  tenijierature  normal.  But  this  does 
not  prevent  my  feeling  rnificr(d)ly  ill  and  low,  l)esides  being  unable 
to  swallow  anything  save  liquids  and  hardly  to  speak.  MacDon- 
nell says  that  my  holding  my  visitation  'is  totally  out  of  the 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


239 


question,"  and  he  forbids  it  absolutely.  Now  I  want  you  to  confer 
with  Gray  and  to  send  out  necessary  notices  of  postponement  for  nie. 

"I  am  really  too  unwell  to  attend  to  this  or  any  other  business 
just  now. 

"  I  sent  my  wife  yesterday  a  draft  of  an  adyertisement  for  papers 
and  letter  to  rin-al  deans.  Please  see  lier  and  Gray,  and  take  this 
offinij  mind. — Yours  affectionately  and  miserably, 

"w.  c.  vr 

"January  27,  1887. 

" .  .  .  .  We  did  not  do  much  at  the  bishops'  meeting.  But 
Manchester  and  I  got  their  lordshijjs  to  agree  with  us  on  one  or 
two  matters  of  importance.  He  (Manchester)  is  proving  already  a 
valuable  and  leading  man  amongst  us.  Shrewdlv  sensible  and  calm 
judging,  and  carrying  weight  accordingly. 

"  What  a  blow  to  Salisbury  is  this  defeat  of  Goschen  ! 

"  The  stars  in  the  courses  fight  against  the  Conservatives. 

"  I  fear  that  anarchy  and  faction  will  triumph  ere  long.  There 
is  not  patience  enough  in  a  Democracy  to  hold  out  and  play  the 
waiting  game.  They  will  have  everything  settled  out  of  hand,  and 
consequentlv  they  will  speedily  -settle  their  men  ha.sh,  and  stew  in  it 
afterwards — Irish  Home  Rule,  purchased  by  Welsh  and  Scotch 
Radical  and  Nonconformist  votes,  and  sold  to  Gladstone  for  Dis- 
establishment and  Revolution  hereafter. 

"  This  is  my  forecast." 

"  February  5,  1887. 

"  .  .  .  .  I  have  been  corresponding  with  Chamberlain  on  the 
Irish  question ! 

"  I  was  moved  by  the  perusal  of  a  recent  speech  of  his  to  send 
him  some  thoughts  of  mine  on  the  agrarian  element  in  the  Irish 
problem.  He  received  them  venj  civilly,  and  wrote  me  a  long  and 
very  interesting  letter  in  reply. 

"  My  three  points  were  : 

"(1)  Produce  rents,  instead  of  fixed  ones,  on  the  principle  of 
tithe  rent  charge,  rising  and  falling  automatically. 

"  (2)  Stringent  provisions  against  sub-letting  by  the  new  peasant 
proprietary. 

"  (3)  Prevention  of  harsh  evictions  by  giving  the  tenant  before 
eviction  an  appeal  to  a  county  court  judge,  who  should  decide  how 
much  he  should  pay  and  order  him  to  ))av  by  instalments  as  in  a 
county  court  judgment  in  England. 


240 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


"  Siicli  judjimeiit  to  be  enforceable  hij  the  court,  not  by  the 
landlord,  and  bv  imprisonment  if  necessary. 

"  On  all  these  })oints  Chamberlain  agreed  with  me  entirely, 
adding-  much  interesting  matter  as  to  his  ideas  of  local  govern- 
ment as  distinguished  from  Home  Kule. 

"  I  will  show  vou  his  letter.    I  kept  no  copy  of  mine."''' 

"Athen^um  Club,  March  3,  1887. 
" '  There  is  na  doot,'  etc.    /  am  better,  and  much  better,  now 
it  is  all  over  and  done.    Mv  speech  was,  I  think  I  may  say  to  you, 
a  success. 

"  I  was  cheered  when  I  got  up,  a  ^  erv  rare  thing  in  the  House  of 
Lords,  and  cheered  when  I  sat  down,  and  listened  to  attentivelv 
throughout. 

"  The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  thanked  me  warmly  and  said 
'  Spoken  nobly,'  and  J.  Ryle  told  me  I  'had  saved  the  Bill.'*  That 
is  an  exaggei'ation,  as  Salisbury  decided  its  fate  by  pronouncing  for 
the  second  reading. 

"  But  I  do  think  I  helped  to  this.  Things  looked  very  black  in 
the  beginning  of  the  evening. 

"  No  less  than  .s/'.r  peers  came  to  tell  me  that  they  feared  thev 
must  vote  against  the  Bill,  and  one  of  them  (Brabourne)  was  even 
])repared  to  sjieak  against  it !  My  first  hour  in  the  house  was 
spent  in  lobbying  these  Morthy  aristocrats,  and  beseeching  them  to 
allow  the  second  reading. 

"Then  I  coached  London  on  the  points  on  which  they  disliked 
the  Bill,  and  warned  him  that  unless  we  showed  ourselves  quite  opr-n 
to  alter  or  omit  these,  all  Mas  over  with  us.  He  took  the  hint  and 
spoke  verv  judiciously  and  dexterously,  though  a  little  heavily.  He 
was  followed  bv  Lord  Cowper  as  patron  of  seventeen  livings,  who 
spoke  like  a  gentleman,  but  all  in  the  old  stvle  about  the  right  and 
innocence  of  selling  benefices. 

Then  I  rose  and  Mas,  as  I  told  vou,  to  my  surprise,  actuallv 
cheei'ed  bv  lay  peers  as  M'ell  as  s]nritual.  I  spoke  for  about  thirty- 
five  minutes,  guided  by  the  conversations  I  had  previously  had,  and 
taking  the  line  I  had  told  you  of ;  reasoning  as  to  the  Bill  and 
Marning  as  to  consequences  of  rejecting  it.  Interspersed  M-ith  them 
came  a  fcM'  hits  at  Grimthorpc,  Mhich  Mere  verv  mcII  received. 

"  The  Peers  evidently  liked  to  see  him  roasted,  though  they  had 
l)cen  all  but  mesmerised  by  his  speech  on  Monday. 

*  The  Church  Patronage  Bill. 


ISS6-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


241 


"  I  think  they  were  obliged  to  ine  for  giving  them  an  excuse  for 
shaking  off  his  domination.  Luckily  for  me  and  the  Bill,  he  was 
not  there.  His  effort  on  INIonday  brought  on  a  fit  of  the  gout,  and 
thus  I  was  not  tempted  to  say  sundry  things  that  his  presence 
might  have  provoked  me  into  saying.  Selborne  made  a  very  tell- 
ing quiet  judicial  speech  in  favour  of  the  Bill. 

"  Salisbury  half  blessed  half  banned  it,  but  decidedly  supported 
second  reading  ;  and  what  is  more  important,  declared  against 
sending  it  to  a  Select  Committee.  Then  all  the  house  nearly 
sHpjied  away  save  the  bishops  and  front  Government  bench  who 
sat  for  half  an  hour,  not  listening  to  Earl  Fortescue  who  steadily 
prosed  on  in  a  high  pitched  voice,  like  the  setting  of  a  saw,  about 
something  or  other  in  the  Bill,  nobody  knew  what ;  and  then  we 
passed  second  reading  and  went  home. 

"  But  it  was  at  one  time  touch  and  go,  and  I  was  told  that  on 
IVIonday  night,  had  a  division  been  taken,  the  Bill  would  certainly 
have  been  rejected. 

"  '  AlFs  well  that  ends  well,'  and  the  ending  for  me  will  be  a  good 
night's  sleep,  which  is  more  than  I  had  last  night ;  and  so  no  more 
from  your  humble  servant  to  command,  "  W.  C.  P." 

"Peterborough,  March  5,  1887. 

"  Thanks  for  your  pleasant  letter.  The  report  of  my  speech  in 
the  Times  was  agonising,  one  half  omitted,  and  the  other  half 
mangled  out  of  recognition  ;  all  the  life  and  point  of  it  knocketl 
out. 

"  Salisbury  spoke  for  ten  minutes,  I  for  forty  ;  and  he  is  reported 
at  twice  my  length  and  verbatim. 

"  Even  my  little  joke  about  the  85  and  25  was  mangled.  I  said 
we  are  25  not  85,  and  there  is  onhj  one  Ir/s/tman  amongst  us! 

"  However,  these  are  small  matters.  The  great  question  is  about 
the  passing  of  the  Bill. 

"  The  Archbishop  has  overloaded  it  ^vith  a  number  of  compli- 
cated and  rather  fantastic  ])r()\  isions  for  a  great  Diocesan  Council 
of  Presentations,  none  of  which  I  ever  saw  or  heard  of  until  now, 
and  has  poorly  stated  his  reasons  for  so  doing. 

"  These  damaged  the  Bill  and  him  and  us,  in  the  eyes  of  the 
IjOrds.  I  did  not  like  to  throw  him  over  publicly  and  totally,  but 
I  did  disparage  the  Council  and  intimated  that  I  cared  little  about 
it.  This  was  all  omitted  in  tlie  I'hnes  report.  So  /  am  held  re- 
sponsible for  his  nia'iserles.    So  historj'  is  made. 


242 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xvm 


"  Practically  the  result  may  be,  as  3  0U  sav,  that  the  Lords,  re- 
jecting this  mode  of  dealing  with  parishioners'  objections,  may  in 
compensation  give  more  ]M)wer  in  that  direction  to  bishops. 

But  much  will  depend  on  the  conduct  of  the  Bill  in  Committee ; 
and  as  I  cannot  take  that  out  of  his  Grace's  hands,  and  do  not  care 
to  have  to  vote  against  him  probably  more  than  once  in  the  Com- 
mittee stage,  I  shall  certainly  stay  away.  He  cannot  in  decencv 
press  me  up  again,  and  if  he  does  I  will  sturdily  say  no.  If  lie 
cannot  fight  a  Bill  through  Connnittee  with  the  help  of  London, 
and  his  ally  Selborne,  he  should  never  have  brought  it  in. 

"  \V.  C.  P." 

IMPRISONMENT  FOR  CONTUMACY. 

To  tlie  Editor  of  the  Guardian. 

May  21,  18S7. 

Sm, — The  accompanying  letter  was  wi-itten  by  me  in  answer  to  a 
request  that  I  would  introduce  in  the  House  of  Lords  a  Bill  for  the 
substitution  of  deprivation  for  imprisonment  as  the  punishment  for 
contumacy.  As  I  have  since  received  similar  requests  and  suggestions 
from  others  I  shall  be  obliged  by  your  publishing  this  letter  as  the  best 
reply  that  I  can  make  to  them.  W.  C.  Peterborougu. 

Palace,  Peterborough, 

April  12,  18S7. 

Dear  Sm, — I  entirely  concur  in  the  opinion  expressed  by  the  Central 
Committee  of  the  Union  of  Clerical  and  Lay  Associations,  "  that  the 
present  state  of  the  law  which  enforces  imprisonment  upon  clei'gymen 
as  the  only  possible  punishment  for  contumacy  is  unsatisfactory."  I 
also  think  as  they  do,  that  deprivation  should  be  substituted  for  im- 
prisonment in  the  case  of  clerks  condemned  as  offendei's  against  the 
laws  ecclesiastical  who  continue  contumacious."  I  am,  however,  quite 
imable  to  comply  with  your  request  on  then-  behalf  that  I  would 
introduce  a  Bill  into  the  House  of  Lords  to  amend  the  law  in  tliis 
respect.  Apart  from  all  considerations  of  health  or  leisure,  as  I'egards 
nivself,  I  am  of  opinion  on  general  grounds  of  pmdence  and  common 
sense,  that  it  is  unwise  to  attemjjt  enforcing  by  speedier  and  more 
certain  penalties  than  now  exist  obedience  to  ambiguous  and  debatable 
rubrics.  The  rubrics  for  alleged  disobedience  to  which  the  clergymen 
referred  to  in  your  letter  have  been  imprisoned  are,  many  of  them,  in 
my  opinion,  of  very  doubtful  meaning,  and  some  of  them  have  actuallj' 
received  contradictoiy  interpretations  in  our  courts  of  law.  The  first 
duty  on  the  part  of  those  who  govern  tlie  Church  towards  those  whom 
they  aie  called  to  govern  is  to  make  the  rules  they  are  to  obey  clear 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PA  TRONA  GE 


and  definite  ;  and  then,  if  needs  be,  to  provide  punishment  for  disobe- 
dience to  these.  To  reverse  this  process  is  only  to  breed  confusion 
and  strife.  For  this  reason,  I  sliould  never  have  voted  for  nor  supported 
the  PubHc  Worship  Regulation  Act,  had  not  its  introduction  been 
accompanied  by  Royal  Letters  of  Business  to  Convocation  for  the 
revision  of  rubrics — a  revision  which  I  fully  hoped  and  believed  would 
have  been  accomplished  well  within  the  limit  of  three  years  named 
in  that  Act  as  the  term  of  grace  for  contumacious  clerks.  Unfortun- 
ately, Convocation  did  not  think  fit  to  avail  itself  of  the  opportunity 
then  given  of  effecting  peace  in  the  Chuixh  by  a  wise,  tolerant,  and 
liberal  revision  of  the  rubrics  in  dispute.  That  opportunity  has  passed 
iiway- — never,  I  fear,  to  return — and  we  are  now  reaping  as  we  then 
sowed.  Having  done  at  the  time  all  that  in  me  lay  to  bring  about  a 
peaceable  and  lasting  settlement  of  these  rubrical  troubles  in  the  only 
way  in  which  such  settlement  seemed  to  me  just  and  possible,  I  feel 
myself  discharged  of  all  further  responsibility  in  the  matter,  and  cer- 
tainly I  do  not  feel  myself  in  any  way  called  upon  to  jiromote  further 
legislation  upon  lines  which  I  believe  to  be  mistaken,  and  which,  if 
carried  further  in  the  same  direction,  could  not  fail  to  prove  alike 
exasperating  to  the  clergy  and  miscliievous  to  the  Church. — I  am,  faitli- 
fuUy  yours,  W.  C.  Peterborough. 

From  the  Rev.  A.  Lloyd. 

Vicarage,  Newcastle-on-Tvne, 

March  g,  1887. 

My  Lord  Bishop, — You  will,  I  feel  sure,  forgive  me  for  troubling 
you  when  you  read  my  story.  The  other  day  a  lady  came  to  me  in 
distress,  caused  by  doubt.  I  lent  her,  as  I  frequently  do  in  such  cases, 
your  Norwich  sermons.  After  a  week  or  so  she  came  back  and  told 
me  these  had  helped  her  more  than  anything  she  had  ever  read.  She 
asked  me  if  any  more  had  been  written  and  published.  It  was  this 
that  led  me  to  trouble  you  with  a  letter — first,  to  say  what  a  real  help 
these  sermons  have  been  to  many  who  have  come  within  my  reach,  and 
then  to  ask  you  if  you  would  kindly  tell  me  of  any  other  pursuing  a 
like  train  of  thought. — Again  asking  you  to  forgive  me,  believe  me  to 
remain  your  faithful  servant,  Arthur  T.  Lloyd. 

To  the  Rev.  A.  Lloyd. 

*'  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"March  13,  1887. 

"  Dear  Sir, — Absence  from  home  and  much  stress  of  work  have 
prevented  tny  earlier  reply  to  your  very  gratifying  letter.    I  an> 


244 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


iiuleed  thankful  to  know  that  words  of  mine  have  helped  aiiv 
struggling  soul  to  conquer  doubt.  I  had  infinitely  rather  hear  thi* 
than  hear  an^'  anioimt  of  praise  for  anything  I  have  ever  said  or 
written.  I  do  not  recall  to  niy  mind  anything  else  that  I  have  pub- 
lished of  the  same  nature  as  my  Norwich  sermons,  unless  it  be  a 
little  tractate  of  mine,  recently  published,  on  the  Atonement.  It 
i'orms  one  of  a  series  of  tracts  entitled  '  Helps  to  Belief,'  and  is 
published  by  Cassell  &  Co.  The  other  tracts  in  the  series  are  bv 
eminent  -wi-iters,  and  I  have  no  doubt  that  your  friend  would  find 
them  helpful. 

"  Believe  me,  with  thanks  for  your  kind  and  encouraging  letter, 
faithfully  yours,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

In  Julv  1887  his  medical  advisers  sent  Bishop  j\Iagee  to  take  the 
A\  aters  at  Contrexeville.  Before  returning  home  he  visited  Gerard- 
mer  from  where  he  wrote  the  following  letter : 

To  J,  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Gerardmer,  Vosges, 

•■August  8,  1887. 

"  Somewhere  or  other  in  this  world,  there  is,  I  believe,  a  Diocese 
of  Peterborough.  It  has,  I  have  heard  tell,  its  cathedral  and  dean 
and  canons,  its  troublesome  incumbents,  its  anxious  curates,  its 
diocesan  conferences,  and  its  inevitable  bishop.  But  it  is  a  verv 
long  way  from  this  place,  and  seems  to  me  a  very  small  and  un- 
certain sort  of  spot  on  the  earth's  surface.  Here  I  am,  a  tourist,  a 
voyageur,  a  farceur  if  you  will,  '  taking  mine  ease  in  mine  inn ' 
— a  most  comfortable  one — and  enjoying  all  the  delights  of  doing- 
nothing  and  thinking  of  nothing,  in  the  midst  of  charming  scenery 
and  out  of  the  reach  even  of  the  sound  of  the  English  tongue. 

"  This  is  a  charming  place,  a  miniatm-e  Swiss  village,  situated 
just  outside  a  deep,  long,  pine-clad  gorge  in  the  Vosges  hills — thev 
are  hardly  mountains,  but  are  highly  respectable  elevations.  A  bijou 
lake,  about  two  miles  and  a  half  in  circumference,  lies  just  at  our 
doors ;  and  all  round  us  pine  woods,  traversed  bv  brawling,  clear 
mountain  streams,  suggestive  of  trout,  shade  you  from  the  fierce 
August  sun,  and  encourage  you  to  stroll  about  and  rest  and  do 
nothing  deliciously.  There  !  that  is  a  fair  bit  of  English  literature 
for  you  dashed  oft"  extenipoi-e,  'a  poor  thing,  sir,  but  mine  own,' 
and  coming  out  of  the  abundance  of  my  jollity  and  ease.  Truly  I 
wish  you  were  here  to  enjoy  it  Avith  me. 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PA  I  'RON J  GE 


245 


"  This  hotel  is  by  far  the  best  I  have  been  in  since  I  left  England. 
Every  thing  arranged  with  an  idea  of  French  open-air  comfort, 
a  kind  of  comfort  that  I  take  to  most  kindly  ;  as  you  would  have 
said  had  you  seen  nie  taking  my  cafe  noir  and  cigar  on  the  terrace 
here  after  an  11.30  breakfast,  preceded  by  a  cafe  au  lait  in  the  pine 
woods  three  miles  off,  and  a  stroll  by  the  side  of  a  murmuring 
stream  afterwards,  winding  up  with  a  sponge  bath  and  tending,  as 
soon  as  I  shall  have  posted  this,  towards  a  midday  siesta.  The 
heat  here  just  now  is  tropical,  quite  as  bad  as  in  England,  no  rain, 
I  have  seen  but  four  showers  since  I  left  home.  But  the  air  is 
<leliciously  clear  and  sweet,  not  altogether  like  that  of  the  Precincts 
just  now.  Bother  the  Precincts.  I  should  like  not  to  see  them  for 
another  month. 

"  Nevertheless,  I  mean,  please  God,  to  be  in  them  this  day  week, 
leaving  London  on  Monday  evening,  coming  via  Paris.  I  suppose 
vou  have  made  all  necessary  arrangements  for  the  September 
ordination." 

"Peterborough,  December  23,  1887. 
"  This  last  case  confirms  me  in  my  design  of  putting  limitation 
on  the  preaching  of  deacons,  and  I  have  prepared  accordingly  a 
letter  on  the  subject  to  incumbents,  of  which  I  will  send  you  a  copy 
ere  long. 

"  It  will  cause  some  gi'owls,  but  that  I  cannot  help. 

"  Have  vou  noted  the  declarations  of  the  two  Roman  Catholic 
Bishops,  Limerick  and  Clonfert,  against  Boycottinj;  and  Plan  ot 
Campaign 

"They  are  very  important,  and  have,  I  suspect,  some  connection 
with  Persico^s  mission.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  Palace,  Peterborough. 

Rev.  and  dear  Sir, — Yom"  curate,  whom  I  have  just  ordained,  will 
now  enter  upon  the  duties  of  his  diaconate. 

I  have  reminded  him,  and  I  now  venture  to  remind  you,  that  the 
first,  if  not  the  most  important  part  of  these,  is  his  due  preparation  for 
the  office  of  the  priesthood. 

In  order  to  obtain  this  higher  degree  in  the  ministry  at  my  liands, 
it  is  necessary  that  he  should  pass,  in  the  ensuing  twelve  months,  two 
examinations,  the  standard  for  which  is  in  this  diocese  not  lower,  but 
higher  than  that  for  deacon's  orders.  It  is  therefore  essential  for  him 
that  he  should  have  due  time  for  preparing  himself  for  these  examina- 
tions, and  accordingly  I  trust  that  wliatcver  arrangements  you  may 


246 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CilAP.  XVIII 


make  for  the  diseharge  of  his  other  duties  you  will  make  careful  and 
stated  provision  for  this. 

The  plea  which  is  sometimes  urged  by  deacons  who  unfortunately 
foil  in  their  examinations  for  the  priesthood  is  that  the  pressui'e  of 
other  engagements  has  left  them  no  leisure  for  study.  In  some  cases 
this  plea  has,  I  fear,  been  too  amply  j  ustified,  and,  although  I  have 
never  been  able  to  accept  it  is  a  reason  for  admitting  an  unqualified 
deacon  to  the  office  of  a ''priest  in  the  Church  of  God,"  I  have  strongly 
sympathised  with  the  curate,  whose  failure  has  not  been  owing  to  his 
own  lack  of  care  and  diligence,  but  simply  to  the  lack  of  that  time 
which  is  not  at  his  OAvn  disposal,  but  at  that  of  his  incumbent. 

I  earnestly  hojie,  therefore,  that  you  will,  in  this  respect,  do  full 
justice  to  your  curate,  and  that  you  will  also,  as  far  as  you  can,  assist 
and  encourage  him  in  his  preparation  for  the  priesthood. 

As  regards  one  most  important  part  of  his  new  duties — that  of 
jneaching — I  grant  him  my  licence  to  preach  only  on  condition  that 
he  does  not  preach  in  tlie  parish  church  more  than  one  sermon  of  his 
own  composition  in  each  month.  Should  you  require  him  to  preach 
more  frequently  than  this,  I  wish  him  to  copy  out  and  to  read  from 
the  pulpit,  either  one  of  the  homilies  of  our  Church,  or  a  sermon  from 
one  of  those  named  in  the  accompanying  list. 

Should  there  be  any  other  sermons  which  you  may  wish  him  to 
j)reach,  I  am  prepared  to  sanction  his  doing  so  provided  such  sermons 
have  been  previously  approved  of  by  me. 

On  liis  preaching  in  mission  chapels  or  school-rooms  I  place  no  restric- 
tion, though  even  in  these  it  is  not,  I  think,  desirable  that  he  should 
preach  too  frequently. 

Twice  in  each  year  on  the  occasion  of  his  examination  he  will  for- 
Avard  to  me  the  MS.  of  the  last  sermon  of  his  own  composition  which 
he  may  have  preached  in  the  parish  church,  and  from  this  I  shall  be 
able  to  judge  whether  his  period  of  probation  as  a  preacher  may  pro- 
perly be  abridged. 

I  have  informed  him  that  on  his  strict  compliance  with  these  condi- 
tions his  ordination  by  me  to  the  priesthood  must  depend. 

Commending  these  rules  to  your  kind  and  careful  consideration,  I 
am,  rev.  and  dear  Sir,  faithfully  yours,  W.  C.  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"  Christinas  Day,  1887. 

"  Many  happy  Cliristniases  to  you  and  yours,  or  at  least  may  all 
remaining  Christmases  be  happy  ones — happy  in  pleasant  memories 
and  assured  and  peaceful  hopes.    Truly,  as  you  say,  our  roll  of 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


247 


festivals  is  drawing  to  its  close.  The  more  need  have  we  to  cherish 
the  old  friendships  which  survive  the  waste  of  time,  and  carry  us 
buck  in  memory  to  the  old  days,  not  in  the  'blank  azure'  but  in 
the  golden  light  of  the  pleasant  past." 

"  Athen/EDM  Club,  March  ii,  1888. 

"  Did  you  ever  in  your  eminently  respectable  life  dance  on  the 
tight  rope  ?  And  did  you  ever  do  so  in  the  presence  of  royalty  ? 
No      Then  I  have  beaten  you. 

"  For  I  have  this  day  performed  that  exceedingly  difficult  feat, 
and  dead  beat  do  I  feel  after  it.  I  suppose  you  saw  (for  it  was 
aimounced  in  all  the  papers)  that  H.ll.H.  was  to  worship  at  White- 
hall this  afternoon  with  all  his  famil}',  to  keep  his  silver  wedding, 
and  that  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough  was  to  preach.  Not  an  easy 
thing  to  do,  under  anv  circumstances,  to  preach  to  royalty  in  a 
pew  opposite  you,  and  also  to  a  large  middle-class  congregation  on 
a  special  occasion.  But  only  think  of  having  to  add  to  this  a  sjiecial 
allusion  to  the  late  Emperor  of  Germany's  death,  and  the  present 
Emperor''s  condition,  and  all  this  within  the  space  of  forty  minutes, 
the  utmost  length  that  it  is  considered  good  taste  to  inflict  on 
H.ll.H.  Add  to  this  that  he  specially  requested  an  offertory  for 
the  Gordon  Boys""  Home,  and  of  course  implied  some  reference  in 
the  sermon  to  this.  So  that  I  had,  within  forty  minutes,  to  preach 
a  Charity  sermon,  a  Wedding  sermon,  and  a  Funeral  one.  INIatch 
me  that  if  you  can  for  difficulty. 

"It  was  trying,  and  cost  me  much  sweat  of  brow  and  sleepless- 
ness at  night,  more  especially  as  nothing  nuist  do  me  but  to  preach 
on  1  Cor.  xii.  25,  26,  and  to  deliver  my  sentiments  on  Christian 
Socialism  inter  alia.  The  thing  got  hold  of  me  and  I  could  preach 
on  nothing  else. 

"  However,  it  is  done  and  over,  and  I  think  fairly  done.  But 
oxen  arul  uart-ropes  would  not  hale  me  to  the  preaching  of  such 
another  discourse. 

"  How  cui'ious  it  is  that  I  have  now  preached  for  the  fifth  time 
an  unexpected  funeral  sermon  on  some  great  occasion. 

Lady  Augusta  Stanley,  Dean  Stanley,  the  late  Emperor  of 
Russia,  Prince  Leopold,  and  now  the  German  Emperor,  all  died  a 
dav  or  two  before  I  had  to  preach  either  to  royalty  or  on  a  special 
occasion,  and  for  each  I  had  to  make  a  special  funeral  eloge.  I 
doubt  if  that  ever  occmTed  in  the  life  of  any  other  preacher 
before. 


218 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


"  I  really  feel  as  if  I  had,  as  regards  my  preaching,  what  the 
Italians  call  \h.e  jeUutura — the  evil  eye.  I  do  not  bring  luck  to 
those  who  ask  me  to  preach. 

"  I  hear  that  there  is  no  doubt  that  the  new  Emperor"'s  disease  is 
fatal,  and  likely  even  to  be  soon  if  not  rapidly  fatal.  No  one  now 
doubts  its  cancerous  nature. 

"The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  was  at  Whitehall  to-night  in 
robes  to  receive  H.R.H. 

"  He  had  urged  me  to  come  up  on  Thursday  next  to  fight 
Grimthorpe  over  his  Grace's  Ecclesiastical  Procedure  Bill.  I 
finally  declined  this  on  the  honest  plea  of  physical  inability  with  all 
my  other  work.  But  besides  I  do  not  care  to  be  the  gamecock  of 
the  Episcopal  Bench.  I  fought  for  them  last  ^•ear  and  saved,  they 
tell  me,  the  Patronage  Bill ;  now  they  must  fight  for  their  own 
hand. 

"  If  his  Grace  and  London  cannot  do  their  plain  duty  in  fighting 
Bills  for  the  Church  through  Parliament,  they  had  better  7-^sign, 
or  rt,9sign  some  ^PoOOO  a  year  to  the  poor  country  bishops  they 
w  ant  to  do  their  work  for  thom. 

" '  Zonam  qui perdidit  {iion)  'ib'it.''    I  stay  at  home. 

"  W.  C.  P.^ 

"Elton  Hall,  Peterborough, 

"  April  5,  i8SS. 

"  I  agree  with  you  that  at  any  rate  I  have  saved  the  suffragan- 
ship  for  the  diocese,  and  certainly,  whatever  happens,  it  is  not  my 
doing. 

"  Apropos  of  this  Suffragan  Bill,  I  heard,  oddly  enough  here, 
from  Penrose  Fitzgerald,  M.P.  for  Cambridge,  the  account  of  its 
failure  last  year  in  the  House  of  Commons,  which  is  at  any  rate 
amusing. 

"  It  seems  that  it  was  down  for  second  reading  on  a  certain 
night  when  a  sharp  debate  had  just  terminated  on  the  Margarine 
Bill,  in  which  Fitzgerald,  a  Cork  man  defending  butter,  had  come 
into  collision  with  Biggar,  a  northern  bacon-seller,  who  naturally 
patronised  margarine. 

"  At  about  3  o'clock  in  the  morning  Fitzgerald,  who  had  taken 
charge  of  the  Suffragan  Bill,  tried  quietly  to  slip  it  through,  as  a 
small,  quite  non-contentious  Bill,  when  up  got  Biggar,  who  opposed 
it  as  a  Bill  for  creating  '  margarine  or  bosh  bishops.'  '  In  fact 
hishoprecns,''    At  that  time  opposition  was  fatal,  and  the  Bill  A\as 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


249 


lost.  But  for  that  fact  I  should  now  have  had  Bishop  M.  as  my 
suffragan. 

"  Who  would  imagine  that  an  Ii'ish  pig  merchant  would  have 
hindered  English  bishops  from  getting  suft'ragans  ! 

"  We  have  been  staying  here  since  Tuesdav  night  in  a  great 
house  with  a  large  party,  peers  and  peeresses  and  baronets  and  their 
ladies,  all  pleasant  company;  and  have  enjoyed  everything  save 
this  terrible  weather.    Snow  again  this  morning. 

"  ]'*enrose  Fitzgerald  has  been  telling  us  a  series  of  the  most 
delicious  of  Irish  stories,  all  of  them  new  to  me.  I  hope  I  n)ay 
remember  them  to  retail  to  you. 

"  Any  one  of  them  will  make  your  fortune  as  an  Irish  story- 
teller for  a  season. 

"We  return  home  to-morrow,  and  on  Sunday  commences  my 
Confirmation  tour." 

"  Peterborough,  June  13,  iSSS. 

"I  am  greatly  uplifted  by  getting  a  promise  of  ^1000  from  ]\Irs. 
Herrick  for  our  new  Church  Extension  effort  in  Leicester,  which 
aims  at  raising  =£?! 9,000  in  five  yeai's  and  =£^600  a  year  of  annual 
subscriptions  instead  of  ^^300.  This  is  a  '  big  thing.""  But  if  it 
succeeds  we  shall  get  Jour  new  parishes  with  clergy,  and  at  any  rate 
we  shall  get  a  good  deal  done  in  that  direction. 

"  I  had  a  letter  to-day  from  Hassard  (now  Sir  J.  Hassard)  from 
which  I  find  that  the  Leicester  sufFraganship  is  progressing  througli 
the  Government  offices,  and  will  soon,  therefore,  be  a Jhit  accompli. 

"  All  things  at  the  moment,  therefore,  are  roseate  in  hue,  and 
seem  to  promise  a  careless  vacation  for  yours  ever  affectionately, 

"  W.  C.  P. 

"  Fancy  me  with  a  '  Sir '  secretary  and  two  '  my  lord '  ai'ch- 
deacons  and  suffragans.  I  am  getting  algebraically  into  a  very 
high  power.'" 

"Peterborough,  June  14,  iSSS. 

"  Enclosed  you  have  my  '  sintimints '  as  to  unauthorised  publica- 
tions of  sermons.  '  I  have  suffered  many  things '  at  the  hands  of 
piratical  editors,  and  at  last  I  have  '  spoken  with  my  tongue.' 

"  I  daresay  that  the  Contemporary  Pulpit  man  Avill  have  his  say 
in  reply,  and  that  I  may  have  another  letter  to  Avrite  in  answer 
to  him. 

"  But  I  think  I  have  a  strong  case,  and  shall  have  many  sympa- 
thisers. "  W.  C.  P.'' 


250 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP,  xviii 


To  the  Editoi'  of  the  Times. 

Palace,  Peterborough, 

June  II,  i888. 

Sir, — I  have  just  received  a  copy  of  a  publication,  purporting  to  be 
a  series  of  Sermons  on  the  Church  Catechism  by  the  Bishop  of  Peter- 
borough, reprinted,  aj)})arently,  from  the  Contemporary  Pii/pil.  I  ask 
3'our  permission  to  state  that  this  publication  has  been  made  without 
my  consent  or  knowledge  ;  and  that  (with  the  exception  of  the  first 
sermon  of  the  series,  which  was  partially  corrected  by  me)  I  am  in  no 
way  responsible  for  its  contents.  The  facts  of  the  case  are  interestuig 
as  an  illustration  of  what  preachers,  who,  like  mj-self,  do  not  use 
manuscript,  have  to  suffer  at  the  hands  of  reporters  and  editors  of 
religious  periodicals.  I  have  preached  lately  a  series  of  short  sermons 
in  Peterborough  Cathedral  on  the  Church  Catechism.  These  were 
reported  in  the  local  newspapers  ;  and  the  editor,  I  think,  of  the 
Contemporary  Pulpit,  or,  if  not,  some  other  editor,  sent  me  shortlj'  after 
a  pi'oof  of  the  first  of  these  for  coiTCction,  with  a  view  to  publication  in 
his  magazine.  I  found  it,  as  might  have  been  expected,  both  im- 
perfect and  inaccurate. 

I  could  not  afford  the  time,  even  if  I  had  the  ability,  to  reproduce 
the  sermon  from  memory.  I  was  obliged,  therefore,  to  content  myself 
with  rendering  into  English  a  good  many  sentences  which  were 
c-ertainly  not  printed  in  that  language,  and  with  erasing  one  or  two 
amazing  docti'inal  statements  which  were  the  reporter's  and  not  mine. 

The  remaining  sermons  Avere  published  in  the  Contemporarij  Pulpit 
without  any  revision  or  correction  from  me,  and  are  now  republished 
in  ])ermanent  form,  for  the  profit  of  the  publisher  or  editor,  with  tlie 
heading  "  Magee  Extra  ;  price  sixpence."  I  am  aware  that  for  this 
kind  of  literary  assassination,  an  unhappy  preacher  has  no  legal  redress  ; 
lie  is  completely  at  the  mercy  of  penny-a-liners  and  enterprising 
editors,  who  make  "  pernicious  nonsense  "  of  his  discourses,  and  then 
vend  them  for  their  own  gain.  I  do  not  grudge  them  their  gains, 
though,  if  I  might  be  allowed  the  choice,  I  would  gladly  pay  them 
what  they  might  think  their  venture  worth,  on  condition  that  they 
would  forego  it.  But  what  I  do  complain  of  is,  that  because  I  will 
not,  and  indeed  cannot,  reproduce  for  them  my  sermons,  I  must  submit 
to  the  publication  and  circulation  of  all  the  bad  EngHsh  and  worse 
theology  which  they  tliink  fit  to  give  to  the  public  as  mine.  I  com- 
plain, too,  of  the  further  annoyance  of  having  to  answer  numerous 
letters  from  perplexed,  and  occasionally  angry  correspondents,  who 
ask,  "  Did  you  reallj-  say  this  ? "  Can  it  be  possible  that  you  said 
that  ?  "  and  of  having  to  write  to  eacli  one  an  assurance  that  I  never 


I 886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


251 


said  "this"  or  '•'that/'  and  an  explanation — sometimes  a  long  one — as 
to  what  I  really  did  say.  I  know  that  these  complaints  of  mine  will 
fall — so  far  as  enterprising  editors  are  concerned — upon  deaf  ears. 
Preachers  are  their  natural  prey  and  diet.  But,  as  a  matter  of  common 
honesty,  I  think  it  only  due  to  any  intending  purchaser  of  this  parti- 
cular "  Magee  Extra  "  to  apprise  him  that,  if  he  expends  upon  it  the 
sum  of  sixpence,  he  will  get  for  his  money  a  good  deal  more  of  the 
"  Extra  "  than  of  the    Magee." — I  am,  Sir,  faithfully  yours, 

W.  C.  Peterborough. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Athen^um  Club,  July  15,  1S88. 
"  At  Inst  the  Suffragan  Bishopric  of  Leicester  is  an  accomplished 
fact.  Thicknesse  and  Billing  were  consecrated  to-day  in  St.  Paul's. 
The  service  was  a  verv  impressive  one.  The  Archbishop  was 
assisted  by  eight  bishops,  home,  colonial  and  American  very  judi- 
ciouslv  intermingled.  The  choir  of  the  grand  cathedral,  with  its 
really  splendid  rercdos,  lent  itself  nobly  to  the  function.  The 
sermon  by  Bishop  W.  Ho\v  was  suitable,  earnest,  and  nearly 
eloquent,  and  the  demeanour  of  the  bishops-elect  all  that  could 
be  desired.  All  the  details  were  carefully  arranged  and  A\ell  car- 
ried  out,  save  only  that  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough  read  the  m  rong 
epistle ! 

"  I  have  met  one  or  two  bishops — Graves,  Doane  of  Albany,  and 
Howe — who  urge  me  to  attend  the  last  session  of  Conference,*  but 
I  am  not  yet  pci'suaded.  If,  as  they  say,  the  minority  is  deter- 
mined not  to  be  suppressed,  they  do  not  want  me ;  and  if  they  are 
not  so  determined  I  am  not  likely  to  make  them  do  so.  Besides, 
there  is  the  question  of  the  cost  of  another  week  in  town,  no  small 
matter  in  these  hard  times,  and  the  utter  weariness  of  the  whole 
thing  for  me.  I  fear  that  of  all  the  ailments  of  old  age  there  is 
none  more  severe  or  disabling  than  that  of  '  don't  care.'  I  find  it, 
at  any  rate  gaining  on  me  very  fast.  I  keep  asking  myself,  what 
is  the  good  of  worrying  and  fretting  and  torturing  yourself  for  the 
future  of  a  conference  Avhich  ten  years  hence  in  all  human  probabi- 
lity will  assemble  without  you  I  am  very  sick  of  the  endless 
'  talk,  talk,  talk,'  even  of  able  men,  and  want  a  little  rest  and  peace 
from  this  strife,  or,  at  any  rate,  noise  of  tongues.  I  want  to  get 
away  from  it  all,  and  '  be  quiet,'  as  old  Walton  says,  '  and  go 

*  The  Pan-Anglican  Synod. 


252 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XV III 


a-fishing/  So  I  am  still  in  the  mind  for  comino-  away  and  letting 
my  '  influence  and  good  fame,'  that  you  talked  of,  take  care  of 
themselves. 

"  So  no  more  at  present." 

"Kylemore  Castle,  Galway, 

"  September  2,  1888. 

"Fancy  me,  within  a  quarter  of  a  mile  or  so  of  poor  old  Duncan's 
hotel,  on  the  shore  of  the  lake  I  fished  more  than  thirty  years  ago ; 
but  in  a  handsome,  luxuriously  furnished  castle,  surrounded  by 
beautifully  wooded  grounds  with  gardens  and  houses,  worthy  of  u 
ducal  mansion  in  England,  living  on  the  '  hoighth  of  good  ating 
and  dhrinking,'  a  French  cook  and  all  things  to  match — stepping 
down  from  the  castle  terrace  into  a  boat,  with  keeper  at  my  dis- 
posal, fishing  for  sea  trout  and  salmon,  until  lunch  bell  rings,  and 
then  lunching  on  all  the  delicacies  of  the  season,  with  flunkies  of 
great  stature  in  waiting,  and  most  agreeable  society,  and  then  out 
again  after  salmon  and  trout.  That  is  the  life  I  have  been  leading 
for  the  last  ten  days,  in  the  hospitable  abode  of  Mitchel  Henrv, 
formerly  M.P.  for  Galway.  I  have  been  also  to  Leenane,  and  down 
the  Killery  Harbour,  e%en  on  to  Lobster  Island,  where  you  and 
your  missus  ate  lobster  to  such  a  shameful  excess,  and  to  my  great 
disgust,  because  I  was  not  well  enough  to  do  the  same.  I  ha\  e 
seen  Loch  IVIuck  and  Loch  Fee,  and  the  old  lodge  w  here  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Nee  took  us  in  and  did  for  us ;  and  more  than  that,  I  have 
visited  Renvyle,  where,  forty-five  years  ago,  I  spent  a  fortnight 
when  I  was  a  scholar  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin.  How  strange  it 
all  seems  to  me,  and  how  nmch  of  my  past  life  it  brings  back  again. 
I  have  enjoyed  it  all  greatly,  slaying  sundry  white  trout,  and  even 
a  salmon,  and  gaining  health  and  strength  for  my  winter  diocesan 
campaign. 

"  The  weather  has  been  very  bad  however,  here,  though  not  so 
bad  as  I  hear  it  has  been  in  England. 

I  found  to  my  disgust  that  my  fishing  right  hand  had  forgot 
its  cunning.  I  am  only  now  able  to  fish  as  I  '  used  to  was.'  But 
six  years  of  neglect  of  any  art  makes  one  rusty. 

"  I  have  given  up  Killarney — you  know  that  of  old  I  preferred 
fish  to  scenery ;  besides,  I  had  not  time  to  do  Killarney  properly 
in  the  fag  end  of  a  month's  tour. 

"  The  diocese  has  been  veiy  peaceful,  and  the  clergy  have  to 
6ome  extent  spared  me  lettei's." 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


"  WoRSLEY  Hall,  Manchester, 

"  October  4,  1888. 

"I  have  had,  as  you  mav  supjiose,  but  little  time  for  letter  writ- 
ing in  all  the  whirligigs  of  a  Church  congress,  held  seven  miles 
aM'ay,  to  which  I  go  early  and  from  which  I  return  late. 

"  To-day,  however,  I  got  away  early,  and  have  a  few  minutes  \n 
which  to  tell  vou  my  'sintimints''  about  it  all.  We  an'ived  heretoa 
late  for  the  opening  sermon  by  W.  Ebor — not,  I  hear,  a  successful 
one,  and  veiT  badly  heard  owing  to  the  unacoustic  properties  of 
Manchester  Cathedral . 

"  The  opening  scene  in  the  great  Free  Trade  Hall,  holding  5000 
people,  and  crannned,  was  very  fine.  The  Bishop's  address  was 
decidedlv  able  and  telling,  and  very  well  received.  He  is  evidently 
popular  and  making  his  mark  already  in  Manchester. 

"  The  papers  on  results  of  Biblical  criticism  were  disappointing, 
with  one  exception.  Wilson  of  Clifton  gave  an  able  and  thought- 
ful essay,  on  the  effect  of  criticism  on  theology,  wonderfully  conser- 
vative and  constructive  for  him,  and  well  worth  careful  studv  and 
thought  hereafter. 

"  The  others  were  heavy  and  wearisome.  The  Bishop  put  some 
life  into  the  subject  in  winding  up.  But  the  whole  of  the  discus- 
sion, if  so  it  can  be  called,  was  decidedly  one-sided,  and  conceded 
more  than  I  thought  necessary,  and  a  good  deal  more  than  I  should 
have  expected  the  large  mixed  audience  to  receive  patiently.  Thev 
did,  ho\\ever,  so  receive  it,  and  indeed  I  was  greatly  struck  all 
through  with  the  wonderful  tolerance  and  growth  of  wider  thought 
in  this  congress,  both  on  the  platform  and  below  it.  Things  were 
said  and  borne  with,  and  even  applauded,  which  if  said  ten,  or  even 
five  years  ago,  M  ould  have  been  hissed  by  a  large  portion  of  the 
audience. 

"  I  did  not  go  to  the  working-men's  meeting  that  night ;  but  I 
hear  it  was  an  immense  success,  the  Bishop  of  Ripon  and  Balfour 
<|uite  bringing  the  house  down  with  very  able  and  eloquent 
speeches.  Yesterday  there  was,  I  am  told,  a  really  gi-eat  mis- 
sionary discussion ;  and  there,  too,  much  that  was  new  and  bold 
Avas  said  and  listened  to.  In  the  afternoon  we  had  Atheism 
Agnosticism  and  Pessimism  to  deal  Avith.  The  papers  were  by 
Hutton  (of  the  Spectator),  Wace  and  Momcrie.  Three  abler  or 
more  telling  papers  I  never  listened  to — quite  the  cream  of  the 
congress  to  mv  mind.  Wace's  especially,  on  Agnosticism,  \wa.?r 
admii-ablc,  and  its  effect  was  greatly  enhanced  by  the  simple 


254 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


•earnestness  of  its  cleliveiy ;  then,  suadoitc  cp'iscopo  prcsidente,  up 
rose,  but  ill  prepared,  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough.  He  was  most 
kindly  received,  and  moved  by  that  and  by  the  subject,  spoke  for 
nearly  twenty-five  minutes,  the  audience  insisting  on  his  'going 
on,'  and  cheering,  as  the  Daily  Ncxcs  says,  '  wildly '  when  he  sat 
down.  He  dealt  with  the  more  popular  aspect  of  the  sub)ect, 
■endeavouring  to  strengthen  the  faith  of  ordinary  laymen  rather 
than  to  discuss  the  arguments  of  those  Avho  assail  it.  I  think 
that  I  succeeded,  and  I  have  since  been  warmly  thanked  for 
what  I  said  by  competent  men,  and  that  is  better  than  being- 
praised.* 

"  This  morning  we  had  Creeds,  Catechism  and  Prayer-book, 
their  adaptation  to  needs  of  the  day.  Of  course  Me  had  much 
wild  but  also  much  sensible  talk.  But  I  was  immensely  struck 
V  ith  the  conservatism  of  the  audience ;  they  evidently  were  against 
all  meddling  with  Creeds  or  Catechism,  and  all  ditto  with  the 

*  "I  have  said  that  Christianity  solves,  as  no  other  philosophy  can,  the 
«nigmas  of  Hfe.  Have  you  ever  thought  how  strangely  and  how  marvellously 
Christianity  is  at  once  the  most  pessimistic  and  most  optimistic  of  all  the  philo- 
sophies of  life  ?  In  one  aspect  it  is  essentially  pessimistic.  What  can  be  more 
pessimistic  from  the  view  of  humanity  than  this,  that  it  was  so  utterly  lost  that 
it  needed  the  Omnipotent  to  come  to  its  rescue  ?  What  can  be  more  optimistic 
than  the  thought  that  divinity  has  allied  itself  with  humanity,  in  order  that 
humanity  may  be  made  partakers  of  the  divine  nature  ?  Yes,  Christianity  is 
pessimistic,  and  there  are  reasons  enough  for  it.  We  see  that  human  nature  can 
descend  from  the  glory  of  a  Paul  or  a  John  to  the  foulness  and  horror  of  a  White- 
chapel  murderer,  prowling  round  the  streets  at  night  for  his  prey.  We  see  how 
human  nature  can  rise  to  the  height  of  a  Father  Damien,  accompanying  to  their 
doomed  exile  a  crowd  of  ghastly  lepers,  giving  his  life  for  them,  in  order  that  he 
may  minister  to  them  in  what  remains  to  them  of  life — dying  as  he  is  now  dying 
for  them  and  with  them.  Between  these  two  extremes,  who  can  frame  a  theory 
•that  will  fit  both  ?  Who  can  tell  us  why  there  is  so  much  of  the  ape,  the  tiger, 
and  yet  so  much  of  the  angel  in  men  ?  Christianity  can  tell  us.  In  the  redemp- 
tion and  glorification  of  humanity  through  Christ  humanity  has  lost  itself  in  Christ 
as  its  regenerator.  You,  the  pessimist,  tell  me  of  the  sorrow,  the  suffering,  the 
misery  of  humanity ;  and  I  tell  of  the  time  when  death  shall  be  destroyed,  and 
when  sorrow  and  sighing  will  be  done  away  with,  and  when  men  will  weep  no  more. 
You  tell  me  here  of  mystery  and  difficulty  and  perplexity ;  and  I  tell  you  of  the 
time  when  we  shall  know  even  as  we  are  known,  and  doubt  and  mystery,  like  sin 
and  sorrow  and  shame,  shall  fade  away  in  the  white  light  around  the  throne  on 
which  sits  the  Lamb  that  died  for  mankind.  There,  in  the  future,  lies  the  com- 
pleted optimism  of  Christianity.  Here,  in  the  Christian  life,  though  working  feebly 
and  imperfectly  as  it  does,  is  to  be  seen  the  evidence  of  the  truth  of  Christianity 
that  we  may  take  home  to  our  hearts.  Let  us  strengthen  this  evidence,  each  one 
of  us,  in  our  daily  Christian  life,  and  meanwhile  we  can  patiently  await  the  time 
when  the  day  of  full  unclouded  vision  shall  dawn,  and  the  shadows  of  our  fears 
and  doubts  shall  flee  away  for  ever." — Extract  from  the  Bishop's  speech. 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


255 


Prayer-book,  save  in  the  way  of  greater  elasticity  in  using  it,  and 
the  providing  of"  supplemental  services. 

"  Once  or  twice  we  got  into  igncs  siippo.-i'ttos  about  the  orna- 
ments rubric  ;  and  I  (who  was  in  the  chair  acting  for  Bishop  of  M. 
who  had  lost  his  voice)  was  a  little  afraid  of  a  row.  All,  however, 
passed  off'  smoothly,  and  in  the  latter  part  dully. 

"  The  best  speech  by  far  was  made  by  Bishop  Barry,  Bishop  of 
Sydney,  thoughtful  and  well  balanced.  I  \\  i.shed,  as  I  heard,  more 
than  ever  that  he  had  been  sent  to  Chester. 

"  I  have  taken  my  leave,  J.  think,  of  the  Congress,  as  I  want  a 
day's  rest  and  strolling  about  to-morrow.  VCe  hope  to  leave  on 
Saturday.  "  W.  C.  P." 

At  the  conclusion  of  the  meeting  a  gentleman  (Mr.  Clifford) 
mentioned  to  the  Bishop  that  he  was  starting  in  a  few  days  for 
]\Iolokai.  The  Bishop  sent  a  message  to  Father  Damien  adding : 
"  I  would  send  him  my  blessing,  but  he  would  not  care  for  it  from 
a  heretic  bishop." 

From  E.  Clii  foud,  Esq. 

MoLOKAi,  Decembey  23,  1888. 

My  dear  Lord  Bishop, — You  will,  I  know,  like  to  hear  my  impressions 
of  Father  Damien  with  whom  I  am  spending  ray  Christmas.  I  find 
liini  just  what  I  hoped  and  expected,  a  simple,  honest,  sturdy  man 
(49  years  old)  modest  and  affectionate.  He  is  so  hearty  and  wel- 
coming, and  so  glad  of  all  the  English  sympathy  and  goodwill.  I  gave 
him  your  message,  and  he  shook  his  head  deprecatingly  at  your  con- 
fession of  being  "a  heretic  bisliop,"  but  received  your  words  with  a 
veiy  beautiful  and  touching  smile. 

He  has  no  martyr  airs,  but  is  truly  devout  in  the  midst  of  all  his 
practical  work — building,  carpentering,  educating,  writing  and  keeping 
accounts. 

I  have  his  autograph  for  you,  and  if  you  like  my  sketches  of  him  you 
will  be  most  welcome  to  a  photograph. 

To  J.  C.  IVIacDoxxkll. 

"Athen.eum  Club,  November  14,  1888. 
*'  Here  are  two  Irish  stories,  \\'hich  I  got  from  Atkinson,  one  of 
the  Times  counsel  and  an  Irishman,  whom  I  met  last  night  at 
Lincoln's  Inn. 

"  (1)  An  Irish  country  girl  came,  or  wrote — I  forget  a\  hich — to 
an  Irish  Q.C.  to  make  a  claim  for  'justice.'    The  injustice  she 


256 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XVIII 


complained  of  was  this :  the  League  promised  £^  to  the  tenants 
in  such  a  house  for  resisting  eviction. 

" '  Now  I  was  the  girl  that  split  the  policeman's  head  with  a 
spade  handle  and  I  got  nothing  ;  and  Bridget  Malony  got  a  lot  of 
the  money  and  she  only  threw  a  little  boiling  water  on  him.  I 
only  want  j  ustice  agin  her  ! ' 

"  (2)  A  sum  of  0^30  was  subscribed  by  a  local  league,  for  the 
shooting  of  an  obnoxious  agent.  The  money  was  lodged  with  a 
trustee  who  bolted  with  it. 

"The  man  who  had  been  told  off  for  the  job,  was  heard  to  com- 
plain loudly  of  the  rogue  who  had  cheated  an  '  honest  poor  man  ^ 
out  of  his  money,  adding :  "  Td  shoot  the  agent  for  £QQ  still,  but 
bedad  Fd  shoot  that  trustee Jor  nothing.'' 

"  I  do  not  think  you  have  heard  two  better  stories  than  these  for 
some  time  at  any  rate.  I  send  them  on  to  you  while  they  are 
fresh  in  my  memory,  before  they  grow  cold  by  keeping. — Yours 
ever,  "  W.  C.  P." 

MR.  GLADSTONE'S  LOGIC. 

To  the  Editor  of  the  Timex  from  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough. 

November  i6,  i888. 

Sir, — Mr.  Gladstone's  latest  argument  for  Irish  Home  Rule  is  worth 
considering  from  the  logical  point  of  view.  It  is  as  follows  : —  (1)  A  man, 
it  is  alleged,  was  scourged  to  death  in  Ireland  in  the  year  J  798  for 
wearing  a  shamrock.  (2)  Such  "  progress  has  been  made  "  since  then 
that  a  bookseller  can  now  publish  with  impunity  a  book  with  sham- 
rocks stamped  all  over  its  covei-s.  Therefore  let  us  grant  Home  Rule. 
The  force  of  this  argument  is  not  very  great,  even  taking  the  facts  as 
Mr.  Gladstone  states  them.  Most  persons  would,  I  imagine,  regard 
these  as  but  slender  premises  from  which  to  draw  so  large  a  conclusion. 
Such  as  it  is,  however,  it  is  somewhat  weakened  by  two  considerations, 
which  Mr.  Gladstone — doubtless  from  inadvertence — omitted  to  state. 
These  are:  (l)  That  the  alleged  "horror"  occurred  under  the  rule  of 
an  Irish  Parliament.  (2)  That  the  '■  remarkable  pi'ogress  "  since  made 
has  been  effected  under  the  rule  of  a  British  Parliament.  Mr.  Glad- 
stone's argument  correctly  stated,  therefore,  would  run  thus:  (l)  An 
Irish  Parliament  sanctioned  or  permitted  horrors  in  1798.  (2)  A  British 
Parliament  has  made  a  repetition  of  such  horrors  impossible.  Therefore 
let  us  restore  the  Irish  Parliament ! 

To  the  ordinaiy  mind  I  venture  to  think  that  the  inference  is  the 
other  way.  But  then  Mr.  Gladstone's  is  not  an  ordinary  mind.  Nor 
are  his  ways  those  of  ordinary  men.    As  to  these  ways,  let  me  say  one 


1886-88 


CHURCH  PATRONAGE 


257 


word  ;  not  from  the  logical,  but  from  the  moral  point  of  view.  Let  me 
express  the  pain  and  indignation  with  which  \,  as  an  Irishman,  regard 
the  course  to  which  Mr.  Gladstone  has  more  than  once  lately  resorted 
of  raking  up  the  evil  memories  of  nearlj'^  100  years  ago,  and  using 
them  either  as  reasons  for  granting  Home  Rule  or,  worse  still,  as 
palliations  and  almost  as  justifications,  for  like  horrors — or,  shall  I  sa}"^, 
"deviations  from  humanity"  } — occurring  in  my  unhappy  country  now. 
The  Irish  Rebellion  of '98  was  a  savage  insurrection,  savagely  suppressed. 
There  were  horrors  in  it  on  both  sides,  of  which  all  Irishmen  are  now 
ashamed,  and  which  they  would  gladly  consign  to  oblivion.  To  revive 
their  memories  now  can  serve  no  purpose  save  that  of  rekindling 
animosities  of  race  and  creed  fast  vanishing  under  the  healing  influences 
of  time,  and  so  of  largely  increasing  the  difficulty  of  any  peaceable 
government  of  Ireland  under  any  kind  of  rule,  whether  English  or 
Irish.  It  is  sad  to  see  one,  who  was,  alas  !  once  a  great  statesman,  and 
who  is  still  a  powerful  politician,  resorting  to  such  ignoble  and  poisoned 
weapons  of  party  strife,  regardless  of  the  Avounds  he  is  thus  inflicting 
upon  the  country  whose  interests  he  professes  to  have  so  much  at 
lieart.  Fleclere  si  neqiieo  siiperos,  Acherouta  movebo  was  the  utterance 
once  ascribed  to  an  angry  heathen  goddess.  Thei'e  is  a  feminine 
spitefulness  and  recklessness  in  it  which  made  it  quite  an  appropriate 
sentiment  to  place  in  her  lips.  It  hardly  becomes  those  of  a  "  Grand 
Old  Man."  Anglo-Celt. 


VOL.  II 


R 


CHAPTER  XIX 


HUXLEY  AND  AGNOSTICISM  ;  BETTING  AND  GAMBLING ; 

SOCIALISM 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"Peterborough,  January  5,  1889. 
"  How  well  I  remember  writing  the  enclosed  !  You  and  I  were 
then  meditating  a  certain  joint  publication  to  be  termed  '  Maxima 
and  Minima."  *  Not  even  the  Minima  have  yet  appeared,  and  the 
magnum  opus,  like  many  another,  has  been  lost  to  an  impoverished 
age. 

"  Those  old  letters  are  like  ghosts  coming  often  uncalled  for  and 
startling  us  with  their  old  familiar  faces— pleasant  some  of  them 
and  some  of  them  ugly,  but  all  of  them  dead  and  bearing  the 
stamp  of  death — and  yet  they  will  survive  ourselves. 

"  I  wonder  how  many  letters  of  mine  are  now  flitting  ghost-like 
about  the  world.  There  are  some  of  them  that  I  should  like  to 
see  again,  and  not  a  few  to  which  if  I  saw  them  I  would  say, 
'  Avauat ! ' 

To  the  Dean  of  Cashel. 

"Chanter  Hill,  Enniskillen, 

"  December  23,  1862. 

"Very  reverend  and  dear  Sir, — I  address  you  with  some 
hesitation  under  peculiar  circumstances  which  I  hope  will  plead  my 
excuse  for  thus  intruding  upon  a  stranger.  I  had  the  pleasure  of 
reckoning  among  my  most  intimate  of  friends  the  gentleman  whom, 
I  presume,  I  must  designate  as  your  predecessor.  For  although  I 
have  not  seen  any  announcement  of  his  death,  nor  of  your  appoint- 
ment in  his  place,  I  cannot  but  conclude  that  both  these  events 
have  occurred  without  my  knowledge. 

*  See  vol.  i.  p.  83. 


1889-91   AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  259 


"  It  is  now  nearly  two  months  since  I  wrote  to  my  dear,  and,  I 
fear,  deceased  friend,  a  long  letter  on  a  subject  of  some  interest  to 
us  both.  I  have  received  no  answer  from  him.  I  am  aware  that 
as  a  Dean  of  our  beloved  Church  his  duties  consisted  in  the  dignified 
performance  of  nothing  (a  task  for  which  my  late  friend  was  not 
pre-eminently  qualified). 

"  I  cannot  therefore  suppose  that  his  silence  is  owing  to  any  press 
of  occupation,  and  as  I  never  before  knew  him  to  fail  in  his  corre- 
spondence, I  have  only  too  good  reason  to  fear  that  my  old  friend 
has  succumbed  under  the  weight  of  his  new  hat,  and  so  fallen  a 
victim  to  the  conscientious  discharge  of  the  obligations  of  his  office. 
I  write  to  you  to  ascertain  if  my  surmise  be  correct,  and  if  it  be, 
whether  you  have  heard  anything  of  the  late  Dean's  will,  and  to 
whom  in  particular  he  may  have  bequeathed  the  hat  in  question. 
He  promised  it  to  me,  on  condition  that  I  would  write  his  epitaph. 

"  I  subjoin  it  in  the  hope  it  may  be  deemed  worthy  of  inscription 
on  the  rock  which  overshadows  the  venerable  Cathedral  of  Cashel.* 

"  W.  C.  Magee. 

"  P.S. — If  my  dear  friend  be  living  give  him  the  best  wishes  of 
the  season."" 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"37  WiMPOLE  Street,  W., 

"  January  17,  i8Sg. 

"I  have  come  here  to  dine  with  my  new  chancellor  at  a  farewell 
dinner  and  evening  reception  given  to  Phelps  the  American 
Minister  and  his  wife. 

"  As  usual,  at  the  Jeunes'  I  met  all  manner  of  celebrities  and 
pleasant  folk ;  but  most  pleasing  of  them  all  were  the  Phelpses. 
After  dinner  I  had  the  luck  to  sit  near  him,  and  he  gave  us  some 
choice  American  stories. 

"  I  heard  too  a  good  story  of  Father  Healy,  who  was  breakfasting 
with  Gladstone  lately,  and  Gladstone  said  to  him  :  '  Father  Healy, 
I  went  into  a  church  in  Rome  once,  and  was  offered  a  plenary 
indulgence  for  fifty  francs ;  on  what  principle  does  your  Church 
grant  such  things  ? '  Father  Healy  replied :  "  Well,  Mr.  Gladstone, 
I  don't  want  to  go  into  theology  with  you,  but  all  I  can  say  is 
that  if  my  Church  offered  yoro  a  plenary  indulgence  for  fifty  francs, 
she  let  you  off  very  cheap.'' 

"  These  London  parties  have  a  great  charm.  You  meet  every- 
*  Here  follows  epitaph  in  doggerel  Latin. 


260  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xix 


one  worth  meeting-,  and  hear  more  in  one  night  than  you  would  in 
a  year  of  county  dinners. 

"  I  must  go  to  bed — twelve  o'clock  past." 

"  Peterborough,  January  30,  1889. 

"  I  go  to  London  on  the  20th  to  a  bishops'*  meeting,  when 
Grimthorpe's  Bill,  inter  alia,  is  to  be  considered. 

"  The  Archbishop  is  coming  round  at  last  to  my  view  of  the  case, 
and  is  disposed  to  allow  his  Bill  and  Grimthorpe's  to  be  refeiTed  to 
a  select  Committee.  I  fear  this  will  entail  my  attendance  at  said 
Committee,  and  the  inteiTuption  of  my  diocesan  work  in  con- 
sequence. 

"Truly  our  bishops  do  not  as  the  Spaniards  say  'eat  bread 
gratis.'' 

"  I  wish  that  there  were  a  Bishopric  of  Tinibuctoo  and  that  I 
were  bishop  of  it,  though  even  there  one  might  be  tempted  to 
supersede  the  cassowary  and  eat  up  some  troublesome  missionary 
'  skin  and  bone  and  hymn  book  too.'' 

"  I  have  an  interesting  correspondence  with  Graves  *  and  Plunket 
about  the  consecration  of  Cabrera.  The  latter  (Plunket  not 
Cabrera)  has  taken  the  bit  in  his  teeth  and  will  go  forward,  spite 
of  all  remonstrance.  He  will  hurt  the  Irish  Church,  and  not  help 
the  new  Spanish  one — me  judice. 

"  0''Brien's  escapades  are  doing  good  to  the  cause  of  Union.  The 
English  are  a  very  dull  people  but  they  are  not  fools ;  and  they 
are  beginning  to  see  through  these  pre-arranged  farces.'"'' 

"  ATHEN.EUM  Club,  March  19,  1889. 

"Your  account  of  the  Ordination  preliminaries  is  most  satis- 
factory. I  have  no  doubt  that  the  Sunday  function  went  off  well. 
My  wife  and  I  are  slowly  gaining  ground,  but  neither  of  us  is  well 
yet.  Last  Sunday''s  sermon  in  St.  James''s  Chapel  seems  to  have 
brought  me  a  return,  though  not  a  severe  one,  of  my  cough,  and 
hers  is  still  heavier  than  I  like  to  see.  With  this,  too,  continues 
for  both  of  us  the  strange  depression  and  confusion  of  head  that 
has  accompanied  this  cui'ious  sort  of  cold  from  the  first.  Neverthe- 
less, we  are  both  decidedly  better,  and  must  be  content  with  and 
thankful  for  that  much. 

"  I  am  giving  up  some  of  my  Leicester  work  for  safety''s  sake. 
Can  you  take  me  in  next  week 

*  Bishop  of  Limerick. 


1889-91  AGNOSTICISM;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  261 


"  I  want,  I  fancy,  change  and  fillip,  if  I  can  get  them.  IJttle  or 
nothing  is  stirring  here  in  Church  or  State  that  is  new.  The 
Lincoln  trial  drags  its  slow  length  along,  and  Government  is 
staggering  under  the  Pigott  panic  and  its  result,  the  Kensington 
election.  Gladstone  is  full  of  venom,  notwithstanding  the  good 
instructions  he  received  from  me  in  St.  James's  Chapel  on  Sunday 
last,  when  he  and  Mrs.  G.  sat  under  me,  and  he  looked  positively 
younger  than  I  did. 

"  I  hope  to  leave  this  for  home  on  Friday  next,  so  you  had  best 
send  your  answer  there.  "  W.  C.  P.'' 

To  H.  Wright,  Esa. 

"Palace,  Peterborough, 

"April  6,  1889. 

"  Dear  Sir, — I  am  unable,  having  no  MS.  of  my  sermon  at  St. 
James's  Chapel,  to  give  you  precisely  what  I  said  on  that  occasion. 
Substantially  it  came  to  this — that  Christ's  kingdom,  as  He  Himself 
has  told  us,  '  is  not  of  this  world ' ;  that  His  laws  for  it  are  laws, 
not  for  the  world,  but  for  the  Church ;  and  that  the  attempt  to 
turn  them  into  laws  for  the  State,  enforced  by  civil  penalties,  would 
be,  as  regards  those  on  whom  they  were  to  be  enforced,  an  intoler- 
able tyranny,  and  as  regards  the  State  an  impracticable  absurdity. 

"  No  State  which  adopted  them  as  its  laws  could  survive  for  a 
week.  How  could  a  State  exist  which  forgave  all  its  offenders — i.e., 
all  the  criminal  classes — until  seventy  times  seven or  which  never 
resisted  evil,  but  tui-ned  always  its  right  cheek  to  the  smiter,  or 
which  gave  to  every  one  that  asked  of  it,  and  never  turned  away 
from  any  who  borrowed  of  it These  are  all  of  them  councils  of 
perfection  given  to  spiritual  men,  and  only  endiu-able  or  possible  so 
far  as  men  are  filled  with  the  spirit  of  self-sacrificing  love.  For  the 
State  which  is  a  kingdom  of  this  world  to  impose  these  as  laws  upon 
all  men  would  be,  as  regards  its  citizens,  as  I  have  said,  tyranny ; 
as  regards  itself,  suicide. 

"  Christian  Socialism,  so-called,  is  therefore  a  thing  intolerable  if 
enforced,  and  only  tolerable  and  ])ossible  when  voluntarily  adopted. 
It  is,  as  I  said,  only  one  of  many  attempts  to  make  the  laws  of  the 
State  and  the  laws  of  the  Church  one  and  the  same ;  and,  as  such, 
is  foredoomed,  like  all  its  predecessors — the  Papacy,  and  the  Fifth 
Monarchy  men,  and  the  Puritan  laws  of  New  England — to  certain 
and  speedy  failure. 


262 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


"  This  is,  I  think,  a  fair  summary  of  what  I  said,  or,  at  least, 
endeavoured  to  say,  on  the  occasion  to  which  you  refer. — I  am, 
faithfully  yours,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

The  following  letters  refer  to  a  controversy  in  the  Nineteenth 
Century,  between  Professor  Huxley,  Dr.  Wace  and  the  Bishop, 
arising  out  of  Dr.  Wace's  paper  on  Agnosticism,  read  at  the  Man- 
chester Church  Congress. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonjsT?ll. 

"  St.  Mark's,  Leicester, 

■•April  9,  1889. 

"  I  have  but  a  minute  or  two  in  which  to  answer  your  letter,  in 
the  full  swing  of  my  work  here.  The  said  work  has  proved 
extremely  interesting,  and  I  hope  useful,  though,  of  course,  ex- 
tremely fatiguing. 

"  Besides  preaching,  confirming,  and  presiding  at  numerous  com- 
mittee meetings,  to  say  nothing  of  speechifying  at  a  mayor's  dinner, 
I  beat  the  bounds  of  one  parish  a  day  in  company  with  the 
incumbent,  going  naturally  over  the  newer  parishes  and  districts, 
which  appal  me  by  their  growth. 

"  We  have  got  our  great  Church  Extension  scheme  well  laimched, 
and  if  only  we  can  get  money  we  shall  sail  into  harbour. 

"  The  spirit  of  the  clergy  is  excellent — brother-like  and  business- 
like too.  But  this  raising  funds  is,  of  course,  the  great  crux.  We 
have  got  over  the  great  difRcultv,  however,  of  settling  how  we  are 
to  distribute  them. 

"  I  am  to  address  a  great  meeting  of  all  the  Leicester  church- 
wardens and  church- workers  on  Thursday  night  on  the  subject, 
and  that  will  wind  up  for  the  present  my  Leicester  campaign. 

"  My  strength  holds  out  fairlv,  though  I  do  feel  tired  at  nights. 
As  regards  my  duel  with  Huxley,  I  find  that  I  made,  after  all,  a 
false  stroke  in  it. 

"  It  seems  to  me,  on  re-reading  the  sentence  from  which  I  quoted, 
that  it  may  be,  and  most  probably  was,  the  case  that  he  was 
writing  ironically ;  and  this,  of  course,  I  must  acknowledge,  and  so 
'  climb  down.' 

"  I  am  sending  a  line  or  two  to  that  effect  to  the  Nineteenth 
Century,  in  which  I  take  final  leave  of  this  small  (very  small,  as  far 
as  I  am  concerned)  and  personal  controversy.  Huxley  will  have  his 
crow,  and  I  must  let  him  have  it,  and  there  is  an  end  of  it. 


1S89-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  263 


"  I  have  read  only  a  review  in  the  Spectator  of  Mallock's  article. 
It  is  exactly  on  the  lines  that  I  sketched  for  you.  '  Pereant  qui  ante 
nos  nostra  dicunt.'' 

"  I  always  had  the  intention  of  writing  to  the  same  effect,  and 
now  I  need  not,  and,  indeed,  cannot. 

"  Mallock  is  one  of  our  ablest  writers  in  magazines.  He  nearly 
maddened  F.  Harrison  by  his  squib  entitled  '  Positivism  on  an 
Island.'  If  you  \ia.\c  not  read  it,  get  it,  and  enjoy  a  hearty  laugh 
over  it  as  I  did." 

"  Peterborough,  April  13,  1889. 
"I  have  despatched  my  amende  to  Huxley  to  the  Nineteenth 
Century.  I  am  afi-aid  he  will  not  thank  me  much  for  it ;  for  really 
his  last  article  outsteps  the  bounds  of  literary  decency,  and  1  have 
intimated  that  I  think  so.  I  have  said,  however,  that  this  is  my 
last  word  in  this  merely  pei'sonal  controversy  ;  so  if  he  pitches  into 
me  again  I  must  grin  and  bear  it.  After  all,  in  the  matter  of 
trailing  his  coat  he  is  far  more  Hibernian  than  I  am." 

"  Peterborough,  April  14,  1889. 

"  I  send  you  enclosed  what  the  printers  call  an  advance  proof  of 
my  apology  to  Huxley. 

"  You  will  see  that  it  is,  in  substance,  just  what  you  say  in  your 
letter  of  the  tone  of  his  last  article,  and,  indeed,  of  most  of  his 
articles  on  the  same  subject. 

"  I  have,  I  hope,  given  him  a  fairly  palatable  salad,  which  I  have 
di'essed  on  the  reverse  principle  to  that  of  the  Spanish  recipe, 
which  is  "  oil  like  a  prodigal  and  vinegar  like  a  miser.'  I  did  not 
care  to  take  him  seriously,  and  thought  that  a  tone  of  civil  and 
good-humoured  contempt  was  the  best  to  adopt. 

"  Of  course,  he  will  have  his  innings,  more  mo,  in  the  next 
Nineteenth  Century.  So  let  him ;  for  there  must  be  some  end  to  a 
Gontroversy.  "W.  C.  P." 

To  Bishop  Mitchixson. 

"  Peterborough,  April  14,  1889. 
"  ....  I  am  not  surprised  at  five  bishops  rushing  at  you,  nor  at 
fifty  doing  so,  if  there  were  so  many  of  them,  so  long  as  whenever 
any  one  of  them  asks  you  to  go  a  mile  with  him  you  go  with  him 
twain.    But  they  might  have  a  little  mercy  on  you  and  on  me. 
"  I  had  rather  that  Thicknessc  had  not  put  all  his  confirmations 


264 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  xi>: 


in  Lent  for  the  reason  you  give ;  but  I  will  certainly  not  allow  it 
to  be  made  into  a  precedent  for  nie,  nor,  I  hope,  will  you  for 
yourself. 

"  Between  Easter  and  Whitsuntide  is  the  true  time  for  confirma- 
tion, but  even  I  have  had  to  give  way  as  regards  Leicester.  My  visit 
there  was  a  very  intei'esting  and,  I  hope,  a  useful  one,  though  very 
laborious. 

"  The  clergy  are  now  all  of  them  pulling  together  as  I  never 
knew  them  pull  before ;  and  the  whole  Church  Extension  work  is 
now  in  a  good  groove.  What  money  will  be  forthcoming  for  it  is 
another  question. 

"  I  have  beat  the  bounds  of  all  the  new  parishes  and  districts, 
preached  two  Church  Extension  sermons,  and  addressed  an  evening 
meeting  of  churchwaixlens  and  synodsmen  from  every  Leicester 
parish. 

lleally  I  worked  as  if  my  name  had  been  Mitchinson  instead  of 
Magee. 

"  Gladstone's  watchword, '  Remember  Mitchelstown,'  easily  trans- 
mutes itself  for  me  into  Remember  Mitchinson. — Yours  ever  most 
truly,  "  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Peterborough,  April  17,  1889. 

"Enclosed  you  have  what  youi'  'well-meant  interference'  has 
deprived  the  world  of.  Burn  it,  or  keep  it  to  remind  you  of  what 
influence  a  certain  Canon  of  Peterborough  possesses  over  his 
Bishop. 

"  I  still  think  you  are  right,  nevertheless  I  cannot  understand 
the  distress  of  the  good  people  you  speak  of  at  Huxley's  article. 
That  seems  to  me  as  weak  in  argument  as  it  is  execrable  in  point 
of  taste. 

"  What  can  be  the  worth  of  criticism  based  on  the  assumption 
that  St.  Mark's  is  certainly  the  first  of  the  Gospels  ?  or  that  if  it 
were,  it  necessarily  followed  that  nothing  which  did  not  find  a 
place  in  it  ever  really  occurred  ? 

"  Was  ever  history  so  dealt  with  before His  theory  as  to  the 
Resurrection  is  simply  preposterous  :  even  Strauss  laughs  it  to 
scorn.  Apart  from  all  its  physical  impossibilities,  think  of  the 
absurdity  of  supposing  that  our  Lord  lived  in  Judea,  after  his 
crucifixion,  for  the  ordinary  space  of  human  life — no  human  being 


1889-91  AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  265 


apparently  having  ever  heai-d  of  Ilim,  and  this  though  Jews  and 
Romans  were  equally  concerned  in  discovering  and  punishing  Him. 
Think  of  Him  too — '  the  noblest  ideal  of  humanity,''  as  even  Huxley 
calls  him — lying  ywc?M,  while  his  disciples  were  announcing  every- 
where His  resurrection.  A  Sunday  School  teacher  ought  to  be 
able  to  refute  such  trash. 

"The  fact  is  that  Huxley''s  bumptious  air  of  omniscience  imposes 
on  feeble  folk.  He  may  be  a  great  scientist,  but  he  is  a  very  poor 
historical  critic. 

"  Wace,  if  he  answers  him,  ought  to  knock  him  into  a  cocked 
hat.  Then  he  is  so  thoroughly  disingenuous.  To  call  the  Gadarene 
miracle  '  a  part  of  the  Christian  faith,''  for  instance,  when  he  knows 
that  no  one  of  the  Creeds  requires  any  Christian  to  believe  in  any 
one  of  our  Lord's  miracles,  or  even  in  the  inspiration  of  the 
Gospels ;  or  to  say,  that  St.  Peter  required  a  vision  to  induce  him 
to  baptise  Cornelius,  and  therefore  could  not  have  heard  our  Lord's 
command  to  baptise  all  men,  when  he  must  know  that  St.  Peter 
required  a  vision  to  induce  him  to  visit  Cornelius,  and  that  in  his 
speech  on  the  occasion  he  expressly  quotes  our  Lord''s  connnand. 
Of  course,  too,  he  knows  perfectly  well  that  the  difficulty  in  the 
Early  Christian  Church  was  not  in  the  least  as  to  baptising  Gentile 
converts,  but  as  to  not  also  circumcising  them. 

"These  are  only  specimens  of  his  controversial  dishonesty,  which 
some  one  ought  to  expose.  I  will  7iot  be  that  someone,  for  I  do 
not  care  for  the  trouble,  and  there  are  plenty  better  able  for  the 
task.  But  Christianity  must  be  indeed  in  a  '  parlous  ■*  state  if  it  is 
seriously  endangered  by  such  an  assault  as  this.  A  good  thing  to 
do  would  be  to  write  an  article,  entitled  "  Christianity  reconstructed 
out  of  the  admissions  of  its  critics.''  There  is  hardly  a  fact  in  the 
Gospels,  save  the  miracles,  not  admitted  by  one  or  other  of  them, 
and  as  to  the  order  of  the  synoptic  Gospels,  every  permutation  of 
these  can  be  found  in  their  writings. 

"But  the  real  danger  to  Christianity  lies  in  the  ignorance  of 
these  things  amongst  ordinary  Christians,  and  in  their  false  theories 
as  to  inspiration.  However  I  must  not  write  for  you  a  refutation 
of  Huxley,  only  do  read  his  article  over  carefully,  and  just  note  in 
pencil  its  inaccuracies,  loo-ical  and  historical,  fallacies,  crude  theories, 
and  say  Avhat  the  residuum  is  worth.  For  my  own  part  I  feel  my 
faith  greatly  strengthened  by  the  thought  that  it  is  all  that  an 
astute  and  bitter  enemy  can  say  against  it. 

"  Nevertheless,  if  as  you  say  tlici-c  are  those  m  Iio  would  be  pained 


266 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


b\  lay  dealing  with  hiin  on  the  personal  question  as  I  had  done, 
and  not  instead  of  this,  defending  Christianity  against  him,  you 
Avere  cjuite  right  in  advising  me  not  to  do  the  former. 

"I  have  just  come  back  from  confirming  at  King's  Cliffe,  and 
from  setting  right  sundry  foolish  and  angry  and  idle  persons  in  that 
part  of  the  w  orld  ;  and  I  am  spending  an  idle  horn-  in  giving  you 
the  above  '  sintimints.'' " 

"  Peterborough,  April  i8,  1889. 

"  I  -liould  like  to  have  attempted  a  serious  reply  to  Huxley. 
But  I  shrink  from  the  labour  of  detail  required  for  it;  and  a  mere 
'  sketchy '  notice  would  only  provoke  a  long  and  fierce  reply, 
entailing  a  rejoinder,  and  soon  ad  infinitum.  The  beginning  of  strife 
with  Huxley  is  '  the  letting  out '  of  very  dirty  '  water.' 

"I  had  a  few  lines  to-day  from  the  editor  of  the  Nineteenth 
Century,  thanking  me  for  my  few  lines,  and  saying  that  the  last 
sentence  of  it  was  '  pathetically  just.'  My  mention  of  Gethsemane 
and  Calvary  had  no  refei-ence  to  Holy  Week,  but  to  Huxley's  attack 
on  the  truth  of  the  ResuiTection. 

I  have  carefully  read  Mallock's  article.  It  is  masterly  and 
crushing ;  indeed  I  do  not  know  when  I  have  read  anything  more 
masterly. 

"  Huxlev  will  find  it  hard  to  ansicer  him,  even  if  he  replies  to 
him,  which  I  doubt." 

"  Peterborough,  April  30,  1889. 
I  send  you  the  Nineteenth  Century  for  May.  If  ever  there  were 
a  man  '  smashed  and  pulverised '  by  another,  it  is  Huxley  by  Wace 
in  his  rejoinder.  You  will  see  that  on  several  points  he  takes  just 
the  line  that  I  sketched  in  my  letter  to  you.  One  point  only,  I 
think,  he  touches  weakly,  namely  the  necessity  in  Huxley's  theory 
of  alleged  resmiection  of  our  Lord,  of  imputing  fraud  sub- 
sequently to  the  Crucifixion.  Wace  speaks  only  of  the  fraud  of 
Joseph  of  Ai'imathea.  He  ought  to  have  added  and  also  on  the 
part  of  Christ.    This  he  should  have  pressed  strongly. 

"  But  on  all  other  points  his  exposure  of  Huxley  is  complete  and 
merciless.    I  cannot  see  how  Huxley  is  to  get  over  it. 

"  Knowles  has  very  judiciously  put  this  article  first,  and  my  little 
'  envoi '  last. 

"  The  offensivencss  of  which  I  accuse  Huxley  is  amply  illustrated 
by  Wace  ;  and  the  relative  importance  of  Huxley's  quarrel  \\  ith  me 
and  Wace  properly  maintained. 


1889-91   AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  267 


"  Send  me  back  this  number  on  your  peril,  after  you  have  enjoyed 
it  as  I  did." 

"Peterborough,  May  11,  1889. 

"  I  have  been  '  in  evil  case '  since  last  you  heard  from  me.  I  have 
just  brought  out  a  third  edition  of  my  bronchial  catarrh,  with 
additions  and  improvements,  and  the  editing  has  been  a  most  trying 
process.  On  Saturday  last  I  dined  at  the  Royal  Academ}',  when 
the  intense  heat  and  stifling  want  of  ventilation,  lasting  through 
five  mortal  hours,  and  ending  with  a  big  speech,  fairly  did  for  me. 
On  Sunday  morning  I  felt  so  seedy  that  I  saw  Andrew  Clark,  who 
thought  that  '  with  great  care  I  might  get  through  my  Confirma- 
tion torn'.  On  Sunday  evening  I  was,  howevei',  much  worse  and  very 
feverish,  and  on  Monday  Clark  ordered  me  to  bed,  where  I  lay 
until  "Wednesday  coughing  incessantly  and  sleepless. 

"  On  Thursday  I  was  so  far  recovered  as  to  be  able  to  get  here 
and  surrender  myself  to  Walker,  who  thinks  that  in  about  ten  days 
I  may  be  well  enough  to  go  somewhere  for  change  of  air. 

"  Work  of  all  kinds  Clark  and  Walker  strictly  forbid,  declaring 
that  they  will  not  '  answer  for  the  consequences '  if  I  get  a  fourth 
attack.  You  may  imagine  my  difficulty  about  this  week's  Con- 
firmations, which  were  to  have  begun  on  Monday  last  at  Wymond- 
ham.  By  dint  of  telegraphing  and  postcarding  I  got  notices  sent 
in  time  everywhere,  save  to  Houghton-on-the-Hill,  where,  alas ! 
there  were  candidates  present  and  no  bishop  to  confirm  them. 

"Mitchinson  came  to  my  rescue,  nobly  and  unasked.  By  crowd- 
ing three  Confirmations  in  a  day  and  uniting  centres,  he  actually 
managed  to  pick  up  four  of  my  di'opped  stitches,  and  will  take  all 
the  rest  next  week. 

"  Meanwhile,  I  am  very  slowly  mending.  I  have  in  fact  had  a 
naiTOw  escape  from  severe  bronchitis  or  pneumonia.  After  all,  it 
was  as  well  that  I  was  floored  by  the  Academy  dinner,  inasmuch  as 
if  I  had  started  on  mv  tour  I  should  most  probably  have  been  laid 
up  at  some  covmtry  parsonage,  miles  away  from  any  doctor,  instead 
of  being  laid  up  at  the  Jeimes',  and  within  five  hundred  yards  of 
Andrew  Clai'k. 

"  I  have  plenty  of  gossip  for  you  whenever  we  meet.  Inter  alia 
about  my  meeting  with  and  talk  Avith  Huxley  at  the  Academy. 
But  I  am  not  yet  equal  to  much  letter  writing,  and  have  a  deal  of 
it  in  the  way  of  answers  to  get  through.  As  soon  as  I  am  well 
enough  I  shall  simply  cut  the  diocese  and  go  away  to  some  un- 
known spot,  abroad  or  at  home,  and  have  a  fair  fight  for  my  life." 


268 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


"Stoke  Dry,  June  17,  1889. 
"  Your  account  of  the  Ordination  doings  is  most  satisfactory.  I 
am  not  surprised  at  the  dogmatic  ignorance  of  some  of  the  candi- 
dates. Dogma  as  now  taught  in  many  theological  colleges  and  in 
Oxford  means  simply  one  dogma,  '  the  Real  Presence,''  and  that  a 
false  one. 

"  I  am  seriously  meditating  the  boycotting  of  one  or  two  of  these 
Theos — Ely  especially— but  of  that  more  hereafter. 

"  I  am  glad  to  find  my  choice  of  a  foreign  tour  facilitated  by 
your  condemnation  of  Holland  and  Belgium.  Most  probably  I 
shall  now  go  from  Southampton  to  St.  Malo,  and  slowly  and 
leisurely  drop  home  from  there  via  Havre.  But  Stoke  is  doing- 
wonders  for  me  already.  My  cough  is  all  but  gone  and  I  can 
manage  a  two-mile  walk  now  without  fatigue.  My  missus  and  I 
are  honeymooning  here  very  pleasantly.  To-morrow  we  go  to 
Petei-borough  en  route  for  Broadstairs,  where  I  mean  to  spend  a 
week  with  E.  and  then  take  A.  de  M.  to  St.  Malo. 

"  I  have  got  through  some  120  pages  of  Salmon's  really  splendid 
work.  For  learning,  logic  and  wit  combined,  with  clear  and  candid 
statement,  I  have  seen  nothing  to  beat  and  few  things  to  compare 
with  it.  "  W.  C.  P." 

The  Bishop  introduced  into  the  diocese  the  now  almost  universal 
custom  of  receiving  the  candidates  for  orders  into  his  house  for  the 
week  preceding  their  ordination,  and  of  presenting  each  candidate 
with  a  Bible  or  Testament. 

He  was  always  very  anxious  about  the  ordination  examina- 
tion. He  left  the  papers  upon  the  regular  class  books  and  Greek 
Testament  to  his  examining  chaplains,  but  always  reserved  to  him- 
self the  duty  of  giving  questions  upon  doctrine,  especially  those 
which  were  subjects  of  debate  at  the  time.  These  papers  were 
always  given  two  days  before  the  ordination,  when  for  the  first  time 
the  candidate  priests  and  deacons  met  together.  I  have  seldom 
known  him  give  a  paper  without  one  or  more  questions  upon  the 
subject  of  Inspiration.  He  told  me  he  could  see  the  gradual  change 
of  opinion  upon  this  subject  during  the  course  of  his  episcopate, 
and  the  complete  departure  from  the  old  theory  of  verbal  inspiration. 
The  Bishop  read  all  these  answers  himself,  and  called  in  the  writers 
one  by  one,  and  gave  them  every  opportunity  to  explain  what  might 
seem,  prhiul facie,  incorrect  or  heterodox.  He  was  very  lenient  in 
his  judgment  in  this  way,  and  ga\  e  the  candidates  as  wide  a  margin 


ISS9-9I 


AGNOSTICISM ; 


GAMBLING; 


SOCIALISM  2G9 


as  possible.  He  said  he  always  erected  a  golden  bridge  to  enable 
them  to  retreat  out  of  an  untenable  position.  His  difficulty 
generally  arose  with  men  such  as  he  describes  in  a  previous 
letter.*  Sometimes  however  he  found  a  candidate  obstinate  as 
well  as  ignorant.  He  pointed  out  to  one  man  that  his  answers  on 
one  point  were  a  direct  denial  of  the  Articles ;  that  what  he  said  might 
perhaps  be  explained  consistently  with  them,  but  that  if  he  catego- 
rically denied  the  teaching  of  the  Articles,  which  he  was  about  to 
subscribe,  it  would  be  impossible  to  ordain  him.  The  candidate 
persisted  and  would  not  accept  any  help  towards  explanation  or 
retreat.  When  he  found  the  Bishop  would  not  give  way  he  said, 
Well,  my  lord,  I  appeal  to  a  General  Council."  "  Oh  very  good," 
said  the  Bishop,  "  but  you  cannot  expect  me  to  give  you  priesfs 
orders  till  the  General  Council  has  decided  the  point." 

The  Bishop  always  ended  the  services  of  the  week  by  giving  an 
address  to  the  candidates  for  forty  or  fifty  minutes  in  his  private 
chapel  at  9  p.m.  From  this  every  one  else,  not  excepting  the 
chaplains,  were  excluded,  and  the  Bishop  addressed  the  candidates 
alone  face  to  face.  Though  I  never  heard  one  of  these  addresses,  I 
could  see  that  the  candidates  had  been  deeply  moved  and  impressed 
by  them,  and  the  Bishop  used  to  return  from  them  much  exhausted 
by  his  efforts. 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Stoke  Dry,  Wednesday, 

"July  10,  1889. 

"  Your  letter  with  its  enclosures  reached  me  here  this  morning, 
the  day  after  my  return  from  Normandy.  We  (Arthur  and  I)  have 
had  an  extremely  pleasant  tour,  visiting  Dinard,  Dinan,  Avranches, 
Mont  St.  Michel,  Coutances,  Bayeux,  Caen  and  Rouen,  and  returning 
bv  Dieppe  and  Newhaven.  During  the  whole  trip  we  had  not  a 
drop  of  rain.  Mont  St.  Michel  alone  is  worth  the  journey.  By  the 
way  there  is  a  paragraph  in  the  Pall  Mall  Gazette  from  '  a  Corre- 
spondent,' who  saw  me  there !  praising  my  French,  and  dispraising 
my  poor  wide-awake. 

"  I  have  retui'ned  quite  well  and  ready  for  my  Irish  trip, 
August  6. 

"I  am  sorry  to  hear  of  your  lumbago;  but  if  old  fellows  like 
you  and  me  fancy  ourselves  young  and  '  govern  ourselves  accord- 
ingly,'' Mother  Nature  will  correct  us  after  her  fashion.    I  am 
*  See  December  26,  1876. 


270 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


settling  down  to  three  miles  a  day,  steady  quiet  strolling,  and  find 
it  ample. 

"  The  great  cathedral  function  must  complete  itself  without  me 
as  I  am  lying  here  jjerdu,  supposed  to  be  abroad.'" 

"  Stoke  Dry,  July  i8,  1889. 

"  You  will,  I  am  sure,  be  pleased  to  hear  that  the  new  Leicester 
Church  Extension  scheme  has  greatly  prospered  already. 

"  I  attended  a  meeting  of  the  board  yesterday  in  Leicester,  to  the 
great  surprise,  and  I  may  add,  satisfaction  of  the  members.  I  ^^•as 
rewarded  by  learning  that  the  A.C.S.  has  given  us  <£300  a  year  in 
curates'  grants,  and  that  £5Q5  has  been  promised  in  annual  sub- 
scriptions in  Leicester.  On  the  strength  of  this,  we  have  agreed  to 
appoint  six  new  cur'ates  at  once.  This  is  really  wonderful,  and  a 
matter  for  deep  thankfulness. 

"  The  moral  effect  of  this  large  addition  to  the  clerical  staft'  w  ill, 
I  expect,  be  great,  and  will  lead  to  gi-eat  increase  of  effort  and  of 
funds." 

"  The  Gresham  Hotel,  Dublin, 

"  September  11,  1889. 

"  You  will  see  from  the  above  address  that  I  am  so  far  on  my 
return  journey.  I  hope  to  sleep  at  Chester  to-night,  and  to  be  at 
Stoke  Dry  by  4.30  p.m.  to-moiTow.  I  came  away  from  Kylemore  a 
few  days  earlier  than  I  had  intended,  as  I  had  to  see  to  some  legal 
business  in  Dublin  cn  route.  Having  some  spare  horns  on  hand,  I 
visited  '  ould  Trinity '  this  morning.  It  made  me  feel  fearfully 
old  and  sad  revisiting  the  scenes  of  my  youth,  and  thinking  of 
then  and  now  ! 

"  How  few  there  are  of  those  whom  you  and  I  knew  there  who 
are  still  in  the  land  of  the  living ! 

"  The  whole  place  was  for  me  full  of  ghosts — ghosts  of  dead 
men  and  vanished  buildings,  and  vanished  youth  and  hope  and 
pleasure  and  work  and  ambition. 

"  All  seemed  strangely  weird  and  sunset-looking  to  my  old  eyes. 
I  saw,  as  I  entered,  two  tall  sturdy  plane  trees  in  the  first  court, 
that  were  planted  twenty-five  years  after  I  had  graduated.  I  went 
slowly  up  the  passage  to  the  Provosfs  door,  where  I  used  to  run  up 
long  ago  to  ask  old  Foozle's  leave  to  go  to  the  country.  Salmon 
had  not  returned,  and  I  looked  round  on  all  the  Provosts'  portraits 
in  the  ante-room  —  your  father's  so  lifelike,  old  Kyle's,  and 
Eh-ington's  and  many  another ;  and  alas  !  Jellett's — grey  and  death- 


1889-91   AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  271 


like — done,  iiiid  badly  done,  from  a  photo.    I  visited  hall,  chapel, 
library,  all  the  old  haunts,  and  felt  sadder  and  sadder  all  along. 
"  In  the  library  an  old,  grey  man  came  up  to  me  and  shook 

hands.    It  was   ,  the  slim,  youthful  and  perky — all  the  youth 

and  perkiness  gone  out  of  him.  Dear,  oh  dear  !  how  old  he  made 
me  feel !  He  showed  me  sundry  new  things,  buildings,  etc.  I 
thought  them  dull  and  ugly  like  myself.  Ehea  fugaces !  Fifty 
years  ago  !  This  Jeremiad  leaves  me  only  space  to  say  I  shall  be 
at  P.  on  Tuesday,  ready  for  candidates." 

"Peterborough,  October  15,  1889. 

"  I  have  been,  apropos  of  this  charge  about  preferment,  looking 
up  my  appointments  in  this  diocese.  They  amount  in  all  to  154. 
Deducting  from  these  29  honorary  canonries  and  6  exchanges  (35), 
I  have  given  away  of  preferments  with  emoluments  attached  119. 

"  Of  these  I  have  given 

To  Curates  in  Diocese  .  .  .  .73 
To  Incumbents    „  ....  39 

To  Strangers    ......  7 

Total    .       .  .119 

"  Of  the  seven  strangers,  three  were  appointed  to  livings  so 
undesirable  that  they  had  each  of  them  been  refused  by  three  or 
four,  and  in  one  case  by  Jive,  clergymen  in  the  diocese  before  I 
offered  them  out  of  it;  and  lastly,  of  these  119  livings,  arch- 
deaconries, and  canon  residentiaries,  I  gave  one,  of  the  value  of 
,£'290,  to  a  far-off' cousin — Percival,  at  St.  Mark's,  Peterborough — so 
far  off'  that  I  actually  did  not  know  of  the  relationship  until  after 
I  had  appointed  him. 

"  I  doubt  if  many  bishops  could  show  a  clearer  record  in  the 
matter  of  preferments  than  this.  "  W.  C.  P. 

The  Bishop  presided  at  the  Diocesan  Conference  at  Leicester, 
October  24  and  25.  His  opening  addi'ess  dealt  with  the  questions 
of  "  Lay  or  Clerical  Brotherhoods  and  "  Ritual,"  and  among  the 
subjects  for  discussion  were  "  Free  Education,"  "  Socialism,"  and 
"  Betting  and  Gambling."  The  subject  of  brotherhoods  had  occu- 
pied his  attention  for  some  years,  and  he  was  anxious  to  have  tried 
the  experiment  in  Leicester,  but  the  Conference  did  not  welcome 
the  idea.    The  Bishop's  utterances  on  the  subject  of  ritual  on  this 


272 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


occasion  supply  so  clear  an  account  of  the  history  of  the  question, 
and  his  own  relation  to  it,  that  I  give  the  following  extracts : 

The  question  they  really  had  to  settle  was  wlicllicr  a  hcneficed  clergy- 
man of  ike  Church  o  f  England  mas  at  liberhj  to  say  and  do  in  his  parisli 
church  whatever  he  liked,  and,  if  he  was  not,  how  he  was  to  be  restrained, 
and  who  was  to  restrain  him.  There  was  the  Ritual  question  in  a  nutshell. 
No  one,  he  imagined,  would  say  that  the  clergyman  should  say  and  do 
what  he  pleased  ;  hut  there  was  a  reason  why  he  should  not  have  this 
licence,  which  had  not  heen  sufficient!}'  noted.  A  beneficed  clergyman 
of  the  Church  of  England  was  not  chosen  by  his  parishioners.  He  was 
imposed  upon  them,  whether  they  liked  him  or  not,  and  he  was  irre- 
mo\'able  by  them.  That  was  a  state  of  things  which  would  be  abso- 
lutely intolerable,  if  it  were  not  that  the  clergyman  so  imposed  upon 
them  had  not  his  own  choice  as  to  the  public  worship,  but  had  to  use 
some  prescribed  form.  Did  they  think  any  body  of  sane  parishioners 
would  tolerate  a  clergyman  being  perfectly  free  to  do,  and  say,  in  his 
jjarish  church  what  he  liked,  miless  they  had  the  appointment  and  dis- 
missal of  him  A  Nonconformist  might  use  what  prayers  he  liked  in 
his  congregation  on  Simday,  but  they  had  the  right  to  dismiss  him  on 
Monday  if  they  did  not  like  the  prayers.  The  Nonconformist  prai/ed 
as  he  pleased,  and  the  congregation  paid  as  they  pleased.  He  was 
not  speaking  to  disparage  that  system,  he  was  only  calling  attention  to 
the  fact  that  the  Church  could  not  have  at  the  same  time  the  licence 
of  the  Nonconformist  ministry  and  the  security  of  the  Established 
ministry.  They  must  make  their  choice  between  the  two.  If  the\' 
were  to  have  the  security  of  the  Established  ministry,  then,  if  it  was 
established  hy  law,  it  must  be  governed  by  law.  Law  was  the  only 
safeguard  of  liberty.  It  was  the  protection  of  the  liberty  of  the  con- 
gregation agamst  the  tyranny  of  the  clergyman ;  it  was  the  protection 
of  the  liberty  of  the  clergyman  against  the  tyranny  of  the  laity  ;  it  was 
the  protection  of  the  clergy  and  the  laity  against  the  tyranny  of  the 
bishop,  and  the  protection  sometimes  of  the  unfortunate  and  perse- 
cuted bishop  against  the  pressure  of  these  parties. 

But  if  there  was  to  be  a  law,  then  the  law  b}'  which  the  clergy  were 
to  be  governed  should  be  clear  and  indisputable.  He  asked  if  the 
rubric  was  clear  and  indisputable.  ...  A  rubric,  about  the  meaning  of 
which  men  equally  learned,  honest,  and  able,  disputed  could  not  be 
regarded  as  other  than  of  doubtful  interpretation.  His  own  opinion 
was  that  the  rubric  was  ambiguous,  and  even  designedly  so.  .  .  .  The 
law  they  were  bound  to  obey  should  be  unambiguous,  and  in  order  to 
get  that  they  must  either  have  it  better  defined,  or  they  must  get  a 
sentence  of  some  generally  recognised  and  authoi'itative  court,  which 


IS89-9I    AGNOSTICISM;  GAMBLING ;  SOCIALISM  273 


should  say  what  should  be  the  meaning  of  the  rubric,  and  what  was 
therefore  to  be  taken  as  the  law  of  the  Church  for  the  future.  Either 
a  generally  accepted  court  or  an  indisputable  rubric  was  clearly  an 
essential  requisite  for  peace.  Had  they  got  such  a  court  which  was 
generally  accepted      Most  certainly,  he  said,  they  had  not. 

Parliament  a  good  many  years  ago  was  of  the  opinion  he  had  ex- 
pressed, that  it  would  be  reasonable  the  Church  should  amend  the 
rubric,  and  it  accordingly  granted  the  Convocations  a  letter  of  licence 
for  the  {)urpose  of  amending  not  merely  the  rubrics  generally,  but  the 
particular  rubrics  in  dispute,  mentioning  them  by  name.  Convocation 
therefore  spent  seven  years  in  discussing  the  rubrics  of  the  Church,  but 
they  never  touched  the  bone  of  contention,  and  at  the  end  of  seven 
years  they  were  exactly  where  they  were  when  they  began.  They 
spent  seven  years  discussing  small  minutiae  of  the  rubrics,  and  no  one 
could  now  tell  what  these  were.  And  so  that  great  opportunity  passed 
from  them  never  to  return.  At  that  time  Parliament  was  prepared  to 
grant,  and  was  desirous  and  anxious  to  grant,  any  reasonable,  large, 
charitable,  and  tolerant  revision  of  the  rubric  the  Church  could  agree 
to.  Unhappily,  however,  the  time  was  not  opportune.  The  Purchas 
judgment  had  lately  been  passed,  and  the  Ridsdale  judgment  was  about 
to  be  passed.  One  party  desired  to  maintain  a  victory,  and  the  other 
to  reverse  a  defeat,  and  both  parties,  therefore,  for  once,  were  in  agree- 
ment to  leave  the  rubric  untouched,  and  what  the  result  of  that  had  been 
they  were  now  understanding.  There  were  but  two  bishops  who  then 
earnestly  advocated  that  the  opj)ortunity  should  be  taken  for  giving  to 
the  Church  a  largely  tolerant,  but  still  a  clearly  defined,  rubric,  and 
one  w'as  himself,  the  other  the  great  Bishop  Selwyn ;  but  they  were 
disregarded,  and  the  opportunity  was  lost.  At  the  present  moment 
they  found  themselves  once  more  face  to  face  with  the  old  difficulty, 
accentuated  by  all  that  had  passed  since  then.  Alluding  again  to 
Archdeacon  Denison's  proposal  that  there  should  be  a  tacit  agreement 
there  should  be  no  ritual  prosecution,  his  lordship  said  he  had,  he  felt 
sure,  his  share  of  human  infirmities  and  errors,  and  he  had  made  manv 
mistakes  as  a  bishop,  but  he  had  never  yet  been  guilty  of  the  infirmity 
or  mistake  of  entering  into  a  tacit  agreement  with  any  human  being. 
Undei'standings  invariably  led  to  misunderstandings,  and  if  he  entered 
into  an  agreement  with  any  person  or  persons  which  might  concern  the 
clergy  of  his  diocese,  they  might  believe  him  it  should  be  an  agree- 
ment veiy  distinct  and  very  perfectly  and  plainly  announced  by  him, 
and  that  when  he  announced  it  he  meant  to  stand  by  it. 

Pcterhoroiis.h  Diocesan  Magazine. 

The  Bishop's  remarks  in  summing  uj:)  the  discussions  upon 

VOL.  II.  s 


274 


J  RC  'H BISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAI'.  XIX 


"Betting  and  Gambling""  and  "Christian  Socialism""  exposed  him 
to  a  storm  of  misrepresentation  and  abuse  which  led  to  his  pub- 
lishing two  articles  in  his  own  defence,  in  the  Fortnightly  Revicic 
for  December  1889  and  January  1890.  The  following  extracts  are 
gi\en  from  the  account  of  the  Conference  in  the  Pderhurough 
Diocesan  Magazine. 

BETTING  AND  GAMBLING. 

...  They  must  carefully  keep  quite  distinct  the  two  questions,, 
whether  a  thing  was  wrong,  and  wliethcr  it  was  or  not  desirable  ta 
invoke  the  assistance  of  the  State  for  the  repression  of  that  wrong. 
When  it  was  proposed  that  the  State  should  put  down  gambling  at 
races,  people  asked — Where  is  the  sin  of  gambling  }  and  thought  they 
had  said  quite  enough.  But  eveia  if  there  were  no  sin  in  racing  or 
gambling  it  might  be  injurious  to  the  State,  and  if  so  the  State  would 
have  a  perfect  right  to  repress  it.  The  State  had  a  right  to  protect  its 
own  existence,  and  therefore  they  did  not  dispose  of  the  proposal  that 
the  State  should  check  or  restrain  gambling  in  clubs  or  elsewhere 
simply  by  asking  the  question  "  Is  it  a  sin  ?  "  That  to  his  mind  did 
not  touch  the  question,  because  it  was  not  the  business  of  the  State  to 
jmnish  sin.  It  was  the  business  of  the  State  to  punish  crime.  Every 
sin  was  not  a  crime,  and  every  crime  was  not  a  sin.  If  any  one  said  the 
State  should  not  interfere  with  gambling  because  gambling  was  not  ini 
itself  wrong,  he  should  reply  that  the  argument  was  irrelevant.  On 
the  other  hand,  when  a  man  said  that  gambling  was  wrong,  and  there- 
fore that  the  State  should  put  it  down,  he  could  not  accept  that  either. 
It  did  not  follow  that  because  a  thing  was  wrong  per  sc  the  State  should 
interfere  with  it.  The  State  had  a  perfect  right,  and  it  was  the  duty 
of  the  State,  to  interfere  with  what  was  injurious  to  itself.  Gambling 
in  gambling  clubs  and  gambling  houses  was  held  to  be  injurious  to  the 
State  as  a  matter  of  experience,  and  therefore  he  had  not  the  slightest 
hesitation  in  saying  that  the  magistrates  of  Leicester  were  quite  right,, 
and  were  bound,  to  exercise  the  powers  the  law  gave  them  in  putting 
down  gambling  dens.  Then  he  came  to  the  question,  which  was 
entirely  different,  as  to  the  actual  sin  of  betting.  He  thought  it  was 
very  difficult  to  define  wherein  exactly  consisted  the  sin  of  betting. 
The  only  definition  he  could  find  for  betting,  Avhich  included  all  forms 
of  betting,  was  that  it  was  a  buying  of  chances.  A  man  either  staked,, 
or  promised  to  pay,  a  certain  sum  of  money  upon  the  chance  of  a  certain 
event  happening.  Betting  was,  however,  distinguished  from  gambling. 
When  they  spoke  of  the  word  "betting  "  they  did  not  always  use  it  in 
a  bad  sense.  If  a  man  said  "  I  bet  you  5s.  it  will  not  rain  to-morrow,"" 
or  "  I  bet  you  5a'.  that  I  am  right  ou  this  or  that  point  and  that  you  are 


1 889-9 1    AGXOSTICISM;  GAMBLING ;  SOCIALISM  T15 


wrong/'  Ik-  certainly  said  a  foolish  thing,  but  he  thought  it  would  take 
some  time  to  prove  that  that  man  had  committed  a  sin,  and  certainly 
he  would  not  be  called  a  gambler.  By  gambling  he  understood 
habitual  excessive  and  injurious  betting.  He  thought  there  was  the 
same  distinction  l)etween  betting  and  gambling  that  there  was  between 
drinking  and  drunkenness.  All  drinking  was  not  necessarily  a  sin 
Drunkenness  was,  unquestionably.  Similarly,  he  could  not  take  it  on 
himself  to  say  that  all  betting  was  in  itself  necessarily  a  sin,  but  he 
thought  he  could  say  that  gambling  was  sin,  and  tended  to  sin,  and  to 
terrible  evil.  It  had  in  it  always  this  element  of  sin,  that  it  stimulated 
the  passions  of  avarice  and  covetousness.  Therein  lay  the  close 
proximity  of  all  betting  to  sin,  and  therein  lay  the  distinct  sin  of 
gambling.  .  .  .  Now  as  regarded  the  action  of  the  State.  He  was 
entirely  in  favour  of  all  the  State  had  done  in  the  way  of  suppi'essing 
gambling.  But  he  disliked  partial  and  hypocritical  legislation.  To 
make  it  the  law  that  the  police  should  go  to  some  gaming  club  and 
run  in  the  men  who  were  found  there  was  right  and  proper.  But  when 
men  were  allowed  to  bawl  out  from  a  grand  stand  the  market  price 
upon  a  favourite  horse,  and  do  it  openly,  he  could  not  see  why  the 
legislature  should  allow  the  one  and  forbid  the  other.  He  should  be 
honest  and  thoroughgoing.  He  had  the  same  dislike  for  hypocritical 
legislation  upon  that  as  he  had  for  hypocritical  legislation  upon  the 
drink  traffic.  He  did  not  know  anything  more  hypocritical  in  that 
matter,  in  his  opinion,  than  the  House  of  Commons  having  its  drinking 
bar  and  keeping  an  abundance  of  drink,  and  passing  resolutions  for  the 
suppression  of  the  drink  traffic  by  local  option.  If  the  House  of 
Commons  wanted  local  option  let  it  try  it  first  on  itself,  and  shut  uj)  its 
own  drinking  bar.  Then  he  would  think  more  of  the  honesty  of  a 
legislator  who  wiped  his  mouth  after  drinking  brandy-and-soda  in  the 
refreshment-room  and  then  went  in  to  pass  a  law  to  make  his  neigh- 
bour drink  cold  water.  He  thought  the  same  thing  held  as  regarded 
gambling,  and  he  heartily  wished  that  the  law  could  put  down  racing 
and  bookmaking  gambling  as  it  now  does  certain  other  forms  of 
gambling.  He  saw  not  the  slightest  difference  between  the  two. 
Racing  might  be  a  very  noble  and  national  sport.  He  dared  say  it  was, 
but  he  confessed  that  it  would  not  grieve  him,  but  somewhat  rejoice 
him,  if  he  were  to  know  to-morrow  there  was  not  to  be  another  race- 
horse or  racecourse  in  England.  He  might  be  told  that  that  would 
have  a  very  injurious  effect  upon  the  breed  of  horses.  Very  possibly. 
But  he  thought  it  would  have  a  very  beneficial  effect  upon  the  much 
more  important  breed  oj  men.  But  the  day  when  they  would  see  race 
gambling  put  down  was  very  distant.  They  should,  however,  strengthen 
the  hands  of  all  in  public  office  to  use  the  power  given  them  by  the 
law  for  suppressing  gambling  as  it  had  been  done  in  Leicester.  They 


276 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIX 


slioukl  warn  their  flocks  against  the  dangers  attending  b3tting  and 
gambling,  and  they  sliould  keep  their  own  hands  clean  of  it,  by  re- 
fraining fi-om  the  illegal  and  demoralising  gambling  of  raffles  at 
bazaars. 

SOCIALISM. 

There  was  another  question — Whether,  assuming  for  a  moment  that 
tlie  laws  of  Chi-ist's  gospel  were  socialistic,  the  State  should  embody 
them  in  its  laws.  He  thought  men  talked  very  loosely,  not  only  on 
that  subject,  but  on  a  great  many  other  subjects,  of  a  Christian  State, 
and  the  duties  of  a  Christian  State.  It  was  his  belief  that  a  Christian 
State,  carrying  out  in  all  its  relations  literally  the  precepts  of  the  Ser- 
mon on  the  Mount,  could  not  exist  for  a  week.  A  Christian  State 
which  carried  out  in  its  laws  all  the  directions  of  our  Lord  for  the 
Christian  individual  could  not  long  remain  in  existence,  for  a  very 
simple  reason.  He  supposed  there  were  no  two  precepts  more  dis- 
tinctly taught  in  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  than  the  duty  of  non- 
resistance  to  evil  and  of  forgiveness  of  injuries.  Now,  could  a  State  con- 
tinue to  forgive  absolutely  all  injuries  to  itself.^  Would  it  be  possible 
for  the  State  to  carry  out  the  law  that  all  its  criminals  should  be  for- 
given until  seventy  times  seven  ?  Yet  that  was  the  law  for  the  indivi- 
dual. To  carrj'  it  out  would  imply  that  all  the  gaols  should  be  opened, 
the  police  disbanded,  and  tlie  magistrates  dismissed — the  giving  up 
everything  Avliich  now  implied  that  the  State  did  not  forgive  offences, 
but  punished  them.  Could  they  conceive  the  existence  of  a  State 
which  pledged  itself  never  to  I'esist  evil  ?  If  a  French  army  were  to 
land  at  Dover,  should  we  be  bound  to  "  go  with  it "  amicably  all  the 
"  miles  "  on  the  way  to  London  ?  Is  the  Chancellor  of  the  Exchequer 
bound  to  "  give  to  him  that  asketh  of  him  "  It  was  to  him  perfectly 
clear  that  a  State  could  not  continue  to  exist  on  the  condition  of 
carrying  out  all  Christian  precepts  for  the  individual,  and  tlieir  Lord 
said  so.  He  said,  "  My  kingdom  is  not  of  this  woi-ld."  It  was  there- 
fore a  huge  mistake  to  attempt  to  turn  His  kingdom  into  a  kingdom 
of  this  world,  or  to  turn  the  kingdoms  of  the  world  into  His  kingdom. 
Again,  he  thought  they  could  not  speak  of  the  State  as  if  it  was  an 
individual  and  apply  all  the  maxims  of  individual  ethics  absolutely  to 
it.  The  State  was  not  an  individual.  It  was  a  trustee  for  a  great 
many  individuals.  It  had  to  preserve  the  rights,  the  lives,  and  the 
properties  of  those  who  were  entrusted  to  its  charge,  and  they  could 
not  make  a  greater  mistake  tlian  to  suppose  that  the  relations  of  a 
State  to  other  States,  or  to  its  own  subjects,  were  simply  those  of  one 
individual  to  anothei".  But  still  more  he  held  that  any  attempt  on  the 
part  of  the  State  to  turn  the  laws  of  the  Church  into  the  laws  of  tlie 
State  would  only  lead  to  absurd  and  legal  consequences.    The  great 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM;  GAMBLIXG ;  SOCIALISM  277 


law  of  the  Cluircli  of  C  hrist  was  self-sacrifice,  and  the  motive  power  of 
that  law  was  love.  The  princi2)le  of  the  State  was  justice,  and  the 
motive  power  of  the  State  was  force,  and  that  was  the  essential  dif- 
ference between  the  two.  If  the  State  took  the  law  of  the  Church  and 
tried  to  enforce  it  by  the  penalties  of  the  State,  it  would  set  up  an 
absolutely  intolerable  tyranny.  Take  the  case  of  Father  Damien.  Of 
his  own  free  and  loving  will  he  did  a  noble  thing  and  sacrificed  his  life 
for  others'  sake.  But  what  would  they  have  said  if  the  State  had 
seized  on  Father  Damien,  and  comj)clled  him  to  sacrifice  his  life  by 
dwelling  among  the  lepers  }  That  would  have  been  an  attempt  to  en- 
force by  the  laws  of  the  State  the  principle  of  Christian  love.  It 
appeared  to  him  that  those  who  were  claiming  that  they  should  carry 
out  in  the  laws  of  the  State  all  the  precepts  of  the  Church  were 
unconsciously  attempting  to  do  what  men  had  tried  to  do  in  times  past, 
and  had  failed  in  doing — to  establish  a  theocracy.  The  Puritans  tried 
to  do  that,  and  to  carry  out  in  the  State  the  laws  of  God,  as  they 
believed  them  to  be.  The  result  was  a  tyranny  so  far-reaching,  so 
harsh  and  austere,  so  unendurable,  that  men  revolted  against  it,  and 
the  licence  of  the  Restoration  w-as  the  necessary  result  and  outcome  of 
the  restriction  and  tj  ranny  of  the  Puritan  commonwealth.  Men  nowa- 
days were  for  trying  the  same  experiment,  only  instead  of  taking  the 
Old  Testament  they  were  taking  the  New  Testament  as  the  model  of 
their  Christian  state ;  and  he  ventured  to  say  that  if  they  succeeded  in 
doing  this,  they  would  establish  a  tyranny  more  intolerable  than  that 
of  the  Puritans  with  its  theocracy  of  the  Old  Testament,  because  the 
laAvs  of  the  New  Testament  were  far  deejier,  more  searching  and  wide- 
reaching  in  their  force  and  application  than  ever  were  tlie  laws  of  the 
Old.  But  he  did  not  say  that  when  we  had  proved  that  the  laws  of 
the  Church  can  never  become  laws  of  the  State — that  therefore  all  re- 
sponsibility was  taken  awa)-  from  the  Church  in  the  matter  of  social 
relations  and  economic  duties.  On  the  contrary,  it  appeared  to  him 
that  the  duty  of  the  Chui'ch  was  not  lessened,  but  enhanced  and  doubled 
by  that  state  of  things.  The  duties  of  the  Church  lay  upon  her  all  the 
more  because  her  laws  could  not  become  the  laws  of  the  State.  It 
was  her  duty  to  infuse  into  the  minds  of  men  that  spirit  of  love  which 
should  lead  to  greater  sacrifices  than  law  could  demand.  It  was  her 
duty,  not  to  attempt  to  define  the  economical  relations  between  poverty 
and  ])roperty,  capital  and  labour,  but  to  impress  upon  the  mind  of  the 
labourer,  and  far  more  upon  the  mind  of  the  capitalist,  the  great  broad 
law — do  unto  all  men  as  you  would  they  should  do  unto  you.  It  was 
their  duty  to  stand  up  in  favour  of  the  oppressed  and  suffering,  and  to 
speak  words  of  truthfulness  to  those  who  were  believed  to  be  oppress- 
ing and  injuring  them  ;  and  it  was  their  duty  also  to  speak  words  of 
faithfulness  and  truth  to  those  who  deemed  themselves  injured.  The 


278 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


Clinrch  should  be  fearless  and  earnest  in  her  denunciation  of  all  wron<r 
and  injustice  from  ^vhichever  side  it  came.  It  should  endeavour  to 
infuse  into  the  hearts  of  all  the  Christian  idea  of  justice,  inspired  and 
enlarged  by  love  ;  to  try  to  make  labour  just  towards  capital  and 
capital  just  towards  labour^  and  yet  not  to  attempt  to  define  what  in 
every  particular  case  was  the  precise  amount  of  justice  due  on  one  hand 
or  the  other. 

To  Bishop  Mitciiixson. 

"Peterborough,  November  4,  1889. 
"  Mv  DEAR  Bishop, — I  am  receiving  dailv  sheaves  of  newspaper 
criticism  and  private  letters  on  my  poor  little  obiter  dicta  at  the 
late  Conference.    Since  the  Jumbo  excitement  I  have  not  seen  so 
great  a  fuss  made  about  so  small  a  matter. 

"  If  you  take  the  next  Fortniglitlu  you  will  see  a  feeble  attempt 
of  mine  at  self-defence,  to  be  followed  by  another  in  the  next 
number. 

"After  that — mca  me  virtutc  ijit'oZt'o— though  I  fear  that  my 
critics  may  say  that  this  will  not  require  a  very  large  wrapper. 

"  The  Leicester  puritans  are  up  in  arms  and  Mrs.  Grundy  is  very 
much  distressed. 

" '  Through  evil  repute  and  good  repute,'  nevertheless,  yours 
most  truly,  "  W.  C.  Petehborough." 

From  Dr.  Saljion. 

Provost's  House, 

Trinity  College,  Dublin, 
November  13,  i88g. 

My  dear  Bishop, — I  was  very  glad  to  get  the  rejiort  of  the  Peter- 
borough Conference.  I  don't  know  •where  any  one  could  find  so  much 
good  sense  for  twopence. 

You  have  put  your  finger  on  what  has  long  made  me  almost  hopeless 
of  any  solution  being  found  for  Ritual  difficulties  in  England,  I  mean 
the  prevalent  feeling  that  a  beneficed  clergyman  ought  to  be  free  to 
say  and  do  whatever  he  likes  ;  or,  in  other  words,  that  it  is  an  outrage 
to  prosecute  him  no  matter  what  he  does. 

Fix  a  maximum  as  high  as  you  like,  you  will  thus  get  rid  of  a  great 
many  possible  present  jirosecutions  ;  but  your  maximum  is  certain  soon 
to  be  exceeded  and  what  are  you  to  do  then 

Betting  and  drunkenness  are  horrible  evils,  but  a  great  deal  of  non- 
sense is  talked  by  the  extreme  opponents  of  both.  Archbishop  Whately 
used  often  to  propose  the  question  why  betting  was  wrong.    He  used 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM;  GAMBLING ;  SOCIALISM  279 


to  be  very  successful  in  clcmolishing  my  iuiswers  to  tli;it  (jucslion,  and 
I  think  I  was  able  to  demolish  his.* 

One  form  of  belting  is  recognised  as  a  prudeiilial  ditlij  :  I  mean  lifo 
assurance.  You  bet  with  an  assurance  company  that  you  will  die,  they 
bet  tiiat  you  will  live  ;  and  you  are  well  pleased  to  lose  your  bet. 
Betting  is,  as  you  say,  buying  a  chance  ;  but  suppose  each  would  rather 
have  the  chance  than  the  price  to  be  j)aid  for  it,  why  not  ? 

Two  boys  want  to  see  a  show ;  each  has  only  half  the  price  of  admis- 
sion.   If  they  toss  up,  one  of  them  has  his  wish  ;  if  they  don't,  neither. 

If  people  take  tickets  for  a  raffle  at  a  bazaar,  no  one  feels  the  loss  of 
a.  shilling  for  a  ticket ;  but  if  the  object  to  be  raffled  for  is  prett}',  the 
winner  may  feel  the  gain  as  much. 

A  clergyman  once  at  a  bazaar,  when  I  professed  to  be  shocked  at  his 
having  a  raffle,  declared  that  he  did  it  on  the  highest  moral  grounds. 
Without  a  I'affle  none  but  a  few  rich  j^eople  had  the  chance  of  obtain- 
ing the  really  valuable  articles.  By  a  raffle  he  accomplished  the 
Christian  duty  of  putting  rich  and  jioor  on  terms  of  perfect  equality. 
People  who  cry  out  against  bazaars  lay  down  a  principle  they  can't 
carry  out,  if  they  will  not  accept  any  money  that  is  not  given  from  the 
very  highest  motives.    How  veiy  little  is. 

In  point  of  fact  the  workers  for  a  bazaar  Avill  take  a  great  deal  of 
trouble,  and  even  spend  a  great  deal  of  money,  that  they  would  not 
<jtherwise  spend  ;  and  people  Avho  would  hardly  give  anj'thing  gra- 
tuitously will  give  a  good  deal  of  money  at  a  bazaar  in  return  for  being 
permitted  to  carry  home  with  them  a  lot  of  things  which  they  really 
regard  as  rubbish. 

It  is  queer  that  it  should  be  so,  but  we  must  take  human  nature  as 
we  find  it. — I  remain  very  sincerely  yours,  G.  Salmon. 

To  Dr.  Bauclay, 

"  Peterborough,  December  6,  18S9. 

"  It  was  a  pleasure  to  me  to  hear  from  you  again,  and  specially 
so  to  receive  your  shrew  d  observations  on  life  and  fire  insurance  as 
a  form  of  betting. 

"  It  will  interest  you  to  know  that  I  lately  received  a  letter  from 
the  eminent  scientist,  Dr.  Salmon,  Provost  of  Trinity  College, 
Dublin,  in  which  he  made  exactly  the  same  point.  It  so  happened 
that  a  few  days  after  I  was  dining  in  company  with  the  Lord 
Chancellorj  when  the  subject  of  betting  and  my  speech  having 
turned  up,  I  mentioned  Dr.  Salmon's  point ;  on  which  Lord  Hals- 
bury  observed,  '  It  is  curious  you  sliould  mention  that  before  me, 

*  Good  and  very  Salmonian. — W.  C.  P. 


280 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


inasmuch  as  I  lately  said  the  same  thing  in  a  bonus  case  before  the 
House  of  Lords  when  deUvering  judgment/ 

"  You  see  therefore  how  science  and  law  in  the  persons  of  their 
most  eminent  representatives  agree  with  your  view  of  the  real 
nature  of  all  insurance. 

"  It  is  a  comfort  to  me  under  the  storm  of  abuse  through  mIucIi 
I  have  been  passing  lately,  to  find  how  many  men  of  sense  and 
ability  agree  with  me.  But  truly  nien  of  sense  in  this  world  are 
largely  outnumbered  by  fools  and  fanatics. 

"We  join  here  in  kind  regards  to  Mrs.  Barclay  and  yourself. — 
Yours  most  truly,  "  W.  C.  Petkuborougii." 

To  Dr.  Saoiox. 

"Peterborough,  December  g,  1889. 

"  ]\Iy  dear  Provost, — ^Thanks  for  your  letter.  I  can  well  imagine 
that  the  bulk  of  the  criticisms  on  my  speech  never  travelled  so  far 
as  Dublin. 

"  But  they  were  by  no  means  confined  to  postcards  on  this 
side  of  the  water. 

"  The  whole,  nearly,  of  the  religious  press — from  the  Guardian 
down  to  the  Methodist  Recorder — had  a  gird  at  me ;  while  the 
whole  of  the  Dissenting  ministers  in  Leicester  preached  at  me  after 
their  kind,  and  (what  I  liked  much  less  or  rather  disliked  more)  the 
ii-religious  and  infidel  press  patronised  me,  and  quoted  me  on  their 
side.  I  do  not  think  that  I  exaggerate  when  I  say  that  I  have 
received  something  like  a  hundred  newspaper  critiques  on  myself, 
besides  those  I  received  in  letters  and  j)ostcards. 

"  I  can  only  compare  myself  to  the  Jew,  who  being  overtaken  by 
a  thvmderstorm  while  eating  a  ham  sandwich,  exclaimed,  '  Ach  ! 
and  all  dis  noise  for  one  leetle  bit  of  pig  ! ' 

"  As  regards  Grant  Allen's  article,  it  is  all  you  say  of  it.  But 
I  doubt  the  wisdom  of  advertising  a  very  tenth  rate  and  almost 
unknown  man's  lucubrations  by  a  reply  to  it  from  a  bishop.  It 
■will  be  said,  here  is  a  really  damaging  attack  on  Christianity,  when 
bishops  are  compelled  to  notice  and  answer  it. 

"  But  I  should  nevertheless  like  to  see  it  answered,  and  I  will  try 
if  I  can  find  some  one  who  will  take  it  in  hand,  whose  failure,  if  he 
should  fail,  will  not  be  conspicuous,  as  the  failure  of  a  bishop  would 
be.  The  patent  fallacy  of  G.  A.'s  article  is  surely  his  confusing  the 
/«i*^or7/ of  religion  (assuming  his  history  to  be  true)  with  a  dtjinition 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  281 


of  it.  We  have  not  defined  a  man  wlien  we  have  given  a  ])hysio- 
logical  explanation  of  the  generation  of  men.  "  ^V.  C.  P." 

To  J.  C.  IMAcDoxNEi.r. 

"  Peterborough,  January  5,  1890. 

"  I  receive  now  and  then  notices  of  the  article,  mostly  insignifi- 
cant. One  very  bitter  and  stupid  one  appeared  in  the  7?oc7i',  but 
that  I  expected.  It  is  really  amazing  to  me  how  widespread  is 
the  belief  that  the  State  is  to  do  the  work  of  the  Church.  The 
Rovlc  actually  maintains  that  the  State  is  bound  to  punish  all  sins*. 
and  is  only  prevented  from  tloing  this  by  '  ignorance  of  men's 
motives  ! '  It  winds  up  with  a  delicious  sentence,  '  A  perfect  com- 
munitv  would  excommunicate  all  sinners  !  If  /  had  said  this,  I 
would  have  been  accused  of  perpetrating  an  Irish  bull.  Of  course 
a  perfect  community,  i.e.,  a  community  of  perfect  men,  would  have 
no  sinners  to  excommunicate.  The  only  perfect  man  the  world  has 
ever  known  did  not,  however,  excommunicate  sinners,  but  '  received 
them  and  ate  with  them ' ! 

"All  this  shows  me  that  my  utterance  was  really  needed  and  may- 
do  good." 

"  Peterborough,  January  7,  1890. 
"  I  return  you  Reichers  very  interesting  letter. 
"  His  views  as  to  English  Church  matters  are  very  much  my 
own. 

"The  Romeward  tendency  he  speaks  of  will,  I  feai-,  increase,  and 
be  greatly  stimulated  by  Disestablishment.  Nothing  is  more  cer- 
tain than  that  a  Disestablished  Church,  losing  the  moderating  and 
restraining  influence  of  Establishment,  will  develop  into  High 
Chuixhmanship  at  first. 

"  A  pauper  aristocracy  are  always  the  most  aristocratic,  falling 
back  on  their  rank  when  they  have  nothing  else  to  stand  upon. 

"  Ultimately  conies  the  reaction  in  the  direction  of  latitudi- 
narianism  ;  but  this  is  a  long  time  in  coming. 

"  The  one  party  that  is  certain  to  be  squeezed  out  in  the  long 
run  is  the  Evangelical. 

"  Its  individualism  will  never  hold  together  a  voluntary  body. 
Dissent  accordingly  is  rapidly  ceasing  to  be  Evangelical,  and  be- 
coming sceptical. 

"  These,  however,  are  changes  that  neither  you  nor  I  will  live  to 
see,  though  we  may  live  to  see  Disestablishment. 


282 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIX 


"  Quarry  left  nic  yesterday  radiant  and  thankfid  for  his  small 
mercy  of  .£^145  a  year  net  and  independent  position. 

"  To-day  is  bright  and  sunny.  But  the  weather  oenerallv  has 
been  dismal  and  malarious  of  late.  Take  my  advice  and  take 
(|uiniiie  as  a  prophylactic." 

"  Peterborough,  Fchruary  9,  iSgo. 

"  I  w  ish  von  would  get  a  copy  of  this  month's  Nineteenth  Ccnturij 
i\w<\.  read  Huxley's  article  in  it,  on  'Natural  and  Political  Rights.' 

"  It  is  Huxley  at  his  best,  and  on  the  right  side.  He  never 
.shines  so  much  as  when  knocking  to  pieces  with  his  scientific 
liannner  some  modern  political  and  democratic  rubbish. 

And  this  is  a  most  effective  demolition  of  the  modern  rubbish 
nbout  '  Natural  Rights.''  He  expands  at  length  and  with  great 
force  my  assertion  in  Good  Words  of  this  month,  that  'nature 
know  s  of  no  rights,  only  of  forces.'  And  his  argument,  that  if  all 
men  have  an  equal  and  natural  right  to  all  the  earth,  then  English- 
men have  no  more  right  to  their  portion  of  the  earth  (which  they 
have  appropriated)  as  against  Chinese  and  Hindoos,  than  any  one 
Englishman,  duke  or  peer,  has  against  the  pauper  Englishman,  is 
perfect,  and  most  delightfully  put. 

"  His  case  of  a  tiger  having  a  'natural  right'  to  cat  a  man,  and 
a  man  having  no  more  than  a  natural  right  to  shoot  the  tiger,  is 
-delicious. 

"  Of  course  for  us  Christians  there  is  such  a  thing  as  a  natiu'al 
right,  arising  out  of  the  fact  of  the  conscience  being  given  man  by 
bis  Maker,  and  in  that  gift  there  being  a  right  of  appeal  to  the 
Lord  of  all,  against  his  fellow  man.  Rut  this,  of  course,  is  no 
part  of  Huxley's  creed,  while  as  against  his  fellow  unbelievers  his 
argument  is  unanswerable. 

"  I  never  could  see  why  an  atheistic  ruler  should  pay  any  more 
regard  to  a  pain  in  the  conscience  of  his  atheistic  subject  than  he 
should  pay  to  a  pain  in  his  head  or  his  stomach.  Indeed,  less,  for 
the  latter  would  be  a  real  pain,  while  he  might  regai-d  the  former 
as  only  an  imaginary  one.  Anyhow,  read  the  article  and  tell  me 
what  you  think  about  it. 

"  I  have  decided  not  to  go  up  to  the  bishops'  meeting  on  Tues- 
day next.  I  should  probably  find  myself  in  a  minority  of  one, 
Avhich  is  not  only  a  painful  position,  but  a  useless  one.  I  think 
that  until  some  mode  is  devised  of  bringing  law  to  bear  on  lawless 
clergy  their  avoyna.  vvill  ^^■ax  worse  and  worse  until  all  law  and 
order  is  at  an  end. 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  283 


"  It  is  true  the  law  is  debateable  and  unsatisfactory  ;  but,  unless 
some  sharp  pressure  is  applied,  men  w  ill  never  aorce  to  mend  it. 

"Now  as  no  other  punishment  than  a  ])raetically  impossible  im- 
])risonment  exists  for  law  breaking,  the  law  breakei's  have  it  all 
their  own  way.  When  they  are  compelled,  or  compellable,  to  obey 
the  law,  they  will  join  with  reasonable  men  in  trying  to  amend  it. 

"All  this,  however,  my  learned  and  ])ious  brctlu-en  \\ill  not  or 
■cannot  see;  and  for  this  blindness,  verily,  they  will  ere  long  '•ha\e 
their  reward." 

"  Meanwhile,  my  saying  this  to  them,  sweetly  even  and  gentlv  as 
I  should  say  it  (am  I  not  always  sweet  and  gentle  ?)  would  be  to 
them  as  the  'idle  wind.'  I  am  only  a  poor  wild  Irishman,  and  they 
learned  and  wise  and  thoughtful  Englishmen,  who  look  down  with 
all  the  fine  contempt  of  an  English  univei'sity  man  upon  the  man 
whose  degree  is  not  of  Oxford  or  Cambridge.  Truly,  your  true 
Oxford  or  Cambridge  Don  seems  to  regard  his  university  even  as 
the  Heavenly  City  of  the  Revelations.  '  Without  are  dogs  ! '  I 
might  have  had  some  influence,  if  I  had  only  been  an  English 
university  man,  xc'dh  a  stutter !  I  have  all  through  my  episcopate 
felt  this  keenly,  perhaps  too  keenly.  But  the  thing  reached  its 
height  at  the  Lambeth  Conference  when,  out  of  all  the  English  dio- 
cesan bishops,  I  Mas  almost  the  only  one  to  whom  was  given  no 
part  in  the  opening  discussion  of  their  fifteen  subjects,  and  when  I 
had  to  fight  for  five  minutes''  time  in  which  to  speak  on  one  of 
them. 

"  I  felt  then  that  I  M'as  given  a  back  seat  bv  my  brethren.  I 
took  it  without  repining,  and  have  found  it  so  comfortable  that  I 
jiow  do  not  care  to  leave  it. 

"  There  !  now  the  steam  is  well  blown  off,  and  I  am  quiet  in  my 
siding. 

"  I  am  daily  expecting  news  as  to  Jones  accejjting  or  refusing 
St.  Sepulchre's.  If  he  refuse  I  shall  have  a  very  difficult  search  for 
a  fit  man. 

"  I  have  a  jnospcct  of  getting  rid  of  the  most  extreme  Ritualist 
in  the  diocese  by  offering  him  a  small  extra  diocesan  living.  I  like 
throwing  my  ritualistic  nettles  over  my  ritualistic  brother's  wall. 

"  All  this  is  for  your  private  ear,  the  living  not  yet  being- 
vacant. 

"  I  foi'got  to  tell  you  that  I  wrote  to  the  Archbishop  very  briefly 
to  say  that  as  I  could  not  attend  his  meeting  of  bishops,  at  which 
he  told  nie  the  principal  subject  was  to  be  Lord  Grimthorpc's  Bill. 


284. 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


I  thought  it  due  to  him  to  say  that  I  approved  of  it,  and  would  be 
prepared  to  support  it  in  Parhament. 

"  It  would  be  a  eurious  irony  of  fate  if  I  Avere  to  find  myself 
supporting  G.  against  the  Archbishop.  But  I  hardly  think  I  shall 
go  so  far  as  this.  I  should  have  to  encounter  a  storm  of  abuse  and 
misrepresentation,  and  I  have  had  enough  of  storms  of  that  kind  in 
my  time,  so  I  shall  most  probably  stay  away,  or  perhaps  pair  for  G." 

"Peterborough,  February  21,  1890. 

"  The  memorialists  ask  for  trial  by  '  the  Synod  of  the  Province.' 
Now  the  only  Synod  of  the  Province  that  I  know  of  is  Convocation. 

"  It  certainly  claims  to  be  so,  and  is  so  entitled  always.  And 
the  Archbishop's  judgment  in  one  passage  evidently  contemplates 
trial  by  Convocation  as  the  alternative  to  his  present  court.  Very 
possibly  an  assembly  of  the  Bishops  of  the  Province  may  also  be  a 
Synod.  But  if  so,  this  is  only  another  illustration  of  the  difficulties 
and  ambiguities  in  which  this  whole  matter  of  jurisdiction  is  in- 
volved. 

"  I  may  mention  siib  sig'illo  that  I  consulted  Jeune  as  to  my  law 
and  facts  before  sending  my  reply  to  Lightfoot.  He  thinks  all  my 
facts  correct,  and  my  law  defensible,  so  far  that  he  '  would  not 
undertake  to  assert  a  negative  to  it.'  But  he  is  doubtful  as  to  what 
the  Synod  in  this  case  Avould  legally  be,  and  so  am  I. 

"  Anyhow,  Parnell  and  company  and  Gladstone  and  company 
will  just  now  save  me  equally  from  criticism  and  attention.  So 
securns  judico. 

I  am  giving  a  year's  leave  of  absence  conditional  on  his  pro- 
viding a  resident  curate  to  my  satisfaction.  But  this  is,  as  I  under- 
stand from  him,  rather  as  a  prejiaration  for  his  ultimate  resignation. 

"  The  laity  are  sometimes  a  little,  or  not  a  little,  hard  upon  their 
clergy,  and  rather  like  to  keep  their  noses  to  the  grindstone  with  a 
view  to  compelling  them  to  resign. 

"  I  find  it  hard  sometimes  to  keep  a  just  balance  between  clergy 
and  laity  in  this  matter,  and  I  confess  that  I  rather  lean  to  mercy 
to  the  parsons,  though  not  I  ho])e  unduly. 

"  If  a  bishop  were  tried  and  acquitted  by  his  colleagues  of  the 
province,  no  doubt  we  should  hear  from  indignant  presbyters  of 
the  bishops  standing  by  one  another,  and  of '  ask  my  brother,  am  I 
a  thief.?' 

"  Hit  high  or  hit  low,  there  is  no  pleasing  the  parsons,  nor  per- 
haps the  bishops  either,  in  this  matter  of  Courts  Ecclesiastical." 


1 889-9 1    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  285 


"  Peterdorough,  Fchruary  24,  1890. 
"I  return  vou  Roichers  very  striking  and  suggestive  sermon. 
The  idea  that  the  first  two  chapters  of  St.  lAike  are  by  the  Virgin 
Maiy  and  the  first  two  of  St.  Matthew  by  Joseph  is  to  me  quite 
aiew,  and  yet  so  natural  that  one  wonders  not  to  have  thought  of  it 
before.  It  gives  a  profound  and  tender  interest  to  those  two 
chapters  of  St.  Luke.  The  whole  of  the  earlier  part  of  the  sermon 
is  striking  and  original,  though  I  think  that  if  I  were  a  Salvation 
Army  man  I  should  reply  to  lleichePs  reference  to  our  Lord's 
silence  in  His  earlier  years,  that  this  was  during  His  preparation  for 
His  mission,  and  that  when  He  had  received  His  mission  He  '  did 
cry  and  utter  His  voice  in  the  streets.'  But  of  course  the  rebuke  to 
boy  evangelists  and  infant  Gospel  prodigies  holds  good  equally  and 
is  very  telling. 

"  As  regards  the  latter  part  of  the  sermon,  which  deals  with  the 
deep  and  difficult  subject  of  the  Kevwaig  in  our  Lords  incarna- 
tion, I  do  not,  any  more  than  you  do,  see  my  way  to  denying  R.'s 
conclusions  as  drawn  from  his  premises.  But,  then,  what  are  the 
premises  ?  What  is  the  meaning  of  '  He  emptied  Himself  ;  or  in 
other  words,  what  were  the  exact  limitations  of  His  humanity 

"  This  is  nowhere  defined,  nor  does  R.  really  define  them.  That 
there  were  limitations  we  must  believe ;  but  is  the  distinction  R. 
draws  between  '  wisdom  '  and  '  knowledge  in  this  matter  tenable  ? 

"  We  are  distinctly  told  that  our  Lord  increased  in  wisdom,  i.e., 
as  I  take  it,  in  spiritual  perception. 

"  If  so,  His  KtvwaiQ  extended  to  things  spiritual  as  well  as  to 
things  temporal ;  and  if  so,  when  did  His  spiritual  perception 
become  perfect,  so  that  we  may  accept  Him,  as  we  all  do,  as  our 
Infallible  Guide  in  all  things  appei-taining  to  spiritual  life  ?  The 
whole  subject  is  a  darkly  difficult  mystery,  and  I  am  persuaded  one 
which  cannot  be  ever  intelligible  to  us  who  have  no  standard  by 
which  to  measure  the  perfect  humanity  of  Christ.  The  question  as 
stated  is  in  terms  a  contradiction.  How  can  there  be  a  perfect 
man  with  imperfect  knowledge  ?  Is  not  all  lack  of  knowledge  an 
imperfection  or  the  result  of  imperfection  ?  Still,  I  think  that  H.'s 
statements  are  valuable  as  a  correction  to  the  Docetism  into  which 
we  are  all  liable  to  fall  when  thinking  of  our  Lord's  divinity. 
Indeed,  it  has  always  seemed  to  me  that  current  and  popular  theo- 
logy always  is  oscillating  between  Docetism  and  Patripassionism, 
according  as  men  give  prominence  in  their  thoughts  to  our  Lord's 
divinity  or  His  humanity.    On  the  apologetic  side  of  Christianity 


286 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


ll.''s  views  woiilil  give  immense  relief  if  we  v.ere  quite  certain,  as  I 
have  said,  of  our  premises.  But  the  whole  subject  is  as  difficult 
as  it  is  ])rofoundly  interesting. 

"  I  think  with  you  that  Durham  nnist  have  gone  astray. 

"  If  it  were  not  for  Wilkinson's  notorious  ill-health  I  should 
have  said  that  the  delay  has  been  caused  by  its  having  been  offered 
him,  and  by  his  being  somewhere  or  other  in  Egypt  and  not  within 
easy  reach  of  telegrams.  How  hap])y  I  feel  in  not  lia\  ing  any 
personal  interest  in  the  matter." 

"  Peterborough,  March  3,  i8go. 

"  Have  you  read  '  Lux  Mundi '  ?  If  you  have  not,  beg,  borrow,, 
buv  or  steal  it ;  and  if  you  borrow,  forget  to  return  it.  It  is  a 
book  which  every  one  ought  to  possess  who  desires  to  gauge  the 
religious  thought  of  the  day.  It  is  the  manifesto  of  High  Church 
young  Oxford — quite  a  different  school  of  thought  from  the 
Oxfoi'd  High  Church  of  thirty  years  ago,  and  a  great  improvement 
on  it.  The  old  High  Church  school  was,  I  always  thought, 
remarkable  for  this — that  it  had  no  philosophy.  It  appealed  to 
the  imagination  and  the  feelings,  hardly  at  all  to  the  intellect.  It 
never  had  but  one  great  intellect  in  its  ranks  (Newman),  and  he 
left  it.  But  this  new  school  has  a  philosophy,  and  a  very  real  and 
deep  one.  It  may,  not  irreverently,  be  described  as  the  philosophy 
of  the  Incarnation.  This  is  really  the  key-note  of  the  book,  which 
has  this  advantage  over  older  books  of  the  same  kind  ("  Essays  and 
Reviews,"  "  Church  and  World,""  etc.),  that  the  writers,  though  to 
a  great  degree  independent,  are  nevei'theless  all  one  in  their  root 
ideas,  and  have  seen  each  other's  articles  and,  as  it  were,  '  played 
up'  to  each  other.  Like  a  violin,  it  is  composed  of  many  pieces, 
but  all  so  put  together  as  to  give  a  harmonious  note. 

"  The  key-note  is  the  Incarnation,  and  the  idea  of  the  Incarna- 
tion is  wrought  out,  in  relation  to  dogma,  development,  criticism, 
science,  politics,  ethics,  etc.,  more  or  less  successfully  in  each  case, 
but  in  every  case  interpenetrating  and  sustaining  the  whole  thought 
of  the  writer.  It  is  an  attempt  to  justify, "from  the  standpoint  of 
the  Incarnation,  catholic  theology  in  the  presence  of  science, 
criticism,  and  modern  theories  of  life.  Altogether  a  very  remark- 
able book,  though  of  unequal  merit.  The  first  article,  on  Faith, 
bv  Holland,  is,  I  think,  one  of  the  weakest,  though  abounding  with 
striking  and  suggestive  thoughts. 

"  It  gives  a  description  but  not  a  definition  of  faith  ;  and  makes 


18S9-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  287 


Christian  faith  something  different  in  kind  from  other  faith — whicli 
it  certainly  is  not.  The  second,  The  Christian  Idea  of  God,"  by 
Aubrey  Moore,  is  the  gem  of  the  book— masterly,  thoughtful, 
learned,  and  yet  with  no  show  of  learning,  and  full  of  epigrannnatic 
sentences  almost  worthy  of  Pascal  or  Joubert. 

"The  'Incarnation  in  llelation  to  Development,"  by Illingworth, 
is  again  a  very  masterly  treatise.  Lyttleton  on  the  Atonement 
would  interest  you  greatly,  as  it  did  me.  But  I  think  it  has  more 
of  Anselmism  in  it  than  Scripture  warrants.  Gore,  on  Inspiration, 
is  the  riskiest  in  the  book,  and  not,  I  think,  intellectually  equal  to 
some  of  the  others.    He  takes  ReichePs  view  of  the  KiviuaiQ. 

"  Articles  on  Christian  politics  and  ethics  ai'e  good,  but  rather 
sketchy  and  a  little  dreamy.  But,  take  it  altogether,  it  is  a 
remarkable  book,  and  one  full  of  doctrine  '  wholesome  for  these 
times.'' 

"  If  I  thought  vou  would  return  it  to  me,  spite  of  my  advice  not 
to  do  so,  I  would  lend  it  to  you  when  I  have  read  it  through. 
"  Meanwhile,  vale,  sisquc  mcrnor  m^i." 

"  Peterborough,  March  5,  1890. 

"  I  am  sending  you  '  Lux  Mundi,'  by  parcels  post.  Mind  you 
send  or  bring  it  me  back. 

"I  am  busy  just  now  arranging  what  I  hope  may  prove  a  useful 
series  of  moves  in  the  diocese — too  intricate  a  game  to  describe  on 
paper,  and  some  of  which  may  after  all  never  come  off.  Only 
fancy,  Polebrook,  near  Oundle,  which  you  remember  I  offered  to 
Jellett,  is  now  worth  ^140  or  £\50  a  year  only.  The  incumbent 
is  resigning  and  I  nuist  find  some  curate  who  may  be  willing  io 
take  it. 

"  I  am  sorry  to  hear  of  the  continuance  of  influenza  in  your 
neighbourhood.  Walker  tells  me  that  it  is  at  last  decidedly  on  the 
M  ane  here. 

"  How  this  weary,  dreary,  unreal  Irish  debate  is  dragging  out  in 
the  House  of  Commons  !  I  feel,  as  an  Irishman,  always  ashamed 
of  the  transparent  unreality  and  dishonesty  of  Irish  debates,  and 
English  debates  on  Irish  questions. 

"  The  Celt  has  the  curious  faculty  of  bringing  those  who  have 
to  do  with  him  down  to  his  level,  like  a  low-pitched  voice  in  a 
concert,  which  brings  down  the  rest.  One  comfort  is,  that  nine 
days  of  this  debating  must  sicken  the  English  public  of  Irish 
matters,  and  give  a  chance  for  English  legislation. 


288 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIX 


"  The  Tithe  Bill  this  yeai-  seems  a  good  one.  Note  the  adoption 
of  the  Irish  plan  of  placing  a  receiver  over  the  estate  of  the 
defiiulting  tithe-payer.    But  will  the  Bill  pass  ? 

"  Grinithorpe  is,  I  hear,  bringing  in  his  Bill  for  snhstitnting 
deprivation  for  imprisonment  into  the  House  of  Lords.  I  am 
announced  as  supporting  him.  I  have  told  him  that  I  agree  Avith 
him.  But  going  up  to  the  House  of  Lords  and  kicking  over  a 
hornets''  nest  to  please  G.  is  qnite  another  matter.  "  Bcafiis  illc 
qui  procul  ncgvfus''';  coiitcntits  vivat.  I  was  contentious,  I  am  now 
contentus,  and  enjoy  the  change.  Juniorcs  ad  Inhorcs.  Let  my 
younger  brethren  groan  in  labour  and  deliver  themselves  of  their 
speeches.  I  cannot  conceive  why  I  should  meddle  in  the  fray,  and 
therefore  shall  not  be  tlelivered  of  any  speech. 

"  On  INIarch  21  I  begin  my  confirmations,  and  shall  have  a  heavy 
Aveek  of  them  at  Leicester. 

"  I  am,  however,  thank  God,  in  very  fair  condition,  and  feel  quite 
tnpial  to  my  work." 

"  Athen.s;um  Club,  June  17,  1890. 

"I  daresay  you  will  hke  to  know  'how  I  fared'  last  night.* 
Fairly  well,  I  think.  The  Lords  listened  attentively,  did  not  talk 
.to  one  another  during  my  whole  speech,  and  cheered  me — for  them 
warmly — when  I  sat  down. 

"  I  said  nearly  everything  I  wanted  to  say,  moreover,  and  said 
it,  I  think,  clearly ;  but  the  House  was  thin  owing  to  Ascot,  and 
my  speech  is  burked  in  all  the  papers  save  the  Times,  and  greatly 
^ibridged  there. 

"  Lord  Granville,  when  I  met  him  this  morning,  '  paid  me  his 
•compliments '  on  my  '  very  able  speech.'' 

"L^nluckily,  all  this  entails  a  Select  Committee,  heaps  of  work, 
and  possible  diminution  of  holidays. 

"  I  am  tired,  too,  and  yet  must  grind  away  at  my  sermon  for  St. 
FauFs  to-morrow. 

"  I  have  been  most  unlucky  in  being  obliged  to  do  these  two  bis' 
things  so  close  ;  but  I  had  no  choice. 

"  I  hope  to  get  home  on  Friday  for  a  day  or  two  of  rest ;  but 
must  then  take  up  my  quarters  in  town  for  a  fortnight  or  three 
■weeks  and  see  this  Bill  through."" 

"Athen^dm  Club,  June  25,  1S90. 
"  I  daresay  it  will  interest  you  to  hear  of  the  opening  of  my 
campaign  for  the  Children's  Insurance — Magee  v.  Beauchamp. 
*  Infants'  Insurance  Bill,  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  285. 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBIJNG;  SOCIALISM  289 


"  The  Committee  met  for  the  first  time  to-day,  a  merely  formal 
meeting  to  elect  chairman  and  arrange  days  of  meeting  and  order 
of  business.  There  were  ten  of  us,  all  told.  I  was  moved  into  the 
chair  by  Derby  and  Spencer,  and  arranged  days  and  hours  of 
meetings. 

"  I  had  hardly  done  this,  when  Beauchamp  showed  his  teeth.  I 
spoke  of  '  order  of  evidence.'  '  Yes,'  snarled  he,  '  we  have  had 
no  evidence  yet'  (meaning  my  speech).  '  Your  lordship  shall  have 
some  presently,'  says  I. 

"  '  Is  your  lordship  going  to  call  Mr.  Waugh  ? '  (secretary  of  Pre- 
vention of  Cruelty  to  Children,  and  B.'s  pet  aversion).  '  I  know  of 
no  reason  why  I  should  not,'  says  I ;  '  but,  as  a  matter  of  fact,  very 
pi-obably  I  shall  not  do  so.'  And  so  Ave  sparred  on  for  a  bit,  until 
we  fairly  went  in  for  tussle  No.  1 — on  the  question  whether  all 
evidence  should  be  given  on  oath.  'Certainly  it  niiLst,'  says  B.;  'I 
insist  upon  it.  People's  characters  have  been  taken  away.  Ever\  - 
thing  must  be  sworn  to.'  '  Not  so,'  says  I ;  '  w  e  are  not  a  Court  of 
Assize  trying  an  action  for  libel,  but  a  Committee  considering  a 
Bill,  and  thus  open  to  all  kinds  of  evidence,  documentary  and 
written.' 

"  '  I  think  so,'  says  Derby.  '  Ditto,  ditto,'  says  Lord  Thring. 
And  so,  after  some  more  spariing,  I  put  the  question,  oath  or  no 
oath ;  and  Master  B.  was  left  in  a  minority  of  one. 

"  First  round.  B.  knocked  out  of  time,  and  a  good  omen  for 
the  futui'e.  Committee  evidently  not  with  him  so  far.  But  I 
must  be  very  cautious  and  courteous,  and  not  presume  on  my 
victory.  '  Noble  lords '  do  not  like  other  '  noble  lords '  being  sat 
upon  by  bishops. 

"  However,  so  far  I  have  begun  Avell. 

"  Now  that  I  am  in  for  it  I  rather  like  it.  But  Beauchamp  will 
do  all  he  knows  in  the  way  of  insolence,  and  that  is  a  good  deal, 
in  order  to  put  me  out  of  temper ;  which  he  shall  not  do,  if  I 
know  it. 

"So  'thim  is  my  sintimints,'  and  'no  more  at  present  from  yours 
to  command,  and  hoping  this  finds  you  well  as  it  leave  me. 

"W.  c.  p." 


"  Peterborough. 

"  ....  I  must  not  write  more  to  you  now  than  just  to  say  that 
two  days  more  will  end  my  House  of  Lords  Connnittee  worries  for 
this  Session.    Alas  !  we  must  begin  again  in  November. 

VOL.  H.  T 


290 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XIX 


"  Beauchamp  is  worrying  and  insolent  beyond  belief,  but  I  have 
steadily  beaten  him  so  far.  Arthur  and  I  go  to  Judge  Bowen 
Friday  week  to  stay  over  Sunday  in  Sussex,  and  to  meet  the 
G.O.M.  and  his  G.O.W. 

"Then  the  family  or  some  of  them  go  to  Oxford  to  see  the 
Merton  infant  take  his  degree ;  and  from  Oxford  the  Irish  tourists 
start  for  Dublin. 

"  Oh,  how  I  rejoice  to  see  the  daylight  of  holidays  after  the 
African  forest  of  weary  Committee  work  ! 

"  I  am  just  now  tired  out  and  out.  But  a  few  days'  rest  and 
chano'e  will  make  me  all  right." 

"  Peterborough,  July  29,  i8go. 

"  We  are  off  from  Oxford  for  Ireland  on  Thursday  next. 

"  I  had  an  immensely  interesting  two  days  at  Judge  Bowen's  in 
company  with  G.O.M.  and  G.O.W.  But  how  could  I  tell  you  the 
hundredth  part  of  the  conversation  of  a  man  who  talked  inces- 
santly from  9  o'clock  a. 51.  to  11  o'clock  p.m.  on  every  conceivable 
subject 

"  Some  day  when  we  meet  I  might  tell  you  of  some  of  his  sayings, 
if  I  have  not  forgotten  them.  But  assui-edly  I  spent  those  two 
da\  s  in  the  company  of  the  most  amazing  old  man  in  Europe." 

To  Mrs.  Magee. 

"  MiLRoy.  Donegal, 

"August  24,  1890. 

"  This  has  been  an  interesting  day  for  me.  I  preached  in  the 
church  (Carrigart),  where  I  must  have  sat  as  a  boy  some  sixty- 
three  years  ago ;  and  Arthur  read  the  lessons,  thus  making  four 
generations  of  Magees  whose  voices  had  been  heard  in  that  chmch, 
for  doubtless  Ai-chbishop  Magee,  when  Bishop  of  Raphoe,  must 
have  preached  or  confirmed  there  in  my  father's  time.  The  chui'ch, 
I  am  told,  is  quite  unchanged  save  that  open  sittings  have  replaced 
the  old  square  pews.  Of  course  I  did  not  remember  the  church, 
but  I  did  remember  the  house  where  we  lived.  I  visited  it  after 
chmxh.  It  is  now  inhabited  by  the  dispensaiy  doctor,  who  took 
us  over  it.  I  distinctly  recalled  the  little  sitting-room  separated 
by  a  narrow  passage  from  the  kitchen,  where  I  used  to  run  in  and 
leam  the  spelling  of  some  hard  word  set  me  after  dinner  in  the 
sitting-room.  It  was,  I  think,  old  Kilby  *  who  used  to  help  me  on 
those  occa-sions. 

•  The  Bishop's  old  nurse. 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING;  SOCIALISM  291 


"  Something  remains,  too,  of  the  long  narrow  street  of  cabins 
that  I  distinctly  remember  as  stretching  away  from  our  house.  An 
old  man  at  the  door  of  the  church  stopped  me  to  shake  hands.  He 
'  minded  me  well,'  and  told  me  how  my  mother  kept  the  Sunday 
School,  and  what  a  horseman  my  father  was.  It  was  all  curiously 
and  a  little  painfully  interesting  to  me.  Arthur  is  within  six  years 
of  my  father  s  age  when  he  came  here." 

To  J.  C.  MacDonnell. 

"  Windsor  Castle, 

"  Sunday,  November  30,  1890. 

"  I  preached  to  the  Queen  for  twenty-tlu-ee  minutes  to-day,  and 
dined  with  her  last  night.  W.  H.  Smith  and  Lord  Hartington 
were  of  the  party — a  conjunction  here  that  bodes,  I  imagine,  no 
good  to  G.O.M.  Of  course  the  one  topic  of  conversation  for  all  of 
us  is  the  political  situation ;  which,  by  the  way,  is  enhanced  this 
morning  by  the  news  that  the  American  section  of  the  Nationalists 
- — Dillon,  O'Erien  and  Co. — have  declared  against  Parnell.  All 
agree  that  he  is,  for  the  futuie,  impossible  as  regards  English 
statesmen  ;  but  I  have  my  doubts  still  as  regards  the  Irish.  How  - 
ever, a  day  or  two  will  settle  all  that. 

"W.  H.  Smith  and  Lord  Hartington  are  naturally  radiant.  I 
had  a  long  and  interesting  talk  with  W.  H.  Smith  about  the 
Education  question,  which  will,  I  expect,  take  rather  an  unex- 
pected turn,  and  one  that  w  ill  need  wary  steering  for  those  who 
have  to  pilot  the  Church. 

"Lord  Hartington  greatly  amused  me  by  his  telling  me  of 
Parneirs  visit  to  Hawarden.  It  seems  he  affronted  the  Gladstones 
by  coming  down  twenty-five  minutes  late  for  dinner,  and  by  not 
coming  down  to  breakfast  at  all.  I  hear,  too,  on  all  sides  that  the 
G.O.M."'s  last  visit  to  Midlothian  was  a  fiasco — awaking  no 
enthusiasm  ;  and  that  Balfour,  on  the  contrary,  who  followed  him, 
w  as  a  great  success. 

"  The  Archbishop  of  Cantuar  is  at  the  deanery  here,  where  he's 
been  staying  for  the  last  week,  resting  from  the  judgment  and  com- 
forting himself,  poor  dear  man,  with  his  friend's  quiet  society  after 
his  son'ow. 

"  Of  course,  as  I  am  the  preacher  here,  there  has  been  a  death. 
This  time  the  death  of  one  of  the  canons  of  Windsor — Capel  Cure, 
Hector  of  St.  George's,  IIano\  er  Square.   I  do  hope  that  this  time 


292 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XIX 


the  vacant  canonry  may  go  to  my  dear  friend  Lord  Normanby.  It 
would  just  suit  liim. 

"  I  have  just  heard  that  I  am  to  dine  again  to-night  with  the 
Queen  at  8.45.    What  an  hour  ! 

"  I  find  the  life  here  rather  wearisome,  spite  of  its  honour  and 
glory,  and  shall  be  thankful  to  find  myself  home  to-morrow. 

"  11.15  P.M.    It  is  '  bedtime,  Hal,  and  all  well.' 

"  No  further  news  of  any  kind." 

"  Peterborough,  December  29,  1890. 

"  Good  and  loving  Christmas  wishes  may  always  be  taken  for 
granted  between  you  and  yours  and  me  and  mine.  I  send  them  both 
to  you  in  writing,  however,  all  the  same. 

"  Truly  we  need  all  best  wishes  for  our  enduring  this  ten-ible 
weather.  I  see  no  signs  to-day  of  its  amendment.  I  do  not  re- 
member such  a  winter  since  1861,  when  the  frost  nearly  cost  me  my 
life  in  the  Kilsby  tunnel,  on  my  way  to  Enniskillen,  on  my  very 
roundabout  journey  to  Peterborough. 

"  Percival  accepts  Nassington,  and  so  ends  my  series  of  moves  for 
this  time. 

"  I  was  grieved  to  hear  of  W.  Ebor's  death.  He  had  always 
shown  me  friendship  and  really  good-natured  kindness.  He  was  an 
able,  and  was  near  being  a  great  man.  His  place  will  be  difficult 
to  fill. 

"  I  go  to  stay  with  Thorold  in  town  on  January  20,  to  attend 
bishops'  meeting  on  21st,  and  opening  of  Parliament  on  22nd.  I 
shall  have  some  gossip  for  you  then.  "  W.  C.  P." 

To  Bishop  Mitchinson. 

"  Peterborough. 

"  My  dear  Bishop, — As  regard  the  case  of  marriage  licences  for 
divorced  persons,  I  have  personally  no  scruple  in  granting  them  to 
the  certainly  innocent  party.  But  as  this  is  a  question  on  which 
many  feel  differently,  and  for  whom  it  is  a  matter  of  conscience,  and 
as  also  the  certainty  of  innocence  is  not  easily  attainable,  I  have 
long  ago  decided  on  making  '  no  rule ' ;  and  on  leaving  it  to  each 
individual  surrogate  to  act  according  to  his  lights  in  each  case  as  it 
occurs.  No  wrong  is  thus  done  to  the  divorced  party,  inasmuch  as 
banns  and  registrar  are  open  to  them,  and,  on  the  other  hand,  the 
consciences  of  surrogates,  and  my  own,  are  left  untouched. 

"  Doubtless  one  uniform  rule,  in  this  as  on  other  matters,  is 


1889-91    AGNOSTICISM ;  GAMBLING  ;  SOCIALISM  293 


abstractedly  desirable.  But  rule  of  all  kinds  in  our  Church  seems 
out  of  date  ;  and  the  catastrophe  which  will  substitute  the  will  of 
the  laity  for  the  rule  of  bishops  is  so  near  at  hand,  that  a  little  more 
or  a  little  less  of  anarchy  meanwhile  is  not  of  much  consequence.  We 
are  now  well  over  the  edge  of  our  Niagara ;  and  I  do  not  gi'eatly 
care  to  strain  my  muscles  in  baling  or  trimming  the  boat  on  its 
•way  down.— Yours  ever  most  truly,        "  W.  C.  Fkterbouough. 

"I  have  lately  been  examining  Rotifers  under  my  microscope. 
They  are  creatures  of  intense  activity,  darting  about  all  over  the 
field  of  the  microscope,  and  whenever  they  do  come  to  a  stand 
occupying  themselves  in  whirling  about  small  ciliae,  wheel-like  in 
form,  with  great  rapidity,  unde  derivatur  Rotifer. 

"  I  think  of  christening  one  of  them  as  Rotifer  Mitchinsonianus. 
Do  you  approve  ;  "  W.  C.  P." 

Letter  from  the  Bishop  of  Peterborough  to  the  Editor  of  the  Times. 

January,  1891. 

Sir, — Cardinal  Manning,  who  "  has  not  had  patience  to  read  Pro- 
fessor Huxley's  letters,"  asks,  "What  would  our  Lord  and  His 
.\postles  do  if  they  were  in  London  now  ?  "  The  question  is  not  an 
easy  one  to  answer ;  but  I  venture  to  remind  the  Cardinal  of  what  our 
Lord  actually  did  in  Judea.  On  the  only  two  occasions — and  it  is 
noticeable  that  there  were  only  two — on  which  our  Lord  used  His 
miraculous  powers  for  the  relief  of  hunger.  He  commanded  His 
disciples  to  "gather  up  the  fragments"  left  from  the  feast  He  had 
provided,  "that  nothing  be  lost."  Surely,  if  there  be  any  teaching  for 
us  in  this  direction,  it  is  tliat  of  care,  thrift,  and  prudence  on  the  part 
of  those  who  find  themselves  the  almoners  of  even  the  most  profuse 
supply  of  help  for  the  destitute.  Our  Lord  was  warning  His  disciples 
then,  and  His  words  still  warn  us,  that  He  will  work  no  miracle  to 
supersede  the  duty  of  consideration  and  forethought  in  dispensing 
charity,  and  that  if  we  neglect  this  duty  we  must  suffer  accordingly 
the  "loss"  of  what  is — ^just  because  it  will  not  be  miraculously 
supplemented — a  limited  trust  fund.  Now,  the  question  raised  by 
Professor  Huxley  and  by  other  critics  of  General  Booth's  scheme  is 
not  whether  we  should  endeavour  to  relieve  distress — that  no  one 
questions — but  whether  the  particular  mode  of  relieving  it  which  the 
General  proposes  is  a  wise  and  a  prudent  one  ;  and  further,  whether, 
■even  supposing  that  it  would  prove  so  under  his  sole  and  exclusive 
management,  it  is  likely  to  prove  so  under  the  management  of  his 
unknown   and    equally  irresponsible   successors.     Surely  this    is  a 


294 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAl'.  XIX 


question  which  our  Loi'd's  followers  now  are  not  only  justified  in 
asking,  but  bound  to  ask,  and  very  carefully  to  consider,  before  they 
risk  in  the  promotion  of  so  vast  and  so  crude  a  scheme  funds  which 
might  possibly  be  put  to  better  use,  and  which,  if  misused,  will  be  lost 
to  the  cause  of  charity.  For  my  own  part,  I  confess  to  a  belief  that  if 
GUI'  Lord's  remarkable  economy  of  miracles  all  through  His  life 
teaches  one  lesson  more  clearly  than  another,  it  is  this — that  we  cannot 
be  too  anxiously  thoughtful  and  provident  in  all  our  efforts  for  the 
relief  of  human  suffering,  and  especially  for  the  relief  of  poverty ;  and 
that  if  there  be  one  thing  more  contrary  than  another  to  the  whole  of 
His  example  in  this  matter,  it  is  the  weak  indulgence  of  om*  own 
feelings  of  compassion  by  rash,  impulsive,  and  ill-regulated  benevolence. 
Cardinal  Manning,  however',  it  would  seem,  is  of  a  different  opinion. 
Possibly,  had  he  been  one  of  our  Lord's  disciples  on  the  occasions  I 
have  referred  to,  he  would  "not  have  had  patience"  to  gather  up  the 
fragments.  P.  C.  W. 


CHAPTER  XX 


APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK:  CLERGY  DISCIPLINE  BILL; 

DEATH 

The  year  1890  was  ])iactically  the  end  of  Bishop  Magee's  episco- 
pate in  Peterborough ;  change  began  with  the  new  year.  I  had 
intended  to  close  the  history  of  this  period  with  a  summary  of  the 
changes  which  had  taken  place  and  the  progress  that  had  been 
made  in  the  diocese  in  that  time.  But  such  a  summary  is  scarcelv 
consistent  with  the  plan  of  this  work  and  would  break  the  sequence 
and  interest  of  the  letters.  Canon  Stocks  has  given  a  full  and 
accurate  review  of  the  history  of  the  diocese  in  the  Diocesan 
Magazine  (August  to  December  18f)l),  and  the  reader  who  would 
know  more  of  the  diocesan  history  than  is  to  be  found  in  the 
Bishop's  letters  must  consult  Canon  Stocks'  account. 

We  turn  to  the  year  1891  to  begin  a  new  though  too  brief 
chapter  of  the  Bishop's  life  and  work. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxei.l. 

"  Peterborodgii,  January  6,  iSgi. 
"You  will  not  receive  this  letter,  I  lear,  before  you  will  have 
seen  in  the  papers  the  news  of  my  appointment  to  the  Archbishopric 
of  York. 

"  Greatly  as  I  could  have  wished  to  have  told  you  of  it  the 
instant  I  received  it,  I  was  unable  to  do  so.  But  I  write  to  vou, 
though  I  cannot  post  my  letter,  within  three  hours  after  the  receipt 
of  it,  that  you  may  know — if  you  could  for  a  moment  doubt  it — 
how  at  once  my  heart  turned  to  my  oldest  and  truest  friend,  at 
this  new  and  strangely  unexpected  crisis  in  my  life.  I  received 
this  morning  a  letter  from  Salisbury's  secretary,  Schomberg 
INTcDonnell,  telling  me  that  Lord  Salisbuiy  had  submitted  my 
name  to  the  Queen,  '  who  received  it  very  graciously ' ;  but  adding 


296 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XX 


tli.vt  there  was  some  (k)ubt  as  to  whether  I  would  accept;  and  that 
as  it  was  'very  undesirable''  that  there  should  be  a  refusal,  Lord  S. 
Avished  to  be  assured  on  this  point  before  making  the  offer.  He 
also  wished  for  the  '  earliest  possible '  answer,  and  McDonnell 
begged  for  a  telegraphic  '  yes  ^  or  '  no,"  addressed  to  Hatfield, 
M  here  he  went  last  night. 

"  You  may  imagine  how  da::ed  I  felt  by  such  an  offer,  accom- 
panied by  a  rec]uest  for  a  '  yes  or  '  no '  by  telegram. 

"  I  quite  understood  Lord  S.'s  desire  to  be  freed  from  importu- 
nities by  my  answer ;  but  it  was  a  tremendous  decision  to  make  at 
a  few  hours'  notice. 

"  I  could  not  consult  you,  or  any  one  save  my  wife ;  in  whose 
judgment  you  know  I  justly  repose  the  greatest  confidence.  After 
such  thought,  and  prayer,  and  consultations  as  I  could  give,  I 
telegraphed  '  yes.' 

"  I  hope  you  will  think  I  have  done  right.  Many  things 
■weighed  with  me.  Setting  aside,  as  far  as  I  could,  all  thoughts  of 
increased  dignity  and  income,  I  thought : 

"  (1)  That  the  diocese  of  York — as  distinguished  from  the  Province 
— is  not  more,  but  less,  laborious  than  that  of  Peterborough. 

"  (2)  That  the  duties  of  the  Province — as  regards  government 
and  the  haute  politique  of  the  Church — ai'e  perhaps  those  I  ain 
better  suited  for  than  some  others  appertaining  to  the  office  of  a 
bishop. 

"  (3)  That  to  these  I  could  bring  some  considerable  experience, 
baving  taken  some  share  in  them  from  the  first. 

"(4)  That  if  I  was  judged  the  fittest  man  for  these,  I  had  no 
right  to  decline  an  office  which,  by  God's  help  and  grace,  I  might  be 
able  to  discharge  for  the  good  of  the  Church. 

"  (o)  That  there  are  some  Church  reforms  (as  you  know)  very 
dear  to  me,  which  I  might  be  better  able  to  promote  as  Archbishop 
of  York  than  as  Bisho))  of  Peterborough. 

•'  (())  The  belief  that  the  climate  of  York  would  better  suit  me 
and  mine  than  that  of  the  Midlands. 

"  (7)  That  I  should  get  rid  of  some  of  my  mistakes  here. 

"  All  these  considerations  came  rapidly  through  my  mind,  in  the 
few  hours  given  me  in  which  to  decide. 

"  And  now  that  I  have  decided,  if  a  clear  conscience,  and  a  great 
sense  of  relief,  and  a  fresh  spring  of  energy  and  hopeful  pui-pose, 
are  signs  of  a  right  decision  ;  I  have  them  all.  I  feel  a  strangely 
new  man  for  niy  new  place.    I  trust,  too,  that  I  shall  in  some 


1891         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH 


297 


respects  be  a  new  and  other  man.  I  am  conscious  of  my  defects  for 
my  high  office — lack  of  dignity,  impulsive  speech,  too  great  fondness 
for  sharp  and  sarcastic  utterances,  impatience  of  duhiess  and  folly, 
and  many  another  weakness  and  fault  of  which  others  could  tell 
me.    But  I  am,  at  least,  on  my  guard  as  regaids  all  these. 

"  The  lessons  of  twenty-two  years  are  not,  I  trust,  thrown  away 
upon  me,  and  if  earnest  and  humble  prayer  to  Him  who  in  His 
])rovidence  has  brought  me  through  so  chequered  a  life  to  this 
high  place,  can  keep  me  straight,  I  shall  not,  I  trust,  go  far  amiss. 

"  I  long,  however,  to  hear  what  you  think  of  all  this.  Come 
and  see  us,  dear  man,  as  soon  as  you  can.  I  shall  be  at  home  all 
next  week.  We  shall  have  much,  very  much,  to  talk  over.  How 
strangely  this  brings  back  my  stay  with  you  at  Dalkey  when  the 
offer  of  Peterboi'ough  came  to  me,  and  you  comforted  me  and 
encouraged  me ! 

"  I  feel  now  much  as  I  did  then ;  less  excited  certainly,  more 
hopeful  perhaps.    But  what  do  you  feel  ? 

"  I  know  that,  personally,  this  will  not  be  pleasant  news  for  you. 
Your  other  home  here  will  no  longer  have  its  open  door  for  you. 
Nor  can  we  have  the  daily  intercourse  we  used  to  have,  when  your 
residence  came  round.  But  you  will  always  have  the  open  door 
and  the  loving  welcome  at  Bishop  thorpe  that  you  have  had  wherc- 
ever  my  lot  has  been  cast.  And  York  air  will,  I  trust,  often  do  you 
as  much  good  as  I  hope  it  will  do  for  me. 

"  But  above  all  things  I  know  I  have  your  prayers — never  more 
needed  than  now — that  I  may  behave  myself  wisely  and  well  in  my 
most  trying  and  responsible  office. 

"  My  heart,  even  now  in  the  first  flush  of  pleasui-e  at  recognition  and 
hope  of  usefulness,  begins  to  sink  at  the  thought  of  responsibility. 

"  Pray  for  me,  my  dear  friend,  and  believe  me  now  and  ever 
yours  most  affectionately,  "       C.  Peterborough.'" 

"Sunday,  January  11. 

"  Salisbury's  letter,  offering  the  Archbishopric  with  the  Queerfs 
permission,  came  this  morning.    The  fact  is  now  public  news. 

"  W.  C.  P." 

To  Bishop  Mitchinson. 

"Peterborough,  January  11,  1891. 
"  My  dear  Bishop, — I  owe  it  to  you,  more  almost  than  to  any 
one  else,  to  give  you  the  earliest  intimation  of  my  appointment  to 
the  Archbishopric  of  York. 


298 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XX 


"  The  offei'  of  it  came  upon  me  with  an  ahnost  stunning  sm-pvise. 

"  I  had  not  even  once  thought  of  the  possibility  of  its  being 
made  to  me.  I  trust  that  I  have  done  right  in  accepting  it. 
Pliysically  I  feel  quite  equal  to  the  labours  of  a  diocese,  which,  if 
larger,  is,  nevertheless,  much  more  com2)act  and  workable  than 
Peterborough. 

"  As  regards  other  qualifications,  I  felt  that  these  were  for  others, 
not  myself,  to  judge  of.  And  I  accepted  their  judgment  as  an 
intimation  that  I  may  have  some  fitness  for  the  great  office. 

"  I  need  not  ask  your  prayers.  I  know  that  I  shall  have  these,  as 
I  have  had  from  you  every  other  help  in  times  past.  It  grieves  me 
to  think  that  I  shall  find  no  Bishop  Mitchinson  at  York.  There 
is  a  sufft'agan  there,  but  he  cannot  be  to  me  all  that  you  have  been 
for  years  past.  I  fear  that  you  have  spoiled  me  for  any  other 
suffragan  or  assistant  bishop. 

"  I  am,  as  you  may  well  suppose,  overwhelmed  with  letters  of 
all  kinds  to  and  from  all  manner  of  persons.  You  will  not  there- 
fore expect  a  long  letter,  much  as  I  should  like  to  say  many  things 
to  you.  I  have  only  time  now  to  add  how  truly  and  gratefully  I 
am  yours,  "  W.  C.  Petekbohocgh.'" 

To  Dr.  Salmon. 

"  Peterborough,  January  13,  1891. 

"  My  dear  Provost, — I  knew  that  I  should  have  your  kind 
wishes  and  kind  words  on  my  preferment  to  the  See  of  York.  The 
fact  that  an  ex-scholar  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  has  attained  to 
such  a  position,  has,  besides  personal  regards,  a  sort  of  historical 
interest  for  a  Provost  of  that  University. 

"  Apropos  of  this  fact  I  should  like  privately  to  consult  you  as 
to  an  offering  I  should  like  to  make  to  my  Alma  Mater.  I  have 
always  regarded  a  place  amongst  the  busts  of  the  great  men  in 
Trinity  College  Library  as  about  the  highest  honour  that  could 
fall  to  any  Irishman. 

"  Now  I  happen  to  possess  a  bust  of  my  unworthy  self,  executed 
after  I  became  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  by  an  Irish  artist  (Watkins). 
On  his  premature  death,  I  purchased  it,  in  marble,  from  his  widow. 

"  It  is  considered  a  good  likeness.  I  have  occasionally  thought 
longingly  of  its  finding  a  place  in  the  library.  But  as  long  as  I 
Avas  only  a  bishop,  this  seemed  to  me  rather  a  presumptuous 
thought.  Now,  however,  that  I  am  to  be  an  Archbishop,  I  venture 
to  think  i\\a.t  _fursan  et  nostrum  nomen  miscebitur  illis.    I  should 


APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH 


299 


not  like,  nevertheless,  to  offer  this  bust  for  that  [)urj)()se  if  I  thought 
that  for  any  reason  the  Board  would  not  cave  to  have  it.  Could 
you  ascertain  for  me,  informally,  how  this  would  be  If  I  may 
offer  it  with  acceptance,  I  should  be  proud  to  do  i-o.  Might  I  ask 
that  in  that  case  it  might  stand  beside  the  bust  of  my  grandfather 
Believe  me,  yours  most  truh',  "  W.  C.  I'jiTiinBOROUGii." 

From  Dr.  Saljion. 

Provost's  House,  Trinity  College, 

Dublin,  January  14,  1891. 

My  dear  Bishop  or  Archbishop, — You  have  given  a  very  delightful 
answer  to  my  letter.  1  had  scarcely  expected  any,  for  I  thought  it 
likely  that  at  this  time  you  would  be  rather  overwhelmed  with  con- 
gratulatory letters,  and  therefoie  that  the  shorter  I  made  mine  the 
bettei". 

I  will,  of  course,  read  your  letter  to  the  Board  on  Saturday,  but  I 
need  not  wait  to  consult  them  either  formally  or  informally  before 
replying.  My  only  quarrel  with  you  is  that  you  seem  to  think  it 
requires  this  promotion  to  make  us  proud  of  you,  and  pleased  to  know 
that  you  retain  your  kindly  feelings  towards  us.  We  did  not  require 
external  testimony  to  form  our  estimate  of  you  ;  but  it  is  certaialv 
gratifying  that  that  estimate  has  been  so  well  confirmed.  Now,  tlic 
satisfaction  generally  felt  here  that  your  being  an  Irishman  and  a 
graduate  of  ours  has  been  no  bar  to  your  promotion  sufficiently 
indicates  that  such  a  man  is  not  hkely  to  have  been  honoured  in 
England  beyond  his  merits. 

Certainly  the  two  busts  beside  each  other  will  silently  tell  to  every 
visitor  to  our  library  a  very  interesting  chapter  in  the  history  of  our 
college. 

Another  point  I  had  intended  writing  about  to  you  later,  but  thought 
it  more  prudent  to  say  nothing  about  it  when  I  Avrote  last.  Even  now 
I  am  not  desirous  that  you  should  be  in  a  hurry  to  take  notice  of  what 
I  say.  But  the  fact  is  that  when  I  was  arranging  our  list  of  college 
preachers  for  '91,  I  left  two  Sundays  vacant  in  the  month  of  June,  in 
the  hope  that  "something  might  turn  up." — I  remain,  very  sincerely 
yours,  Geo.  Salmon. 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxell. 

January  ig,  1891. 

"  I  could  not,  even  if  I  desired  it,  delay  my  election.  I  cannot 
continue  to  work  two  large  dioceses  at  the  same  time ;  and  work  is 
already  beginning  to  roll  in  from  York. 

*  '■  It  docs  so."^G.  S. 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XX 


"The  Board  of  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  will  take  my  bust  and 
place  it  beside  my  grandfather's. 

Honestly,  this  pleases  me  almost  as  much  as  the  Archbishopric. 

"  W.  C.  P." 

Tu  the  Bishop  of  Norwich. 

"The  Palace,  Peterborough, 

"January  14,  1891. 

"My  dear  Bishop, — No  kinder  nor  wiser  words  of  congratulation 
have  reached  me  than  yours ;  none,  too,  more  welcome.  I  have 
been  most  unexpectedly  called  on  to  decide,  in  a  very  brief  moment 
of  time,  on  the  momentous  choice  of  accepting  or  refusing  the 
great  office  which  I  have  accepted.  I  should  not  be  in  any  measm-e 
tit  for  it  were  I  to  think  of  it  without  misoivins;.  Such  letters  as 
yours  help  me  and  encourage  me  to  think  that  I  have  chosen 
rightly.  I  know  that  I  have,  and  shall  continue  to  have,  your 
prayers  that  the  Great  Master,  whose  call  I  seemed  to  myself  to 
hear,  will  grant  me  a  double  portion  of  His  sufficing  grace  for  the 
double  share  of  work  He  has  given  me  to  do. 

"  I  do  believe  that  physically  I  shall  be  equal  to  the  duties  of  the 
See  of  York ;  for,  though  it  is  territorially  larger,  it  is  much  more 
compact  and  workable  than  this  of  Peterborough.  The  climate, 
too,  I  am  persuaded,  \\\\\  suit  us  all  much  better  than  that  of  the 
Midlands. 

"  I  am  receiving  pleasant  and  fraternal  letters  from  the  bishops 
of  the  province,  my  duty  of  presiding  over  whom  causes  me  my 
greatest  misgivings. 

"  Thank  you  so  much  for  recalling  to  me  that  terrible  time  at 
Stoke.*  The  memories  of  that  time  are  enough  to  sober  and  steady 
e\  en  a  more  sanguine  and  daring  man  than  myself.  '  Give  an 
account  of  thy  stewardship,  for  thou  mayest  be  no  longer  steward ' 
were  the  words  that  were  all  but  spoken  to  me  then.  God  give  me 
grace  to  say  them  to  myself  many  times  more ! — Ever,  my  dear 
Bishop,  yours  sincerely,  "  W.  C.  Peteeborough.''' 

Northampton,  January  14,  1891. 
Dear  Lord  Bishop, — We  who  are  Nonconformist  ministers  in 
Northampton  and  various  parts  of  the  comity  happen  to  be  assembled 
to-day  in  a  pi'ivate  meeting ;  and  having  heard  with  great  satisfaction, 
as  has  all  England,  of  your  promotion  to  the  Archbishopric  of  York, 
desire  to  give  you  our  heartiest  congratulations  on  the  deserved  honour 
*  His  illness  in  1883. 


1891         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH 


301 


thus  conferred  on  you.  We  would  also  acknowledge  the  invariable 
courtesy  with  which  you  have  treated  Nonconformists  during  your  long 
administration  of  the  diocese  of  Peterborough.  As  we  know  you  will 
esteem  the  responsibilities  of  office  as  greater  than  the  honour,  we  wish 
for  you  long-continued  health  and  strength,  and  unite  in  praying  that 
God's  richest  blessing  may  rest  on  the  new  ministry  to  which  you  are 
called. — We  are,  dear  Lord  Bishop,  yours  faithfully,  etc. 

To  this  address  the  Archbishop  sent  the  following  answer: 

"Palace,  Peterborough, 

"  Jamiavy  19,  1891. 

"  My  dear  Mr.  Gasquoine, — I  need  hardly  assure  you  of  the 
gratification  with  which  I  have  received  the  kindly  niessa<>:e  of 
congratulation  which  you  have  forwarded  to  me  on  behalf  of  your- 
self and  those  whose  signatures  are  attached  to  it.  I  prize  very 
highly  this  token  of  approbation  and  regard  from  those  who, 
differing  from  me  strongly  and  conscientiously  on  many  points,  vet 
feel,  as  I  do,  that  such  differences  should  never  hinder  the  feeling  or 
the  expression  of  Christian  brotherhood  between  Christian  men.  I 
am  thankful  to  know  that  Nonconformist  ministers  in  this  diocese 
give  me  credit  for  having  desired  to  manifest  this  feeling  towards 
them.  I  can  truly  say  that,  on  more  than  one  occasion,  they  have 
manifested  it  to  me.  You  do  me  justice  in  believing  that  I  regard 
the  '  responsibilities  more  than  I  do  the  honour'  of  my  new  office." 
These  responsibilities  are,  indeed,  weighty  and  anxious;  but  it 
encourages  me,  in  entering  upon  them,  to  know  that  I  bear  with 
me  what  I  may  venture  to  call  a  commendatory  letter  from  Non- 
conformists in  Northampton  to  Nonconformists  in  York.  I  hope 
and  trust  that  they  may  receive  me  in  the  spirit  in  which  you  part 
from  me.  Above  all,  I  trust  that  I  may  have  their  prayers,  as  I  am 
sure  I  have  those  of  yourself  and  your  brethren,  that  there  may  be 
given  me  the  grace  and  strength  needed  for  the  discharge  of  all 
those  great  duties  which,  in  God's  providence,  I  am  now  called  to 
undertake. — Believe  me,  yours  faithfully  and  gratefully, 

"  W.  C.  Peteuuokough.'" 

To  Rev.  W.  Mllloy. 

"Peterborough,  January  15,  1891. 
"  My  dear,  old  Friend, — I  knew  that  I  should  have  your  kind 
words  and  wishes  at  this  great  but  anxious  crisis  of  my  life.  Do 
you  remember  what  old  Halpin  used  to  say  in  the  reading-desk  at 


302  ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE  chap,  xx 

St.  Thomas''s,  when  my  uncle  used  to  suddenly  change  the  order  of 
service  ?  '  That  is  a  very  sharp  turn  ! '  This  is  a  very  sharp  one, 
and  most  unexpected  by  me. 

"  Pray  for  me,  that  I  may  not  stumble  or  lose  my  way  as  I  take 
it. — Yours  ever  affectionately,  "  W.  C.  PKrEBBOROUGii." 

To  Rev.  Caxon  Watson. 

"Peterborough,  Jammy  15,  1891. 

"  Amongst  the  numerous  letters  of  congratulation  I  have  received 
on  my  appointment  to  York,  few  have  been  as  welcome  as  yom-s. 

"  I  can  never  forget  the  loyal  help  and  counsel  you  have  given 
me  in  all  the  past  yeai's  of  my  episcopate. 

"My  only  regret  when  I  think  of  them  is  that,  owing  to  circum- 
stances, especially  to  recent  ones,  I  have  not  been  free  to  recognise 
them  more  publicly  and  substantially  than  I  have  done.  I  quite 
longed  for  some  speedy  op^iortunity  of  doing  so,  and  now  it  has 
passed  away. 

"  I  only  hope  that  you  will  continue  to  my  successor  and  to  the 
diocese  the  invaluable  services  you  have  hitherto  rendered  to  me 
and  it. 

"  The  future  that  lies  before  me  is  a  laborious  and  anxious  one. 
I  am  sm-e  that  I  shall  have  your  prayers  that  I  may  be  enabled  to 
'  do  my  duty  in  that  state  of  life '  to  which  God  is  calling  me. — 
Believe  me  gratefully  and  sincerely  yours, 

"  W.  C.  Peterborough." 

To  the  Rev.  . 

"  Peterborough,  January  23,  1891. 
"  My  dear  Sir, — I  think  it  better  that  I  should  reply  to  your 
letter  of  the  22nd  inst.  before  I  enter  upon  official  relations  with 
yourself — which  might  to  some  degree  fetter  my  freedom  in 
expressing  myself — on  the  important  subject  on  which  you 
address  me. 

"Let  me,  before  replying  to  your  question,  express  to  you  my 
grateful  sense  of  the  loyal  and  filial  spii'it  in  which  your  letter  is 
written.  It  is  no  small  help  to  one  who  desires  to  be  a  father  in 
God  to  all  his  clergy  to  find  himself  so  recognised  by  one  of  them 
in  a  matter  of  some  difficulty,  and  which  involves  evidently  strong 
.  and  conscientious  feelings  on  the  part  of  the  writer. 

"You  tell  me  that,  before  adopting  the  eucharistic  vestments 


iS9i         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH  303 


which  you  specify,  you  wish  to  obtain  iny  '  written  permission  ^  to 
do  so  ;  and,  further,  that  you  would  refrain  from  using  them  should 
I  forbid  them. 

"  Much  as  I  should  personally  desire  to  accept  a  submission  so 
loyal,  I  feel  that  I  am  not  free  to  give  or  to  withhold  the  permission 
for  which  you  ask. 

"  The  position  in  which  I  might  find  myself  as  your  diocesan, 
were  I  to  do  either  of  these  things,  might,  I  apprehend,  be  this : 

"That  in  a  matter  as  to  which  I  might  possibly,  though  I  hope 
not  probably,  be  called  on  hereafter  to  give  a  judicial  decision,  I 
should  beforehand  have  committed  myself  either  to  a  permission  to 
do  what  is  illegal,  or  a  prohibition  of  what  is  legal. 

"  The  Ornaments  Rubric  being,  in  my  opinion,  of  doubtful  inter- 
pretation, I  have  never  felt  myself  free  to  direct  any  of  my  clergy 
as  to  the  manner  of  its  observance,  unless  in  those  cases  where 
either : 

"  a.  The  clergyman  '  doubts '  his  interpretation  and  asks  me  to 
decide  for  him  ;  or 

"  h.  In  cases  where  he  and  any  of  his  parishioners  '  diversely  take ' 
it,  and  agree  to  refer  their  differences  to  my  decision. 

"  Now,  of  these  two  cases  the  first  is  not  yours,  inasmuch  as  you 
express  yom-self  as  having  'no  doubt'  that  the  vestments  you 
describe  are  prescribed  by  the  Ornaments  Rubric.  The  second 
case  has,  of  course,  not  yet  arisen,  and  I  could  not  properly  antici- 
pate its  occurence. 

"  Were  I  better  acquainted  than  I  can  now  be  with  the  views 
and  feelings  of  your  parishioners  I  might  be  able  to  counsel  you  on 
this  point.  But  as  regards  them  you  must  naturally  at  the  moment 
be  well  informed  while  I  am  ignorant. 

"  I  can  only,  therefore,  in  your  case  follow  the  general  rule 
always  hitherto  observed  by  me,  namely,  to  leave  it  to  the  judg- 
ment and  conscience  of  each  parish  priest  to  decide  for  himself,  in 
the  first  instance  on  his  own  responsibility,  the  nature  of  the  ritual 
in  his  parish  church,  subject  always  to  this  condition,  that  if  I  should 
be  called  upon  by  any  of  his  pai'ishioners  to  decide  upon  any  com- 
plaint of  theirs,  I  must  decide  it  according  to  the  best  of  my  own 
knowledge  and  judgment. 

"  May  I,  therefore,  suggest  to  you  that  the  promise  you  so  kindly 
offer  me  to  accept  my  decision  now  should  be  exchanged  for  a  pro- 
mise to  accept  it  hereafter,  should  the  use  you  adopt  be  complained 
of  to  me  by  any  of  your  parishioners 


304 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP. 


XX 


"  And  may  I  add  that  in  asking  this  of  you  I  am  only  acting  on 
the  resolution  of  the  second  Lambeth  Conference,  unanimously 
adopted  by  one  hundred  bishops,  '  that  no  change  in  the  accus- 
tomed ritual  of  a  parish  should  be  made  contrary  to  the  monition 
of  the  bishop." 

"  Once  more  thanking  you  for  all  that  is  kindly  and  filial  in  your 
letter,  I  am,  reverend  and  dear  Sir,  yours  faithfully, 

"  W.  C.  Peterborough.'" 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxxei.l. 

"  Athenaeum  Cldb, 

"  Friday,  Febntary  20,  iSgi. 
"  4.30  P.M. 

"  I  have  crossed  at  last  the  Rubicon !  and  am  now  cZivested  of 
Peterborough  and  i^ivested  of  York  !  God  grant  the  change  may 
be  for  the  good  of  His  Church  whatever  becomes  of  me  !  The 
ceremony,  a  quaint  and  interesting  one,  lasted  nearly  an  houi*  and 
half,  including  evensong,  of  which  it  made  part. 

"  Foiu-  bishops,  besides  Canterbury,  were  required  to  make  me 
into  an  Ai'chbishop. 

"  I  come  down  this  evening  to  entertain  my  successor. 

"  On  Monday  I  go  to  Windsor  to  be  sworn  in  of  the  Privy 
Coimcil,  and  I  hope,  too,  to  do  homage.  I  cannot  re-enter  the 
House  of  Loi'ds  until  this  is  done. 

"  Did  you  see  in  the  papers  the  death  of  Lord  Beauchamp  ? 
Poor  man  !  how  glad  I  am  that  he  and  I  shook  hands  so  lately  ! — 
In  haste,  ever  yours  affectionately,  "  W.  C.  Ebor." 

"Athenaeum  Club,  February  23,  1S91. 

"  The  last  finishing  touch  to  the  process  of  manufacturing  an 
Archbishop  was  put  to-day  at  Windsor.  I  did  homage,  and  was 
sworn  in  of  the  Privy  Council,  and  am  now  Right  Honourable  and 
all  the  rest  of  it ;  and  what  I  care  for  more,  I  have  rescued  my 
livings  from  the  grasp  of  W.  H.  Smith. 

"The  homage  of  Winchester  and  Worcester  was  to  have  also 
taken  place  to-day ;  but  for  some  reason  or  other  it  has  been  put 
oft"  until  to-morrow. 

"  So  I  have  actually  done  my  homage  before  Perowne  who  re- 
ceived the  offer  of  his  bishopric  fully  two  months  before  me  ! 

"I  fear  I  shall  get  little  or  no  rest  at  Worthing.  The  Arch- 
bishop of  Cantuar  is  bringing  on  his  Clergy  Discipline  Bill  on 


APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH 


305 


Thursday  week ;  and  the  Tithe  Bill  conies  on  in  Committee  on 
Thursday  next.    So  away  go  my  poor  little  holidays. 
"  Truly  it  is  not  all  gold  that  glitters. 

"  To-niorrow  I  go  to  Icvcc,  and  I  dread  the  exposure ;  but  I 
must  get  it  over. 

"  I  hope  to  get  home  Saturday  week,  and  to  preach  my  farewell 
sermon  on  the  afternoon  of  Sunday,  IVIarch  8th. 

I  hate  farewell  sermons.  They  can  hardly  help  being,  or  seeming 
unreal,  in  the  case  of  one  who  is  going  away  of  his  own  free  choice 
and  will ;  and  besides  I  cannot  gush  as  I  shall  be  expected  to  do. 
However  it  nuist  be  done.'" 

"  Marine  Hotel,  Worthing, 

"  February  25,  i8gi. 

"  I  got  vour  letter  this  morning  at  the  Athenaeum  just  as  I  was 
starting  for  this  place.  I  must  not  let  a  day  pass  without  sending 
vou  my  best  and  most  affectionate  wishes  on  your  completion  of 
voui"  seventieth  year  !  How  time  flies  !  To  think  of  you  and  me, 
'striplings''  of  fifty  years  ago  in  Trinity  College,  Dublin,  and  in 
Laracor ;  and  to  think  of  the  long  devious  undreamed  of  routes  by 
which  we  have  reached  our  present  positions  !  AVell !  through 
them  and  along  them  all,  we  have  at  anv  rate  gone  nearly  hand  in 
hand  ;  never  out  of  reach  of  each  other''s  voices,  and  always  some- 
thing pleasant  to  say  to  each  other. 

"  But  somehow  I  hardly  yet  realise  my  last  step.  If  it  were  not 
for  the  incessant '  yom-  Grace,'' '  your  Grace,'  of  waiters  in  clubs  and 
butlers  at  home  and  abroad,  I  should  still  think  myself  Bishop  of 
Peterborough. 

"  Truly  I  am  just  now  the  '  well  graced  actor,''  leaving  the  stage 
of  Peterborough. 

"  I  do  so  wish  you  could  be  at  mv  enthronement.  It  would  be 
such  a  pleasure  to  me  and  I  venture  to  think  a  pleasure  to  you. 

"  Never  mind  the  Confirmations.  Ford  will  take  them  for  you  ; 
leave  those  few  sheep  (not  untended  though)  in  the  wilderness  and 
come  in  the  pride  and  nauglitiness  of  vour  heart  to  the  great  encamp- 
ment at  York.  I  had  a  pleasant  little  dinner  at  Lambeth  yesterday 
and  most  pleasant  talk  with  Cantuar  on  matters  archiepiscopal. 
He  still,  evidently,  leans  on  me  to  do  his  fighting  in  the  House  of 
Lords.  I  will  help  him,  but  he  must  fight  for  his  own  hand  too. 
I  escaped  having  to  be  there  on  Thursday  next  (to-morrow)  by  the 
fact  that  my  writ  of  summons  as  Archbishop  of  York  is  not  yet 
issued  ;  and  until  it  is,  I  cannot  apj)ear  in  the  House.    I  think  I 

VOL.  II.  u 


306 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XX 


will  have  this  stated  in  the  papers,  lest  I  should  be  accused  of 
absenting  myself  from  indifference  to  the  interests  of  the  clergy  on 
the  tithe  question. 

"  On  Thursday  week  I  must  appear  and  make  a  speech  on  Clergy 
Discipline  Bill. 

"  On  Sunday  week,  March  8th,  I  preach  my  farewell  sermon  in 
cathedral. 

"  We  are  enjoying  cloudless  and  sunny  skies  here.  In  London 
this  morning  the  fog  was  unbearable  and  unhealthable.'" 

"  Athex.eum  Club,  March  5,  1891. 

"An  archbishop  is  certainly  made  in  instalments.  To-night  I 
became  Archbishop  of  York  in  the  House  of  Lords,  my  writ  '  as 
such '  having  been  made  out.  The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  and 
the  Bishop  of  London  introduced  me  to  the  Lord  Chancellor,  to 
whom  I  kneeling  tendered  my  writ  of  summons.  Thereupon  I 
returned  to  the  table,  took  the  oath  of  allegiance,  and  signed  the 
Peers'  roll  as  W.  C.  Ebor ;  then  was  marched  by  Canterbury  all 
round  the  House  to  the  front  Bishops'  bench,  put  on  my  cap  there 
and  bowed  three  times,  raising  it  each  time  to  the  Chancellor ; 
who,  not  to  be  outdone  in  politeness,  raised  his  thi-ee-cornered  hat 
to  me  thi-ee  times ;  and  then  the  thing  was  done. 

"Presently,  Canterbury  moved  his  Clergy  Discipline  Bill  in  a 
weighty  discourse,  and  thereupon  I  seconded  it  in  a  less  weighty 
one.  But  the  Lords  must  needs  laugh  at  a  very  simple  observa- 
tion of  mine,  not  intended  in  the  least  for  a  joke  ;  and  now  of 
course  all  the  pious  papers  w^ill  take  me  to  task  for  my  '  levity ' ! 

"  However,  I  did  what  I  wanted  to  do — namely,  sat  upon  the 
Lower  House  of  Convocation  of  my  own  Province,  who  are  prepar- 
ing a  grand  demonstration  against  the  Bill,  which  will  come  qfier 
it  has  got  thi-ough  Committee  ! 

"  Grimthorpe  was  present  and  blessed  the  Bill  altogether,  adding 
that  Archbishop  Thomson  approved  of  it  in  its  final  stage ;  erg-o, 
exit  the  opposition  to  it  in  York,  at  least  for  any  effective  purpose. 

"  Salisbmy  gives  me  a  second  suffragan,  and  I  have  just  written  to 
offer  the  post  to  Archdeacon  Blunt,  who,  I  understand,  will  take  it. 

"  My  two  suffragans  will  cost  me  ^£"700  a  year.  But  they  are 
well  worth  it. 

"  I  could  not  have  held  out  for  a  year  without  them. 

"  Clearly  my  work  must  be  provincial  and  Parliamentary.  The 
diocesan  routine  must  be  done  by  subs. 


APrOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH 


(307 


"  It  was  a  <>iicf  to  me  leaving  Worthing  to-day  in  lo\  ely 
weather. 

■■  But  it  was  dearly  niy  duty  to  be  in  the  House  of  Lords  to- 
night, and  so  '  I  corned  away.' 

"  I  get  home  to-morrow,  preach  on  Sunday,  attend  a  great  fare- 
well '  At  home '  on  Thursday,  go  to  town  on  Wednesday  to  dine 
with  Jeune,  attend  Committee  of  House  of  Lords  on  Thursday  on 
Canterbury''s  Bill,  go  to  Bishop  of  Beverley  on  Saturday,  am  en- 
throned on  Tuesday,  attend  four  affairs  in  Hull  Wednesday,  two 
ditto  on  Thursday,  get  home  on  Friday,  go  to  Scarborough  Mon- 
day, Confirmation  and  meet  Mayor  and  Corporation  Tuesday, 
preach  York  IMinster  Friday,  etc.    Pretty  well  for  an  old  cove  ! 

"  W.  C.  EuoR." 

The  Archbishop's  enthronement  took  place  in  York  Minster  on 
March  17  (St.  Patrick's  Day),  1891. 

He  had  invited  as  preacher  upon  this  occasion  his  greatest  living 
rival  in  the  art  of  preaching.  Dr.  Alexander,  Bishop  of  Derry  (now 
Archbishop  of  Armagh).  As  the  procession  moved  up  the  nave, 
the  choir  singing  the  ancient  hymn  of  St.  Patrick,  his  "  Lorica " 
(breast-plate),  translated  into  English  by  Mrs.  Alexander,  the 
sight  was  most  striking.  Some  600  clergy  in  their  robes  made  two 
lines,  extending  from  the  west  door  to  the  altar  rails,  between 
which  the  procession  passed.  The  chancel  was  crowded  in  every 
part,  and  the  Duke  of  Clarence  occupied  a  seat  in  the  stalls.  The 
Ai'chbishop  was  first  conducted  by  the  Dean  within  the  altar  rails, 
and  seated  in  the  ancient  chair  of  Paulinus,  Archbishop  of  York  in 
627,  and  afterwards  duly  enthroned  with  all  becoming  ceremonial 
in  the  more  modern  throne.  At  the  close  of  the  service  the  Arch- 
bishop went  to  the  cathedral  library,  where  he  received  addresses 
from  the  Dean  and  Chapter,  and  the  Lord  Mayor  and  Corporation 
of  York. 

Next  day  the  Archbishop  went  to  Hull,  and  wrote  to  me  the 
following  account  of  his  visit : 

To  J.  C.  MacDonxell. 

"  Heslewood,  Hull, 

"March  i8,  iSgi. 

"  I  greatly  wish  now  tliat  we  could  have  been  together  all  to-day. 
It  has  been  on  the  whole  one  of  the  most  remarkable  days  in  my 
life.  ^ 


308 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XX 


"  I  had  no  idea  of  the  ahnost  regal  reception  that  awaited  me 
here. 

"  I  arrived  about  1  o'clock  and  found  McCormick  and  my  host 
Mr.  Pease,  a  wealthy  squire  in  the  neighbourhood,  waiting  to  hand 
me  out  of  the  train  with  hats  off' ;  and  a  large  crowd,  filling  up  the 
platform  and  its  external  a]>proaches,  all  uncovering  as  I  passed 
along  to  the  carriage.  AVe  drove  to  the  Town  Hall  in  an  open 
landau,  for  the  admiration  of  the  populace.  At  the  hall,  which 
was  decorated  with  red  cloth  as  if  for  royalty,  and  with  stands  of 
flowers,  we  found  the  Mayor  in  grand  trim  waiting  to  receive  me, 
under  a  grand  gilt  "  Welcome  to  Hull,"'  and  with  the  Lady  Mayoress 
beside  him,  who  took  mv  hand  and  curtseyed. 

"  We  bowed  (Be\  erley  and  I),  and  drove  with  the  Mayor  to  the 
Artillcrv  Barracks,  which  had  been  fitted  up  in  like  manner ;  a  great 
drill-hall  holding  about  1500  souls,  and  crammed.  We  entered,  if 
you  please,  to  the  strain  of '  God  Save  the  Queen,"'  the  audience  all 
rising  and  cheering.  Then  came  a  flaming  speech  from  the  ]Mayor 
and  the  presentation  of  three  grand  addresses  ;  that  from  the  Mayor 
and  Corporation  in  a  really  beautiful  silver  casket  Avith  my  arms  on 
it  in  enamel. 

"  Then  a  '  few  words '  from  me  to  the  audience  ;  then  a  drive 
back  to  Town  Hall,  and  a  luncheon  ;  next  a  reception  at  which  I 
shook  hands  separately  and  individually  with  800  souls  ;  then  a 
drive  of  six  miles  here  to  dinner,  and  six  back  to  the  barracks  for 
the  working  men's  meeting  at  8  o'clock — a  really  great  success. 
Two  addresses  first,  from  Trade  Unions  and  from  Friendly  Societies ; 
then  one  hour's  speaking  by  me  to  the  working  men,*  winding  up 
with  terrific  cheering — three  times  thi'ee,  and  raising  of  hats — and 
then  home  to  supper. 

"  Altogether  a  great  field  day,  and  one  that  I  do  believe  will  help 
nie  greatly  in  the  diocese  generally. 

"  The  audience  were  highly  intelligent  and  keenly  appreciative — 
very  different  from  our  friends  of  the  Midlands.  They  impressed 
me  most  favourably. 

"  I  go  to-morrow  to  Beverley  to  be  addressed  again,  and  return  to 
Hull  to  hold  an  evening  confirmation ;  and  really  I  am  less  tired 
with  it  all  than  I  have  been  by  a  couple  of  confirmations  at  Peter- 
borough. Truly  this  archbishopric  seems  to  have  given  me  a 
new  lease  of  my  life.  "  W.  C.  Ebor. 

*  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,  p.  254. 


1891         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK ;  DEATH 


309 


To  Dr.  Salmon. 

"  Heslewood,  Hull, 

"  March  ig,  1891. 

"My  DEAR  PitoA'osT, — I  have  been  immensely/  gratified  by  the 
honour  that  the  Board  have  done  me  in  sending  nie  their  gifts  of 
orchids  for  the  17th. 

"  The  flowers  arrived  just  in  time,  and  found  high  and  prominent 
place  in  the  Minster. 

"  Pray  convey  to  the  Board  my  grateful  thanks,  not  only  for  this 
honour,  but  for  its  graceful  and  gracious  appropriateness. 

"  The  ceremony  was  a  really  grand  one,  and  so  was  the  sermon  by 
the  Bishop  of  Derry.    Believe  me,  yours  most  truly, 

«  W.  C.  Eboe;^ 

To  J.  C.  MacDoxnell. 

"  BisHOPTHORPE,  York, 

"  April  9,  1891. 

"  I  have  had  an  interesting  experience  since  I  last  wrote  to  you, 
namely,  presidency  for  two  days  in  Convocation.  The  proceedings 
were  very  stately  and  quaint,  and  very  lordly  so  far  as  I  was  con- 
cerned. I  doubt  if  I  fully  realised  my  position  as  Primate  and 
INIetropolitan  until  I  found  myself  presiding  over  eight  bishops  and 
a  host  of  inferior  clergy,  with  mace  before  me,  and  apparitors 
and  registrar  and  secretary  behind,  and  'Graced'  at  every  other 
word. 

"The  first  day's  proceedings  were  of  no  special  importance, 
mainly  consisting  in  speeches  in  support  of  a  vote  of  regret  and 
condolence  on  the  death  of  Archbishop  Thomson.  Westcott,  as 
premier  bishop,  moved  it,  and  the  prolocutor  of  Lower  House 
seconded  it  in  fidl  Synod,  and  I  afterwards  said  a  few  words  for 
myself.  A  motion  of  mine  for  closer  relations  Ijetween  Canterbury 
and  York  passed  iicminc  contradicente,  and  so  far  all  seemed  smooth 
sailing. 

"In  private  session  in  the  afternoon,  however,  the  subject  of  the 
Clergy  Discipline  Bill  (which  I  had  hoped  to  avoid)  was  brought  up 
by  Bishop  of  Chester,  who  urged,  reasonably  enough,  that  the 
Lower  House  was  about  to  deal  with  it,  and  it  would  be  awkward 
for  the  bishops  to  pass  it  by  in  silence.  On  the  other  hand  half  of 
the  bishops  were  going  off  yesterday  afternoon,  and  amongst  them 
the  strongest  supporter  of  the  Bill,  Cax-lisle  ;  so  had  we  debated  it. 


310 


ARCHBISHOP  MAG  EE 


CHAP.  XX 


it  would  have  been  in  a  House  of  foui'  or  five  bishops  only,  of  whom 
two  at  least  were  rather  hostile  to  the  Bill,  and  one  of  them 
Westcott.  This  was  awkward,  especially  as  the  prolocutor  and 
most  of  the  Lower  House  were  up  in  arms  against  the  Bill. 

"  After  about  an  hour's  conference,  during  which  I  nearly  con- 
verted Westcott  and  Chester,  they  all  entreated  me  to  sunnnon  the 
Lower  House  next  morning  and  give  them  the  same  explanations 
that  I  had  given  the  bishops.  I  did  not  much  like  this  either. 
First,  because  I  had  a  very  bad  cold,  and  was  afraid  to  make  it 
seriously  worse ;  and  second,  because  I  was  sure  to  be  out-A  oted  in 
Lower  House,  and  this  would  be  a  bad  beginning  for  my  presidency. 
However,  they  were  all  so  urgent  that  I  gave  in,  summoned  the 
Lower  House  for  vesterdav  morning,  and  went  home  to  dose  my 
cold  and  tremble  for  the  next  day. 

"  I  managed  to  get  down  a  csterday,  and  spoke  in  explanation 
and  defence  of  the  Bill  in  full  Synod  for  fifty  minutes.*  At  the 
close  the  Bishop  of  Chester  rose  and  publicly  assured  me  that  I  had 
fully  satisfied  him  and  answered  all  his  objections,  Westcott  implied 
the  same  thing  privately,  and  all  the  bishops  thanked  me  warmly. 
So  far  so  good.  I  feel  I  have  greatly  strengthened  my  position 
with  the  bishops  for  the  future. 

"  Some  of  the  Lower  House  I  converted.  But  there  will  be  a 
hostile  vote  there,  nevertheless,  and  furious  attacks  in  Guardian  and 
Church  Times. 

However,  on  the  whole  I  feel  that  I  am  decidedly  a  stronger 
man  in  the  Convocation  and  province  than  I  was  when  I  took  the 
chair  ;  and  this,  after  all,  is  the  great  matter.  Now  I  have  to  try 
and  get  rid  of  my  nasty  spasmodic  cough,  though  happily  un- 
accompanied by  any  febrile  symptoms. 

"  Nothing  will  cure  this  but  fine  weather,  and  there  seems  as  yet 
no  prospect  of  that. 

"  We  are  still  slowlv  settling  in  to  this  vast  caravansaiy.  But  it 
will  take  at  least  another  month  before  we  can  inhabit  the  principal 
rooms.  Meanwhile  w  e  are  picnicking  in  a  small  corner  of  the 
house  under  difficulties  and  discomforts  of  all  kinds. 

"  On  the  whole,  so  far,  I  do  really  think  I  am  making  way,  and 
have  as  yet  made  no  mistakes.  But  it  is  very  slippery  walking  on 
the  steep  house-top  of  the  Church,  and  I  must  hold  on  very 
cautiously  and  not  lose  my  head.  Alas !  I  must  be  always  grave 
and  dignified. 

*  "  Speeches  and  Addresses,"  p.  227. 


1891         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH  311 


"  Like  Adrian  I  may  say  to  my  soul,  Animula  vagula,  hlanchila, 
quo  vndes  ....  Ncc  id  wles  dahisjocos. 

"  Truly  dignity  and  dulness  goes  together,  Samivol ;  as  you  gets 
grander  you  gets  duller." 

"  BisHOPTHORPE,  York, 

"  April  20,  1891. 

"  Dear  MacDonnell, — I  am  glad  to  hear  your  account  of  the 
report  of  my  speech  in  the  Guardian  and  of  the  treatment  I  receive 
from  the  editor. 

"  I  fully  expected  a  burked  report,  and  a  very  hostile  article. 

"  But  one  advantage  of  being  an  archbishop  is  that  your  speeches 
are  not  burked,  as  the  Guardian  used  to  burke  mine  when  I  was  a 
bishop.  The  prolocutor  of  our  Lower  House,  who  is  an  able  man 
and  who  has  great  influence  there,  hates  the  Bill,  because  it  prac- 
tically gets  rid  of  clerical  chancellors. 

"  If  it  had  not  been  for  my  address  he  would  have  carried 
nearly  the  whole  Lower  House  with  him  in  sweeping  condemnation 
of  the  Bill.  The  facts  in  my  speech,  and  the  public  avowal  of 
conversion  to  the  Bill  by  his  own  bisliop  (of  Chester),  were,  how- 
ever, too  much  for  him. 

"He  really  wanted  to  get  back  to  the  old  canon  law  and  the 
salutcm  animceP  But  whatever  becomes  of  the  Bill,  that 
pedantic  and  mischievous  absurdity  is  fairly  knocked  on  the  head. 

"  I  expect  that  some  compromise  will  ultimately  be  hit  upon  to 
save  the  Bill.  The  responsibility  of  defeating  it  will  be  too  heavy 
for  any  save  the  extreme  fanatics  to  face. 

"  I  have  offered  Bishopthorpe  to  Egerton  of  Brackley,  who,  I 
believe,  will  accept  it.  He  is  a  model  domestic  chaplain,  though 
not  an  examining  one.  The  former,  however,  is  Avhat  I  really  want 
in  the  occujDant  of  a  vicarage  not  a  hundred  yards  from  my  hall 
door. 

"  I  think  it  verv  likely  that  influenza  has  been  the  root  of  your 
wife's  troubles.  It  is  raging  all  over  this  county  and  E.,  poor 
dear,  is  down  with  it  now.  She  has  had  a  sharp  attack,  but  with 
no  grave  complications,  and  is  to-day,  I  am  thankful  to  say,  on  the 
mend;  temperature  going  down  and  bronchitis,  of  which  she  had 
a  touch,  subsiding  also.  I  have  escaped  so  far,  and  feel  very  well 
considering  the  strangely  sunless  and  chilly  weather  which  is  very 
depressing.  I  go  to  London  on  Wednesday  for  two  days'  work  in 
mv  Insurance  Committee,  which  is  a  veritable  '  millstone '  round 
niy  neck,  now  that  I  have  been  "  cast  into  tliis  fiee.'' 


312 


ARCHBISHOP  MA  GEE 


CHAP.  XX 


"  I  am,  I  think,  gaining  ground  in  the  diocese,  though  of  course 
there  are  growls  ah'eady. — Youis  ever  affectionately, 

"W.  C.  Ebor;' 

The  influenza  was  indeed  a  veritable  pestilence  in  York  and  its 
neighbourhood.  The  Archbishop  and  his  family  were  very  anxious 
to  push  on  the  repairs  and  alterations  at  Bishopthorpe,  as  they 
expected  in  a  month's  time  to  receive  there  twenty-three  candidates 
for  orders  and  four  examining  chaplains.  But  little  progress  could 
be  made,  as  most  of  the  workmen  employed  were  disabled  with 
influenza.  Things  were  in  this  state  at  Bishopthorpe  when,  on 
April  22,  the  Archbishop  started  for  London  to  attend  a  Com- 
mittee on  the  Children's  Insurance  Bill.  Almost  immediately  upon 
his  aiTival  he  was  prostrated  by  influenza.  His  two  eldest  sons 
and  youngest  daughter  were  with  him,  ]\Irs.  Magee  being  ill  ^\•ith 
influenza  at  Bisho])thorpe.  I  happened  to  be  in  London,  and 
seeing  a  notice  in  the  papers  that  the  Archbishop  of  York  was  ill 
at  Garlant's  Hotel,  I  went  to  see  him.  I  felt  vei'v  much  disquieted 
by  his  look  ;  but  being  informed  that  Sir  A.  Clark  considered  that 
he  was  going  on  well  and  that  there  was  no  danger  I  put  aside  my 
misgivings.  The  next  day,  however,  Mrs.  Magee  was  so  anxious 
that  she  left  her  bed  and  travelled  by  night  to  London.  I  went 
on  that  day,  Friday,  and  again  on  Saturday ;  but  he  was  asleep  or 
unflt  to  see  me  when  I  called.  I  returned  home  to  Leicestershire, 
and  on  Monday  had  the  comforting  assm-ance  from  one  of  the 
family  that  all  was  going  on  well.  On  Tuesday  morning  I  had  a 
telegram  from  the  Archbishop's  son,  to  say  that  the  case  had  ended 
fatally  and  asking  me  to  return  at  once.  The  blow  fell  like  a 
thunderclap  upon  the  family,  who,  however  uneasy  they  might  have 
been,  were  quite  unprepared  for  such  an  event. 

The  Archbishop  had  aiTanged  to  consecrate  Archdeacon  Blunt 
as  his  second  suffragan  bishop  on  May  1,  but  had  to  sign  a  com- 
mission to  the  Bishop  of  Durham  to  take  his  place.  On  the  day 
of  the  consecration,  when  he  knew  that  the  ceremony  was  over,  he 
telegraphed  to  the  new  bishop  as  follows : 

"To  the  Bishop  of  Hull,  Deanery,  York. — Psalm  xx.  v.  2, 
Prayer-book  version. — Affectionately,  "W.  Ebor." 

He  died  at  4  a.m.  on  Tuesday,  May  5,  and  on  the  following 
evening  his  remains  were  removed  to  Peterborough  and  taken  to 
the  Cathedral.     They  were  placed  in  the  chapel  in  the  north 


1891         APPOINTMENT  TO  YORK;  DEATH  313 


transept  and  there  for  three  nights  groups  of  the  Peterborough 
clergy  and  other  friends  kept  watch  and  prayer  round  the  remains 
of  their  former  bishop.  The  funeral  took  place  on  Saturday,  when 
there  was  an  immense  assemblage  to  pay  the  last  tribute  to  departed 
greatness.  York,  Peterborough,  and  Ireland  were  fully  repi'esented. 
The  lesson  Avas  read  by  the  Bishop  of  Be\  erley  and  the  service  at 
the  grave  by  the  Bishop  of  Lincoln  and  Lord  Normanby,  the  choir 
singing  the  Archbishop's  favourite  hymn,  "  Lead,  kindly  Light." 
His  last  resting-place  is  beside  that  of  his  predecessoi',  Bishop  Jeune, 
close  to  the  south  transept  of  the  Cathedral. 

The  Archbishop's  name,  as  Bishop  of  Peterborough,  had  become  a 
household  \\  ord  wherever  the  English  language  is  spoken.  To  some 
he  was  only  known  as  a  great  orator,  or  as  the  author  of  many  witty 
sayings  and  telling  epigrams  ;  in  his  diocese  he  was  known  also  as 
an  energetic  worker  and  a  firm  ruler.  But  till  the  announcement 
of  his  promotion  to  the  primatial  See  of  York,  he  never  received 
his  full  measure  of  appreciation.  ]\Ien  began  then  to  count  up  his 
qualifications  for  the  high  office  for  which  he  had  been  selected, 
and  thus  at  last  they  fully  realised  that  he  was  far  above  all  pos- 
sible competitors ;  and  that  the  Church  possessed  in  him  not  only 
an  able  administrator  and  eloquent  speaker,  but  a  really  great  man ; 
one  in  whom  there  was  something  far  higher  than  those  talents  for 
which  all  had  given  him  credit.  They  saw  at  last  that  he  pos- 
sessed an  originality  of  thought,  a  moral  courage,  and  a  statesman- 
like grasp  of  great  questions,  both  religious  and  social,  which  made 
him  to  his  Church  like  what  the  jirophets  of  old  were  to  Israel. 
He  was  so  much  in  touch  with  his  age  and  with  the  laitv  of  his 
time,  that  many  in  their  strong  perception  of  points  of  contact  and 
sympathy  failed  to  perceive  how  high  he  stood  above  the  common 
level.  And  in  proportion  to  the  quickened  perception  of  his  great 
qualities  were  the  sorrow  and  disappointment  at  his  unexpected 
death. 

As  to  what  he  was  in  the  maturity  of  his  powers,  every  ne\\s- 
paper  in  the  kingdom  and  in  our  colonics  has  borne  testimony. 
Let  us  try  and  bring  into  prominence  what  was  less  known.  It  is 
not  enough  to  say  of  him  as  all  men  do,  that  he  was  a  great 
speaker  both  in  the  pulpit  and  on  the  platform.  He  was  not  only 
this,  but,  on  the  M'hole,  the  greatest  speaker  which  this  genei*ation 
has  produced.  Lord  Salisbury,  speaking  of  Bishop  Magee's  speech 
in  the  House  of  Lords  against  the  disestablishment  of  the  Irish 


314 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XX 


Chui'ch,  said  he  had  heard  it  spoken  of  by  many  members  of  both 
Houses  "  as  the  finest  speech  ever  delivered  by  any  living  man  in 
the  Houses  of  Parliament.'" 

If  the  pulpit  gave  the  Bishop  less  scope  than  the  platform  or  the 
Senate  for  his  versatile  powers  of  wit,  sarcasm,  and  argument,  on 
the  other  hand  it  gave  fuller  scope  to  higher  and  more  spiritual 
powers.  He  threw  aside  for  a  time  the  weapons  of  earthly  warfare, 
and  rose  to  the  higher  level  where  it  seemed  natural  to  him  to  soar. 
On  such  occasions  often  his  delivery  became  rapid — too  rapid  for 
any  reporters  to  follow — and  he  could  not  himself  reproduce  fully 
his  finest  passages.  His  best  sermons  were  the  result  of  intense 
thought  and  carefid  preparation ;  and  he  could  reproduce  generally 
the  arrangement  of  the  reasoning  and  the  most  striking  sayings ; 
but  no  report  could  convey  an  idea  of  the  almost  magical  power 
which  he  exercised  over  his  hearers. 

But  to  those  ^\ho  knew  him  intimately,  the  Bishop  of  Peter- 
borough was  even  more  remarkable  for  his  conversational  than  for 
his  oratorical  powers.  As  his  sermons  were  far  more  than  mere 
oratory,  his  conversation  was  something  superior  to  the  witty  say- 
ings and  smart  criticisms  which  gave  it  zest  and  brilliancy.  Those 
who  ventured  to  close  with  him  in  conversational  argument  soon 
found  that  they  were  in  the  grip  of  a  giant. 

As  a  man  who  could  take  in  all  the  bearings  of  a  great  social  or 
political  question,  and  use  knowledge  of  various  kinds  to  thi'ow 
light  upon  it,  Dr.  Magee  was  unequalled.  He  seldom  meddled 
personally  in  any  purely  political  question  which  had  no  bearing 
on  religion  and  morals.  He  felt  that  he  was  Bishop  of  men  of  all 
parties  and  politics,  and  he  often  lamented  that  the  line  between 
Churchmen  and  Nonconformists  was  so  nearly  coincident  with  the 
line  between  jjolitical  parties.  But  his  own  political  opinions  were 
strongly  marked  and  candidly  expressed. 

Yet  in  his  dealings  with  all  parties  in  his  own  diocese  he  was 
strictly  impartial,  and  he  always  lamented  that  the  religious  dissent, 
represented  by  such  men  as  Robert  Hall  in  Leicester  in  the 
beginning  of  the  century,  had  given  place  so  largely  to  the  feelings 
and  motives  of  secular  politics. 

In  his  private  life  the  Bishop  was  remarkable  for  the  depth  of 
his  family  affections.  He  lost  his  two  eldest  children  when  he  was 
at  Bath ;  and  it  seemed  as  if  his  great  affliction  through  these 
losses  deepened  his  love  for  those  who  were  born  afterwards,  and 
coloured  his  whole  after-life.    His  efforts  to  procure  legislative 


iSgi         APP0INTMJ:NT  to  YORK;  DEATH 


315 


protection  for  the  young,  and  his  anxiety  to  pass  the  Children's 
Insurance  Bill,  were  no  passing  impulses  of  philanthropy,  but  the 
outcome  of  deep  feeling  as  well  as  of  strong  conviction. 

At  his  o\vn  table,  and  at  all  social  gatherings,  he  had  scarcely  a 
rival.  His  conversation  flowed  on  without  effort ;  and  the  brilliant 
wit  and  re}jartee  which  gave  such  zest  to  his  discoiu-se  were  only  the 
sparkling  on  the  siu'face  of  a  deep  current  of  thought  and  wisdom. 

Not  only  in  Great  Britain  and  Ireland,  but  in  our  most  distant 
colonies,  his  name  was  known  and  revered.  The  writer  of  these 
pages  received  soon  after  his  death,  a  newspaper  from  Madras 
with  an  appreciative  article  upon  the  Church's  loss  in  the  great 
Archbishop,  and  almost  at  the  same  time  a  letter  from  Canada 
containing  the  following  sentences  :  "  Lately  twice  in  the  Winnipeg 
law  coui'ts,  on  a  question  of  the  schools  there,  the  Ai'chbishop 
(]\Iagee)  was  quoted  by  the  barristers  on  each  side.  It  was  merely 
some  opinion  of  his  expressed  at  a  Church  Congress,  and  yet  in  the 
very  centre  of  the  prairie  it  is  quoted  as  an  authority  out  here 
which  even  a  law  court  ought  to  recognise." 

In  bowing  to  the  will  of  God,  which  suddenly  deprived  us  of 
so  much  promise,  let  us  not  forget  how  much  more  we  should  have 
lost  if  his  own  forebodings  and  those  of  his  friends  had  been 
realised.  It  was  as  far  back  as  1848  that  it  was  feared  he  might 
never  return  from  Spain  to  resume  active  duty.  Yet  look  at  the 
twenty  years  that  followed  of  mental  labour  and  active  work  in 
Bath,  London,  Enniskillen,  and  Cork  ;  and  then  the  twenty-two 
years  of  his  episcopate  in  Peterborough.  Look  again  at  his  restora- 
tion in  1883  from  the  grave,  from  which,  it  might  be  said,  we 
"  received  him  in  a  figure."  In  his  own  expressive  words,  "  I  had 
both  feet  in  the  grave,  and  God  brought  me  up  out  of  it  again." 
Shall  we,  after  these  mercies,  repine  because  his  career  at  York  was 
only,  as  Dean  Cust  called  it,  the  brief  shining  of  "  a  meteor  "  ? 

No ;  he  had  fulfilled  his  mission  and  done  his  work — the  work 
that  God  appointed,  not  that  which  we  would  have  meted  out  for 
him.  Like  his  older  friend.  Bishop  Wilberforce,  he  was  taken  in 
the  maturity  of  his  powers  and  the  zenith  of  his  fame.  We  have 
not  in  either  case  to  look  back  through  a  period  of  decay  to  I'ecover 
the  image  of  what  he  once  was  :  the  last  impression  was  not  only 
the  most  vivid,  but  the  most  true. 

But  let  me  impress  upon  those  who  only  knew  him  in  his  public 
life  that  neither  his  great  natural  gifts,  nor  his  assiduous  cultivation 
of  those  gifts,  nor  the  long  discipline  of  his  chequered  life,  in  sorrow 


'616 


ARCHBISHOP  MAGEE 


CHAP.  XX 


and  sickness,  as  well  as  in  joy  and  success;  nor  his  varied  experiences 
of  Church  life,  both  in  England  and  Ireland,  from  curacies  in 
Dublin  and  Bath  to  the  Sees  of  Peterborouo-h  antl  York — that  none 
of  these  could  have  made  the  William  Connor,  Archbishop  of 
York,  whose  loss  we  mourn,  any  more  than  the  chemist  could  have 
made  his  marvellous  brain  out  of  the  phosphorus  and  carbon  and 
other  materials  into  which  he  could  have  resolved  it  by  his  art. 
If  it  needed  that  God  should  breathe  upon  such  earthly  materials 
before  "  man  became  a  living  soul,"  so  did  all  the  gifts  of  heart, 
and  intellect,  and  genius  need  a  higher  inspiration  to  make  the 
spiritual  preacher  and  wise  "  Father  in  God.""  Had  the  Archbishop 
chosen  the  bar  as  his  profession,  he  would  assuredly  have  found  his 
way  into  the  House  of  Connnons,  and  risen  to  the  highest  oflices  in 
the  State.  But  he  was  something  greater  and  better  as  a  servant 
of  Him  whose  "  kingdom  is  not  of  this  world."  Let  us  thank  God 
that  he  was  spared  to  us  so  long,  and  not  lament  that  he  was  too 
soon  cut  off ;  and  let  us  pray  that  others  may  be  raised  up  to  do 
the  work  which  he  might  have  accomplished  if  he  had  been  spared 
longer  to  the  Church. 


INDEX 


Abercorn,  Lord,  I.,  139,  140, 141,191,  219, 

242,  205 
AsTiostioism,  II.,  253,  262-266 
Alexander — see  Derry 
Alford,  Dean,  1.,  65,  135,  167-169 
Ai-oles,  Canon,  II.,  82,  97,  117,  193,  197 
Ar';yll,  Duke  of,  I.,  233  ;  II.,  139,  155,  159 
ArmaKli,  Archbishop :  Lord  J.  Beresford, 

L,  86 

M.  G.  Beresford,  I.,  ss,  125,  126,  14.3, 
146,  176,  177,  184-186,  189,  215- 
217,  226,  247,  250,  265  ;  II.,  05 

Athanasiau  Creed,  I.,  274,  276,  277,  281, 
283  ;  XL,  8,  117 

Atlay — see  Hereford 

Atonement,  The,  L,  62,  6.3  ;  II.,  169,  236,  244 
Annnicntation  of  Bent  liccs,  II.,  65 
Ayhvard,  ilr.,  II.,  206 

Bacsiiawe,  Mr.,  II.,  75,  76 
Ball,  Dr.,  I.,  97,  182,  224,  251 
Barclay,  Dr.,  II.,  279 
Barry,  Bishop,  II.,  255 

Bath  and  Wells,  Bishop:  Lord  Auckland,  I., 

44,  66,  69,  71,  94 
Beacon>field — see  Disraeli 
lieaucliamp.  Lord,  IL,  18,  89,  154,  173,  288, 

289,  290,  304 
Bence-.Tones,  5Ir.,  L,  lOr;  ;  II.,  15 
Bennett  Judgment,  I.,  276 
Benson — .see  Truro  and  Canterbury 
Bernard,  Canon,  I.,  154 
Bowen,  .lustice,  II.,  236,  290 
Bradlaugh,  Jir.,  II.,  128,  131,  190,  219 
Bright,  Mr.  John,  I.,  139,  1  76,  244,  245  ;  II., 

83-8(1,  140,  193,  ■IZi 
British  Association,  I.,  104,  187 
Browne,  Harold — see  Ely  and  Winchester 
Bruce,  Mr.,  I.,  212,  215,  2.56 
Brunei,  Mr.,  IL,  16,  66,  144 
Burson,  Dean,  I.,  Ill  ;  II..  200 
Burials  Bill,  IL,  35,  66-68,  77,  83-8,5,  90, 

117,  129,  130-138,  143,  146 
Burke,  .Sir  B.,  I.,  124,  171 
Butcher — see  Meath 
Butt,  Mr.,  I.,  121-123,  124 

Cairx.s,  Lord,  L,  139,  173,  219,  221,  224, 
226-229,  231-233,  235,  275;  IL,  1, 
3,  6,  9,  15,  16,  18,  22,  36,  49,  50, 
139,  175,  193 

Canterbury,  Archbishop :  Benson,  IL,  205, 
219,  221-224,  228,  229,  232,  234, 
240-242,  248,  260,  283,  284,  291, 
304,  .lOj,  306 
Tait,  L,  214-220,  22.1,  220,  228,  231, 
233-236,  239,  256,  259,  263,  265, 
266,  286,  289  ;  II. ,  1-<1,  0-8,  10-12, 
15,  18,  22,  33,  35,  36,  iin,  49-53.  55, 


Tait,  IL,  56,  58,  59,  62,  64-69,  72,  77,  81, 
88,90,93-96,  109, 117,  123,  124,  127, 
130-138,  143-147,  150,  153,  155, 
168-160,   171,    173-175,  179-181, 

183 

Carlisle,  P.ishop:  H.  Goodwin,  L,  193,  263; 
IL,  144,  154,  193,  219,  221 

Lord,  L,  66,  90,  91,  93,  107 
Carnarvon,  Lord.  IL,  2,  182 
Carter,  Canon,  II.,  64,  65,  87,  98,  99,  102-108 
Cashel,  Bishop:  Daly,  L,  184,  185 
Chamberlain,  Mr.,  IL,  229,  239 
Charges,  I.,  277-279,  283  ;  IL,  35,  97-99,  172 
Chelmsford,  Lord,  I.,  88,230 
Chester,  Bishop:  Jacobson,  I.,  225 

Jayne.  IL,  309,  310,  311 

Sumner.  L,  11 
Chichester,  Bishop  :  Durnford,  IL,  12,  59 
Cliilders,  Mr.,  I.,  212,  214,  224 
Christian  Evidences,  IL,  92 
Christian  Socialism,  IL,  247,  261,  276,  281 
Church  Association,  I.,  253  ;  IL,  165 
Church,  Dean,  IL,  153,  180 
Church  Extension,  IL.  13,  21,  60,  61,  165, 

249,  262.  264,  270 
Clark,  Dr.,  II. ,  19,  lOs,  207 
Clersy  Discipline  Bill,  II.,  304,  306,  309-311 
College  Historical  Society,  I.,  7,  8,  164,  165, 
200 

Communion,  Use  of  TJnfermented  Wine,  IL, 
200 

Conferences,  Diocesan,  I.,  266  ;  IL,  8,  214- 
216,  271 

Confession,  I.,  289,  291,  292,  295  ;  IL,  72- 

75,  77,  94,  95 
(  ongress,  Brighton,  IL,  12 
Bristol,  I.,  105 
Dublin,  I.,  163,  168,  172,  192 
Leicester,  II.,  120,  129,  142 
Manchester,  IL,  253 
South.impton,  I.,  257 
York,  I.,  145 
Connemara,  Visits  to,  I.,  46,  56 
Convocation,  I.,  158,  206,  251,  263,  274-276, 
286.  289  ;  IL,  14,  16,  17,  19,  22,  34, 
40,  54,  58,  69,  88,  90.  129,  138,  150, 
153,  154,  172,  207,  223,  224,  226, 
243,  273,  284,  306,  309-311 
Cork,  Bishop:  Gregg,  L,  96,  107,  110,  169, 
177-179, 182,  239,  249,  262  ;  IL,  183 
Covcrley,  Mr.,  IL,  177-179 
Cranbrook,  Lord,  I.,  176;  IL,  62,  67,  139, 
228,  232 

Cross,  Mr.,  IL,  18,  62,  66,  67,  87,  97,  98 
Cust,  Dean,  IL,  124,  127,  307 

Dale,  Mr.,  IL,  144,  145 
Dalgairns,  Father,  I.,  284 
Damien,  Father,  II.,  254,  255,  277 


318 


INDEX 


Denison,  Archdeacon,  II.,  127,  128,  273 

Speaker,  I.,  175 
Derby,  Lord,  I.,  174,  176,  216,  226,  228,  230, 

275;  II.,  88,  139,  289 
Derry,  Bishop:  Alexander,  I.,  145,  157,  158, 

176,  215,  216,  219,  223,  231,  235, 

249;  II.,  182,  307,  309 
Devon,  Lord,  II.,  52,  58 
Dilapidations,  I.,  106  ;  II.,  39 
Disney,  Mr.,  II.,  50,  185-187 
Disraeli,  Mr.,  I.,  162,  180,  182,  197,  199,  200, 

204,  208,  211,  214,  215,  219,  224, 

293,  294,  296  ;   IL,  2,  11,  67,  87, 

88,  93,  108,  121,  128,  133,  134,  140, 

158,  200 

Donnellan  Lectures,  I.,  62,  87,  90,  91,  108, 
113,  118,  120,  124,  152  ;  II.,  63,  92 

Dablin,  Archbishop — see  Plunlcet,  Lord 

Trench,  L,  91,  94,  109,  118,  131,  151, 
153,  164,  169,  171,  177-179,  181- 
185,  189,  190,  200,  205,  209,  211, 
214-219,  225-227,  229,  232,  233, 
235,  249,  260,  252,  257,  287,  288  ; 
IL,  93 

Whately,  L,  11,  90,  153  ;  IL,  278 
Durham,  Bishop:  Baring,  215,  277;  IL,  59, 
60,  72 

Lightfoot,  IL,  108,  120,  124,  130,  154, 

180,  219,  221 
Westcott,  I.,  207,  259,  269;  H.,  192, 

309,  310,  312 

Eastifard  Position,  IL,  69 
Ecclesiastical  Courts,  IL,  153,  154,  159,  260, 
284 

Fees  Bill,  IL,  34,  36 
Prosecutions,  II.,  40,  109,  144,  162,  173, 
242 

Education,  I.,  77,  79,  103,  121,  124-130,  159, 

170,  180,  243,  251  ;  II.,  126,  291 
Ellison,  Canon,  IL,  124,  125 
Ely,  Bishop:  H.  Browne,  200,  215,  216,  259, 

263,  264,  288 

Woodford,  L,  288  ;  IL,  59,  123, 137,  143- 
145,  148,  153,  174,  175,  21G 
English  Church  Union,  IL,  62,  63,  64,  165 
Erne,  Lord,  I.,  76,  77-79,  88 
"  Essays  and  Reviews,"  I.,  74,  99 
Evantjelical  Party,  1.,  83  ;  H.,  71 
Evening  Communion,  IL,  206,  211 
Exeter,  Bishop:  Bickersteth,  IL,  223 

Temple,  I.,  240,  243,  289  ;  IL,  19,  64, 

127,  144,  174,  175 

Fabrar,  Archdeacon,  IL,  45,  126 

Canon,  L,  268,  283  ;  IL,  167,  192,  219, 
220 

Fearon,  Archdeacon,  L,  200  ;  IL,  64, 161, 189 
Fenians,  L,  118,  121,  128,  180 
Fitzgerald,  Mr.  Penrose,  IL,  W8 
Froude,  Mr.,  I.,  67,  284 

Gasquoine,  Mr.,  II.,  301 

Giberne,  Major,  I.,  42,  58 

Gladstone,  Mr.,  L,  129,  137,  142,  166,  173- 
176,  180,  182,  183,  204,  208,  211- 
222,  224,   226,  227,  232-234,  247, 

264,  274,  275,  285,  287,  296  ;  IL, 
10,  33,  72,  87-89,  113,  114,  120,121, 

128,  138,  140,  159,  162,  167,  173, 
179,  183,  190,  216,  217,  222,  229-  | 


Gladstone,  IL,  231,  234,  239,  256,  259,  261, 

284,  290,  291 
Gloucester  and  Bristol,  Bisliop:  EUicott,  I., 

215,  216,  225,  284,  291,  296  ;  IL,  6, 

88,  108,  143,  160,  223,  224,  227,233 
Goodwin,  Harvey — see  Carlisle 
Goulbum,  Dean,  I.,  65,  18C,  187,  271 
Granville,  Lord,  I.,  231,  233,  275  ;  II.,  6,  7, 

9.  18,  40,  66,  67,  130,  133,  134,  138, 

139,  174,  193,  201,  228,  288 
Graves — see  Limerick 

Graveyards,  Cousecratioii,  IT.,  140,  143,  146 

Green,  Mr.,  IL,  162,  172,  176 

Greg,  Mr.,  L,  284  ;  IL,  23 

Gregory,  Canon,  IL,  153 

Grey,  Lord,  L,  228  ;  IL,  6,  138  • 

Grier,  Prebendary,  IL,  151-153,  156,  217 

Grimthorpe,  Lord,  IL,  227,  240,  248,  260, 

283,  288,  306 
Guniey,  Mr.,  I.,  65,  71 

Halifax,  Lord,  IL,  7,  64,  154,  165,  167 
Halsbury,  Lord,  IL,  279 
Harcourt,  Sir  \V.,  II. ,  33,  140,  141,  144,  147 
Hardy,  Gathorne — see  Cranbrook 
Harrowby,  Lord,  IL,  5-7, 19,  67,  68, 130,  131 
Ilartington,  Lord,  IL,  87,  88,  236,  291 
Hassard,  Sir  J.,  IL,  62,  201,  249 
Hatherley,  Lord,  I.,  233  ;  IL,  7 
Haughton,  Dr.,  I.,  124,  170 
Hereford,  Bisliop  :  Atlay,  L,  204,  215 
Hcrrick,  Mrs.  Perry,  IF..  249 
Hey  wood,  Mr.,  I.,  42 

Mrs.,  L,  54 
Holt,  Mr.,  I.,  291,  292 

Hope,  Mr.  Beresford,  I.,  190,  263  ;  II.,  7, 154 

"  Hospitals  for  Incurables,"  IL,  23,  24 

Houghton,  Lord,  IL,  33,  43,  173 

House  of  Laymen,  IL,  223,  224 

Howson,  Dean,  I.,  210 

Hull,  Visit  to,  IL,  307 

Hutton,  Mr.,  L,  284  ;  IL,  154,  23l5,  253 

Huxley,  Professor,  II.,  262-267,  282 

Infants'  Insurance  Bill,  II.,  288,  289,  311 
Irish  Church,  I.,  155,  160,  176-190,  209-228, 
231-235,  259,  261  ;  IL,  181 
Convention,  I.,  246-248 
Revisiun,  I.,  236,  249,  252-256,  268, 
200,  261,  263-266,  270,  272,  276 
Irwin,  Archdeacon,  I.,  70,  73,  76,  172 

.Tellett,  De.\N,  L,  8,  10,  27,  133,  172,  220, 
237,240,248,  253,254,  269,272;  IL, 
50,93,  97,  130, 192, 196,  220,238,  287 
Professor,  L,  114,  124,  125,  211,  248, 
250,  253,  261  ;  IL, 
Jonnor,  Bishop,  IL,  162-164,  166 
Jcune,  Sir  F.,  L,  200  ;  IL,  141,  259,  267, 

284,  307 

KuxALOE,  Bishop:  Fitzgerald,  I.,  91,  184 
Kimberley,  Lord,  L,  107,  130,  135,  137,  139. 

140,  142  ;  IL,  139,  174,  229 
Kingsley,  Mr.,  L,  49,  67,  257 
Kyle,  Archdeacon,  I.,  97,  106,  182 

L ANSDOWNE,  Lord,  IL,  19,  139,  159 
Lawson,  Sir  W.,  IL,  33,  152 
Lay  r.  Clerical  Association,  I.,  204,  206,  810, 
212-214,  221 


INDEX 


319 


Lee,  Arcbdeacoi),  T.,107,124,1!19,164JG5,172 

Leiiister,  Duke  of,  I.,  124,  126 

Lichfield,  Bishop:  Selwyii,  I.,  182,  215,  225, 

226 ;  IL,  93 
Liddon,  Canon,  L,  242,  250,  251  ;  II.,  G2,  87, 

148 

Lightfoot,  Archdeacon,  II.,  284 

see  Durham 
Limerick,  Bishop:  Griffin,  I.,  106,  129 

Graves,  I.,  107,  125,  131,  134, 135,  138, 

141,  177,  181,  184,  215,  216  ;  II., 

15,  16,  182,  251,  260 
Lincoln,  Bishop  :  Wordsworth,  I.,  204,  259  ; 

11.,  35,  88,  90,  95,  96,  123,  124,  131, 

143,  146,  153,  154,  15.5,  160 
Littledale,  Dr.  I.,  190  :  II.,  127 
Liverpool.  Bishop  :  Hyle,  I.,  119,  195,  266  ; 

II.,  154,  240 
Llandaff,  Jtishop  :   Ollivant,  I.,  225,  226, 

295  ;  II.,  99,  175 
Lloyd,  Mr.,  II.,  243 

London,  Bishop:  Jackson,  I.,  204,  215,  240, 
274  ;  II.,  4,  59,  88,  90,  182 
Tait,  I.,  1,  94,  128,  176,  200.  201,  204 
Temple,  IL,  219,  221,  223,  232,  235, 
240,  242,  248,  306 
Loyd,  Mr.,  II.,  163-166 
Lowe,  Canon,  II.,  73,  74 
Lowell,  Mr.,  II.,  236 
"Lux  Mundi,"  IL,  286,  287 

MabeRLT,  Mr.,  L,  249,  252,  253,  255 
Mackonochie,  Mr.,  L,  225  ;  IL,  76,  81,  87 
Macnamara,  Dr.,  I.,  269 
McNeile,  Dean,  L,  45,  6.5,  102,  119,  187 
Magee,  Archbishop,  I.,  11,  198,  202  ;  IL, 
290,  299 

Archdeacon,  I.,  11,  295  ;  IL,  302 

Mrs.,  65,  115,  205,  223,  238,  256,  284, 
293  ;  II.,  172,  176,  232 
Mallock,  Mr.,  IL,  263,  266 
Manchester,  Bishop  :  Fraser,  IL,  167,215,216 

Moorhouse,  IL,  239,  253,  255 
Manners,  Lord  J.,  IL,  62,  83,  215 
Manning,  Cardinal,  I.,  284  ;  II.,  235,  293 
Mansel,  Dean,  I.,  62,  98,  101,  108 
Marriage  Laws,  II.,  170,  175,  292 
Maturin,  Mr.,  I.,  164,  168,  172 
Maurice,  Mr.,  L,  62,  63,  83,  165-169,  171,  178 
Meath,  Bishop;  Butcher,  I.,  114,  124,  142, 
178,  215-218 

see  Plunk  et.  Lord 

Eeichel,  I.,  90,  107,  110,  133,  156,  157, 
169,  252,  253,  265,  268  ;  II.,  49,  81, 
167,  281,  285,  287 
Singer,  I.,  140,  141 
Metaphysical  Society,  I.,  284  ;  IL,  22,  89 
Meyer,  Mr.,  IL,  197 
Miall,  Mr.,  I.,  266,  276,  286,  287 
Miracles,  Views  on,  I.,  98  ;  II.,  92 
Missions,  Leicester,  II.,  171 
Navvies',  II. ,  110 
Northampton,  IL,  37,  190 
Mitchinson,  Bishop,  U.,  176,  189,  190,  197, 
209,  210,  211,  249,  263,  267,  278, 
292,  297 
Monk,  Mr.,  IL,  160,  161 
MuUoy,  Mr.,  L,  33  ;  IL,  301 

Naas,  Lord,  L,  139,  153 

Napier,  Sir  J.,  L,  152,  156,  176,  177,  181,  270 

Nelson,  Lord,  I.,  1 95;  II.,  6,98, 99,164, 1 83, 223 


Newell,  Dr.,  L,  4,  103,  121,  127,  129-131, 

136,  155,  159,  160,  180,  197,  222, 

248,  269  ;  IL,  220 
Newman,  Cardinal,  II.,  14S,  181 

F.,  L,  153  ;  II.,  80 
Northcote,  Sir  S.,  II. ,  62,  170 
Norwich,  Bishop:  Pelham,  I,,  160,  188,  215, 

216,  225,  259,  263  J  IL,  88,  90,  123, 

143,  300 

O.A.THS,  Article  on,  II.,  219,  220 
Ohio,  Bishop:  Mclhvalne,  I.,  257,  286 
Ordinations,  IL,  15,  189,  203,  245,  268 
Ossory.  Bishop  :  O'Bri.an,  I.,  130,  179,  184 
0.x:lbrd,  Bishop  :  Mackarness,  IL,  109,  132, 
143,  304,  223 
Sermons,  I.,  62,  169  ;  IL,  147,  148 
Visits  to,  L,  129,  135,  251  ;  IL,  290 
Wilberforce,  L,  62,  75,  149,  159,  172, 
182,  186,  195,  2U0,  201,  209,  210, 
213-216,  225,  226 

Palmer,  Sir  R. — see  Selborne 
Pan-Anglican  Synod,  II,,  94,  96,  251,  283 
Parliamentary  Debates  :  Burials  Bill,  IL,  68, 

90,  133 

Cathedral  Statutes,  IL,  193 
Church  Patronage,  II.,  18,  240,  241 
D.W.S.,  L,  250;  IL,  173,  193 
Disturbances  Bill,  II.,  138 
Ecclesiastical  Courts,  I.,  274 
House  of  Commons,  II.,  87,  131,  161, 
248 

Irish  Church,  L,  175,  224,  228,231-235 
Land  Bill,  IL,  159,  160 
University,  I.,  285 

Parish  Churches,  IL,  227 

P.VV.R.,  IL,  1,  6 

Temperance,  IL,  43,  44 

Tithe  Bill,  II.,  231 

Vivisection,  II.,  113,  117 
Pamell,  Mr.,  IL,  167,  217,  231,  284 
Patronage,  Diocesan,  II.,  3,  46,  59,  271 

Church,  II.,  1,  3,  4,  14-16,  18-22,  32, 
33,  35,  36,  89,  149,  161,  219,  221, 
223,  224 
Pattison,  Mark,  IL,  89 
Pau,  Visit  to,  I.,  44 
Peach,  Mr.,  I.,  48-50,  53,  278 
Penzance,  Lord,  IL,  36,  62,  66,  144,  145 
Pcrowne,  Dean,  II.,  97,  193,  214,  304 
Phillimorc,  Sir  E.,  IL,  144,  145,  156 
Pilkington,  Mr.,  I.,  3 
I'lunket — see  Tuam 

Pluuket,  Lord,  I.,  172,  270  ;  II.,  49,  50,  59, 
113.  260 

Prayers  for  the  Dead,  IL,  187,  188 
Preaching,  Lectures  on,  IL,  17 
"  Priest  in  Absolution,"  II.,  72-74,  94 
Public  Worship  Kegulation,  IL,  1,  2,  4-8, 
10,  11,  17,  63,  55,  69,  62,  77,  87,  243 
Purchas  Judgment,  I.,  266  ;  IL,  69 
Pusey,  Dr.,  IL,  4,  126,  183 

Queen  Anne's  Bounty  Bill,  11.,  158,  159- 
161,  232 

Reichel — see  Meath 

Reminiscences,  I.,  3-5,  41-43,  47-60,  53,  54 
Richmond,  Duke  of,  II.,  3,  4,  7,  9, 16,  18,  22, 
60-68,  182 


320 


INDEX 


Kidsdalo  Judgment,  II.,  63,  (M,  82 
Kipoii,  Bishop  :  liiokcrstetli,  I..  225,  226 
llliodes,  Mr.,  I.,  50,  63,  100,  143 
Kochester,  Bishop  :  Claiightoii,  1.,  215,  225, 
226,  259  ;  II.,  6 
Thorold,  11.,  144,  208,  292 
Home,  Visit  to,  11.,  38,  39 
I.'osclale,  Mr..  II.,  202 

Kubiical  Eevisiou,  II.,  14,  16,  22,  54,  58,  72, 

152,  153,  243,  273 
liuMiin,  Mr.,  I..  284 
Kyle — see  Liverpool 

Salisburv,  Bishop:  Mobcrlcy,  IT.,  131 

Lord,  I.,  22G,  233,  204,  275,  285  ;  II., 

7-9,  67,  08,  91,  139,  159,  161,  193, 

201,  233,  239-241,29.-,,  296,  306,  313 
Salmon,  Dr.,  I.,  89,  90,  98,  1  39,  171,  195,  198, 

205,  228,  242,  25:1,  254.  256,  270  ; 

IL,  23,  220,  208,  278-280,  298,  299, 

309 

Pecpticism,  Lecture  on,  I.,  88 

Science  luul  Faith,  I.,  145  ;  II.,  11,  24,  80,  147 

Selborne,  Lord,  I.,  183,  188,  189,  190,  224, 
226  ;  IL,  7,  15,  16,  IS,  22,  68,89, 
90,  134,  139,  157,  175,  228,  232, 
2-11,  242 

Sclwyn — see  Licli  field 

Shaftesbury,  I>ord,  I.,  90,  136,  275,  286  ;  IL, 

fi-9,  14,  113,  117,  132,  175 
Shaw-Stewart,  Mr.,  IL,  50-52,  54,  58 
Smith,  Mr.  W.  H.,  IL,  232,  291,  304 
Society  of  the  Holy  Cross,  IL,  70,  73-76,  81, 

163-165,  177-179 
Somerset,  Duke  of,  I.,  221,  222  ;  IL,  33,  139 
Spain,  Letters  from,  I.,  14  ;  II.,  190 
Speeches:  Artists'  Dinner,  IL,  114 
Bristol  Congress,  I.,  105 
College  Historical  Society,  I.,  9 
Disestablishment,  II.,  214 
Dublin  ConsTess,  I.,  193 
Education,  I.,  244  ;  IL,  12 
Exeter  Hall,  I.,  55 
Gamblinff,  IL,  274,  278,  279 
Bouse  of  Lords,  I.,  221,  227,  228,  250, 
274;  IL,  1,  6,  19,  42,  44,  68,  117, 
173,  193,  227,  240,  233,  288 
Loughborough,  IL,  83 
Manchester  Congress,  IL,  254 
Medical  Benevolent  Fund,  IL,  235 
Kitual,  IL,  272 
Socialism,  IL,  276 
Voluntary  System,  I.,  51-53 
York  Congress,  L,  146 
Spencer.  Lord,  L,  212  ;  IL,  133,  159,  2S9 
St.  Albans,  liisliop;  Claughton,  IL,  123,  M3 
St.  Asaph,  Bi-ihop :  Hughes,  II.,  59 
St.  David's,  Bishop:  Jones,  IL,  59 

Thirlwall,  L,  215,  216,  221,  225,  228 
Stanhope,  Lord,  I.,  226,  232 
Stanley,  Dean,  L,  186,  190;  IL,  64,  70,  132, 
156,  160,  161,  180,  247 
Lord— .see  Derby 
Stephens,  Mr.,  L,  97, 150,  183,  184,  185,  187- 

190  ;  IL,  7,  14 
Stopford,  Archdeacon,  I.,  89,  156,  178,  186, 
188,  190.  211.  255 


Stonghton,  Dr.,  I.,  287  ;  IL,  143 
Suffragan  Bi.sbop,  IL,  210,  248,  251,  306,312 
Suicide,  Letter  on,  IL,  46 
Sullivan,  Sir  E.,  L,  171,  207,  224 

Tait — see  London  and  Canterbury 
Talbot,  Mr.  J.,  IL,  50-52,  54,  58,  97 
Temperance,  IL,  43-46,  91,  92,  122-124,  217, 
233,  275 

Theological  Colleges,  IL,  60,  268 
Thicknesse,  Bishop,  IL,  71,  125,  165,  168, 

181,  251,  263 
Thornton,  Mr.,  IL,  164,  205 
Todd,  Dr.,  L,  171 ;  IL,  183 
Tooth,  Mr.,  IL,  41,  62,  64,  66,  87 
Tottenliara,  Mr.,  I.,  34,  42 
Tuwnseud,Mr.,  I.,  £9,  74,  75,  86, 104,  141,1 43, 
159,  198,  227,  282  ;  IL,  180,  187,  188 
Trench — see  Dublin 
Trevelyan,  Sir  G.,  IL,  231,  236 
T:uro,  Bishop:  Benson,  IL,  180 

Wilkinson,  IL,  223,  286 
Tuam,  Bishop:  Bernard,  I.,  178,  179 

riunket,  I.,  11 
Tyndall,  Professor,  IL,  11,  23,  80,  81 

VrsTMENT.s,  Use  of,  IL,  34,  64,  82,  90,  302 
Vnicentian  Rule  of  Faith,  II.,  102-108 

Wace,  Dr.,  IL,  253,  266 

Wales,  Chancellor,  L,  205  ;  IL,  165,  205,  215 

Prince  of,  I.,  294  ;  IL,  174,  247 
Walker,  Dr.,  IL,  124,  125,  194,  202,207,267, 
287 

Mrs.  J.,  L,  47 
vValpole,  Mr.,  IL,  18,  36 
Waterford,  Lord,  IL,  139,  173 
Watson,  Canon,  IL,  185,  302 
Webster,  Dr.,  L,  102,  106,  248 
Wellesley,  Dean,  I.,  233,  234;  IL,  183 
Westbury,  Lord,  L,  250,  275 
Westcott — see  Durham 
Whately — see  Dublin 

Whiteside,  Chief  Ju.stlce,  L,  89,  124,  130,  137, 

139,  152,  169,  194 
Wilberforce,  Jlr.  II.,  IL,  182,  183 
see  Oxford  and  Winchester 
Willcinson — see  Truro 

Winchester,  Bishop :  H.  Browne,  IL,  64,  122, 
144,  154,  175,  180,  181,  222,  226 
Thorold,  IL,  304 

Wilberforce,  I.,  257,  276,  287-289,  291, 
296;  IL,  55,  57,  123,  125,  181-184 
Wodebouse — see  Kimbcrley 
\\'ood — see  Hiilifax 

Worcester,  Bishop:  Philpott,  IL,  127,  128 

Perowne,  II. ,  301 
Wordsworth — see  Lincoln 

Mr.  C,  IL,  69  / 
Wright,  Mr.,  IL,  261 

York,  Archbishop  :  Thomson,  I.,  145,  201, 
215,  216,  219,  225,  226,  228,  231, 
250,  265  ;  IL,  6,  8,  10,  15,  16,  49, 
50-53,  55,  50,  59,  67-69,  88,  95,  96, 
117,  132,  144,  155,  219,  221,  253, 
232,  300,  309